summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/60975-0.txt10278
-rw-r--r--old/60975-0.zipbin191743 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h.zipbin1815119 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/60975-h.htm15442
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/battlefields.jpgbin92176 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/battlefields_large.jpgbin191190 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/cover.jpgbin94877 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/diagram.jpgbin49624 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/grippenberg.jpgbin93531 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/linievitch.jpgbin92780 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/manchuria.jpgbin100940 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/manchuria_large.jpgbin186429 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/nogi.jpgbin96992 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/oyama.jpgbin94743 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/reviewing.jpgbin92648 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/theatre.jpgbin99644 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60975-h/images/theatre_large.jpgbin333934 -> 0 bytes
20 files changed, 17 insertions, 25720 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..e929930
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #60975 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/60975)
diff --git a/old/60975-0.txt b/old/60975-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 9ba7d10..0000000
--- a/old/60975-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10278 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Russian army and the Japanese War,
-Volume II, by Aleksei Nicolaevich Kuropatkin
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Russian army and the Japanese War, Volume II
- Being historical and critical comments on the military
- policy and power of Russia and on the campaign in the Far
- East
-
-Author: Aleksei Nicolaevich Kuropatkin
-
-Translator: Alexander Bertram Lindsay
-
-Release Date: December 20, 2019 [EBook #60975]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RUSSIAN ARMY AND THE JAPANESE WAR ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Brian Coe, David Tipple and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber’s Notes:
-
- A small number of obvious typos have been corrected. Except for
- these corrections, the spelling and punctuation of the book have
- not been changed.
-
- Underscores are used for italic markup; the three words that
- end this sentence _are in italics_.
-
- There are 113 footnotes in the source book marked by characters
- such as * and †. In this e-book each footnote has a unique marker
- that consists of a number enclosed by square brackets. All the
- footnotes have been moved to the end of the main text where each
- footnote is headed by its marker.
-
-
-
-
- THE RUSSIAN ARMY AND THE
- JAPANESE WAR
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: GENERAL KUROPATKIN REVIEWING HIS TROOPS.]
-
-
-
-
- THE RUSSIAN ARMY AND
- THE JAPANESE WAR,
-
- BEING HISTORICAL AND CRITICAL COMMENTS ON
- THE MILITARY POLICY AND POWER OF RUSSIA
- AND ON THE CAMPAIGN IN THE FAR EAST,
-
- BY GENERAL KUROPATKIN.
-
-
- TRANSLATED BY
- CAPTAIN A. B. LINDSAY,
- 2ND KING EDWARD’S OWN GURKHA RIFLES
- TRANSLATOR OF “THE BATTLE OF TSU-SHIMA”;
- “THE TRUTH ABOUT PORT ARTHUR,” ETC.
-
- EDITED BY
- MAJOR E. D. SWINTON, D.S.O., R.E.,
- AUTHOR OF “THE DEFENCE OF DUFFER’S DRIFT”;
- AND EDITOR OF “THE TRUTH ABOUT PORT ARTHUR.”
-
-
- WITH MAPS AND ILLUSTRATIONS
-
- IN TWO VOLUMES: VOL. II.
-
-
- NEW YORK
- E. P. DUTTON AND COMPANY
- 1909
-
-
-
-
- PRINTED IN GREAT BRITAIN
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS TO VOL. II
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
- PAGES
- Reasons for our reverses (_continued_): The insufficient
- tactical preparation of our troops—Measures taken
- to improve it 1–25
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- Reasons for our reverses (_conclusion_): Particular
- difficulties of the strategic situation—Defects in
- organization and _personnel_—Absence of a military
- spirit in the army, and lack of determination in
- carrying operations to a finish—Breakdown of our
- organization under the strain of active service 26–97
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- Suggested measures for the improvement of the senior
- ranks; for the improvement of the regulars and
- reservists; for the reorganization of the reserve
- troops; for increasing the number of combatants
- in infantry regiments—Machine-guns—Reserve
- troops—Troops on the communications—Engineers
- —Artillery—Cavalry—Infantry—Organization generally 98–176
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- Summary of the war 177–204
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
- Introduction and conclusion to Volume III. 205–305
-
-
- APPENDIX I
-
- The Royal Timber Company 306–313
-
-
- APPENDIX II
-
- Breakdown of the unit organization and distribution 314–335
-
-
- INDEX 336–348
-
-
-
-
- ILLUSTRATIONS TO VOL. II.
-
-
- GENERAL KUROPATKIN REVIEWING HIS TROOPS _Frontispiece_
-
- OPPOSITE PAGE
- GENERAL LINIEVITCH 18
-
- GENERAL BARON KITEN NOGI 40
-
- GENERAL GRIPPENBERG 100
-
- FIELD-MARSHAL MARQUIS IWAO OYAMA 206
-
-
- MAPS
-
- SKETCH-MAP OF MANCHURIA, SHOWING MAIN PLACES
- ALONG RAILWAY SOUTH OF HARBIN 27
-
- DIAGRAM SHOWING THE POSITION OF THE THEATRE OF
- WAR RELATIVELY TO RUSSIA AND JAPAN 34
-
- SKETCH-MAP OF AREA CONTAINING THE BATTLE-FIELDS
- OF LIAO-YANG, THE SHA HO, HEI-KOU-TAI, AND
- MUKDEN, SHOWING SOME OF THE MORE IMPORTANT
- PLACES MENTIONED _At the end_
-
- MAP OF THE THEATRE OF OPERATIONS SOUTH OF
- MUKDEN _At the end_
-
-
-
-
- THE RUSSIAN ARMY AND THE JAPANESE WAR
-
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
- REASONS FOR OUR REVERSES (_continued_)
-
- The insufficient tactical preparation of our troops—Measures
- taken to improve it.
-
-
-I have touched upon the fact of how our want of tactical training was
-shown up in the Crimean and second Turkish Wars. Especially conspicuous
-was the inability of our senior commanders—relying as they usually
-did upon quite inadequate information as to the enemy’s strength and
-dispositions—to co-ordinate the operations of the different arms
-towards one end, and their ignorance of where to deliver the main
-attack. The minor part played by our cavalry and our comparatively
-great power of defence were also remarked. Finally, attention was drawn
-to the fact that our lack of the power of manœuvre compelled us to
-place superior numbers in the field against the Turks, a course which
-had not formerly been necessary.
-
-After the war of 1877–78 we set to work to study our weak points, in
-order to eliminate our faults. Much must have been accomplished since
-then, for the tactical training of the army at the beginning of the
-recent war was undoubtedly of a higher standard than it was twenty-five
-years ago. Still, in some matters we had not progressed, while in
-others we had actually gone back. The duty of training the troops rests
-with commanding officers of all ranks, and the responsibility for this
-extends right up to those in command of military districts. Although
-the same drill-books and manuals are used by the whole army, there
-is considerable variety in the way that the tactical instruction is
-imparted, owing to the diverse views held by the district commanders.
-I have taken part in many manœuvres, and was in command of the army
-at the grand manœuvres at Kursk in 1902, and I noted down what I
-considered to be our principal failings in this respect. In October,
-1903, I submitted a report on the subject to the Tsar, in which my
-conclusions on certain points were as follows:
-
-
- “1. _Staff Work with the Main Army and with Detached Columns at
- the Grand Manœuvres._
-
- “Generally speaking, the staff work cannot be characterized
- as entirely satisfactory. The principal reasons for this were
- the somewhat unhappy selection of the officers appointed to
- be chiefs of the different staffs, the poor organization of
- the staffs themselves, due to a limited personnel and to an
- insufficient supply of the means of communication [telegraph
- and telephone equipment] for both the troops and staffs, and
- the neglect to arrange proper intercommunication between units
- by making use of mounted orderlies, automobiles, or cyclists.
- Intelligence of the enemy as well as of the disposition
- of other units was always received late by those whom it
- concerned, because the cavalry was badly organized, and could
- not carry out its orders properly.
-
- “The amount of writing done by the various staff-officers was
- colossal. They worked the whole evening and all night; their
- effusions were lithographed or printed, and were sent off in
- all directions; but the orders were rarely received by the
- troops in proper time. At the manœuvres of the Warsaw Military
- District in 1899, cases came under my notice of general
- officers commanding divisions receiving the order to move in
- the morning two hours after the time appointed for them to
- start.
-
- “In many instances staff-officers with troops seemed ignorant
- of how a reconnaissance should be carried out, and consequently
- did not gauge the dispositions of the enemy’s forces with
- sufficient accuracy. This reacted in turn on the dispositions
- made by the chief commanders, more particularly in their
- employment of the reserves (Kursk manœuvres and those at Pskoff
- and Vlodava). Similarly, they did not know how to arrange for
- the maintenance of touch along the front and to the rear,
- a defect which caused a delay in the receipt of orders and
- information which was quite avoidable.
-
-
- “2. _Work of the Cavalry at Manœuvres._
-
- “The increased importance now attached to the strategic or
- independent duties of cavalry has, in my opinion, acted
- detrimentally upon the cavalry work with the troops. The
- spirit of the strategic rôle was in most cases not properly
- grasped, and the chief idea of the masses of mounted troops of
- both sides appeared to be to meet each other. They therefore
- neglected to furnish the commanders of their sides with the
- information of the enemy, so necessary before an action, and
- left the infantry without their co-operation during the actual
- combat; this was the same whether they were acting in attack or
- defence. Long-distance patrols often did useful work, but owing
- to the lack of proper means for the quick transmission of the
- information collected, it reached the troops to whom it might
- be useful after the enemy’s dispositions had been changed.
- The near patrols did not work in with the long-distance ones.
- Our mounted troops were frequently allowed to lose touch with
- the enemy at night under the pretext that the men and horses
- required rest, and the employment of a dozen troopers was
- grudged after dark, when by day whole divisions and corps were
- futilely marched and countermarched, and sent upon duties which
- were not always in accordance with the general idea of the
- operations.
-
- “The cavalry work should be more strictly in co-operation with
- that of the other arms than it is at present, and all officers
- in command of mounted units should remember that their rôle is
- auxiliary, and largely consists in assisting the General in
- command to come to a proper decision by the completeness and
- accuracy of the information they send back; that the cavalry
- should help the commanders, firstly, to frame a plan of action,
- then to crush the enemy on the field of battle.
-
-
- “3. _Attack and the Defence._
-
- “Here again information was wanting. When commanders made up
- their minds either to attack or to stand on the defensive, they
- were never able to feel, from their information of the enemy
- and the locality, that they thoroughly knew what they were
- doing, or that it really was in accordance with the spirit of
- the general idea. We were strong in the defence, but we rarely
- delivered a soundly conceived or executed attack. In the attack
- column commanders did not always take pains to obtain enough
- accurate information as to the dispositions and strength of the
- enemy, so as to be able to appreciate the situation properly
- and draw up a reasoned plan of battle, to select the direction
- of the main attack, to allot the troops for it, and take steps
- to deceive the enemy as to its precise direction. When they had
- massed sufficient first-line troops for the main attack, they
- did not also move up the reserves of all arms.
-
- “In particular, we did not know how to conduct the advance, and
- then deliver the assault with proper preparation by artillery
- and rifle fire. Many commanders seem, unfortunately, to be
- wedded to the idea of carrying out a continuous advance without
- making any use of the rifle. If we ever encounter an enemy,
- such as the Germans, who systematically train their troops to
- advance under cover of their own heavy rifle-fire, we shall be
- worsted, for in peace we often advance almost without firing a
- rifle to a range of 1,000 or even 800 paces of the position.
-
- “The guns also frequently ceased fire at the same critical
- period—_i.e._, when their attacking infantry are nearing the
- enemy. My inquiries as to the reason for this were usually
- met with the reply that their ammunition was expended. If
- the absolute necessity for keeping in hand a considerable
- number of rounds for the assistance of the decisive infantry
- attack is not realized now that we have quick-firing guns, our
- artillery will in war become useless at the very moment when
- its co-operation is most vital.
-
- “In defence we are better than in the attack, and we know how
- to make the most of the fire effect of both guns and rifles.
- The ranges in front of a position are usually measured and
- clearly marked. But proper use is not made of reserves. We do
- not, as we should, throw them into the firing-line, so as to
- increase the volume of fire after the enemy’s main attack has
- developed, nor do we launch them in a fierce counter-attack
- after he has come within decisive range. The reserves are
- often kept in mass, and thrown against the attack without any
- supporting rifle-fire. Many regiments and brigades told off as
- reserves to a defensive position go through the whole manœuvres
- without firing a single round.
-
-
- “4. _The Revival of the Column Formation in the Attack._
-
- “Other European armies are now doing everything possible to
- minimize the murderous effect of modern rifle and artillery
- fire on themselves, and are, at the same time, endeavouring
- to develop their own fire to the utmost, both in the attack
- and defence; indeed, the Germans, in their efforts to this
- end, have gone the extreme length of deploying all their
- troops—sometimes even to the sacrifice of their reserves—in
- long thin lines. We, on the other hand, judging by the last
- manœuvres, are going to the other extreme, for our decisive
- attack is delivered almost without any fire preparation, and
- with men massed in quarter column!
-
- “If a stop is not put to the increasing density of our attack
- formations, we shall suffer for it heavily. It is all the more
- dangerous for us, as we do not assist our assaulting infantry
- properly with supporting gun and rifle fire.
-
-
- “5. _The Work of the Artillery._
-
- “Artillery positions were in most cases skilfully chosen, but
- the fire discipline was often bad. As batteries can only carry
- a limited number of rounds in the field, it is vital that the
- gunners should be taught to economize every round; this is, of
- course, particularly important with quick-firing guns. But we
- often fired more rounds than were necessary: fire was opened
- too hurriedly, at quite unimportant targets, with the result
- that, at the critical moment of the attack, batteries had to
- signal that they were in action, for all their ammunition had
- been expended.[1]
-
- “6. _The Work of the Sappers._
-
- “The bloody lessons of Plevna and Gora Dubniak put fresh life
- into our military engineering, which lasted for a certain
- time after the Turkish War. Our sappers became skilful at
- constructing trenches and redoubts, and the other troops were
- also trained in field-works, and began to like entrenching
- themselves. But a reaction soon set in. This was largely due
- to General Dragomiroff, who did much to bring about a return
- to the old order of things, when it was held that everything
- was decided by the bayonet. He was quite opposed to the use of
- cover, and carried his orders on this subject to the height of
- absurdity, even forbidding his men to lie down while advancing
- to attack!
-
- “To dig oneself into the ground means labour, and takes much
- time. Moreover, instructions used to be issued that all
- trenches dug had to be filled in again, and all redoubts
- dismantled. This at once limited the scope of trench-work in
- the army. The entrenching tool, which after the Turkish War had
- been valued next to cartridges and biscuits, was relegated to
- the mobilization store, and never brought out for use or even
- for inspection. At many manœuvres the men were not practised at
- all in the fortification of positions; at others the alignment
- of trenches was traced only. While giving the sapper units full
- credit for their excellent training, I cannot but express my
- fear that they specialize far too much in a mass of detail, and
- ignore the fact that their main duty in war is to co-operate in
- every way with the infantry, both in strengthening defensive
- positions and in the attack of them.
-
- “7. _Criticism by Commanders._
-
- “It is gradually becoming the custom to omit all criticisms[2]
- at grand manœuvres. Mistakes, therefore, pass unnoticed, are
- repeated, and tend to become chronic. I remember some very
- instructive manœuvre criticisms made by General Gurko, and
- I have listened with interest and advantage to others made
- by General Roop. Discussions after the operations are always
- held in the Kieff and St. Petersburg Military Districts,
- but nowadays some officers in command of districts neither
- make any remarks themselves when present at manœuvres, nor
- expect them to be made by the officers commanding sides or
- the other seniors. Orders issued after a long period—though
- they may enumerate the various points noticed—and the reports
- eventually printed of large concentrations and manœuvres, are
- comparatively useless for instruction. To be of use, criticisms
- must be made by the commanders, and made on the spot.
-
- “It is, however, important to realize how rare the power of
- good criticism is. The remarks usually made are either quite
- colourless or too highly pitched. Some of our most capable
- general officers also seem peculiarly ‘unlucky’ in the way
- they manage unnecessarily to hurt the feelings of commanding
- officers by their harsh way of putting things. They forget
- that to lower the prestige of a senior in the presence of his
- juniors always produces a bitter harvest, especially in war.
- They forget the infinite variety of the conditions of different
- tactical situations, and that at peace manœuvres there is
- no need for one side to win or lose. Again, independent
- action, though certainly not wrong in itself, is often put
- down as a mistake and adjudged to be wrong because the senior
- commander has his own opinion in the matter. Such narrow-minded
- criticism deprives officers in command of units of the
- spirit of independence, of initiative, and of the desire for
- responsibility. Instead, they try to discover the fads of the
- officer in command, in order to ‘play up’ to them.
-
-
- “8. _Conclusion as to the Tactical Instruction of our Troops._
-
- “Although the opinion of the generals in command of military
- districts in all matters pertaining to military training
- should, and do, carry great weight, yet there must be some
- limit to individual action. It is impossible, for instance, to
- permit each of them to train the troops in his command entirely
- in accordance with his own views as to what is most important
- in war; for the instruction of attack and defence should not
- be carried out on entirely different lines in the different
- districts. Yet this is more or less what has been done. We at
- headquarters are partly to blame, owing to the delay in the
- publication of the field-service manuals and the instructions
- for the combined training of all arms. As an example of what I
- refer to: General Dragomiroff has trained the troops under him
- in the Kieff Military District to attack according to a system
- of his own, of which the soundness is open to doubt. If some of
- his theories are carried out in war, they will result in heavy
- loss, and therefore their inculcation in peace seems entirely
- wrong. His order that the skirmishers escorting artillery
- should be on a line with the guns themselves would only cause
- the premature silencing of the latter; and another, that the
- lines of skirmishers advancing to attack should not lie down
- when halted, is simply impossible of execution. When bullets
- are flying, a line lies down of its own accord as soon as it
- halts, and quite rightly so, as men get cover more easily when
- lying than standing. And now, following General Dragomiroff’s
- example, in the Vilna Military District General Grippenberg has
- begun to act according to his own theories, and depart from
- the textbook. In his District Orders this year,[3] in which
- were published his criticisms on the work done at manœuvres, he
- recommends that infantry in close order should receive cavalry
- with independent fire[4] instead of with volleys. He insists,
- also, that when a line is advancing by short rushes, these
- rushes should begin from the flanks.
-
- “Unfortunately, much that I saw when inspecting the troops in
- the different districts and on grand manœuvres led me to the
- conclusion that the tactical training, especially in command,
- of officers commanding units, from regiments upwards, is
- neither sound nor uniform.”
-
-My strictures on the peace tactical training of the army were,
-unfortunately, only too well confirmed during the war.
-
-The theatre of war in Manchuria presented many peculiarities of
-climate, topography, and inhabitants. It was unlike any of the
-“probable” theatres of operations we had studied, and was, therefore,
-quite new to the troops who came from European Russia. The Japanese
-were not only new and practically unknown foes, but the nature of the
-information that we did possess about them tended to show our great
-superiority, and therefore incited us to contempt. The existing edition
-of our “Field Service Regulations” was obsolete, and the revised
-edition was still in the Press. Special instructions, therefore, had to
-be issued, in order to assist our troops to grapple with the entirely
-strange conditions under which they were placed. These were compiled
-and printed under my direction, and distributed to officers in command
-of all units, from companies and squadrons upwards, and to all chief
-staff-officers. In them I emphasized the necessity of getting to know
-something about the enemy, enumerated their strong and weak points,
-and drew attention to their patriotism and traditional indifference to
-death. I stated that their strong points predominated, and that in the
-Japanese we should find a very powerful opponent, even when reckoned by
-European standards. I continued:
-
- “It is most important that in the first engagements, in which
- they will certainly be in superior strength, we should not give
- the Japanese the satisfaction of victory, for that will only
- still further elevate their spirit.
-
- “No particular or new tactics need be adopted against our
- present enemy, but we must not repeat the mistakes in
- manœuvring which cost us so dear in the Turkish War of 1877–78.”
-
-I then mentioned the causes of our reverses at Plevna, and commented
-in detail on the most important. After capturing Nicopolis, our troops
-moved on Plevna in ignorance of the strength and dispositions of the
-enemy. As far as obtaining this information was concerned, our cavalry
-was not well handled. In the first fight at Plevna (July 20, 1877)
-we attacked with too few men and in detail. We did the same in the
-fights of July 31 and September 12, but to an even greater extent,
-and the attacks were carried out in too dense a formation, were not
-sufficiently prepared by fire-effect, and our own numerous cavalry
-and that of the Roumanians did practically nothing. The attacks on
-September 10 and 11, 1877, failed because our troops were badly
-distributed and untrained. I attached an appreciation of the work of
-our troops in the Turkish War as follows:
-
- “In this war the staff work was not always successful. The
- troops often received orders too late, and time was wasted
- waiting for their receipt before commencing a move. Units
- arriving at night on the positions allotted to them did not
- always find the officers who should have been waiting their
- arrival to guide them. Officers in command of troops were
- often not informed by the staff as to the enemy’s strength
- and dispositions, or as to our own neighbouring columns. Lack
- of information was the principal cause of our disasters; we
- sometimes attacked in entire ignorance of the enemy’s strength
- and dispositions, and even partially so of our own.
-
- “As an example of what our troops can do in an attack may be
- quoted the capture of Kars; it is a very instructive case.
- Though the weak field-works of Plevna resisted our efforts for
- five months, at Kars neither strong parapets nor deep ditches
- could check our onslaught. Our gallant Caucasians advanced on
- the fortress by night; they were well led, and always had a
- body of scouts skilfully thrown out in front, and they captured
- strongholds that had been termed ‘impregnable’ with great
- bravery.
-
- “In the defence our troops have always fought well. Let us
- remember the defence of the Shipka Pass, and imitate it.”
-
-After a short review of our errors in the Turkish War, I enumerated
-those which were still noticeable in our peace manœuvres.
-
-As operations developed the enemy’s peculiarities became as well known
-as our own, so I was able in August, September, October, and December,
-1904, to issue supplementary instructions.
-
-Notwithstanding the number of our cavalry, and what our scouts had
-been able to do, we had not ascertained the general dispositions
-and strength of the enemy. The information brought in by spies was
-exaggerated and unreliable. The result was that, when we had carried
-out any offensive operations, we had advanced without knowing anything
-of the enemy. My instructions ran:
-
-
- _Instructions issued in August._
-
- “In our attacks we have started the advance too rapidly,
- without strengthening positions already occupied, and without
- full artillery co-operation, and we have stopped the action at
- a period when we still had large numbers both in the general
- and regimental reserves. In retirements we have withdrawn to
- positions previously occupied by us without having taken steps
- to hold our ground on any of them, which preparation would not
- only have greatly assisted the retirement itself, but, what was
- far more important, would have enabled us to renew the attack.
-
- “Another point is, that many of our defensive positions have
- not corresponded to the numbers, when extended, told off to
- defend them. Nevertheless, the enemy’s frontal attacks, even if
- we hold quite chance positions, usually fail, and we have been
- obliged to abandon our ground owing to the turning movements
- which their superior numbers have made possible.
-
- “In attacking, especially among hills, the infantry must wait
- so that the assault may be prepared by fire, in order to get
- breath or to give time for the co-operation of a turning
- movement. There is also another and involuntary reason for
- halting—namely, the enemy’s fire. Owing to this, units halt,
- or, what is worse, begin to retire without orders; what then
- usually happens is this: A few men begin to trickle back from
- some company that has come under a particularly hot fire; they
- are followed by their own company, which is in turn followed
- by the companies on either side, even though the latter may
- perhaps be holding strong ground. Such a moment is, indeed,
- critical, and unless some brilliant officer appears who
- possesses the secret of rallying retreating men and succeeds
- in making the company hold its ground, the action is lost. But
- besides setting a personal example to the men, a commanding
- officer must at once push forward some of his reserves to
- stop the rot among those retreating. The most important thing
- at such a crisis is the example set by the officers or the
- steadiest men, particularly by Cavaliers of the Order of St.
- George.[5] A company commander’s example is everything to his
- company. Therefore, however deserving he may be in peace, a
- company commander who does not display personal gallantry in
- action should be instantly removed from his command.
-
- “The most effective method of guarding against a sudden
- emergency either in attack or defence—and this is particularly
- true in hilly country—is to have in hand a strong reserve,
- and not to make use of it too lightly. This we have not done
- in recent actions; we have told off weak reserves, and used
- them up too quickly. Whole regiments have sometimes been sent
- in support where two companies or a battalion would have been
- ample.[6]
-
- “In all kinds of operations officers in command must keep the
- forces on either flank, as well as their seniors, informed of
- everything that happens. We are, unfortunately, not accustomed
- to do this. Before an action the smallest details are reported,
- but as soon as an action begins we become so preoccupied with
- the fight that the most obvious duties are forgotten. Chief
- staff-officers of all grades will in future be held responsible
- for the frequent transmission of reports during an action.”
-
-The special attention of commanding officers was also called to the
-necessity for providing their men with hot food during action, and to
-the excessive expenditure of ammunition in our fights.
-
-
- _Instructions issued during September._
-
-The following were the main instructions given by me while preparing
-for an advance after the fighting in August:
-
- “It is a regrettable fact that so far, whenever we have taken
- the offensive, we have met with reverse. Owing to our lack
- of information, to which I have already drawn attention,
- instead of delivering a confident attack according to a
- clearly-thought-out plan, we have acted in a half-hearted
- manner. We often deliver our main attack too soon, and
- regardless of the enemy’s intentions. Instances have occurred
- where we have detailed attacking columns as small as a
- battalion; in others we have operated without any definite
- plan of action. Finally, there have been cases where not
- enough determination has been shown in pressing forward to the
- objective.”
-
-The importance of gaining even slight successes over the enemy’s
-advanced troops at the beginning of a forward movement, the fact that
-in the attack of positions turning movements should always be made
-in combination with frontal attacks, and the advantage of pushing on
-energetically when once an advance had commenced, were all points
-specially noted. The necessity of holding on determinedly to every
-yard of ground gained was accentuated, and leading units in a frontal
-attack were warned not to deliver the assault until the synchronous
-turning movement had been fully developed. Every use was to be made of
-fire-effect of every sort. I wrote:
-
- “A glaring case of that lack of co-operation from which we
- suffer so much was the fight of September 2,[7] when the left
- column began the action far too soon, and therefore finished by
- retiring in disorder. This had the worst results on the success
- of the whole operation.
-
- “I must again remind all ranks of the great necessity for
- economizing ammunition, especially gun ammunition. At Liao-yang
- we used up in two days our special artillery reserve of more
- than 100,000 rounds. The conveyance of gun ammunition to the
- front is very difficult, and batteries which have expended
- theirs become mere dead-weight to the army.”
-
-[Illustration: GENERAL LINIEVITCH.]
-
-The peculiarities attendant on operations in a country covered with
-such crops as _kao-liang_ were also reviewed in detail:
-
- “Any men leaving the ranks in action under pretext of
- accompanying or carrying away wounded men will be severely
- punished.
-
- “Companies and squadrons must be as strong as possible for
- an attack. To this end the most strict precautions must be
- taken to limit the number of men employed on extraneous duties
- and for transport work. The Cossacks are not to be employed
- as orderlies and escorts by the officers under whom they may
- be temporarily serving. Sound horses in possession of sick
- Cossacks should be taken from them, and made over to those who
- are horseless, but fit for duty.
-
- “It is to be regretted—and I have more than once commented on
- it—that commanding officers do not pay proper attention to the
- order that the soldier’s emergency biscuit ration, carried on
- the person, should remain untouched. This reserve ration is
- constantly being eaten, and no steps are taken immediately to
- replace it. Many commanding officers calmly allow the whole of
- the men’s portable reserve to be consumed under the pleasing
- conviction that it is the duty of someone else to bring up
- fresh supplies to the regimental commissariat.
-
- “The above instructions only touch on a few details of
- field-work. The main guide for action is the ‘Field Service
- Regulations,’ but these cannot, of course, meet every case
- which may arise in the entirely new circumstances under which
- we are now operating. I expect commanding officers of all
- ranks, therefore, to show greater initiative in the performance
- of their duties.”
-
-My instructions issued in October included remarks on our offensive
-operations during the end of September. Amongst other things, I said:
-
- “I still notice faults in the method of conducting attacks.
- Thick lines of skirmishers are too closely followed by the
- supports and reserves. The formations have generally been
- ill adapted to the ground, and have been such as to form an
- excellent target. If this close-order formation had been
- assumed in these cases just before a bayonet charge, then,
- despite the heavy sacrifices entailed, there would have been
- some point in it, because of the additional force and impetus
- given to the assault; but it was adopted when the attack was
- still at long range, and so caused useless and heavy loss.
- We should in such cases imitate the Japanese, and do what we
- used to in the Caucasus—make every use of cover. Every effort
- must be made to reconnoitre well, in order that advantage may
- be taken of every fold of the ground, and of every stick and
- stone, and the attack may be enabled to advance as close as
- possible to the enemy with the least possible loss. The way to
- do this is for individual men, or groups of men, to advance
- by short rushes till the attacking units are able to collect.
- On open ground, if the attacking infantry has to wait for the
- artillery preparation, it should entrench itself as rapidly as
- possible.
-
- “In retreating, the movement to the rear of large masses
- together afforded the enemy a splendid target, for which we
- suffered. Again, to avoid unnecessary loss in retirement,
- portions of a position have often been stubbornly held until a
- withdrawal could be effected under cover of darkness. If the
- portion of ground on either side happens to have been already
- abandoned, and the Japanese are sufficiently mobile to make use
- of it, such isolated defence of any one section of a position
- might cost very dear. We must learn how to retire by day—by the
- same methods as laid down above for the attack (by rushes), and
- avoid close formations in doing it.
-
- “I and other senior officers have noticed during an action
- hundreds and thousands of unwounded men leaving the ranks,
- carrying wounded to the rear. In the fights of October 12
- to 15[8] I personally saw wounded men being carried to the
- rear by as many as nine others. This abuse must be put down
- with the utmost rigour, and until an action is over only the
- stretcher-bearers should take wounded to the rear.
-
- “The Japanese are fortifying the positions along our front,
- converting villages, knolls, and hill-tops into strong,
- defensible points, and strengthening their positions with
- obstacles. These positions should be carefully studied, their
- strong points noted, and in every section of our line a plan of
- possible operations against the corresponding portions of the
- enemy’s position should be made. The early organization of the
- artillery preparation of any attack on these selected points is
- important.
-
- “Detachments of sappers and scouts should be sent ahead of the
- assault to destroy the obstacles round fortified villages,
- which should be well shelled. Till the assault is made the
- advance should be under cover, and if the leading troops find
- they are not strong enough to capture the point on which they
- have been directed, they must hold on to a point as near to
- the enemy as possible, in order to press forward again when
- reinforced.”
-
-Finally, in my instructions issued in December, 1904, I recapitulated
-the most important points brought out by our recent experiences, such
-as—
-
- “1. The necessity, in order to avoid loss, for our attack
- formations to be better adapted to the ground.
-
- “2. Economy in artillery ammunition.
-
- “3. The more intelligent employment of rifle-fire, and the
- necessity for volley-firing at night.
-
- “4. The great value of night operations.
-
- “5. Proper communication between all senior commanders.
-
- “6. The necessity for the mutual co-operation of all arms, and
- the maintenance of touch in battle.
-
- “The surest road to success is the determination to continue
- fighting, even when the last reserve has been exhausted, for
- the enemy may be in the same, if not in worse plight, and what
- is not possible in daylight may be accomplished at night.
- Unfortunately, in recent fights, some commanders even of large
- forces have confessed themselves unable to carry out the
- operation entrusted to them, at a moment when they still had in
- hand big reserves which had not fired a shot.”
-
-Of course, as soon as our disasters began, the papers started to accuse
-our troops of insufficient training, and they were not far wrong. In
-the first place, most of the men were reservists who had forgotten
-a great deal. In the second, this war was our first experience of
-smokeless powder, of quick-firing artillery, of machine-guns, and of
-all the recent developments in means of destruction, and much was
-strange and unexpected. Our preconceived notions were upset, and we
-were baffled by the deadly nature of indirect artillery-fire, by the
-new attack formations—when advancing infantry is rarely visible, and
-one man at a time crawls up almost unseen, taking advantage of every
-inch of cover. Our troops had been instructed, but what they had
-learned varied according to the personal idiosyncrasies of this or that
-district commander. The stronger the officer commanding a district, the
-less did he feel bound to abide by the authorized method of instruction
-and training laid down in the existing drill-books. General Grippenberg
-was no exception to this. In spite of the regulation as to the use of
-volleys for repulsing night attacks; in spite of war experience which
-in every way confirmed the necessity and value of volley-firing; in
-spite of the Commander-in-Chief’s instructions on this point, he made
-up his mind some days before a battle to re-teach the force under his
-command. He ordered the employment of independent fire at night. His
-“Instructions for the Operations of Infantry in Battle” [signed by
-him on January 4, 1905], printed and issued to the troops, aroused
-consternation and amusement throughout the army. In this book it
-was actually laid down that volleys were only to be resorted to if
-the enemy suddenly appeared at close quarters, and that immediately
-after a volley a bayonet attack should be made. While condemning the
-method in which our troops operated at the Ya-lu, he, in the above
-“Instructions,” gives a recipe for action whereby two of our battalions
-might destroy a Japanese division. After a summary of the amount of
-small-arm ammunition expended, he said:
-
- “If our two battalions had been deployed and had opened rapid
- independent fire, the Japanese division would have been
- destroyed, and we should have won the day.”
-
-Such a simple matter did General Grippenberg consider the annihilation
-of a Japanese division! But a few days later, when he moved against
-the Hei-kou-tai position with a strong force of 120 battalions, his
-own prescription proved to be valueless. In the first few days, when
-he was opposed by not more than two divisions, he was unable to take
-San-de-pu, got his troops into confusion, gave the enemy time to bring
-up strong reinforcements, and retired—to St. Petersburg.
-
-As to the attack formation adopted by the troops arriving from Russia,
-the 41st Division had in particular been taught to work in very close
-formation, and not taught to make use of the ground. It came from
-the Vilna district, which was commanded before the war by General
-Grippenberg. Our gunners also arrived at the front with only one idea
-of artillery tactics—to place their batteries in the open and make use
-of direct fire. For this we paid dearly in our very first fight.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- REASONS FOR OUR REVERSES (_conclusion_)
-
- Particular difficulties of the strategic situation—Defects in
- organization and _personnel_—Absence of a military spirit in
- the army, and lack of determination in carrying operations to a
- finish—Breakdown of our organization under the strain of active
- service.
-
-
-It is the duty of every Headquarter Staff to work out all
-possibilities, and, regardless of existing international relations, to
-provide for war in every probable quarter. Accordingly, our general
-line of operation in case of war with Japan had been duly drawn up in
-conjunction with the staffs of the Pri-Amur and Kuan-tung districts,
-and had been approved. The following is an extract from the paper
-dealing with the subject:
-
- “Taking advantage of her military position—for she will be more
- ready for war than we are, and will therefore possess in the
- first period of the campaign a great numerical superiority both
- by sea and land—Japan can afford to define her objectives only
- generally. She may (1) confine her attention to the occupation
- of Korea, and not take the offensive against us (which will most
- probably be the case); or (2) occupy Korea and also assume the
- offensive—
-
- (_a_) In Manchuria.
- (_b_) Against Port Arthur.
- (_c_) In the Southern Ussuri district (Vladivostok).
-
- “Should Japan decide on the first alternative, then, taking
- into consideration the number of reinforcements we shall need,
- and the adverse conditions under which they will have to be
- conveyed to the front, we shall be forced at first to allow her
- to seize Korea—without retaliative action on our part, if only
- she will confine herself to occupying that country, and not
- develop plans against Manchuria and our territory. Should she
- choose the second alternative, we should be obliged to fight,
- and ought at once to make up our minds not to end the war until
- we have utterly destroyed her army and fleet. In view, however,
- of her numerical superiority and greater readiness during
- the first period of the struggle, we shall have to assume a
- generally defensive rôle. Any troops we may have within the
- theatre of operations should as far as possible keep clear of
- decisive actions, in order to avoid being defeated in detail
- before we can concentrate in force.
-
- “The numerical superiority of the Japanese fleet will probably
- prevent our squadron from any major active operations, and it
- will have to confine its action to the comparatively modest
- task of delaying the enemy’s landing as much as possible. The
- defence of our own possessions should be carried out by the
- forces in the Southern Ussuri and the Kuan-tung districts,
- which are formed for that particular object, and based on the
- fortresses of Vladivostok and Port Arthur. All the remaining
- troops, except those allotted to the line of communications and
- to maintain order in Manchuria, should be concentrated in the
- area Mukden-Liao-yang-Hsiu-yen. As the Japanese advance, these
- troops, while delaying them as much as possible, will gradually
- be compelled to retire on Harbin. If it becomes evident in the
- first period of the campaign that the whole Japanese effort is
- being directed against us in Manchuria, then the force which
- would be concentrated first of all in the Southern Ussuri
- district (1st Siberian Corps) would be transferred there.”
-
-[Illustration: Sketch Map of MANCHURIA showing main places
- along railway south of Harbin]
-
-The two years succeeding the date on which this paper was written saw
-great alterations in the strength, dispositions, and readiness of our
-military and naval forces in the Far East. There was also considerable
-change in the political conditions in Manchuria and in Northern Korea
-in consequence of the active policy which we had begun to assume. It
-was therefore found necessary in 1903 to consider a revision of the
-above scheme in accordance with these altered conditions. During those
-two years our strength in the Far East had grown by the increase in our
-land forces and fleet, and the improved efficiency of the railways.
-We have already seen what was done to improve the latter. It will
-suffice to say here that, instead of the twenty waggons available over
-the whole Chinese line in 1901, the War Department in 1903 received
-seventy-five in the twenty-four hours, and hoped, on the strength of
-promises made, to have five through military trains by the beginning of
-1904. The fleet, which in 1901 was considered inferior to the Japanese,
-was, at the end of 1903, stated, on the authority of the Viceroy,
-Admiral Alexeieff, to be so strong that any possibility of its defeat
-by the Japanese was inadmissible. But in those same two years Japan
-had not been idle, and had been unceasingly increasing her naval and
-military forces. In consequence of this the relative local strengths
-of the two nations were still much the same in 1903 as they had been
-in 1901, and it was thought prudent to adhere to the same general plan
-of operations as had been drawn up and approved two years previously.
-To give an official opinion of that time, I quote an extract from a
-memorandum I submitted to the Tsar on August 6, 1903:
-
- “In the report which will be sent in from the Headquarter
- Staff, the conclusion arrived at after a careful appreciation
- of the resources of both nations is the same as that reached
- two years ago—namely, that in the event of war with Japan,
- we should act on the defensive; that the concentration
- and general distribution of our troops should remain the
- same; that although we may move troops on to the line
- Mukden-Liao-yang-Hsiu-yen, we cannot hold our ground in
- Southern Manchuria in the first period of the war if that
- region be invaded by the whole Japanese army. We should
- therefore still count upon Port Arthur being cut off for a
- considerable period, and in order to avoid defeat in detail,
- should withdraw towards Harbin until reinforcements from
- Russia enable us to assume the offensive. But I may add that,
- while accepting the same plan of operations as we did two
- years ago, we can now have far greater confidence in the
- issue of a struggle. Our fleet is stronger than the Japanese,
- and as reinforcements will arrive now more quickly than they
- could have formerly, it will take less time for us to be in a
- position to advance.”
-
-In a memorandum by the Chief of the Headquarter Staff, submitted to me
-on February 12, 1904—_i.e._, a few days after the enemy had attacked
-our fleet at Port Arthur—General Sakharoff described the Japanese
-intentions as follows:
-
- “The Japanese plan appears to be—
-
- “1. To inflict a crushing blow upon our fleet so as to paralyze
- its activity once and for all, and thus guarantee freedom of
- movement to their transports. To attain this end they have not
- hesitated to attack us before the declaration of war (_vide_
- the night operations of February 8 and 9). The transfer to
- them by the British of Wei-hai-wei also has given them an
- advantageous naval base right on the flank of any operations
- undertaken by our squadron.
-
- “2. To capture Port Arthur in order to attain the same
- object—the destruction of our fleet.
-
- “3. To advance on and capture Harbin, so as to isolate the
- Pri-Amur district from the rest of Russia, and to destroy the
- railway.”
-
-Our hopes as to the promised improvement of the railway were
-unfortunately not realized, while our fleet, damaged by the enemy’s
-onslaught before the declaration of war, was not only weaker than the
-enemy’s, but failed even to perform the modest task expected of it in
-1901. Consequently the concentration of our troops was a far slower
-business than we thought it would be, while the Japanese, having
-gained command of the sea, threw the whole of their army on to the
-continent. Thus, gaining the initiative on land as well as on the sea,
-and fired as they were with immense patriotism, the enemy commenced
-the war superior to us morally as well as materially. However, though
-the task before us was one of extreme difficulty, our resources were
-immensely superior to the enemy’s, and the moment when we should become
-completely ready for the struggle was only postponed. Notwithstanding
-the unfavourable conditions under which we started, after fifteen
-months’ fighting we were holding the Hsi-ping-kai positions, and,
-although we had not actually assumed the offensive, we had by no means
-retired as far as Harbin, which had been accepted as a possibility
-in the original scheme. If we had only possessed the determination
-necessary to carry this scheme right through, we ought not to have
-ended the war until we had utterly defeated the enemy. Therefore,
-whatever we did accomplish can only be looked upon as preparatory to
-the decisive struggle. One of the assumptions of our original scheme
-of operations was that, if a strong Japanese force invaded Southern
-Manchuria, we should not be able, in the first period of the war, to
-hold it. In the event the whole Japanese army invaded that area, but
-the opposition shown by our troops at Liao-yang, on the Sha Ho, and
-at Mukden, was so effectual that, though the enemy gained possession
-of the greater portion of Southern Manchuria, they did not reassume
-the offensive against us for six months. The difficulties which the
-Japanese surmounted in advancing from Ta-shih-chiao to Tieh-ling
-cannot be compared to those which would have faced them, in the three
-defensive lines which we had constructed on the way to Harbin,[9] had
-they attempted to drive us to that place. I reiterate what I have so
-often said in the preceding chapters: though the war was brought to an
-end, the army was not beaten. Of the great force which lay ready on the
-Hsi-ping-kai position in August, 1905, one-half had never been under
-fire. Further on I will explain how it was that we never acquired the
-material and moral superiority necessary to defeat the enemy during the
-fifteen months that the war did last.
-
-In the diary I kept when in Japan[10] I drew a diagram, with
-explanatory notes, to illustrate the Japanese question and show the
-possibility of our being able to defend our interests in Manchuria and
-Korea by force. I reproduce the diagram[11] and the notes _in extenso_:
-
- “This diagram shows Japan’s comparatively favourable situation
- with regard to the theatre of operations. Her base—indeed, her
- whole country—is only about 600 miles by sea from our shores,
- and 135 from Korea.
-
- “Our territory in Asia is so vast and so thinly populated that
- we shall be compelled to make European Russia, which is 3,400
- to 6,000 miles distant, our base. For a protracted war with
- Japan it is evident that the single-line Siberian Railway will
- not suffice; we shall be obliged to lay a second track, and
- to increase the number of trains in the twenty-four hours.
- Also, as it runs for a considerable distance along the Chinese
- frontier and through Chinese territory, it cannot be relied on
- in the event of war with both China and Japan together.”
-
-We were glued to the railway, and could not move away without risk of
-being left without supplies. Our field artillery and heavy four-wheeled
-transport carts were unable to travel over most of the hill roads. The
-summer rains made the movements of the army, with its heavy baggage
-trains and parks, extremely difficult; teams of twenty horses were
-harnessed to guns, and even empty carts had to be man-handled.
-
-[Illustration: DIAGRAM SHOWING THE POSITION OF THE THEATRE OF WAR
-RELATIVELY TO RUSSIA AND JAPAN.]
-
-But of all our difficulties, the complete command of the sea obtained
-by the Japanese right at the beginning of the war caused the greatest.
-With their three armies they cut off Port Arthur, and began an advance
-from an enveloping base against our army, which was still tied to a
-railway-line. Our southward advance for the relief of Port Arthur
-was threatened by Kuroki’s army based on Korea. Any movement against
-him was out of the question, especially for those corps which had
-arrived from Russia, as they were quite unused to hilly country. Our
-communications through Manchuria were only weakly defended, and might
-be cut at any moment by the Chinese, while those further west were
-liable to interruption (bridges destroyed, strikes, frost, etc.).
-The feeding of the army depended on local resources, which a hostile
-population could easily conceal, carry away, or even destroy; and as
-the amount of supplies obtained from Russia was extremely small and
-uncertain, the army might very easily have been starved. The chance
-actions at the Ya-lu and Te-li-ssu, in which our most reliable troops
-were worsted, still further improved the enemy’s _moral_, and lowered
-ours.
-
-With the absence of a proper military spirit among our troops, and
-the evil influence of the many seditious manifestoes against the
-war circulating amongst them; with the unsteadiness shown by many
-units in the first fights, and with all the other defects above
-mentioned, a great numerical superiority was necessary—I must speak
-perfectly plainly—in order to defeat an enemy worked up to a pitch of
-fanatical excitement. But we did not obtain this superiority until
-it was too late—when we were waiting on the Hsi-ping-kai position,
-and negotiations for peace were being carried on at Portsmouth. Up
-to December we were fighting with what seemed a fairly large force,
-according to a tally of battalions; but these were greatly under
-strength, for in the most important early period of the war—from May
-to October inclusive—we lost very many men, and received but few
-drafts. In many cases the Japanese battalions were twice as strong as
-ours. While all our actions were hampered by insufficient information
-regarding the enemy, the intelligence we received as to what was
-happening in our rear—in Mongolia and in the Manchurian provinces—was
-so alarming as to compel us to detach a large force to protect our
-communications. Again, when the enemy became complete masters of the
-sea, we had to detail sufficient troops to guard against a landing in
-the Vladivostok and the Ussuri districts. All these things combined
-to complicate our position and give the enemy the initiative at the
-start, and right manfully did their whole nation strive to seize
-their advantage. Their land communications were safe; their sea
-communication with their base was quick and sure. We, on the contrary,
-could only put in the field a fraction of our land forces, and, till we
-could concentrate sufficient men for an offensive, were tied down to a
-definite course of action. We had—
-
-1. To make certain of and protect the concentration of the
-reinforcements which were arriving, so as not to allow them to be
-destroyed as they came up.
-
-2. To take steps to relieve Port Arthur.
-
-3. To maintain order in our rear, and to guard the railway.
-
-4. To feed the army—mainly on local supplies.
-
-5. To guard the Ussuri district.
-
-Had the Japanese got possession of our communications, a catastrophe
-unprecedented in military history might have resulted. Without any
-victory in the field, the mere destruction of the railway in our
-rear, combined with the cutting off of local resources, would have
-threatened us with starvation—and disaster. Such were the unfavourable
-conditions under which we fought for fifteen months, and our army was
-not only _not_ completely defeated, but grew in strength, while our
-communication with Russia gradually became better secured and more
-efficient. We had always recognized the possibility of being driven
-back to Harbin and beyond; but this never happened, and we held on to
-Hsi-ping-kai. The situation could only have been improved in one way—by
-a rapid concentration of sufficient troops for, and an assumption of,
-an offensive all along the line. While these troops were collecting,
-each fight—quite independent of its actual result—would have really
-helped us if it had at all weakened the enemy. But our departure from
-our accepted plan of operations began at the commencement of the war,
-when, instead of fighting a rearguard action, General Zasulitch got
-seriously engaged against the whole of Kuroki’s army at the Ya-lu, and
-was defeated.
-
-In May, when the 3rd Siberian Division[12] had alone arrived at
-Liao-yang (besides the troops of the Pri-Amur Military District), the
-Viceroy, fearing for the fate of Port Arthur, instructed me to assume
-the offensive towards the Ya-lu against Kuroki’s army, or southwards
-for the relief of the fortress of Port Arthur. But the inadequate force
-with which General Shtakelberg pushed forward, owing to ignorance
-of the fact that the Japanese were in superior strength, got drawn
-into a serious engagement at Te-li-ssu, and was defeated. With the
-arrival of all the units of the 4th Siberian Corps and one division
-of the 10th Army Corps, it seemed possible to contain Kuroki’s army,
-to concentrate fifty to sixty battalions rapidly in the direction of
-Ta-shih-chiao, and to attempt to hurl back Oku to the south. It seemed
-as if our army had a splendid chance of operating on interior lines.
-The enemy was strung along three lines of advance—Dalny, Kai-ping,
-Ta-shih-chiao (Oku); Ta-ku-shan, Hsiu-yen, Ta-ling, Hai-cheng (Nodzu);
-Ya-lu, Feng-huang-cheng, Fen-shui-ling, Liao-yang (Kuroki). We occupied
-the central position—Liao-yang, Hai-cheng, Ta-shih-chiao—with advance
-guards thrown forward on to the Fen-shui-ling heights. We might have
-been able, by containing two armies and deceiving the enemy by a
-demonstration, to strike the third army in force. A blow delivered at
-Kuroki or Nodzu did not promise success, owing to our lack of training
-in, and unpreparedness for, hill warfare [we had no mountain artillery,
-our baggage was heavy, and we were uncertain of receiving supplies,
-owing to the insufficiency of transport material]. The only other
-course was to strike at Oku, who was based on the railway, but such an
-operation was risky, because Kuroki and Nodzu might have driven back
-our screens and fallen on our communications. On June 26 and 27, when
-only one brigade of the 31st Division of the 10th Army Corps[13] had
-arrived at Liao-yang, the Japanese on the eastern front (Kuroki and
-Nodzu) themselves took the offensive and seized the passes (Fen-shui
-Ling, Mo-du Ling, Da Ling) on the Fen-shui-ling heights. We opposed
-them in insufficient strength, and did not even make them disclose
-their numbers. The troops of the eastern force withdrew towards
-Tkhavuop, and General Levestam’s force to Hsi-mu-cheng. Our screens
-were thus situated as follows: on Kuroki’s line of advance, only two
-marches from Hai-cheng; on Oku’s line of advance at Ta-shih-chiao, four
-marches from Liao-yang.[14] Our position was critical, particularly
-if the information we had received as to the Japanese collecting in
-considerable force to operate against Hai-cheng was confirmed. Still,
-if we were able to strike a rapid blow at Oku, we might rob the enemy
-of the initiative, and after forcing back Oku’s army, have fallen on
-Nodzu. After we had driven back these troops, Kuroki’s position would
-have been so far forward and so far separated from the other groups
-that the danger of his breaking through to Liao-yang would have been
-minimized. But for such decisive operations the first requisite was the
-concentration of sufficient troops for offensive operations against Oku.
-
-[Illustration: GENERAL BARON KITEN NOGI.]
-
-At the end of June we had altogether available against the three
-Japanese armies 120 battalions, and were inferior to the enemy both
-in the number of battalions and the number of men. Our position was
-made worse by an epidemic of dysentery which broke out amongst the
-troops at Ta-shih-chiao, and swept off a considerable number of men.
-The Krasnoyarsk Regiment[15] was the greatest sufferer, having as many
-as 1,500 men down with the disease at the end of the month. But the
-main thing which delayed any advance on our part was the rain, which
-made all moves difficult, and some places absolutely impassable for
-transport. It was even difficult to convey supplies to our various
-stationary forces over distances of less than a march. In spite of the
-lack of pack-saddles, wheeled transport had to be given up for pack
-transport, and not even pack-animals could do more than seven to eleven
-miles in the twenty-four hours. On the Liao-yang–Lang-tzu-shan road
-things were still worse, for the bridges over the mountain streams had
-been carried away, and communication between the eastern force (3rd
-Siberian Corps, under Count Keller) and Liao-yang was interrupted for
-some time. Far, therefore, from being ready to advance, the officers
-commanding the 1st and 4th Siberian Corps found the greatest difficulty
-in rationing their troops, and on June 29 asked that they might be
-withdrawn towards the positions near the railway at Ta-shih-chiao, and
-that the country east of the line might be left to the cavalry, with a
-few infantry units in support.[16]
-
-General Count Keller was persistent in his demands that communication
-should be maintained between his force and Liao-yang, but we had
-neither the material, the means, nor the time to comply with his
-wishes, which would have meant the laying of a light railway and the
-strengthening of the road bridges. As I feared that the Japanese might
-make a fresh forward movement on Hai-cheng, I ordered thirty-nine
-battalions to concentrate near Hsi-mu-cheng on June 29. The short march
-from Hai-cheng was accomplished on the 28th with great difficulty
-through a sea of mud, and on the 29th Hsi-mu-cheng was temporarily
-cut off by the mountain streams in flood. The feeding of the troops
-collected there was found to be so difficult that as soon as it was
-known that the enemy, instead of advancing, had retired towards the
-Fen-shui Ling (Pass), certain units were ordered to return to the
-railway. Taking advantage, on July 18, of the screen formed by a
-portion of the 17th Army Corps, we attempted to advance against part
-of Kuroki’s army in the hope of forcing our way forward and gaining
-a partial success. For this Count Keller had under his command
-forty-three battalions, but the attempt failed. He stopped the action
-before any large number of our troops had become engaged. On the 29th
-Oku’s army took the offensive; we had to evacuate Ta-shih-chiao and
-Newchuang after a feeble resistance, and allowed Oku and Nodzu to
-join hands. When on July 23 I inspected the units of the 10th Army
-Corps, who were holding the position near Hu-chia-tzu, I found out
-how absolutely incapable of operating in hilly country the troops
-newly arrived from Russia were. Before sending them forward, it was
-necessary to train them in hill fighting, and to provide them with
-pack transport. On July 31 all three Japanese armies advanced, and we
-concentrated after a series of battles round Liao-yang. Here, in spite
-of our resistance, the three armies were able to join hands. Their
-attacks on the left bank of the Tai-tzu Ho were repulsed, but owing
-to the unfortunate nature of our operations on the right bank, the
-conditions became so unfavourable to us that I was obliged to order a
-retirement to Mukden. The withdrawal was conducted without the loss
-of a single gun or transport cart, while the enemy lost in men more
-heavily than we did. In the detailed accounts I have given in the first
-three volumes of the operations at Liao-yang, on the Sha Ho and at
-Mukden, our difficulties and the causes of our defeats are explained.
-The course of events showed that our original scheme of operations was
-quite a correct forecast, for in it the probable necessity of retiring
-towards Harbin had been foreseen. Indeed, matters at Liao-yang, on the
-Sha Ho, and especially at Mukden, might have been very much worse for
-us than they were, and might have necessitated our retirement on Harbin
-early in October, 1904, when, as a matter of fact, we remained in
-Southern Manchuria.
-
-Clausewitz has truly laid down that an army should be inseparably
-connected with its base, but our base was Russia, more than 5,000 miles
-away. The way that this one difficulty alone was overcome will perhaps
-be eventually appreciated at its true worth. The very complicated
-attendant circumstances demanded great and patient efforts on the
-part of the whole nation in order to turn them to our advantage. Our
-reverses were explicable, and even in our defeat we exhausted our
-enemy, while ourselves increasing in strength. It was inevitable that a
-different complexion would have been put on the face of things as soon
-as circumstances became more favourable to us.
-
-
- DIFFICULTIES IN ORGANIZATION.
-
-The war showed that our army organization gave us too small a
-percentage of actual combatants as compared with the total numbers
-whom we rationed. By this I mean that, in spite of the immense numbers
-that we maintained in the face of great difficulties, we were unable
-to put enough men into action to win. Our establishments of all arms,
-of parks, hospitals, transport corps, field bakeries, staffs, and all
-offices and institutions, include a large percentage of non-combatants,
-which was swollen in the last war by the absence of any organized line
-of communication troops, the necessity of carrying out a large amount
-of railway construction, and of appointing officers and men to newly
-formed supply and transport units. Even so the number of non-combatants
-laid down in the establishments for each unit was not sufficient
-to perform the duties that fell to them, and it became necessary,
-for reasons which will be mentioned later, to detail combatants for
-domestic duties. As but few non-combatants were wounded in action,
-the proportion of them to the combatant element became still greater
-after every big fight. It was usual, when a battle was imminent, to
-order back to their units all men who were on extra-regimental duties,
-but in spite of all the steps taken, the fighting number was never
-more than 75 per cent. of the number of men on the strength. In the
-beginning of April, 1905, when we were preparing the theatre of war up
-to the River Sungari, the combatant element of the 1st Manchurian Army
-actually fell to 58 per cent. of the strength. As in previous wars, the
-infantry, of course, did most of the fighting, and also carried out by
-far the greater number of fatigues and extra duties. As they also lost
-more men in action, their fighting strength was proportionately more
-reduced than that of the other arms.[17] In April, 1905, the percentage
-of rifles in the 1st Manchurian Army to the total number of men that
-had to be rationed was 51·9 per cent. When the convalescents returned
-to the ranks, its strength amounted by the beginning of December to
-192,000 men, of whom 105,879 carried rifles; but we could only put a
-much smaller number in action owing to various duties, fatigues, etc.
-In August, 1905, the number of rifles was 58·9 per cent. of the total
-of men rationed.
-
-To obviate this state of affairs, and to insure that companies should
-be as strong as possible in action, I gave orders on June 9, 1905
-[when I was commanding the 1st Manchurian Army], that out of each of
-the four battalion regiments, not more than 369 combatants should be
-detailed for extra duties. This figure included 128 stretcher-bearers,
-35 bandsmen, and 48 men for baggage guards. In addition to this, a
-large number of men were required for road and bridge work on the
-communications, for guards for the different stores, for working
-parties to assist the supply and medical services, for policing
-villages, for duty with the improvised transport units, etc. True, this
-had its compensations, for we were able thus to get rid of the 2nd
-Category reservists from the ranks; but we felt the loss in the number
-of rifles we could place in the firing-line. Of course, there were, in
-addition, the sick, the wounded, and the convalescents with units and
-in hospital. In this way the total of all ranks classed as combatants
-but absent from the firing-line, or not doing combatant work, amounted
-on the average to 800 men out of every four-battalion regiment, or
-about one-quarter of its strength. To carry on the campaign without
-properly organized units on the communications, without sufficient camp
-guards, without making roads and bridges, without allowing men for
-transport and baggage duties, was impossible. Notwithstanding the good
-payment we offered, the native population did not come forward to work
-freely, especially when fighting was imminent. A certain number were
-employed on transport, but they were very unreliable, and bolted at the
-first alarm, often taking their horses and carts with them. During the
-battle of Mukden, for instance, the whole of the hired transport of the
-1st Army, consisting of 400 carts, entirely disappeared. Our attempts
-to obtain Russian hired labour were a failure, though the rates of pay
-offered were liberal enough.
-
-The extent to which transport duties were responsible for weakening the
-fighting strength of the army can be seen from the fact that, during
-the fifteen months of war, 122 transport units were formed, and 8,656
-carts, 51,000 horses, and 20,000 pack-animals purchased. For duty with
-these, 328 officers, 22,000 men, 1,700 hired civilians (Russians), and
-9,850 Chinamen were employed. These 122 units were improvised under
-adverse conditions and from small cadres, and, as they had to be raised
-in a hurry, there was nothing for it but to appoint to them men and
-officers from the army.
-
-The strength of units also decreased most marvellously in action.
-This was partly due to losses, but often also due to the habit of
-men leaving the firing-line to carry wounded to the rear. This was
-sometimes done with permission, sometimes without. Very often the men
-who retired did not have this excuse.
-
-I have pointed out (in Chapter VII.) that the army did not receive
-its drafts in time, and that we had to fight below strength; this
-shortage was still further increased for the following reasons: The war
-establishment of a company was 220 rifles; but from this number had to
-be deducted the shortage with which units arrived at the front,[18]
-the sick, and those detailed for camp and other duties—a procedure
-which, though unprovided for by Regulations, was permitted by officers
-in command. Accordingly companies often went into the very first
-fight at a strength of only 160 to 170 rifles. For a long time the
-personal supervision exercised by commanding officers to insure that
-units took the field as strong as possible was very slack. It seemed,
-on the contrary, as if their efforts tended all the other way, for
-they left men behind whenever they possibly could, particularly those
-who were most necessary—_i.e._, those on whom depended the payment
-and regular rationing of the men. Thus, with the exception of the
-regimental adjutant, the staff of a regiment rarely went into action;
-while of the men who are classed as combatants, the company clerks,
-armourer-sergeant, cooks, officers’ servants, the butcher, the cattle
-guards and the officers’ grooms, were always left behind. The formation
-of a force of mounted scouts took away a certain number of men, and
-stretcher-bearers and bandsmen of course did not fight. Finally, owing
-to the peculiar nature of the country, donkeys for carrying water were
-provided for each company, and these required men to look after them,
-and one or two entire companies from each regiment had to be detached
-as baggage guard owing to the insecurity of our communications.
-Commanding officers thought it necessary to leave behind so many men
-for the above purposes that the orders given for them to accompany the
-firing-line were either quite neglected, or only half carried out. It
-was soon found that eight bearers per company were far too few for
-carrying wounded, and men from the ranks were allowed to help their
-wounded comrades to the rear. From this cause companies often literally
-melted away during a fight. There were many instances where unwounded
-men went to the rear under pretext of carrying away the wounded, at the
-rate of six, eight, or ten sound soldiers to one wounded! The return
-of these willing helpers to the front was not so prompt as it might
-have been, and was difficult to control. The result was that a company
-hotly engaged usually only had 100 or less rifles after a few hours’
-fighting, although its losses might have been inconsiderable.
-
-Meanwhile, as we only asked for drafts strong enough to bring companies
-up to the established war strength, without taking into account the
-above extraordinary leakage, the drafts we received did not bring
-companies up to their proper strength in action.
-
-The reason why the lines of communication in the field[19] took
-so large a number away from our fighting-line was that we had no
-proper communication units, and the large working parties necessary
-for the light railway, road and bridge work had to be drawn from the
-fighting troops. It was entirely owing to the care with which the
-commanding officers on the line of communications—especially those
-in the engineers—had been selected that we were able to fight, and
-at the same time to make roads of some hundreds of miles’ length for
-intercommunication between corps. For instance, at the end of 1904
-and the beginning of 1905, when the 1st Army was south of the Hun Ho,
-out of 180,000 men, 7,000 were on the line of communications. At the
-beginning of July, 1905, when the strength of the 1st Army had gone up
-to 250,000, and the communications stretched back a length of 150 miles
-to the River Sungari, there were 10,000 men employed on them—_i.e._,
-4 per cent. of the army’s strength. The length of the road made on the
-Hsi-ping-kai positions by the 1st Army alone amounted to 1,000 miles,
-with bridges of more than 20 feet breadth and 50 feet span, and nearly
-40 miles of embankment. Though the greater part of this was done by
-hired Chinese labour, even in this comparatively quiet period the
-troops of the 1st Army were on “works” for a period of 30,000 working
-“man days.”[20]
-
-The supply service, also, as has been mentioned, absorbed a large
-number of men. The field commissariat were unable, at the beginning of
-the campaign, to work the bakeries owing to the lack of men. All the
-bakeries, therefore, were taken over by the troops, who had to build
-the ovens, buy flour, and bake the bread themselves. Thus the eight
-field bakeries (of which four were in Liao-yang) which arrived in
-Harbin and Liao-yang without transport or men had at first to be taken
-over by the troops. But from May, 1904, onwards the Governor-General
-insisted on most of the work being handed back to the Commissariat
-Department. The energy of General Gubur, the Field Intendant of the
-army, in obtaining supplies locally rescued it from the difficult
-position in which it was beginning to find itself owing to the
-constantly increasing number of mouths and to the inadequate number
-of supply trains. Assisted by Generals Bachinski and Andro, General
-Gubur took full advantage of all the resources of the country. For
-this, again, officers and men were necessary to guard supply depôts and
-collect and escort herds of cattle, and were taken from the combatant
-troops. A large part of the forage and meat the troops obtained for
-themselves, but this entailed the provision of strong foraging parties,
-which went far afield and often remained away a considerable time, and
-of permanent guards to tend the regimental cattle. When the troops of
-the Pri-Amur district were concentrated in Manchuria, they left a
-number of men behind as “base details” to look after their buildings
-and property. Touch was maintained between these base details and the
-units at the front during the whole war; from them the troops received
-their warm clothing in winter, and to them it was sent back in the
-summer of 1905. This all meant the employment of soldiers. Finally,
-men had to be told off for topographical work, reconnaissance, and as
-escorts for officers and other persons, etc.
-
-The number for all the above duties taken together, with the wounded
-and sick present with units, constituted on an average 400 to 500 men
-per regiment. This, added to the 369 authorized “employed” men above
-mentioned, brought the total up to 800. Obviously such a loss of
-numbers must be taken into consideration in appreciating the fighting
-work of the army.
-
-Other things which contributed to the same result were the immense
-development of the different staffs and administrations, the auxiliary
-institutions, such as supply parks and hospitals, the congestion on
-the roads caused by the masses of baggage which had collected, and
-the fact that both our wheeled and pack transport carried less than
-it was supposed to owing to the hilly country and the all-prevailing
-mud. After heavy fighting our army corps, especially those consisting
-of three-battalion regiments, amounted to less than 10,000 to 15,000
-rifles, and yet the immense organization, military parks, baggage, and
-transport, etc., for a full corps had still to be guarded. Even the
-regimental standards, which should have been a source of strength and
-encouragement in the fight, were in many cases prematurely taken to the
-rear under a guard of a company or half a company, the troops at the
-front being weakened by this number at the most important moment of an
-action. I was obliged to make a ruling that in action the standards
-should be kept with the regimental reserves, and that steps should be
-taken that they should be a symbol of victory in the most critical
-phases of a fight (as used to be the case in former wars), and a source
-of strength instead of weakness to the units which possessed them.
-
-In September and October, 1905, instead of one Manchurian army,
-three were formed (the 1st, 2nd, and 3rd); they were all intended
-for operations in the Mukden area, and were based on the one railway
-which constituted their common line of communications. The powers
-of the army commanders were as laid down by regulation. Officers in
-command of armies were given (Field Service Regulations, 1890) almost
-all the powers formerly vested in the Commander-in-Chief. As regards
-fighting, it was laid down that “in conducting military operations the
-officer commanding an army should be guided by the instructions of
-the Commander-in-Chief, but should act independently.” This latitude
-would be very convenient in operating in Europe, where each army
-would have its own independent line of communications; but in the
-conditions which existed at Mukden—one common position and one line of
-communications for all—and with a difference of views existing between
-the army commanders as regards the conduct of affairs, the arrangement
-was, to say the least of it, extremely unsuitable. A difference of
-opinion upon some vital matter might easily arise, when it might be
-necessary either to order the army commander to carry out an operation
-which he thought unnecessary, inopportune, or even dangerous, or
-else to ask for him to be replaced. For instance, a fortnight before
-we assumed the offensive on January 25, after everything had been
-settled and all plans drawn up, General Grippenberg suddenly surprised
-me by his opinion—that the campaign was lost; that we should retire
-towards Harbin, hold that point and Vladivostok, and thence move with
-two armies in other directions. In which directions, he was unable
-to explain. The Commander-in-Chief’s instructions on many essential
-points, such as the danger of holding non-continuous lines[21] and
-the necessity for having strong army reserves, were not carried out
-because the responsibility for holding the defensive positions occupied
-by the armies rested on the army commanders. Thus my endeavours to
-send at least twenty-four battalions—if not the whole of the 17th
-Army Corps—from the 3rd Army into the reserve failed, as the officer
-commanding that army thought that his position in the centre would not
-be safe if the regiments of the 17th Corps, which was in advance, were
-replaced by reserve regiments of the 6th Siberians. As mentioned in the
-account of the operations of the 14th Infantry Division at Hei-kou-tai,
-notwithstanding my instructions to conceal our intention of attacking
-the enemy’s left flank as long as possible, General Grippenberg, for
-no apparent reason, and without even asking permission, assumed the
-offensive almost two weeks before the time that I had fixed by moving
-the 14th Division towards Ssu-fang-tai (on the heights by San-de-pu)
-on January 13, and by moving the 10th Army Corps into the advanced
-lines between the right flank of the 3rd Army and the River Hun on the
-16th. By this the enemy was informed of our intentions before we began
-our forward movement, and the front of the 2nd Army was spread over
-thirteen miles.
-
-With the exception of General Linievitch, our army commanders were
-unnecessarily sensitive to interference with their powers, and in
-cases where orders would formerly have been issued to corps commanders
-it now became necessary to reckon with the personal opinions of army
-commanders, and to guard against offending their susceptibilities.
-After the pomp and parade of General Grippenberg’s departure from
-the army, the relationship between the army commanders and the
-Commander-in-Chief became still more strained. How jealously they
-looked after their rights, and how strangely they interpreted their
-own powers, is illustrated by the following incident: On February 19
-I sent for the three army commanders and their chief staff officers,
-in order to ascertain their views as to the plan of operations which
-should be undertaken under the unfavourable conditions brought about
-by the fall of Port Arthur and General Grippenberg’s unsuccessful
-operations at Hei-kou-tai. The following courses were open to Nogi’s
-army, no longer required in the Kuan-tung Peninsula: it might join
-the four armies already in the field against us; it might, together
-with the divisions formed in Japan and the troops in Korea, form a
-force of seventy to eighty strong battalions for operations against
-Vladivostok, or, landing at Possiet Bay, it might march against Kirin
-and Harbin, so as to outflank our position at Mukden. I had also been
-continually receiving reports from General Chichagoff to the effect
-that the enemy had invaded Mongolia, and, aided by numerous bands of
-Hun-huses, had begun to attack the railway in our rear, which had forced
-me to weaken the army by detailing an infantry brigade and four Cossack
-regiments to reinforce the railway guard and safeguard our position. In
-spite of these reports, Generals Linievitch and Kaulbars expressed the
-opinion that we ought not to change our plans, and should carry out the
-orders I had issued on January 25—namely, to fall on the enemy’s left
-flank. But when my Chief of Staff asked the officer commanding the 2nd
-Army—who was to commence the operation—how he proposed to employ his
-cavalry, Kaulbars,[22] looking upon the question as an interference
-with his authority, became annoyed, and said much that was unnecessary
-and quite beside the point. As it turned out, the Chief of the Staff
-had every reason to be anxious as to the employment of this Army, for
-its work in the battle of Mukden was anything but satisfactory.
-
-The very large powers vested in army commanders in the matter of
-bestowing distinctions was both unnecessary and harmful. They were
-authorized to award the fourth class Order of St. George on the
-recommendations of committees convened by them; they could give the
-Distinguished Service Cross to private soldiers, and award the Orders
-of St. Anne, second, third, and fourth classes, and St. Stanislav,
-second and third classes, with swords and ribbons. As the forces
-were lying so close together, it was very soon noticed that the
-distribution of decorations in the different armies varied very much,
-being in accordance with the personal predispositions of the different
-commanders. In one army they were so lavishly bestowed as to excite
-general derision, and their value was much lowered in consequence. By
-far the worst offender in this respect was one well-known general,
-who for one and the same engagement [Hei-kou-tai] decorated divers
-officers with two Orders apiece, while, contrary to regulations, he
-bestowed the Distinguished Service Cross to fifteen and more men per
-company and battery. I jotted down in my diary my impressions after
-inspecting units of the 2nd Army. Amongst other things, I noted that he
-had awarded thirty Distinguished Service Crosses to a battery, of which
-only seventy men had been in action and even then scarcely under fire.
-Indeed, to my astonishment, as they stood on parade almost the whole
-of the front rank were wearing crosses. The officer in command told
-me that he had been ashamed to announce these rewards to the men, and
-to have to try and select certain specific acts for them. I told the
-men I hoped that they would show themselves worthy of these marks of
-distinction in the fights to come!
-
-The large independent powers possessed by the army commanders in
-matters of supply were also superfluous in a case where there was only
-one railway and one tract of country in which to procure supplies. The
-only result was that prices were raised all round by the fact that
-the different armies were bidding against each other. In this respect
-General Grippenberg’s behaviour was most incomprehensible. As meat was
-very scarce in December, I advised him to cut down the meat ration from
-1 pound to 1/2 pound. Instead of this, by an order issued on January 3,
-he increased it to 1-1/2 pounds per man per day. With the conditions
-that obtained generally on the Sha Ho, and if our army corps had been
-organized on a broader basis, there would have been no necessity
-whatever for three separate army commanders with their special powers;
-but they were appointed. And yet, after the disaster of Mukden, it
-was the Commander-in-Chief who was generally held responsible for
-everything.
-
-
- DEFECTS IN _PERSONNEL_.
-
-As regards the _personnel_, I will give in full the impressions
-recorded in my report on the 1st Manchurian Army at a time when the
-experiences of the war were fresh in my mind; my opinion in the main
-agrees with those of other senior commanders.
-
-(_a_) _The Command._—No appreciation of the senior commanders—that is
-to say, of the work done by individual corps, divisional, and brigade
-commanders—can or, indeed, ought to be made at present. The personal
-element is too prominent. We must wait till personal feelings have
-died away, so as to be able to draw impartial conclusions based on
-authenticated facts, and on facts alone, as to what happened and who
-was to blame. All the same, it may be said that the most pronounced
-weak points amongst our senior commanders, especially in the first
-period of the campaign, were their lack of initiative, their ignorance
-of the method in which an attack should be conducted, and their want
-of determination. There was never any co-ordination in the operations
-of large units, which were really quite remarkable for their absolute
-disconnection. Indifference as to the position of neighbouring forces
-was the rule, and a tendency to accept defeat before a fight was really
-lost was painfully evident. Even our best commanders preferred their
-neighbour to be told off for the attack, while they themselves remained
-in support. If a column were retiring under difficulties, any other
-forces close at hand would withdraw also, instead of coming to its
-assistance; and there was practically no instance of a bold forward
-movement. The work of the regimental commanders was certainly better
-than that of those higher up, but it was impossible not to notice that
-they did not possess the power of making the most of a situation and
-finding their way about. A regimental commander detached on special
-duty could rarely make his arrangements without the assistance of
-an officer of the General Staff; he could not, as a rule, read a
-map himself, much less teach those under him how to do so. This was
-especially the case at the beginning of the war, and had considerable
-influence on the conduct of operations, as regiments often either
-arrived late at their rendezvous or went to points where they were
-not wanted. The lack of eye for country is partly explained by the
-fact that our officers were quite unused to hills. Though this defect
-certainly became less marked as time went on, it was still perceptible
-in the operations round Mukden, and even afterwards.
-
-Though the officers lacked a proper military spirit, they were
-generally good in other ways, particularly those of the regular army.
-The best proof of their gallantry is furnished by the number of losses
-sustained by the 1st Army from November, 1904, to September, 1905, from
-which it will be seen that their proportion of killed and wounded was
-considerably higher than that of the men.
-
- +-------+-------------------+-------------------+
- | | Officers. | Rank and File. |
- +-------+--------+----------+--------+----------+
- | | |Percentage| |Percentage|
- | |Numbers.|to Average|Numbers.|to Average|
- | | | Strength.| | Strength.|
- +-------+--------+----------+--------+----------+
- |Killed | 167 | 4·1 | 4,779 | 2·5 |
- |Wounded| 905 | 23·8 | 27,425 | 14·6 |
- |Missing| 89 | 2·1 | 5,684 | 2·9 |
- | +--------+----------+--------+----------+
- | | 1,151 | 30 | 37,888 | 20 |
- +-------+--------+----------+--------+----------+
-
-The losses in this army for the whole period of the war were somewhat
-higher:
-
- Officers. Rank and
- File.
- Killed 396 10,435
- Wounded 1,773 56,350
-
-With the exception of those who had volunteered for the front, the
-officers of the reserve were not nearly so well qualified as those of
-the regulars; they were much behind them in tactical training, and did
-not always perform their duties with the zeal which should be shown on
-active service. Many ensigns of the reserve turned out unsatisfactory,
-having accepted this rank purely to escape becoming private soldiers
-upon mobilization; they had no sympathy with the military profession,
-and hated soldiering. They were absolutely without training, and some
-of them had no authority whatever over the men. The ensigns and
-acting ensigns[23] promoted from the ranks for distinguished service
-were excellent in every respect. Having been selected from the rank
-and file, they usually appreciated their rank, and had considerable
-authority amongst the men; they got on well with the officers, and
-proved efficient and hard-working assistants to the company commanders.
-The extent to which the acting ensigns sacrificed themselves to duty
-is evinced by the fact that of 680 in the 1st Army in February, 192
-were killed and wounded in the Mukden battle—_i.e._, more than 28 per
-cent. The moral tone of the officers was quite satisfactory; during the
-whole period of the war only nineteen were dismissed for unbecoming
-conduct. In reporting on the work done by the officers of the General
-Staff, the majority of the senior officers in command of troops
-expressed the opinion that their theoretical training and intelligence
-stood very high, and that their work was unselfish, but that they were
-not sufficiently in touch with the troops, and lacked the personal,
-practical knowledge required to enable them to judge properly how much
-might be expected of men, and in what way an order would be carried
-out—a knowledge which is necessary if small errors are to be avoided in
-the transmission of orders, etc. They recommended that, to give these
-staff-officers the necessary practical training, they should do most
-of their service with troops of all three Arms, and only a part of
-their service on the staff; while, to prevent them being looked upon
-by the troops as mere clerks, they should be relieved of the mass of
-clerical work that now falls to the General Staff. As in other bodies
-of men, so amongst these officers are to be found some specially fitted
-for field-work, and others, again, who prefer purely staff duties, and
-in my opinion the two classes should be separated. Generally speaking,
-the General Staff officers in the 1st Army did everything that was
-required of them. From November, 1904, to September, 1905, their losses
-in killed and wounded amounted to 12 per cent. of their strength; if
-the casualties which occurred before the formation of the 1st Army are
-taken into account, the percentage works out as much as 25·7. During
-the whole of the above time only four were sent back to Russia on
-account of sickness, while the majority of the wounded returned to the
-front.
-
-As regards the senior commanders, many general officers who had
-commanded independent units with great success in peace-time were
-quite unfitted to take command of large units under the stress of war.
-Few had even had sufficient peace practice in the actual command of
-divisions and corps, and many were not up-to-date in their knowledge of
-modern war requirements. The general characteristic displayed by most
-was their lack of the power of forming a decision and a disinclination
-to accept responsibility. Some arrived at the front actually holding
-important commands for which they were—either through ill-health or
-for other reasons—quite unfitted. From three army corps, composed of
-veteran regiments which had arrived earlier than others in the theatre
-of war, there retired, or were sent back, after the first fights, one
-corps, four divisional, and several brigade commanders. Amongst the
-reasons which contributed to complicate the conduct of operations were
-the frequent changes in the Commander-in-Chief, of whom there were
-three in nineteen months. From the beginning of the war till the end
-of October, 1904—for eight and a half months—Admiral Alexeieff was
-in supreme command; from the end of October to the middle of March,
-1905—four and a half months—I was in command; from the middle of March
-till the end of the operations—six months—General Linievitch was in
-command.
-
-The fact that I only commanded for four and a half months out of
-nineteen, and that this period was in the middle of operations, was not
-taken into account by those who last year flooded Russia with pamphlets
-and newspaper articles, apparently written with the sole object of
-proving that I, both as Commander-in-Chief and as War Minister, was
-the person mainly responsible for our misfortunes. In a letter to the
-Tsar, dated February 21, 1906, from the village of Shuan-chen-pu, I
-wrote on this point as follows:
-
- “I am aware of the serious accusations levelled against me
- in the Press. Though there are among them many to which I
- would scorn to reply, I should be happy to accept entire
- responsibility for the disasters which have overtaken us, but
- that such a course would be historically incorrect. It would
- also be a mistake, because it would lessen the general desire
- of the whole army for a thorough investigation of all the
- causes of our partial defeats, so that we may be able to avoid
- them in the future.
-
- “I venture to say ‘partial’ defeats, because there could be no
- possible suggestion that our land forces in Manchuria suffered
- defeat similar to that sustained by the fleet. When peace was
- concluded we had an army of almost one million men, still
- holding positions occupied by us after the Mukden battle,
- and ready, not only for the defensive, but for a most active
- advance.
-
- “Information that reached us from Japan showed that the sources
- from which she had been drawing the men for her armies were
- drained dry, that her finances had been completely exhausted,
- that discontent at the long-drawn-out war was already making
- itself felt among her people, and that for these reasons her
- army could not reckon on further success against our superior
- numbers. Therefore, the most searching and exhaustive study of
- all our weak points cannot shake the belief prevalent in the
- army that our troops in Manchuria would have been victorious if
- only the war had been continued.
-
- “It will be for the future historian to decide whether the
- troops we put into the field before March, 1905, would have
- sufficed for victory.
-
- “Nowadays, with the complicated machinery of modern armies, the
- personality of the supreme commander is less important than it
- was. Without trusty, able, and energetic subordinates, without
- a spirit of initiative amongst all ranks, without a superiority
- in numbers, and, what is most important, without a military
- spirit amongst the troops and patriotism in the whole nation,
- the duty of a Commander-in-Chief is so difficult that it is
- far too much for a merely talented leader. It may be said that
- a military genius would have overcome the moral and physical
- difficulties we had to encounter. Possibly; but an Alexeieff,
- a Kuropatkin, a Linievitch, a Grippenberg, a Kaulbars, and a
- Bilderling were unable to do so.
-
- “I venture to remind Your Imperial Highness that, on receiving
- the orders appointing me to be Commander-in-Chief, I did not
- joyfully express my gratitude. I replied to the effect that
- it was only a dearth of commanders which led Your Majesty to
- select me. If I still firmly believed in victory after the
- Mukden battle, I had, indeed, good grounds for so doing.”
-
-The author of the cleverly written article entitled “All about
-Commanders” writes as follows:
-
- “The absence of initiative, the habit of always relying upon
- superiors, and only acting when ordered to from above, are
- characteristics of junior commanders which made the work of
- those at the head of the army more difficult. The value of the
- time element in war also was forgotten.”
-
-The modern theorist in strategy, Blume, says: “Even the greatest genius
-in a supreme commander cannot replace independent action by individual
-leaders.”
-
-Even during actual operations numerous newspaper articles appeared,
-well calculated to discredit the officers. They were represented as
-overbearing, rude, dishonourable drunkards. Indeed, one of the most
-gifted of our writers—Menshikoff—went very far in this respect, for
-he wrote of the “blunted sense of duty, intemperance, moral laxity,
-and inveterate laziness” of a large body of men who never spared their
-lives and performed their duty almost religiously. In a diatribe
-against military life by M. Kuprin, called “The Duel,” private soldiers
-were represented as being treated with the greatest cruelty, and it was
-implied that it was the custom for our officers to slap and beat their
-men on company parades. The writer concluded by saying that the time
-would come when the officers would be caught and beaten in byways, when
-women would deride them, and soldiers refuse to obey their orders. In
-the great family of officers—as in other classes—there are, of course,
-bad specimens, but no generalization can be made from this as to the
-class as a whole. If some officers were seen drunk on the lines of
-communications or at Harbin, it is not fair to jump to the conclusion
-that all officers got drunk. They should be judged after they have been
-seen in action, in the trenches, and on the line of march, not only, as
-they often were, by what happened in the rear. But it is much easier
-to sit in St. Petersburg or Harbin and hurl abuse than it is to watch
-matters at the front. I have alluded to the large proportion of killed
-and wounded amongst the officers, which shows that their gallantry has
-not grown less than it used to be, and they certainly looked after the
-welfare of the soldier in a way that was unprecedented. The men were
-fed, clothed, cheered up, and kept in good fettle. The junior officers
-were zealous, soon found their feet under new and strange conditions,
-and as they grew accustomed to the local topography, became good
-map-readers. The most severe critic must acknowledge that the standard
-of our officers, both staff and regimental, has been much raised since
-the Russo-Turkish War.
-
-But, according to the opinion of these same observers, the private
-soldier has, on the contrary, deteriorated during these twenty-seven
-years, for, though a better man physically, he is morally a worse man
-than he used to be. As I have remarked, the men with the colours were
-quite reliable, but many of the reservists—especially the 2nd Category
-men—required much supervision both in action and out of it, the most
-difficult material to handle being that from the manufacturing centres
-and large towns. Soldiers nowadays require more looking after than they
-did formerly, when but few were literate. Up to the present, thank
-God, our officers still have a good hold upon the men, based on mutual
-respect; but great endeavours were made at the beginning of the war to
-undermine this.
-
-Kirilloff and others have made a dead set against the behaviour of the
-officers of our General Staff in the late war, but the majority worked
-most unselfishly, and did good service commanding units or on the
-staff. A large number distinguished themselves by their professional
-zeal and gallantry, while some found a glorious death in action. At
-their head may be mentioned General Kondratenko, the hero of Port
-Arthur. Among the killed also were the gallant General Count Keller,
-Staff-Officers Zapolski, Naumenko, Jdanoff, Pekuti, Vasilieff, Mojeiko;
-and of those who died from wounds were Andreeiff and Yagodkin. Among
-the wounded were four divisional commanders—Lieutenant-Generals
-Rennenkampf and Kondratovitch, Major-Generals Laiming and Orloff; also
-Staff-Officers Markoff, Klembovski, Gutor, Rossiski, Gurko, Inevski,
-etc. Altogether, about twenty officers of the General Staff were
-killed and forty wounded. The hostile attitude of the Press towards the
-officers, the endeavour of divers persons to undermine their authority,
-the indifference of the intelligent classes in Russia to what was
-happening in Manchuria, and especially the anti-Government campaign,
-which was conducted with the object of creating a mutiny among the
-troops, was hardly calculated to raise the soldiers’ _moral_, or to
-encourage them to perform acts of heroism. There was no military spirit
-in the army.
-
-
- _The Rank and File._
-
-The rank and file, like the officers, were of two classes: those
-serving with the colours, and the reservists. The former were in every
-respect good; they were steady in action, enduring and well trained;
-but the reservists were on a much lower plane altogether. In the first
-place, the older men were unable to stand the arduous conditions of
-field service, coupled with the rigours of the Manchurian climate.
-They suffered greatly from sunstroke and heart affections when
-marching among the hills, and during the hot weather. At the battles
-of Ta-shih-chiao, Hai-cheng, and Liao-yang, these men fell out in
-such numbers that their units became quite immobile, and absolutely
-useless for any offensive operations. Moreover, the 2nd Category
-reservists did not know the rifle, and had forgotten everything they
-had once learnt when with the colours, and it required real hard work
-to instruct and train them up to the level of the serving soldiers. I
-have mentioned their unsteadiness. Units which were almost entirely
-composed of these men—that is to say, those units which had been formed
-by expanding the reserve regiments—were very unsatisfactory: it was
-almost impossible to get them into action. The regiments of the 4th
-Siberian Corps, which did so splendidly at Ta-shih-chiao, Hai-cheng,
-and Liao-yang, were an exception; they were composed entirely of
-Siberian reservists, who, though surly fellows and poor marchers, were
-men of character and very steady in action. The drafts composed of
-young soldiers were magnificent. Most of them had only just done their
-recruits’ course, were single men, and possessed both staying power and
-activity, and, being regular soldiers, were accustomed to field-service
-conditions. Unfortunately, it was only after the battle of Mukden that
-these drafts began to arrive. But these young soldiers who did so well
-in small actions would have done still better in a decisive engagement.
-
-The general feeling of discontent which already prevailed in all
-classes of our population made the war so hateful that it aroused
-no patriotism whatever. Many good officers hastened to offer their
-services—which was only natural—though all ranks of society remained
-indifferent. A few hundreds of the common people volunteered,
-but no eagerness to enter the army was shown by the sons of our
-high dignitaries, of our merchants, or of our scientific men.
-Out of the tens of thousands of students who were then living in
-idleness,[24] many of them at the expense of the Empire, only a
-handful volunteered,[25] while at that very time, in Japan, sons of
-the most distinguished citizens—even boys fourteen and fifteen years
-of age—were striving for places in the ranks. Japanese mothers, as I
-have already said, killed themselves through shame when their sons were
-found to be physically unfit for military service. The indifference
-of Russia to the bloody struggle which her sons were carrying on—for
-little-understood objects, and in a foreign land—could not fail to
-discourage even the best soldiers. Men are not inspired to deeds of
-heroism by such an attitude towards them on the part of their country.
-But Russia was not merely indifferent. Leaders of the revolutionary
-party strove, with extraordinary energy, to multiply our chances of
-failure, hoping thus to facilitate the attainment of their own unworthy
-ends. There appeared a whole literature of clandestine publications,
-intended to lessen the confidence of officers in their superiors,
-to shake the trust of soldiers in their officers, and to undermine
-the faith of the whole army in the Government. In an “Address to the
-Officers of the Russian Army,” published and widely circulated by the
-Social Revolutionists, the main idea was expressed as follows:
-
- “The worst and most dangerous enemy of the Russian people—in
- fact, its only enemy—is the present Government. It is this
- Government that is carrying on the war with Japan, and you are
- fighting under its banners in an unjust cause. Every victory
- that you win threatens Russia with the calamity involved in the
- maintenance of what the Government calls ‘order,’ and every
- defeat that you suffer brings nearer the hour of deliverance.
- Is it surprising, therefore, that Russians rejoice when your
- adversary is victorious?”
-
-But persons who had nothing in common with the Social Revolutionary
-party, and who sincerely loved their country, aided Russia’s enemies
-by expressing the opinion, in the Press, that the war was irrational,
-and by criticizing the mistakes of the Government that had failed
-to prevent it. In a brochure entitled “Thoughts Suggested by Recent
-Military Operations,” M. Gorbatoff referred to such persons as follows:
-
- “But it is a still more grievous fact that while our heroic
- soldiers are carrying on a life-and-death struggle, these
- so-called friends of the people whisper to them: ‘Gentlemen,
- you are heroes, but you are facing death without reason. You
- will die to pay for Russia’s mistaken policy, and not to defend
- Russia’s vital interests.’ What can be more terrible than the
- part played by these so-called friends of the people when they
- undermine in this way the intellectual faith of heroic men who
- are going to their death? One can easily imagine the state
- of mind of an officer or soldier who goes into battle after
- reading, in newspapers or magazines, articles referring in this
- way to the folly and uselessness of the war. It is from these
- self-styled friends that the revolutionary party gets support
- in its effort to break down the discipline of our troops.”
-
-Reservists, when called out, were furnished by the anti-Government
-party with proclamations intended to prejudice them against their
-officers, and similar proclamations were sent to the army in Manchuria.
-Troops in the field received letters apprising them of popular
-disorders in Russia, and men sick in hospitals, as well as men on
-duty in our advanced positions, read in the newspapers articles
-that undermined their faith in their commanders and their leaders.
-The work of breaking down the discipline of the army was carried
-on energetically, and, of course, it was not altogether fruitless.
-The ideal at which the leaders in the movement aimed was the state
-of affairs brought about by the mutinous sailors on the battleship
-_Potemkin_. These enemies of the army and the country were aided by
-certain other persons who were simply foolish and unreasonable. One
-can imagine the indignation that the M―s, the K―s, and the K―s would
-feel if they were told that they played the same part in the army
-that was played by the persons who incited the insubordination on the
-_Potemkin_; yet such was the case. Firm in spirit though Russians might
-be, the indifference of one class of the population, and the seditious
-incitement of another, could hardly fail to have upon many of them an
-influence that was not favourable to the successful prosecution of war.
-
-Commanding officers in the Siberian military districts reported,
-as early as February, that detachments of supernumerary troops and
-reservists had plundered several railway-stations, and later on regular
-troops, on their way to the front, were guilty of similar bad conduct.
-The drifting to the rear of large numbers of soldiers—especially
-the older reservists—while battles were in progress was due not so
-much to cowardice as to the unsettling of the men’s minds, and to a
-disinclination on their part to continue the war. I may add that the
-opening of peace negotiations at Portsmouth, at a time when we were
-preparing for decisive operations, unfavourably affected the _moral_ of
-the best in the army.
-
-M. E. Martinoff, in an article entitled “Spirit and Temper of the Two
-Armies,” points out that
-
- “... even in time of peace, the Japanese people were so
- educated as to develop in them a patriotic and martial spirit.
- The very idea of war with Russia was generally popular, and
- throughout the contest the army was supported by the sympathy
- of the nation. In Russia, the reverse was true. Patriotism was
- shaken by the dissemination of ideas of universal brotherhood
- and disarmament, and in the midst of a difficult campaign
- the attitude of the country toward the army was one of
- indifference, if not of actual hostility.”
-
-This judgment is accurate, and it is evident, of course, that with
-such a relation between Russian society and the Manchurian army it
-was impossible to expect from the latter any patriotic spirit, or
-any readiness to sacrifice life for the sake of the Fatherland. In
-an admirable article, entitled “The Feeling of Duty and the Love of
-Country,” published in the _Russki Invalid_ in 1906, M. A. Bilderling
-expressed certain profoundly true ideas as follows:
-
- “Our lack of success may have been due, in part, to various
- and complicated causes, to the misconduct of particular
- persons, to bad generalship, to lack of preparation in the
- army and the navy, to inadequacy of material resources, and to
- misappropriations in the departments of equipment and supply;
- but the principal reason for our defeat lies deeper, and is to
- be found in lack of patriotism, and in the absence of a feeling
- of duty toward and love for the Fatherland. In a conflict
- between two peoples, the things of most importance are not
- material resources, but moral strength, exaltation of spirit,
- and patriotism. Victory is most likely to be achieved by the
- nation in which these qualities are most highly developed.
- Japan had long been preparing for war with us; all her people
- desired it; and a feeling of lofty patriotism pervaded the
- whole country. In her army and her fleet, therefore, every
- man, from the Commander-in-Chief to the last soldier, not
- only knew what he was fighting for, and what he might have
- to die for, but understood clearly that upon success in the
- struggle depended the fate of Japan, her political importance,
- and her future in the history of the world. Every soldier
- knew also that the whole nation stood behind him. Japanese
- mothers and wives sent their sons and husbands to the war with
- enthusiasm, and were proud when they died for their country.
- With us, on the other hand, the war was unpopular from the
- very beginning. We neither desired it nor anticipated it,
- and consequently we were not prepared for it. Soldiers were
- hastily put into railway-trains, and when, after a journey that
- lasted a month, they alighted in Manchuria, they did not know
- in what country they were, nor whom they were to fight, nor
- what the war was about. Even our higher commanders went to the
- front unwillingly, and from a mere sense of duty. The whole
- army, moreover, felt that it was regarded by the country with
- indifference; that its life was not shared by the people; and
- that it was a mere fragment, cut off from the nation, thrown to
- a distance of 6,000 miles, and there abandoned to the caprice
- of Fate. Before decisive fighting began, therefore, one of
- the contending armies advanced with the full expectation and
- confident belief that it would be victorious, while the other
- went forward with a demoralizing doubt of its own success.”
-
-Generally speaking, the man who conquers in war is the man who is
-least afraid of death. We were unprepared in previous wars, as well
-as in this, and in previous wars we made mistakes; but when the
-preponderance of moral strength was on our side, as in the wars with
-the Swedes, the French, the Turks, the Caucasian mountaineers, and
-the natives of Central Asia, we were victorious. In the late war, for
-reasons that are extremely complicated, our moral strength was less
-than that of the Japanese; and it was this inferiority, rather than
-mistakes in generalship, that caused our defeats, and that forced us
-to make tremendous efforts in order to succeed at all. Our lack of
-moral strength, as compared with the Japanese, affected all ranks of
-our army, from the highest to the lowest, and greatly reduced our
-fighting power. In a war waged under different conditions—a war in
-which the army had the confidence and encouragement of the country—the
-same officers and the same troops would have accomplished far more
-than they accomplished in Manchuria. The lack of martial spirit, of
-moral exaltation, and of heroic impulse, affected particularly our
-stubbornness in battle. In many cases we did not have sufficient
-resolution to conquer such antagonists as the Japanese. Instead of
-holding with unshakable tenacity the positions assigned them, our
-troops often retreated, and in such cases our commanding officers of
-all ranks, without exception, lacked the power or the means to set
-things right. Instead of making renewed and extraordinary efforts to
-wrest victory from the enemy, they either permitted the retreat of
-the troops under their command, or themselves ordered such retreat.
-The army, however, never lost its strong sense of duty; and it was
-this that enabled many divisions, regiments, and battalions to
-increase their power of resistance with every battle. This peculiarity
-of the late war, together with our final acquisition of numerical
-preponderance and a noticeable decline of Japanese ardour, gave us
-reason to regard the future with confidence, and left no room for doubt
-as to our ultimate victory.
-
-In both Russian and foreign papers numerous articles have appeared
-in which the Commander-in-Chief has been accused of a lack of
-determination in the conduct of various battles. Without any real
-basis for their statements, critics have represented that orders to
-retire were for some unknown reason more than once given by him at a
-moment when victory lay in our hands. Comments upon his indecision and
-frequent change of orders were so common that the idea became universal
-that it was Kuropatkin, and Kuropatkin alone, who prevented the army
-and corps commanders from defeating the enemy.
-
-My first three volumes supply the answer to the most serious of these
-accusations: in them are described the tremendous efforts we had to
-make to prevent our operations ending worse than they did. I have never
-been one of those who believe that an order once given should not be
-countermanded or modified. In war circumstances change so quickly, and
-information received so frequently turns out to be false, that it would
-be fundamentally unsound to insist, in spite of changed conditions, on
-keeping exactly to an order once issued. An excellent example of this
-is given by the operations at Hei-kou-tai. The order received by the
-officer commanding the 1st Siberians to rest his troops on January 27,
-and to occupy the line Hei-kou-tai–Su-ma-pu–Pei-tai-tzu, was founded
-on the incorrect supposition of the commander of the 2nd Manchurian
-Army that San-de-pu had been captured. The former was more than once
-told not to attack. Yet, even though news was received that San-de-pu
-had not been taken, he insisted in carrying out the orders given, in
-which, by a mistake, a village held in force by the enemy was appointed
-as our halting-place. The result is known: we fought all day, lost
-7,000 men, and at daybreak on January 28 were compelled to retire.
-With regard to the accusation that the late Commander-in-Chief[26]
-constantly countermanded his own orders, it is interesting to note that
-General Grippenberg, in his article, “The Truth about the Battle of
-Hei-kou-tai,” points out that, although he did not agree with him as to
-the necessity for retiring the right flank of the 2nd Army to take up
-a more concentrated position, he did not express this opinion to the
-Commander-in-Chief, because he and all his staff knew that Kuropatkin
-would never countermand an order once given.
-
-Upon the point as to whether we might have defeated the Japanese at
-Liao-yang or Mukden we shall remain unenlightened, in spite of the
-publication of my book, till we know in detail the actual movements of
-the Japanese in these actions. As regards Liao-yang, I can only express
-my personal opinion. An important decision, such as that leading to
-an order for troops to retire, cannot be given upon the inspiration
-of a moment. All the attendant circumstances have to be taken into
-account—the results of the previous engagements; the physical and
-mental condition of the troops; the strength and dispositions of the
-enemy; the results which he may attain if the fight is continued; the
-reports from the front, flanks, and rear; the extent to which the
-reserves have been depleted, their readiness for action; the amount of
-ammunition in hand, etc. At the battle of Liao-yang Kuroki’s army, in
-addition to Nodzu’s, might easily have been pushed across to the right
-bank of the Tai-tzu Ho, just as the Japanese boldly threw the greater
-part of Oku’s army, in addition to Nogi’s, across on to the right bank
-of the Hun Ho at Mukden. This was all the more possible because our
-attempt to assume the offensive with the troops stationed on the left
-bank on September 2 ended disastrously. If there is no hope of worsting
-an enemy by an offensive counter-stroke, it is very important for a
-defending force, circumstanced as we were,[27] to retire in good time,
-and not to hold on until an orderly retirement becomes impossible to
-carry out. We retired under very difficult conditions along roads deep
-in mud, but not a single trophy was left behind, not a prisoner, not a
-gun, not a transport cart.
-
-If we had delayed a single day, our retirement might have resembled
-that of the 2nd and 3rd Armies, which were in so awkward a plight at
-Mukden. For the reasons explained in my third volume, the 2nd Army was,
-on March 7, almost surrounded on flanks and rear. Great efforts were
-necessary in order that we might extricate ourselves from the position
-in which we were placed without being utterly defeated. But these
-efforts were not made, and the situation of our whole force on March 7,
-8, and 9 became worse, and the danger of a considerable part of the 2nd
-Army being surrounded by Nogi’s troops still more imminent. Comparing
-the condition of our men with that of the Japanese on March 7 and 8, as
-well as the positions occupied by the two forces on the 8th, and taking
-into account the moral superiority of the Japanese, I should have given
-up hope of a victorious issue from the battle on the 7th and 8th, and
-have arranged for a retirement to Tieh-ling before the army became
-disorganized. The future historian will probably accuse me of having
-held on too long. I did not give the order to retire till March 10, and
-according to events and the opinion of my staff, the order should have
-been given a day earlier. If we had retired on the 9th, the army would
-probably have fallen back in complete order without losing anything
-(except wounded); indeed, we might have taken with us a fairly large
-number of prisoners and captured guns and machine-guns. In my report
-upon the battle of Mukden to His Majesty the Tsar, I acknowledged that
-I was primarily responsible for our reverse, and admitted that I should
-have more accurately gauged the difference between the men of the two
-forces and the qualifications of the commanders, and that I should
-have been more careful in making my decisions. Hoping against hope to
-defeat the enemy, despite the disastrous operations of the 2nd Army,
-between March 2 and 7, I gave the order to retreat too late. I should
-have abandoned all hope of eventual victory at Mukden a day sooner than
-I did, and our withdrawal would have been effected in good order. Thus,
-the general conclusion regarding the battles of Liao-yang and Mukden
-could, in my opinion, be expressed as follows: If we had retired from
-Liao-yang a day later than we did, the result would have been much the
-same as at Mukden; if we had retired from Mukden a day sooner, the
-result would have been much the same as at Liao-yang.[28]
-
-I might also have been blamed for not holding on longer to Tieh-ling
-and fighting there, and for ordering the troops to retire on to the
-Hsi-ping-kai position. My reply is given in detail in my third volume.
-It is sufficient to say here that, when it was decided to retire from
-Tieh-ling on March 12 and 13, according to the officers commanding
-those units of the 2nd and 3rd Armies which suffered most in the battle
-of Mukden, we only had an effective strength of 16,390 rifles in 114
-battalions.[29] If I had accepted battle there under such conditions,
-it would have been most dangerous, as we might have completely lost the
-cadres of many units. How long it would have taken us to re-form for
-a new battle can be judged from the fact that the officer commanding
-the 3rd Army stated before a committee assembled as late as May 17
-[two months after the retreat] that he thought the acceptance of a
-general action even then on the Hsi-ping-kai position itself was
-inadvisable.[30]
-
-I will bring the present chapter to a close by quoting literally my
-farewell address to the officers of the 1st Manchurian Army. In this
-address, with fresh impressions of all that we had gone through and had
-actually felt during the war, I outlined those of our defects which
-prevented us defeating the enemy in the time at our disposal. But while
-indicating our weaknesses, I also brought out the strong points of
-the troops which I had commanded—points which gave every reason for a
-belief that we should have won in the end.
-
-
-“_To the Officers of the 1st Manchurian Army._
-
-“In a few days the 1st Manchurian Army will be broken up, and I must
-now bid farewell to the glorious troops which I have had the great
-honour to command for two years. Upon you fell the arduous duty, in
-the beginning of the war, of withstanding the attack of a numerically
-superior enemy, so as to gain time for our reinforcements coming from
-Russia to concentrate. You had the good fortune to be present at
-the battles of the Ya-lu, Te-li-ssu, Ta-shih-chiao, Yang-tzu Ling,
-Lang-tzu-shan, and also at the long-drawn struggles of Liao-yang, the
-Sha Ho, and Mukden, and by your conduct during those fights you earned
-the praise of the rest of the army.
-
-“With a comparatively weak establishment of five and a half corps (160
-battalions), or an average fighting strength of 100,000 rifles and
-2,200 officers, the 1st Manchurian Army lost up to March 14, 1905:
-
- Officers. Rank and File.
- Killed 395 10,435
- Wounded 1,773 56,350
-
-or a percentage of killed and wounded amongst the officers of 91, and
-amongst the rank and file of 67, per cent. of the average war strength.
-In the independent units the losses in killed and wounded were:
-
- Officers. Rank and File.
- 34th East Siberian Rifle Regiment 89 3,243
- 36th East Siberian Rifle Regiment 73 2,531
- 3rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment 102 2,244
- 4th East Siberian Rifle Regiment 61 2,170
- 23rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment 50 2,290
- 1st East Siberian Rifle Regiment 71 1,920
-
-“The particularly gallant conduct in action of the officers is apparent
-from the fact that the percentage of killed and wounded is considerably
-higher than that of the men, while many single units proved that it
-is possible to continue fighting after a loss of two-thirds of the
-fighting strength. And yet, despite these sacrifices, despite all our
-efforts, we were unable to beat the enemy. Undoubtedly we had to fight
-against a very brave, energetic, and most martial foe. So careless were
-the Japanese of life that they piled the bodies of their comrades on
-our obstacles, and endeavoured to reach our positions by climbing over
-these masses of corpses. For a long time also they were able to bring
-superior forces against us. But we became tempered by misfortune, and
-gained wisdom by experience, and our numbers grew until we finally
-became so strong in mind and spirit last summer that victory seemed
-assured.
-
-“The intervals of comparative peace between the great battles were
-employed in strengthening the army, and many positions up to and
-including Mukden were fortified with immense trouble. After that battle
-the defence of the left flank of the whole force was entrusted to
-you, and three very strong defensive lines were constructed by your
-labours up to the River Sungari. These lines, particularly the first
-and second, were, on account of their fortifications and the nature
-of the ground, in every way suited either for a desperate defence or
-for the attack. Although our army was not quite ready to assume the
-offensive by last May, it would have welcomed orders to advance. The
-enemy, shaken by their losses at Mukden, kept their positions for
-six months, and waited for us to move forward. We inaugurated many
-improvements based upon our previous experiences in the war, and the
-tactical training of the troops made immense progress. We not only
-filled up our weakened ranks by means of the drafts which reached us,
-but expanded all the rifle regiments into four battalions. In the way
-of reinforcements, the 1st Army received the 53rd Infantry Division,
-the Cossack Infantry Brigade, and the Don Cossack Division.
-
-“The firing-line of the 1st Army was in August last stronger than it
-was at the beginning of the war, before the September battles on the
-Sha Ho, and, thanks to the great exertions of those in command, and
-the unselfish work of the medical services, the health of the army
-remained excellent throughout. It was, indeed, fortunate, for if any
-great sickness had broken out we should, owing to the few drafts
-then arriving, only have had very weak cadres for the field. It was
-absolutely essential, therefore, that no expense or efforts should be
-spared in order to keep every man fit for the ranks, and I am happy
-to say that our common efforts met with unusual success, for our
-losses from sickness were less than in killed and wounded. In the 1st
-Manchurian Army we had lost up to August 14, 1905, 2,218 officers and
-66,785 other ranks killed and wounded in action, and 2,390 officers and
-58,093 other ranks from sickness. I draw your attention to the fact
-that while the percentage of losses from action should naturally be
-higher among the officers than the men, they ought, on account of their
-better living, to lose less from sickness. The converse was the case
-with us, which shows that our officers were not sufficiently hardy,
-and did not know how to preserve their health. To this we must pay
-particular attention.
-
-“In material matters the army was also excellently situated in August.
-Clothing and equipment of all sorts were on the spot and plentiful,
-while all technical supplies had accumulated. Never have we been such
-a formidable force in every sense as we had become by the summer of
-1905, when we were suddenly informed of the unhappy negotiations
-at Portsmouth, and that peace had been concluded. Doubtless this
-was necessitated by the state of the interior of Russia; but it was
-heart-breaking for the army. I remember with what grief the news was
-received by all ranks. Life seemed to die out of our bivouacs, and all
-our minds were filled by one sad thought—that the war had ended before
-the enemy had been beaten. Looking back on the trials we have recently
-gone through, we can find consolation in the feeling that we have done
-our duty to Tsar and country as far as has lain in our power; but for
-many reasons the time given us has turned out to be insufficient. These
-reasons we must fearlessly search out, and discover what—beyond mere
-numerical inferiority—prevented our success before peace was concluded.
-Before all others, I, your senior commander, am guilty because I did
-not succeed in rectifying our many moral and material defects during
-the war, and in making the most of the undoubted strong points of our
-troops. The material defects are known to all of us—the small number
-of rifles in the firing-line per company [partly owing to lack of care
-to put as many men as possible into action], the insufficiency [at the
-beginning] of mountain artillery, the lack of high explosive shells,
-of machine-guns, and of technical stores of all sorts. By last August
-the majority of these deficiencies had, through the great exertions
-of the War Ministry, been made good. Our moral defects I attribute to
-the different standards of training among the troops, their inferior
-technical preparation, and the great numerical weakness of units in
-action. We also suffered much from inadequate reconnaissance of the
-enemy’s position before a battle, and the resulting vagueness as to
-how to conduct the action [particularly in the attack]; and, most
-important, from the lack of initiative and independent thought in
-individual commanders, the absence of the military spirit in officers
-and men, of dash, of mutual co-operation between units, and of a
-general determination to carry out a task to a finish at any sacrifice.
-The tendency to accept defeat too soon—after only the advanced troops
-had suffered—and of retiring instead of repeating the attack and
-setting an example, was highly detrimental. Such retirement, instead of
-calling forth increased efforts from the neighbours, in most cases only
-served as a signal for their own retreat.
-
-“Generally speaking, there was in all ranks a great dearth of men
-of strong military character, with nerves tough enough to enable
-them to stand the strain of an almost continual battle lasting for
-several days. It is evident that neither our educational system nor
-our national life during the last forty to fifty years has been of
-a nature to produce men of strong independent characters, or more
-would have appeared in our army when wanted. Now the Tsar has given
-us the blessing of freedom. The nation has been released from the
-leading-strings of a bureaucracy, and can now develop freely, and
-direct its energies to the good of the country. Let us hope that this
-blessing of freedom, coupled to a well-thought-out system of education,
-will raise the material and moral forces of the Russian nation,
-and produce in every sphere of national activity stalwarts who are
-enterprising, independent, possessed of initiative, and strong in body
-and soul. By an infusion of such the army will be enriched. But it is
-not possible for the army idly to await results which are the work of a
-generation. Knowing now our strong and weak points, we can, and ought
-to, start on self-improvement without delay. The war has brought out
-many men [especially amongst all ranks of the 1st Army], from modest
-company officers up to corps commanders, on whose energy, zeal, and
-ability the Russian nation can rely; and I notice with pleasure that
-not a few of those amongst the 1st Army have received good appointments
-in the Far East and in Russia. This should serve as a fresh proof that
-the Tsar is diligently watching our efforts, and is losing no time in
-employing the most worthy of you to the advantage of the whole army.
-
-“You have first-hand knowledge of the difficult conditions generally
-under which war is now conducted, and of the moral and physical effort
-that is required to carry on an almost continuous battle for several
-days. You also know by experience the exact value in action of all
-kinds of technical equipment. All this makes it necessary for you
-to endeavour to perfect yourselves. With the exception of the cadet
-corps, our schools take no pains about the physical development of
-children; consequently, many of our officers, as was evident in the
-war, are physically feeble. Pay attention to gymnastics, to fencing,
-to singlesticks, and to musketry. An officer should not be a mere
-spectator of the physical exercises of the men—a thing I have often
-noticed—but should himself set the example to those under him.
-
-“The relations between officers and men have always been of the
-closest. Like fathers to the men, our officers have won their
-affectionate respect. Remember that to our soldiers the word
-‘father-commander’ is not merely an empty phrase; they believe in it.
-Remember, also, that a commander only wins the heart of his soldiers
-when he is their father-commander. It is quite possible to be strict
-and at the same time look after the men’s welfare, for our soldiers are
-not afraid of severity, but respect it; in the majority of cases a just
-severity is a deterrent against crime. But the simple-minded soldier
-is particularly sensitive to injustice, and soon sees through any
-deceit practised on him. You who shared with the men all the hardships
-and dangers of field service are very favourably situated. The men
-having seen you in action—always in your place, giving an example of
-unselfishness—will forgive much, and will follow you through fire and
-water. These links which bind the ranks must be carefully maintained,
-and officers who have been in the field with units must not be removed
-from them unless absolutely necessary. Guard the military traditions
-acquired by regiments, and do your best to preserve the memory of the
-gallant deeds done by companies, squadrons, or batteries collectively,
-or by individual members of them. Keep in close touch with the private
-soldier; try to win his full confidence. You will gain it by your
-constant care of and your affection for him; by your strict, and at the
-same time fatherly, relations to him; by knowing your work; and by your
-own example. Only by these will you be able to take advantage of all
-his good points, to correct his defects, and guard him from the harmful
-influences which will be more numerous in the future than ever. The
-recent cases of military mutinies should be constantly in our memories.
-I turn to you officers in command of regiments in particular. You know
-the great responsibility which falls upon you in action. How often has
-the issue of the battle depended on the way a regiment has been led. It
-has often been enough for an energetic, gallant, capable man to get the
-command of a regiment to change its character utterly. The selection
-of men for these appointments must, therefore, be carefully made, and
-those chosen must work incessantly to educate all those under them.
-
-“Up to the present our regimental commanders have, unfortunately, been
-too much taken up with routine and office work, and have been unable to
-give sufficient time to the practical military side of their duties,
-to that intercourse between officers and men which is so valuable.
-Some seem to think that their chief duty is to look after such details
-as the colour and the repainting of the transport carts, and not the
-training of the men. The constant strain of how to make both ends meet
-with the money granted, how to maintain the clothing and other funds,
-has increased to such an extent, and worries some commanders so much,
-that they scarcely get to know their own officers, and do positive
-harm to their men by trying to increase funds at the expense of their
-rations, and therefore of their health. In the late war the Supply
-Department carried out their difficult duties so well that they have
-proved that they deserve to be implicitly trusted in peace-time; we can
-therefore give over to this department much of the work of supplying
-the troops (clothing, equipment, transport, food). Then regimental and
-company commanders will stand out as real flesh and blood commanders
-in the true sense, and will cease to be “office” automatons and mere
-inspectors of stores and depôts, and the work of training and education
-will progress.
-
-“I would invite the special attention of all commanding officers to the
-necessity for thoroughly studying the characters of those under them.
-With us, men of independent character and initiative are rare. Search
-out such men, encourage them, promote them, and so encourage the growth
-of the qualities which are essential for all soldiers. Men of strong
-individuality are with us, unfortunately, often passed over, instead of
-receiving accelerated promotion. Because they are a source of anxiety
-to some officers in peace, they get repressed as being headstrong.
-The result is that they leave the service, while others, who possess
-neither force of character nor convictions, but who are subservient,
-and always ready to agree with their superiors, are promoted. Remember
-how much our inattention to the opinions and evidence of those under us
-has cost us.
-
-“The greater part of the 1st Army is to remain in the Far East, and I
-am convinced that the glorious Siberian regiments of the 1st Manchurian
-Army, which have been such a tower of strength in action, will now,
-under the new conditions of peace, still be Russia’s bulwark in that
-quarter.
-
-“In bidding you farewell, my dear comrades in the field, I sincerely
-hope that the war experience you have gained will be of great advantage
-to the army and the country. Devoted to Crown and country, always
-ready to maintain law and order, and to uphold the authority of the
-Government, holding yourselves aloof from the intrigues of political
-parties, and knowing your own weak and strong points as shown up
-by the struggle we have all been through, you will, I believe,
-quickly heal your wounds, and lead the army in its struggle towards
-perfection. Although in the future you may be denied the recollection
-of victories won, you can remember—and this should be a consolation
-and an encouragement—that you were ready, without fear of sacrifice,
-to continue the struggle with the gallant enemy till you had beaten
-him. You, officers, believed that you would win, and you succeeded in
-instilling this belief into our grand soldiers.
-
-“May God assist you in the duties that lie before you, which are as
-important for our dear country as any we have already performed, even
-though they be in peace. Farewell. Accept my sincere gratitude for
-all your self-denying service in the field, and express to the men my
-thanks for their services, and for the many proofs they have given of
-devotion and loyalty to the Tsar and Fatherland.
-
- “SHUAN-CHEN-PU,
- “_February 18, 1906_.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- Suggested measures for the improvement of the senior
- ranks; for the improvement of the regulars and
- reservists; for the reorganization of the reserve troops;
- for increasing the number of combatants in infantry
- regiments—Machine-guns—Reserve troops—Troops on the
- communications—Engineers—Artillery—Cavalry—Infantry—Organization
- generally.
-
-
-Our recent experiences have furnished ample material by which we may
-be guided in our efforts to improve the war training and increase
-the efficiency of our forces. The War Ministry, assisted by officers
-who served in Manchuria, and by articles which have appeared in the
-military Press, has already embarked upon numerous reforms. I shall
-here merely express my own opinion upon the points I consider most
-important, and which should be settled first of all. Amongst these are
-measures for—
-
-1. The improvement of the senior ranks.
-
-2. The improvement of the regular soldiers and reservists.
-
-3. Reforms in the organization of the reserve troops.
-
-4. Increasing the number of actual combatants in our infantry regiments.
-
-5. Enlarging the war establishment of regiments, brigades, divisions,
-and corps, and, by means of decentralization, making them more
-independent.
-
-As regards the first: Our three wars of the last fifty years have
-disclosed many shortcomings in our officers. Most of these have
-undoubtedly been due to the undeveloped state of the nation, and to
-the general conditions of life and labour, which have affected the
-army as an integral part of the whole population. Any serious attempt
-to improve our officers as a body, therefore, is only likely to be
-successful if and when a general improvement sets in in our social
-conditions. It has pleased the Tsar to inaugurate many fundamental
-reforms for the betterment of the civil status of all classes of our
-population in every walk of life, and reforms in the officer class
-should be instituted at the same time.
-
-Why is it that, with so many capable, keen, and intelligent men as
-we possess among our junior officers and those in comparatively
-subordinate positions, we have so few original-minded, keen, and
-competent seniors? As I have said, the standard of all ranks of the
-army entirely depends on that of the nation. With the growth of the
-moral and mental faculties of the people at large there will be a
-corresponding growth in that of the military class; but so long as
-the nation suffers from a paucity of well-informed, independent, and
-zealous men, the army cannot well be expected to be an exception. If
-the uniform attracted the pick of the population, out of a nation of
-many millions, however backward, there would be at least hundreds of
-the very best men—in every sense—quite capable of commanding troops in
-war. It would therefore seem necessary—
-
-1. To adopt a military uniform such as will attract the flower of our
-youth.
-
-2. To insist that the best of those privileged to wear the uniform
-should serve in the army, and there acquire the military knowledge and
-strength of character necessary for war.
-
-[Illustration: GENERAL GRIPPENBERG.]
-
-In the first of these two particulars we have succeeded, for in
-Russia the military uniform has been particularly honoured for years;
-but we have by no means approached near the second desideratum. The
-majority of the best men wearing military uniform have not only never
-served in the army, but are absolutely unconnected with it. In the
-eighteenth century a custom crept in of dressing the sons of grandees
-in military clothes, and they could get promotion at an age when they
-were riding toy horses round drawing-rooms. Then, little by little,
-military uniform, military rank, even that of General, ceased to become
-the absolute prerogative of the army, or, indeed, to denote any
-connection with war. The members of the Church were the only people
-not arrayed in it. Members of the Imperial Council, Ambassadors,
-Senators, Ministers of the different departments and their assistants,
-Governor-Generals, Governors, Mayors, Superintendents of Police,
-officials in the various Government departments and in the military
-institutions, all wore military uniform, and were graded in different
-ranks. With few exceptions, all that they had to do with the army was
-to be a source of weakness to it. Amongst the many names in the long
-list of generals, only a few belong to officers on the active list,
-and, what is worse, those who are serving in the army get superseded
-in rank by, and receive less emoluments than, those who are not.
-Consequently, the best elements in the service are naturally anxious
-to leave. The posts of Minister of the Interior, of Finance, of Ways
-and Communications, of Education, and of State Control, used to be held
-by generals and admirals, as well as the appointments of Ambassador
-at Constantinople, Paris, London, and Berlin. Service uniforms were
-therefore conspicuous at all diplomatic and ministerial gatherings.
-Military clothes also had a great attraction for other departments, and
-several of them tried to assimilate their uniforms as much as possible
-to those of army officers. The worst offender in this respect was the
-Ministry of the Interior, which adopted a uniform for police-officers
-and even for constables which could hardly be distinguished from that
-worn by military officers. The private soldiers were naturally unable
-to make anything of this multitude of uniforms, and never knew whom to
-salute or obey; indeed, the police-officers’ great-coats and caps with
-cockades were enough to puzzle the most discriminating. This all seems
-incomprehensible; but the ambition to wear military uniform is easily
-explained. It is largely due to the ignorance of the people. Not long
-ago, anyone wearing even a hat with a cockade was taken in the country
-for a person in authority; caps were doffed to him, and in winter
-heavily laden sledges would be turned into snow-drifts to give him the
-road, while his vulgar abuse would be patiently accepted.
-
-Thirty years ago, when a young officer, I spent about a year on
-service with the French in Algiers, and travelled a great deal. I was
-astonished to find that it was found convenient, even under republican
-rule, to keep to a system of semi-military government for the native
-population—Arabs and Kabyles. It was, in this case, entrusted mainly to
-army officers, and those civilians who were also appointed had to adopt
-a uniform similar to that worn by the military. These officials told
-me in all seriousness that their spurs and the gold braid round their
-caps assisted them in their dealings with the Arabs, in collecting
-taxes, settling land questions, and other matters. It was so in our
-case. Undoubtedly the wearing of military clothes did facilitate the
-difficult work which our police-officers have to do; but a great
-change has recently come over the country, and a uniform alone is not
-now enough to command obedience. It is sometimes a drawback, if not a
-danger. It is, of course, to be hoped that such an unnatural state of
-affairs will not last; but it is very desirable to take advantage of
-the present indifference displayed by the civil population to uniform
-to take it from all who are not actually serving in the army. The
-time has come when the prestige appertaining to our uniform should be
-restored, and the status of those serving in the army should be raised.
-
-With the same object in view, we must continue to try and improve the
-material position and prospects of the corps of officers. An important
-matter, and one to which I have given much attention—so far without
-entire success—is that service on the staff, in offices and in branches
-of the War Department, should not pay better than service with the
-troops. Many of the officers now so employed in semi-civil duties can
-well be replaced by civilian officials. It is, moreover, essential that
-service in the Frontier Guards, in the Customs, police, gendarmerie,
-on the railway, and as tax-collectors, should cease to be financially
-preferable to service in the army.
-
-As senior officers get on in the service, they must not be allowed to
-forget what they have previously learnt, a thing which is now only
-too common. It is essential that they should be practised in peace
-in commanding troops, and not be mere administrators, inspectors,
-spectators, and umpires. They should therefore be in a position to
-spend most of their time with troops in the field and in cantonments.
-With our military system the command of troops is at present almost
-entirely in the hands of the regimental, brigade, divisional, corps and
-district commanders.[31] Thus our infantry and cavalry regiments used
-to be under five masters. But, in the words of the proverb, too many
-cooks spoil the broth, and in war all was not for the best in all our
-regiments. Often while the ingredients and the fire left nothing to be
-desired, the cooks did not know what to do. How can such a state of
-things be explained? It will be said that the selection of commanders
-was not always happy. That is true; but it must be remembered that
-selections had to be made from those men who were qualified according
-to the regulations and the reports drawn up by various commanding
-officers. In some cases seniority was considered to be by itself
-a qualification for promotion. Efforts of a sort were undoubtedly
-made to get the best men we had, but they were insufficient. All
-the commanders in the five degrees of our military hierarchy are so
-occupied with their daily work of routine and correspondence, while
-many are so overburdened with the administrative details of their
-appointments, that they have little time to attend to the business of
-actual war. Yet, as they get on in the service, more knowledge of war
-is required of them. The short periods of concentration in summer,
-with only a few days of instructional work on both sides, give little
-practice in command, and at other times the number of responsible
-duties connected with administration places that art on a far higher
-plane than mere soldiering. And what is most important is that the
-whole of our service—of our lives almost—is spent doing things which
-do not go to form character. Of the five posts above mentioned, only
-two—the divisional and corps commanders—are in any way independent,
-and their occupants are immersed in office work. The relative amount
-of time spent on the different sorts of duties tends to turn the
-regimental commander into an administrator rather than a fighter,
-while a brigade commander has absolutely no independence; in fact, his
-absence or presence is scarcely noticed. Finally, the same tendency
-to produce office men and bureaucrats is noticeable even in the work
-of those on the highest rungs of the ladder—the general officers in
-command of military districts. Instances might be multiplied of men
-who, though long in charge of military districts, never once commanded
-troops on manœuvres, and for several years never even got astride a
-horse. How can this impossible state of affairs be remedied, and a body
-of leaders, constantly practised in the execution of those duties in
-command of troops that would be required of them in war, be formed?
-
- I.
-
-On active service the rôle of the regimental commander is both wide
-and important. To issue successfully from the test of modern war, he
-must have character, experience, and facility in manœuvring his unit
-in the field, must know his men well, and therefore have found the
-time both for intercourse with his officers and for perfecting himself
-in his profession. In battle it is men he has to deal with, and not
-files of papers and storehouses. But, situated as he is at present, he
-is so overburdened with important administrative details that most of
-his time is passed dealing with requisitions and inventories instead
-of with flesh and blood. The penalties he incurs by neglect of his
-administrative duties are far heavier and more tangible than those
-incurred by neglecting the tactical training of his regiment. The
-greater part of these duties—those such as are connected with clothing,
-transport, and rationing—should be removed from his shoulders. He
-should be made the controller of these sections of duty, and not the
-person actually responsible. Nor is his position easy in respect
-to the _personnel_. The great shortage of officers, especially in
-those units quartered in inferior barracks, is the cause of many
-difficulties. When mobilization is ordered, some of the already too
-small number of officers are told off for the innumerable miscellaneous
-duties and detachments; commanders of battalions and of companies are
-interchanged; many of the men are transferred to other units, a mass
-of reservists join, and, if there is not time for the new arrivals to
-settle down with the few old hands, the commander has to lead into
-action a regiment which he does not know, and which does not know
-itself. Our mobilization schemes, therefore, require revision in this
-respect, and every regiment should have in peace-time a permanent
-establishment of officers and men who would accompany the regiment on
-service. The company commanders in particular should not be removed
-from their companies. But to make such an arrangement possible, it is
-essential that one of the senior captains (who might be appointed to
-the staff) should run the regimental school. It is also important to
-keep the regimental commander as a man apart as far as possible; he
-should be made to realize upon all occasions the peculiar importance of
-the duties entrusted to him, and the respect due to himself personally
-by reason of these duties.
-
-
- II.
-
-In Manchuria, just as in the wars of the second half of last century,
-the great value of the infantry brigade as an independent fighting
-unit came out strongly in all the large battles; as also did the great
-influence of its commander on the result of the fight.
-
-The advance and rear guards of army corps generally consisted of
-brigades. A brigade commander usually began the attack; a brigade
-commander usually finished it (by commanding the rearguard). And yet
-the post of Brigadier is not considered one of importance; his powers
-are insignificant, and his position does not allow him sufficient
-independence to enable him to train either himself or his unit.
-Divisional commanders and their chief staff-officers in peace-time
-often ignore the brigadiers as if they were not wanted, and were fifth
-wheels to the coach; and their absence for whole years, building
-barracks and roads, etc., is not considered to have any adverse effect
-on the successful training of the regiments under them. In such
-circumstances even the zealous ones, and those anxious to do their
-duty, become dulled, slack, and lose capacity for work. There can
-be only one way out of this unnatural state of things, which, from
-a military point of view, is most harmful: _brigade commanders must
-in peace-time be given independent command of those units which they
-will have to command independently in war_. This applies to cavalry as
-well as to infantry. Every brigade should have a small staff such as
-exists in independent brigades—namely, two adjutants, one an officer
-of the General Staff for operations, and one for administration. Each
-brigade commander should have powers in both these branches of their
-duty equal to that now delegated to divisional commanders, while their
-disciplinary powers should remain as at present.
-
-
- III.
-
-Our divisional commanders are independent and in direct touch with
-troops; but they also are overburdened with routine correspondence,
-and as they are frequently appointed to command the summer camps, it
-happens that they are more often present at the exercises of the troops
-as spectators than actually in command. In field operations where
-there are two sides, the divisional general rarely finds it possible
-to take command of one, partly owing to an exaggerated idea of his
-own abilities, and partly to the scarcity of officers of sufficient
-seniority to be umpires. Consequently, he only gets practice in
-commanding troops in the field during concentrations of large bodies
-of men. This is not enough. Commanders of infantry divisions, in
-particular, do not know nearly enough about the other arms, owing to
-the little practice they get in commanding mixed forces. So, while
-giving greater powers to brigade commanders, it will be also advisable
-to delegate to divisional generals the powers now exercised by corps
-commanders (with the exception of disciplinary powers). Divisional
-commanders should always remember that the 16,000 rifles which they
-command are a number that can decide the fate of any action. With the
-inclusion, in divisions, of artillery, sapper, and cavalry units,
-exceedingly instructive exercises can be arranged within these units
-both in summer and winter, and the troops and their commanders thereby
-trained for war under modern war conditions. The four[32] officers of
-the General Staff who would be with each division should be relieved of
-all routine, except that relating to operations, and they should devote
-the whole of their time and energies to preparing work for the brigade
-and divisional commanders in the training of the troops for battle.
-
-
- IV.
-
-Army corps commanders are quite independent, but, like the divisional
-commanders, are overburdened with routine correspondence, etc., and do
-not get sufficient practice in commanding troops in the field. Some,
-during a tour of duty of several years, have never commanded troops
-on manœuvres; and it is impossible for all of them to have sufficient
-acquaintance with cavalry, as some corps do not include this arm.
-They and their staff, especially the General Staff officers, have no
-practice at all, or else very little, in the use of technical equipment
-and the modern aids to warfare (telegraphs, telephones, mines, motors,
-balloons, etc.). The experience of the late war showed up the necessity
-of increasing the establishment of the army corps, and the actions
-of their commanders will have such an important, and in many cases
-deciding, influence, that extremely careful selection is necessary for
-these posts; the men appointed must be capable of teaching others as
-well as of learning themselves. As with the divisional generals, so
-should the powers of corps commanders be extended at the expense of
-those now exercised by officers in command of military districts.
-
-
- V.
-
-The commanders of military districts are the senior officers actually
-in charge of troops, and have at the same time important duties as
-administrative heads of districts. Here again administrative work,
-together with correspondence connected with the troops, occupies the
-greater part of their time, and only in exceptionally favourable
-circumstances (the large manœuvres with concentrations of troops from
-different districts) can they get any practice in commanding in the
-field. But as they also have to perform the duties of Governor-General,
-they are not able to devote sufficient time to the troops, even in
-inspecting them, or to improving themselves. I am absolutely convinced
-that, however much such a combination of two appointments—each of which
-requires a man of exceptional ability and character—may be desirable
-from the political point of view, it has the gravest disadvantages for
-the army. There is a limit to human power. As our governor-generals
-devote the greater part of their time and energies to civil matters,
-they entrust a large part of their military duties to the chief
-staff-officers of the districts. It can easily be understood that such
-an arrangement is not in the interests of the army. For instance, the
-most important military district—that of Warsaw—was, as far as the army
-was concerned, neglected in the time of several governor-generals.
-Indeed, at one time, much to the subversion of the authority of
-officers in command of districts and corps, the troops in this area
-were controlled by the chief of the district staff! Therefore, if
-we wish that the commanders of military districts—our most natural
-selections for the command of armies in war—should have time to prepare
-themselves for this important duty, _we should free them from civil
-duties_; otherwise we shall get no improvement. They must also be
-relieved of the numerous and responsible cares with respect to all
-those questions which in war mainly fall to the officer in command of
-the communications.
-
-The inspection of hospitals, of supply depôts, engineer and artillery
-units, of parks, of offices—everything that takes too much time
-from the exercises for the actual training of the troops and of
-themselves—should be eliminated from their duties. These have become
-so heavy with the complications of modern war, and are fraught with
-such importance to army and country, that the men who will have to
-perform them must unceasingly prepare themselves in peace; but, for
-the reasons I have already given, few officers have time to follow up
-the developments in their profession. That is why in the recent war
-we were left behind in knowledge of the employment of artillery, of
-the utility of the various technical means of intercommunication, in
-appreciating relative value of different attack formations, etc. _Our
-senior officers must be given_ _sufficient leisure, while improving
-the troops under them, at the same time to improve themselves._
-
-
- IMPROVEMENT OF THE REGULARS.
-
-I have more than once pointed out how excellent the regulars were
-as regards military qualifications, and how much more reliable in
-the first fights than the reservists, especially the older ones. But
-we must look to the nation itself for the cause of the shortcomings
-of both. The lack of education in the peasant is reflected in the
-private soldier, and the non-existence of a martial spirit amongst the
-masses, coupled to the dislike for the war, resulted in the absence
-of a military spirit in our troops in Manchuria. Their ignorance
-made the conduct of modern war, which demands a much greater spirit
-of combination and initiative from the individual than formerly,
-very difficult for us. Consequently, while behaving with the utmost
-gallantry when in close order—in mass—our men, when left to themselves
-without officers, were more inclined to retire than to advance. In
-the mass they were formidable; but very few of them were fit for
-individual action, and this is a point in which the Japanese had a
-great advantage. Their non-commissioned officers in particular were
-better educated than ours, and on many prisoners—private soldiers
-as well as non-commissioned officers—we found diaries written not
-only grammatically, but with a general knowledge of what was going on
-and of what the Japanese were trying to do. Many of them drew well.
-One prisoner—a private—drew on the sand an excellent diagram of our
-position and that of the enemy.
-
-It is never easy to turn in a short time an ignorant, illiterate
-recruit into an intelligent and keen soldier, capable of individual
-action; and the recent reduction[33] of the term of service has made
-the task still harder. The greatest difficulty, however, is to get good
-non-commissioned officers; even with the four to five year period with
-the colours we were not able to do this satisfactorily. The mass of
-our recruits are so illiterate, and so much book knowledge is required
-in the schools from our non-commissioned officers, that there is a
-natural tendency to pick the men for these posts on account of their
-education and outward sharpness. This is a mistake, as these qualities
-are often superficial. The simple recruits of the deepest and strongest
-characters are usually slow and uncouth and do not shine externally;
-consequently many of them never become selected for non-commissioned
-rank, and finish their service as private soldiers. But a surly man
-of some character often makes a better soldier than his smarter
-comrade. With the reduced term of service we can do nothing without
-a considerable number of time-expired men. The present conditions
-under which these men are kept on in the ranks are sound enough, but
-the men dislike doing time-expired, or what they characterize as
-“mercenary,” service. We must get over this dislike, and therefore
-as much as possible raise the position of sergeant-major and other
-non-commissioned officers.
-
-Another burning question, and one with which we shall be confronted
-more and more in the future, is how to keep the destructive tenets of
-the revolutionary parties out of our barracks. Drastic action will of
-course be taken, but if we do not succeed in crushing these parties
-among the people, we can hardly expect to be able to keep the army from
-infection.
-
-One of the most important requirements with our short term of service
-is that our men should not be taken away from their work for police
-duties. The part so frequently taken by the troops in putting down
-civil disorders by force of arms is particularly harmful to discipline.
-To turn to another point, owing to the inadequate funds allotted, our
-soldiers have always been treated worse than those of other armies.
-The Germans, for instance, spend twice as much per head upon the
-maintenance of their army as we do. Some improvement in this direction
-has already been made, especially in the feeding. With a serviceable
-cadre of time-expired sergeant-majors and non-commissioned officers,
-and with the living conditions of the men improved, we can face the
-future calmly even with a three-year term of service. But we shall
-only succeed if we relieve the troops of the large amount of extra
-regimental work which falls to them (tailoring, shoemaking, and other
-workshop work, care of reserve stores, etc.), and if we lighten their
-guard duties. Our recruits are free from this work and from guards only
-in the first year of service.
-
-
- IMPROVEMENT OF THE RESERVISTS.
-
-Our infantry in the recent war can be classified in four groups,
-according to the relative number of old regular soldiers and reservists:
-
-1. The East Siberian Rifle Regiments, which were maintained almost on a
-war footing[34] in peace.
-
-2. The infantry in the 1st Brigades of the 31st and 35th Divisions,
-which were filled up to war strength with regulars at the beginning of
-the war.
-
-3. The infantry of the regular army corps brought up to war strength
-with reservists.
-
-4. The infantry units formed from reserve troops.
-
-According to the opinion of competent officers who served in the war
-(which I fully share), other conditions being equal, _the more regular
-soldiers there were in a unit, the more it could be relied on in
-battle_. The best troops we had were the East Siberian Rifle Regiments,
-and after them the brigades of the 31st and 35th Divisions. In the case
-of the army corps, which proceeded to the front direct from Russia,
-sufficient care was not taken to regulate the proportion of regulars
-to reservists. Some units—the 10th Army Corps, for instance—arrived at
-the front 20 per cent. below strength in men, and more in officers.
-In the first fight in which it was engaged, several companies of this
-corps had only sixty regular soldiers—thirty trained men and thirty
-recruits—who had not _even passed their recruit’s musketry course_. All
-the remainder were reservists, among whom were a large number of 2nd
-Category men. These regular units consequently were, to all intents and
-purposes, nothing but reserve units. Finally, our reserve units arrived
-almost without any permanent peace cadres, so swallowed up were they in
-the great mass of reservists. In the early fighting these reservists,
-particularly those of the 2nd Category, were vastly inferior to the
-regulars; many of them took advantage of every opportunity to leave
-the ranks with or without permission. There is little doubt that if
-the war had been a national one, and if the country had supported its
-sons at the front instead of doing the opposite, these men would have
-done better in the first fights; but it is also quite certain that,
-other conditions being equal, the man with the colours must be better
-than the other as a soldier. He is not torn from his family at a time
-when he has begun to think that his military liability is over; he is
-better trained, and possesses _esprit de corps_. Therefore, the best
-way of improving our infantry is to maintain it with a stronger peace
-establishment than at present.
-
-In Manchuria a peace establishment of 100 men per company became
-so weak from the various causes incidental to active service that
-companies went into action with one-third regulars to two-thirds
-reservists. Nominally regular forces, they were in reality more like
-reserve troops. Regulars should be in the majority in every company,
-but the great difficulties and expense of maintaining troops on a
-strong peace footing compel us to pay special attention to the question
-of improving our reserve men. Modern war must be fought mainly with men
-temporarily called up from amongst the people.
-
-The only thing that will insure devotion to their country among
-reservists proceeding to the front is the existence of a spirit of
-patriotism in the nation. Discontent and feelings of oppression
-among the people are naturally reflected in the minds of those of
-them leaving for war. But, independent of such all-important general
-considerations, there are certain definite things that can be taken to
-improve the tone of the reservists. According to the present system,
-when a man passes from the colours into the reserve his connection with
-his own unit—in fact, with the Service generally—almost ceases. The
-practice concentrations are not carried out on a large enough scale,
-and though valuable, are often dispensed with altogether on account of
-financial considerations. So it happens that a man passing into the
-reserve takes his uniform with him, but, with rare exceptions, never
-even wears his forage-cap; this he generally gives to some neighbour or
-relation—hardly ever a soldier—to wear out. The reservist himself only
-too gladly dons peasant’s clothes or other mufti; he is glad to feel
-that he is a peasant again. He starts in business, takes up peaceful
-occupations, and raises a family. When he reaches the age of forty,
-he begins to put on flesh. And it is under these conditions that he
-is suddenly torn from the bosom of his family, and sent to fight in a
-strange, “hired”[35] land for a cause for which he feels no sympathy,
-and which he does not understand. To this are added the general
-discontent all around him, and a flood of revolutionary proclamations.
-The separation of the reservist from all touch with the army once he
-has left it does not tend to his rapid retransformation from “mujik”
-into trained soldier. In the case of Manchuria he certainly became a
-good man after some months in the school of war, but so long a period
-of grace cannot be counted on in the future.
-
-Coming here into the heart of the country as I did nine months ago, and
-staying here continuously, I have been in a position to observe our
-reservists returning from the war. When the return stream first began
-in March, April, and May, there were large numbers. Sometimes when I
-passed they would fall in—in line—and receive me after the military
-fashion. They wore fur caps, very often military great-coats, and
-looked, as they were, a fine body of young soldiers. Nine months of
-hard work in the fields soon turned them again into peasants, and now,
-when they come to me, on business or otherwise, instead of saluting,
-they take off their caps and call me “Barin.”[36]
-
-In Japan mothers counted it a dishonour if their sons were rejected as
-medically unfit to go to the front. With us how different it was! Women
-often came to thank me heartily for having “had pity” on their sons
-and husbands, because these latter happened to have been told off for
-duty with transport units or with hospitals, etc., instead of being
-sent into action,[37] and they did the same when their men returned
-safe and sound. In Japan, Germany, and other countries, some endeavour
-is made in education to inculcate patriotism into the people. A love
-of country and pride in the Fatherland is created in the children. As
-has been said before, the schools in Japan do everything they can to
-create and foster a martial spirit in the youth of the nation, and to
-practise them in military matters. There and in other countries the
-formation of various patriotic societies is approved, and all kinds of
-physical sport are encouraged. The authorities are not afraid to issue
-thousands of rifles to the people for rifle practice, etc. We do not do
-this; we are afraid for political reasons. Little is done to inculcate
-patriotism by education in our schools, and the great gulf between
-Church, rural, and Government schools makes matters worse. Students in
-the highest educational establishments have long ago abandoned study
-for politics; it has for long been the fashion to abuse everything
-Russian, and military service is thought to be dishonourable. Our
-infantry soldier is undersized and overloaded; he is usually untidy,
-often dirty, and wears an ugly and ill-fitting uniform. Is it a wonder
-that, as he slouches along, he excites more pity than pride in the man
-in the street? And yet it is on this undersized man that the integrity
-of the Empire depends. Money is tight, as we all know, but still, we
-do not keep the soldier clean and smart enough when he is serving, and
-when we pass him into the reserve we give him a dress which he can
-display with no pride to his neighbours or even his own family. Under
-such conditions, how can we hope that he will then suddenly turn into a
-martial warrior?
-
-Only by the reformation of our schools, and the introduction into the
-life of the lower classes of reforms, which, besides increasing their
-comfort, will develop in them a love for, and pride in, their country,
-and a deep sense of the necessity for some sacrifice for it, shall we
-get in the reserve a thorough soldier of the right sort. The attainment
-of such a result cannot depend entirely on any actions of the War
-Department, which must, after all, be secondary; but the things that
-can be effected by it are nevertheless important, and I will enumerate
-those which seem to be the most pressing.
-
-In an army discipline is the foundation of all efficiency; but to
-maintain discipline in an army is impossible when the mass of the
-nation have no respect for authority, and where the authorities
-actually fear those under them. The term of service with the colours
-is now so short that there is no time to overcome in the soldier
-the disorderliness of the people from whom he comes, yet to effect
-improvement in the reservist demands an iron military discipline. It
-must not be allowed for a moment that a soldier need not be afraid of
-his officer. The present greatest enemy to discipline is the employment
-of soldiers in the political struggle now going on. On the one hand,
-the force is corrupted by propaganda; on the other, men are taken
-away from military duties and detailed for almost continual police
-work, in putting down disorder not only of a military nature, such as
-mutiny, where the situation can only be saved by the assistance of
-reliable troops, but riots which should be dealt with by the police
-and the gendarmes. Officers are taken away to sit on field courts,[38]
-to judge, shoot, and hang political and other criminals. These duties
-make the populace hate the troops, and among the soldiers who suffer
-in killed and wounded it arouses a feeling of hatred not only for the
-civilians who shoot at them, but against the officers who order them
-to kill the civilians. The result is demoralizing to a degree. What
-impression can the man passing into the reserve take home with him
-if, during the two or three years of his colour service, he has been
-“maintaining order” in various ways with the aid of his rifle? The
-army can and must do all that is necessary to suppress mutinies, and
-to break down all organized opposition, but it should then return at
-once to its ordinary work. If this sort of duty becomes frequent, if
-the soldier sees that the Government is powerless to restore order
-even with the aid of troops, doubts will creep into his mind as to the
-expediency of the Government’s policy and as to his own commanders.
-According to what I hear, it seems that the heavy task which has
-recently fallen to the lot of the army is now coming to an end, and
-that order is beginning once more to be restored in our great country.
-Please God may it soon be the case, as otherwise the force must
-deteriorate instead of improving.
-
-Under ordinary conditions our work should tend to make the man passed
-into the reserve arrive in his native village or town well disciplined,
-knowing his work, taking a pride in his old corps, and respecting
-those under whom he has served. We must therefore endeavour to prevent
-him from losing touch with the Service and quickly forgetting what he
-has learned in it. In some armies to obviate this they have what is
-called the territorial system, by which reservists maintain touch
-to the end of their term with those units in which they have served.
-This system is not possible for us in its entirety, but it might be
-applied partially and adopted on a fairly large scale. One of its great
-advantages would be that reservists would on mobilization at once
-join the units in which they had previously served. They would not be
-strangers, but would be known to the cadre of time-expired, but still
-serving, non-commissioned officers and the officers, and would soon
-settle down. Men of the same district would be more inclined to hold
-together under fire, and every man would feel that if he behaved badly
-his comrade would send news of it to his home. Units territorially
-connected with the people would be more dashing than corps collected
-from anywhere. There would, of course, be many difficulties, which
-would have to be overcome before the system could be adopted. For
-instance, men taken from a certain locality would, if employed to
-suppress disorders in that place, be more likely to waver than men from
-another unit and district. Cases have been known where non-commissioned
-officers who had been strict with their men have requested, on being
-passed into the reserve, not to be sent off in the same compartment
-of a train with their late subordinates, who had threatened to “make
-things even” so soon as they both passed into the reserve together.
-With us such a settling up of old scores might easily be effected under
-a territorial system, by which both officers and soldiers would, after
-their service, come together in one district.
-
-It must be more frequently impressed on the reservists that they still
-are soldiers. Local concentrations should be organized for them so that
-they may get some training, and these should be arranged at such a time
-of the year as to interfere as little as possible with the crops. This
-would vary, of course, according to locality. Our recruiting officers
-are now mainly occupied, like everyone else, with office work; they
-should be more in touch with the reservists, who should look to them
-as their commanding officer, adviser, and protector. The relationship
-now is too purely official. An important matter also is the division of
-reservists in peace-time. In my opinion it is essential to have three
-classes. For the first two years after the man leaves the colours he
-should be considered on furlough; he should be made to wear uniform,
-and always be ready to be recalled in case of partial or general
-mobilization. The men of the last two classes should be on a different
-footing, and should be used on mobilization to fill up services in
-rear, hospitals, bakeries, parks, transport units, and to guard camps
-on the communications, etc.
-
-
- REFORMS IN THE ORGANIZATION OF THE RESERVE TROOPS.
-
-We have already seen (Chapter VI.) how, when the war began, we found
-it necessary, in the absence of any assurance arranged by diplomacy
-against other contingencies, to be ready for any military eventuality
-on our Western frontier. Consequently, too great a number of reserve
-units were included amongst the troops told off to take the field in
-the Far East. Another reason for this was that we did not really know
-the qualities of different sections of our army. Our crack troops,
-taking both officers and men together, of three Guard and three
-Grenadier divisions, six divisions in all, were left in European
-Russia, while newly formed corps composed of reserve units were sent
-into the field. I have already mentioned how my recommendation to
-mobilize the reinforcements being sent to us immediately after Easter
-was for various reasons rejected, how they were mobilized a month
-later than they should have been, and arrived in Manchuria unsettled,
-untrained, knowing scarcely anything of the new rifle, without having
-fired a course of musketry, and not having done any combined tactical
-operations with the other arms.
-
-The troops of the 6th Siberians, which certainly had been in camp for
-a short time before starting, had not been given a gun or a squadron
-to enable them to practise combined operations. Of the 4th Siberian
-Corps, which mobilized under most favourable conditions, only the
-Omsk Regiment had been trained in artillery, and this was of an old
-pattern; yet it had to go into action with quick-firing guns. Cavalry
-were hardly seen. Indeed, if we consider the haphazard selection of
-commanding officers, the lack of any community of thought amongst the
-officers generally, the almost complete absence of proper tactical
-training, the large number of 2nd Category reservists, general dislike
-of the war, and, finally, the absence of military spirit, it will be
-evident why some units of the reserve troops failed. In the first
-battles the troops of the 4th Siberian Corps won a good reputation in
-the army. The reasons for this were:
-
-1. The splendid character of the men in them. Bluff, surly fellows of
-Siberia, they were strong in body and stout of heart, and understood
-better than others the reasons for which we were fighting in the Far
-East.
-
-2. The careful selection of those in command.
-
-3. The bravery of the officers.
-
-4. The long time they had, compared with other troops, to train and
-acquire cohesion.
-
-But, after the reserve troops which came out from European Russia had
-received their baptism of fire, they also did well. It is sufficient
-to call to mind the behaviour of the regiments of the 54th and 71st
-Divisions at Mukden, as well as those of the 55th and 61st Divisions.
-But this result was not reached till late, and cost many lives. In
-a European conflict the fate of a campaign will be far more rapidly
-decided than it was in Manchuria, for the first battles fought after
-the declaration of hostilities will have a deciding influence. In the
-recent war, owing to the slow concentration possible on a single-track
-railway, the reserve troops might have been collected sooner and given
-several months to settle down, and have thus arrived at the front more
-ready for battle. In a European war they will have to be transported
-into the theatre of operations in a very short time after mobilization.
-We made a great mistake in forming the reserve troops into separate
-army corps. In my opinion, it would have been much better to have
-put them into existing corps—either as third divisions or separate
-brigades. This would have improved our corps organization, which is too
-unwieldy and too big for a strength of only twenty-four battalions.
-With strong corps consisting of efficient self-contained brigades the
-confusion of units in battle would be minimized.
-
-Before the war no army corps organization had been worked out for
-the reserve troops; everything had been arranged for a divisional
-organization. In my opinion, neither corps nor divisions are
-necessary. It would be more advantageous to form the reserve units
-into independent brigades of eight battalions, and to use them as army
-troops, or possibly as corps troops. The mobilization of the reserve
-artillery, sapper, and cavalry, should take place together with that of
-the infantry. Every reserve brigade of eight battalions (8,000 rifles)
-should have, with two batteries of twelve guns, one company of sappers
-and one reserve squadron of cavalry or a _sotnia_ of Cossacks. This
-arrangement would permit of reserve troops being employed on secondary
-objects without the organization of the army being broken up, and it
-would no longer be necessary to find so many divisional and corps
-commanders, with their numerous staffs.
-
-
- STEPS TO AUGMENT THE COMBATANT ELEMENT IN OUR INFANTRY.
-
-Amongst the causes of our disasters has been mentioned (Chapter
-VI.) the small number of rifles per company we had in action as
-compared with the Japanese. We often had more battalions than they,
-but fewer men. The various reasons for this I have already enumerated.
-To lessen the number of subsidiary duties which take men away from
-the fighting-line of the regular army, we must create cadres for the
-troops of the rear services; we must also arrange that the casualties
-are quickly made good from the reserve troops, which should be kept
-up permanently and closely connected with the regular troops. (Every
-regular regiment should have one reserve or depôt battalion.) To
-augment the numbers fighting compared with the numbers fed, and, in
-particular, to increase the number of men in the firing-line, we must
-bring up the combatant establishment of our companies from 220 to 250
-rifles. With 220 rifles on the roll of a company, we were never able
-to put even 200 in action; and in bringing the strength of these units
-up to 250, we must take steps to see that they all really can take the
-field. According to the “War Establishments,” a line infantry regiment
-has an establishment of 3,838 combatants and 159[39] non-combatants
-(total 3,997), which gives 235 rifles per company. But in this
-number are included 35 bandsmen, 33 drummers, 1 bugler, 3 regimental
-quartermaster-sergeants, 1 sergeant-major of the non-combatant company,
-5 baggage non-commissioned officers, and, moreover, another 240 (15
-per company) detailed for supply work, etc. Excluding these, 3,520
-combatants are left, which gives 220 per company; but experience has
-shown that there is much leakage from this number.
-
-The peculiarities of Manchuria necessitated the employment of men on
-duties that would have been quite unnecessary, or less necessary, in
-a European war. Thus, in addition to the authorized transport, we had
-pack transport, which swallowed up fifty men per regiment. The large
-herds of cattle with regiments required twenty-four men to look after
-and guard them. There were nine regimental butchers. Two or three
-donkeys were told off to each company. (Indeed, they were of such
-great use in taking water and ammunition up into the firing-line that
-I consider they should be included in the establishments of troops
-in European Russia.) In each company one man was told off to these
-animals. The number of officers on the regimental rolls included those
-who had been wounded and were away convalescent, and many of these took
-their orderlies with them on leaving the front. The expenditure in
-these orderlies alone amounted to more than 100 men. For the special
-pack transport which was formed for the scout sections for carriage
-of ammunition and supplies, thirteen men per regiment were required.
-Judging by the experience of the war, I consider the following
-duties ought to be allowed for in every regiment in addition to the
-establishment of 159 non-combatants:
-
- Company clerks 16
- Mess caterers 18
- Officers’ mess cooks 4
- Men’s cooks 18[40]
- Butchers and cattle guard 12
- Officers’ grooms 27
- Transport drivers with scout sections 13
- Instructors 4
- Stretcher-bearers 128
- Baggage guard 48[41]
- With water donkeys 16
- Officers’ orderlies 80
- Sergeant-major of non-combatant company 1
- Transport driver non-commissioned officers 5
- Despatch riders 20
- Bandsmen 35
- Drummers 33
- Reserve in case of sickness and wounded 13
- ―――
- Total 491
-
-All these must be classed as non-combatants. Adding to these the
-prescribed establishment of 159 non-combatants, we shall get a total of
-650 with each regiment of four battalions. They should all be armed,
-and be ready to fight either in the advanced lines or with the baggage.
-
-The value of machine-guns is now so great that we cannot afford to be
-without them. In my opinion, each company should have one gun, and six
-men should be detailed to carry it and its ammunition. Thus, there
-would be 100 men with the machine-guns in a regiment (including four
-reserve men). The scout sections also did such useful service in the
-recent war that we ought certainly to have dismounted and small mounted
-scout sections in each regiment. This would take up 200 more men.
-Finally, the strength of every company, exclusive of all these extras,
-should be fixed at 250 rifles, which would make 4,000 in the regiment.
-The strength of a regiment would, therefore, total as follows:
-
- Combatants (in sixteen companies) 4,000
- Scout sections 200
- Machine-gun sections 150
- Non-combatants 650
- ―――――
- Total 5,000
-
-The present establishment of a four-battalion regiment is 3,838
-combatants and 159 non-combatants; total, 3,997. Therefore a total
-increase of 1,003 per regiment is desirable. Including fifteen men in
-every company for supply duties, the authorized non-combatant element
-works out at:
-
- Non-combatants 159
- Bandsmen, drummers, buglers 69
- Regimental quartermaster-sergeants 3
- Sergeant-majors and baggage non-commissioned officers 6
- For supply duties 240
- ―――
- Total 477
-
-Fixing the total number of non-combatants required at 650, I thus add
-to the expenditure authorized by existing establishments 173. These,
-including stretcher-bearers, would never go into action. Thus, the
-addition necessary to bring the fighting element of a regiment up to
-5,000 comes out as follows:
-
- Increase of thirty rifles per company (so
- as to have 250 instead of 220) 480
- Scout sections 200
- Machine-gun sections 150
- ―――
- Total 830
-
-This increase would greatly add to its present strength.
-
-
- MACHINE-GUNS.
-
-At the beginning of the war the army had only a small number of
-machine-guns. Recognizing the value of this weapon, the Japanese
-quickly introduced it, and furnished their field troops with a large
-number. We did the same, and several machine-gun companies and sections
-arrived from Russia during the summer of 1905. But the type of weapon
-did not satisfy tactical requirements—(1) as regards its weight; and,
-(2) adaptability to the ground. A pattern must be invented that can be
-carried even into the outpost line. Our high, unwieldy weapons, with
-their shields, more resembled light field-guns; and their unsuitable
-construction, combined with the difficulty of adapting them to the
-ground, was responsible for the decision that these guns should be
-organized into batteries, and be treated and used as artillery. Such an
-opinion is absolutely wrong, for the great volume of fire which they
-can deliver calls for their distribution at the most important points
-along the firing-line, and, therefore, a capability of advancing with
-assaulting columns. The organization of machine-gun companies did not
-meet the above tactical requirements. Each battalion should have four
-guns.
-
-
- RESERVE (OR DEPÔT) TROOPS.
-
-The reserve or depôt troops should be developed and given an
-organization which will permit of the wastage in units, both in
-officers and men, being made good from them immediately after a battle
-or during a long series of battles. Each infantry regiment should have
-its reserve (depôt) battalion, which should be formed on mobilization
-at a strength of 40 per cent. of the combatant establishment of a
-regiment—_i.e._, at 1,600 men.[42] Of these, 400, or 10 per cent. of
-the regiment’s strength, should be in the theatre of war. This number
-should be formed into one company, and should constitute the reserve
-depôt company of its particular regiment, and be continually feeding
-it. With every division these companies should be organized together
-into a reserve battalion of 1,600 men for the immediate replacement of
-casualties in the regiments of the division. All wounded and sick who
-are not sent to the base should be attached to this battalion till they
-are passed as fit. After great battles this reserve would be depleted,
-and would require filling up from the base depôt. The establishment of
-the other arms should be kept up to strength by a parallel arrangement.
-The casualties amongst non-combatants are less, but in their case a
-reserve is necessary, distinct from the combatant reserve, to make good
-their wastage. It should be mainly composed of 2nd Category reservists
-and those of the convalescent combatants not considered fit enough for
-the ranks.
-
-The war shows very clearly the immense importance of rapidly repairing
-the wastage in units directly after an action. The Japanese succeeded
-in doing this, with the result that they were greatly superior to
-us in numbers. It was more important for us to be able to replace
-casualties by drafts than to receive reinforcements, and it would have
-made us stronger. For instance, with five troop trains available in the
-twenty-four hours, a complete army corps with its baggage and parks
-took twenty days to reach the front, and increased our strength by some
-25,000 rifles. If drafts had been sent up during those twenty-days
-instead of an army corps, we should have received 90,000 to 100,000
-men. In place of cavalry, baggage, artillery, parks, and a small number
-of infantry, we should have got a large number of the latter. It was
-infantry we wanted, for in our big battles it was the infantry that
-suffered so heavily. The number of guns per 1,000 rifles was too large,
-and the amount of transport and baggage was prodigious, with the result
-that the 10,000 to 12,000 rifles left in corps resembled an escort to
-the artillery, parks, baggage, etc.,[43] more than anything else.
-
- TROOPS IN REAR—COMMUNICATION TROOPS.
-
-By troops in rear I mean those at rest camps, railway troops, road
-working parties, telegraph sections, motor troops, transport of various
-kinds, all of which should be under the general officer commanding
-communications. There is also a large number of men in the departments,
-institutions, and depôts of all the field administrations, but as in
-Manchuria these were mostly fixed by the authorized establishment,
-I will not refer to them. The absence of any prepared organization
-of troops for the line of communication, however, led to their being
-formed at the expense of the fighting strength of the infantry. While
-officers commanding regiments complained of the great wastage of their
-men on duties in the rear, those in rear complained that the numbers
-they had were insufficient. Troops for the duties in rear should of
-course be formed on mobilization. In the part of my report upon the 1st
-Army which deals with the organization of the communications there is
-much valuable material which is based on war experience, and may be a
-useful guide for the future. By the end of August, 1905, the strength
-of the 1st Army alone was 300,000. Its own communications in rear
-had a depth of 150 miles and a frontage of 330 miles, including the
-detachments guarding the extreme left flank and the left flank corps
-under General Rennenkampf, with which we permanently occupied a front
-of about 70 miles. Under the general commanding the communications of
-the 1st Army, which consisted of six army corps, were 650 officers
-and officials, 12,000 men, and 25,000 horses, and this number was
-considered inadequate. In my report, I gave as my estimate for the
-numbers required for one army corps per day’s march in length of
-communications—
-
- Men.
- 1. Half company infantry 120
- 2. Transport 320
- 3. Road troops 25
- 4. Postal telegraph working parties 5
- ―――
- Total 470
-
-
- ENGINEER TROOPS.
-
-The great development of science in warfare is very marked, but the
-late war did not display the employment of scientific forces that will
-be made in a struggle between two European Powers. In this respect
-the Japanese were much better served than we were, but even they were
-not technically equipped in the way that will soon be necessary. The
-speedy construction of strong fortifications, the laying of railways
-(especially of field railways) and construction of metalled roads,
-the organization of aerial and wireless telegraphy, of signalling by
-heliograph, lamps, and flags, the employment of balloons, motors, and
-bicycles, are all duties for which the demand increases every day,
-while the great quantity also of artificial obstacles, wire, mines,
-hand-grenades, explosives, reserves of entrenching tools, etc., now
-required must exist ready for use in large quantities. A much larger
-number of engineer troops, including sappers, telegraph and railway
-units, than we had available in Manchuria is necessary, in order
-that all this technical equipment may be used to the best advantage.
-Without touching here upon the railway troops necessary for the proper
-service of the communications, the number of which must depend upon the
-length of the existing lines, and of those proposed to be laid during
-operations, let us consider the question of the number of sapper and
-telegraph troops required for one army corps of three divisions.
-
-The spade, which had been forgotten since the Turkish War, has once
-more regained its true position. With the volume and murderous
-effectiveness of modern fire, neither the attack nor the defence can be
-conducted without enormous losses, unless proper and intelligent use is
-made of digging. For a protracted defence strong fortified positions
-with both open and closed works and all possible kinds of artificial
-obstacles are absolutely necessary. Consequently, for the attack of
-such positions, special troops are required trained in the use of
-explosives and the destruction of obstacles, and in road-making, for
-heavy artillery demands good roads and strong bridges.
-
-While every Japanese division of twelve infantry battalions had one
-strong sapper battalion, we had on an average only one company of
-sappers with each division. This proved to be too small a proportion.
-Our sappers worked nobly in the construction of earthworks and roads,
-but they did little in actual contact with the enemy, and, strange as
-it may appear, were often forgotten when an action began, even when we
-attacked the enemy’s strongly fortified positions. In the 2nd Army we
-had several sapper battalions, and yet in the assault on San-de-pu[44]
-not a single company was told off to accompany the storming columns.
-As our sappers were so scarce, we took the greatest care of them, as
-their small number of casualties as compared with those of the infantry
-proves. To get the best results from this arm, it seems to me necessary
-to associate them more with other troops, and therefore _to attach
-them to divisions_, instead of including them in the corps troops. If
-we succeed in getting strong regiments of 4,000 rifles, I consider
-it essential that every regiment should have attached to it, for
-offensive as well as defensive operations, one sapper company of 250
-men, which would mean a four-company sapper battalion, 1,000 strong,
-for every division. They should be trained to put up obstacles very
-rapidly, and should possess the necessary tools and equipment for their
-destruction. A large supply of wire is also very important; it may be
-taken that every division should have a sufficient supply of wire for
-two defensive points, say 1 ton for each.
-
-Moreover, there should be attached to each division a field-telegraph
-company of six sections, in order to organize rapid communication
-between each party of troops thrown out in front and the divisional
-staff. Each regiment should have with it a section which should be
-equipped to establish communication by telephone,[45] flag, cycle
-or motor. With every three-division army corps there should be a
-sapper brigade of three battalions, a field-telegraph battalion of
-five companies, a mining company, a balloon section, and a railway
-battalion. Two of the telegraph companies should keep up communication
-from the corps to army headquarters, to other corps, to its own
-divisions, to the parks, the baggage, and reserves.
-
-One of our principal failings, as I have repeatedly mentioned, was
-lack of information. Owing to this, and the consequent loss of touch,
-commanders could not conduct operations intelligently or keep corps
-and army commanders and the Commander-in-Chief informed of what was
-happening. Every Japanese regiment laid down telephones as it advanced;
-we used to find their dead operators in our _trous de loup_, which
-showed that they were right up with the firing-line. With us touch
-was not infrequently lost even between whole corps and armies! The
-necessity for remedying this grave defect is obvious, and we must
-practise how to do this in peace. Not a regiment should be allowed to
-advance at manœuvres without at once being connected up by telephone
-with its brigade commander and the divisional staff, and it is
-essential that, as the information comes in by telegraph and telephone,
-the divisional corps and army staffs should at once fix on the maps
-the positions of both forces. Formerly commanders could watch the
-whole battlefield through a telescope from an eminence, could see their
-own troops, and could trace the position of the hostile infantry and
-artillery from the smoke. Now there is nothing to be seen. Often the
-troops are out of sight, and all that meets the eye are the puffs of
-smoke from the bursting shrapnel. Therefore orders and dispositions
-have to be worked out on the map, and we must learn how to keep these
-maps constantly up to time. In order that all intelligence may be at
-once noted, a “service of communication,” by means of motors, cyclists,
-and particularly of telegraph and telephone, might be organized, in
-addition to the ordinary reports brought in by mounted men. To attain
-these important results, considerable expense must be incurred in the
-creation of this “service of communication” or “service of information”
-of such a nature as to meet in every way the requirements of battle, of
-movement, and of rest.
-
-An adequate number of sapper units with regiments will not only help us
-in the capture of fortified positions strengthened by obstacles, but
-will assist us rapidly to adapt them for defence when taken. The work
-of the mining company in future wars will be great both in attack and
-defence, especially in defence. It should have charge of all explosives
-required for demolitions, including mines, pyroxyline bombs, and
-hand-grenades. The great effect of the bombs thrown by revolutionaries
-and anarchists points to their extensive use in war in the future. If
-fanatics can be found who will rush to certain death in order to kill
-peaceful citizens, it should certainly be possible to find devoted
-soldiers who will advance ahead of the firing-line and throw bombs into
-the enemy’s obstacles.
-
-Besides supply of field railway material for the army, each corps
-should have enough for thirty miles of line (steam or horse draught,
-according to circumstances).
-
-
- ARTILLERY.
-
-We have learnt by experience that skill in the employment of guns is
-more important than their number. Under modern battle conditions, when
-the position of a battery cannot be seen, a great deal of ammunition
-is fired during the artillery duel without any result. Two to four
-well-concealed guns cleverly moved from one position to another can
-hold their own with a brigade of artillery, and, if they can only
-range on the enemy’s guns first, rapid fire gives them the power of
-inflicting heavy loss. Our keenest and most experienced gunners got
-on to the enemy on many occasions with great effect, but as a rule
-our artillery did little damage. One occasion when very ineffective
-results were obtained by us was at Hei-kou-tai, where, in our
-endeavour to get possession of San-de-pu, we fired 70,000 rounds into
-every square,[46] except the one which actually contained the village.
-Our immense expenditure of ammunition also emphasized how carefully
-the question of the right proportion of guns in a force must be
-considered. In this war, owing to the great delay in sending up drafts
-to repair wastage, we were often actually handicapped by having too
-many guns! We frequently had to fight with divisions containing only
-some 6,000 to 8,000 men in the four regiments and the full forty-eight
-guns—a proportion of six to eight guns per 1,000 rifles, which is far
-too many. And our guns were literally an embarrassment, especially
-when they had run out of ammunition. Even assuming that we shall be
-able (as I have suggested) to place in the field regiments with a
-strength of 4,000 rifles, I consider it will be quite sufficient if we
-maintain the proportion of guns at forty-eight per division, or three
-guns per 1,000 rifles. The fire from quick-firing guns is nowadays
-quite powerful and effective enough for four guns to be considered a
-tactically independent fighting unit; but the formation of batteries
-of such a size is expensive, and requires too many men. It appears
-to be preferable, therefore, to abandon the artillery divisional
-organization, and return to the former twelve-gun battery, dividing
-it into three companies, each of which would be in a tactical sense
-independent. The 48 guns—_i.e._, four batteries—with an infantry
-division, would then be organized into an artillery regiment under the
-command of the divisional general. Each company would be commanded by a
-captain, the battery by a lieutenant-colonel, the regiment by a colonel.
-
-We found that for mutual and smooth co-operation in battle it is most
-important that batteries should operate as far as possible with the
-same regiments of infantry. Close touch is established, and each arm
-unselfishly supports the other. I often heard the expression, “our
-battery,” “our regiment,” and in these simple words a deep, underlying
-sentiment was expressed. Each battery should be capable of acting
-independently of the artillery regiment to which it belongs. For hill
-warfare mountain artillery should be allotted to infantry in the same
-proportion as I have suggested for field artillery.
-
-Our gun proved an excellent weapon; but our shrapnel, which was very
-effective against objects and troops in the open, was of no use against
-invisible targets, earthworks, and mud walls. Our artillery fire
-against villages held by the enemy, therefore, produced very little
-result. I consider that a new pattern of shell should be introduced
-with thicker walls and a heavier bursting charge; but even then the
-effect of such light projectiles as our field-guns fire will not be
-great against the earthworks which are nowadays so quickly thrown up on
-positions. To prepare the way for the assault on such fortifications,
-and to obtain any speedy result in attacking defended localities, we
-must have field howitzers of a modern type. They should be organized
-in regiments of two batteries (twenty-four howitzers), and attached to
-a corps as corps artillery. Finally, it is essential that every army
-should have a light siege-train to assist in the capture of strongly
-defended posts and heavy works.
-
-The organization of park units was well conceived, but the vehicles
-were unsuited to the Manchurian roads. I am afraid to express an
-opinion in favour of a further increase of mobile parks, because we
-were so overburdened with baggage of different kinds. I think it is
-preferable to improvise local parks at railway-stations and junctions,
-as we did in Manchuria.
-
-Small-arm ammunition rarely ran short, but there was often a great lack
-of gun ammunition, and after the battles of Liao-yang, the Sha Ho,
-and Mukden, our reserves for filling up battery and park stocks were
-exhausted. The average expenditure of rifle ammunition worked out as
-follows: For a whole-day battle for one battalion, 21,000 rounds, with
-a maximum of 400,000; an hour’s fighting for one battalion, 1,700,
-with a maximum of 67,000. The total reserve taken with a four-battalion
-infantry regiment was 800,000. The average expenditure per quick-firing
-field-gun in a one-day battle worked out at 55 rounds, with a maximum
-of 522; an hour’s fighting, 10 rounds, with a maximum of 210.
-
-In the earlier fights the work of the artillery varied a good deal, and
-was not very successful; but as they gained experience, many batteries
-fought splendidly, not only against guns, but against rifle-fire.
-Compared with the work of our artillery in 1877–78 (in the European
-theatre of operations), we have made considerable progress in skill,
-and the very heavy losses in killed and wounded in many batteries prove
-that our gunners know how to die. The horse artillery work depended
-entirely on the commanders of the cavalry units to which the batteries
-were attached, and when these commanders really meant fighting the
-batteries did good work. As a proof of this, it is enough to recall
-the gallant conduct of the 1st Trans-Baikal Cossack Horse Artillery
-Battery attached to Mischenko’s Trans-Baikal Cossack Brigade. This
-battery and its young commander were known to the whole army; more
-than once it successfully fought several of the enemy’s batteries,
-and yet its losses were insignificant. Sometimes our cavalry leaders
-were unnecessarily anxious to retire, as was the case in the cavalry
-of the 2nd Army at the battle of Mukden, when the two batteries which
-were with it lost _only two men wounded and one missing in eleven
-days’ fighting_. One six-gun battery was sufficient for four mounted
-regiments of such strength as we had. As said above, there should be
-one artillery regiment of four batteries (48 guns) with each infantry
-division, or a total of 144 guns for the three divisions. These three
-regiments would be organized in a brigade. There should also be one
-regiment of 24 howitzers with each corps.
-
-
- CAVALRY.
-
-Though our cavalry was numerous, its work hardly came up to our
-expectations, but where it was properly commanded it did well enough.
-In my opinion, the main reform that is necessary in the cavalry is to
-improve their training. Till it is educated to feel that it should
-fight as _obstinately as infantry_, the money expended on our mounted
-Arm will be thrown away. If infantry can still continue fighting after
-losing 50 per cent. of their strength, cavalry should be able to do
-the same. In action we nursed the cavalry too much; out of action we
-did not take sufficient care of it. Though they had not lost a man,
-whole regiments were moved to the rear as soon as the first shrapnel
-began bursting near them. The four regiments of cavalry—two dragoon
-and two Cossack—on whom fell the most difficult but the most honourable
-duty of obtaining information and opposing the leading units of Nogi’s
-enveloping forces at the battle of Mukden, lost in killed and wounded:
-
- Men.
- February 25 2
- March 2 1
- March 4 1
- March 5 7
- March 6 2
- March 7 6
- March 8 1
- March 9 1
- March 10 1
- ――
- Total 22
-
-Which works out at less than one man per squadron and _sotnia_. The
-casualties in almost every company of infantry were more than in these
-twenty-four squadrons and _sotnias_. It is quite plain that these units
-did not fight, but merely avoided the enemy; and it is equally plain
-that, by avoiding battle, the cavalry neither checked the enemy’s
-movement nor got any information about him. The material of which our
-cavalry was composed was excellent, but everything depended on those in
-command. In the battle of Te-li-ssu the infantry of the 1st Siberian
-Corps lost 2,500 men; the Primorsk Dragoon Regiment, belonging to the
-same corps, lost one!
-
-But I repeat that where their leaders meant fighting the cavalry did
-their duty and suffered heavily. Take, for example, the Trans-Baikal
-Cossacks, which did so well under Mischenko, and the Caucasian Brigade.
-The Siberian Cossacks, under Samsonoff, fought at Liao-yang and the
-Yen-tai Mines with greater bravery than was displayed by some of
-Orloff’s infantry, while the independent _sotnias_ of the Don and
-Orenburg Voiskos, and the dragoons under Stakhovitch, were no whit
-behind them. Indeed, the men of the Primorsk Dragoon Regiment were good
-enough; it was the officers who failed in not getting the best out
-of them. The independent units of all the Cossacks did well, but it
-was out of the question to expect martial ardour or a keen desire to
-perform feats of gallantry in old men such as formed the 3rd Category
-Cossack regiments. But even these 3rd Category regiments could do good
-work when skilfully handled. The Cossack horses generally, and the
-Trans-Baikal horses in particular, were too small; while those of the
-Don regiments were sturdy, but rather soft. The Trans-Baikal Cossacks
-on their shaggy little ponies reminded one more of mounted infantry
-than cavalry. On the whole, however, our cavalry worked far better
-than in the Russo-Turkish War under Generals Kuiloff and Loshkareff at
-Plevna. The great difficulty now is to find and train cavalry leaders;
-in Manchuria, according to most accounts, the juniors were good, the
-field officers moderate, and the general officers, with few exceptions,
-bad.
-
-The personality of the officer in command of a regiment of cavalry is a
-very important factor, as his merits and weak points are very quickly
-known, and as soon as a man in such a post shows himself unsuitable he
-should be removed. (This also applies to the general officers.) But I
-rarely found a divisional or corps commander who would report on the
-unsuitability of senior commanders under them; they even concealed
-cases of cowardice. It was only at the conclusion of hostilities that
-it transpired that several had not only shown a lack of keenness, but
-even of personal courage. Some of the regimental commanders were very
-old; at fifty-five a man is too old for the command of a regiment. As
-in the infantry, the post of cavalry brigadier should be improved, and
-made a more important appointment. To it should be given the executive
-and administrative powers now wielded by divisional generals.
-
-Three brigades should be formed into a division, the divisional
-general being given the powers of an army corps commander. There is no
-necessity for a higher organization. To the division of three brigades
-should be allotted a twelve-gun battery of horse artillery (three
-companies of four guns each). To every three-division army corps
-should be added one cavalry or Cossack brigade. One of the regiments
-of this brigade should act as divisional cavalry, two squadrons
-or _sotnias_ with each division. If it is thought desirable that
-commanders of infantry divisions become acquainted with cavalry in
-peace-time, then two squadrons should be stationed in the area of the
-divisions under them.
-
-
- INFANTRY.
-
-As in former wars, so in Manchuria was the heat and burden of the day
-borne by our infantry, and there is no doubt that, in the future,
-infantry will retain its name as the principal Arm. The importance
-of other Arms depends entirely on the extent to which they assist
-infantry to defeat the enemy, for the latter is the final arbiter of
-victory or defeat. But infantry cannot work alone, and nowadays, if
-it is not assisted in action by artillery, cavalry, and sappers, if
-every resource of modern science is not brought into play to lighten
-its heavy task, it will either fail or will buy victory at too high a
-price. It is to infantry, as the principal Arm, that we must pay our
-chief attention. _And yet with us service in the Line is not considered
-so honourable as service in the other branches!_ From the moment of
-the selection of its recruits we do everything to weaken it. Even
-the pattern of uniform worn by our Line infantryman is particularly
-ugly. In his old-fashioned, badly fitting tunic, overburdened with
-haversacks and equipment of all sorts, he is anything but a martial
-sight. This is an aspect of the case which cannot be ignored, and it
-is almost as important that a man’s uniform should be comfortable and
-attractive as that it should meet all the purely military requirements.
-All ranks should be enabled to admire their own dress and be proud of
-it. Up to the present, the majority of Line officers have not been
-given a good enough general or military education. Officers of all arms
-should receive a general education not lower than the intermediate
-standard of the national educational establishments, and a military
-education not lower than that of the military schools. We should teach
-the line officer to have a love and respect for the Arm in which he
-serves, as well as a knowledge of its particular rôle in battle,
-and must therefore raise his social position so that he may be a
-welcome guest in any society. We must provide him with a comfortable,
-inexpensive, and smart uniform. We must protect him from being abused
-by his seniors in the presence of his juniors, and in every possible
-manner encourage the development in him of an independent spirit.
-Bravery alone is not sufficient nowadays to attain victory; knowledge,
-initiative, and willingness to accept responsibility are also required.
-Infantry have always had a hard part in action, and have always
-suffered great loss, but the modern battle which lasts for days makes
-greater demands upon their mental and physical endurance than ever
-before. With a large proportion of reservists and short-service men,
-we cannot rely on perfection in the soldier; it is therefore all the
-more necessary that we should take steps to obtain it in our officers,
-and for this purpose we are lucky in having excellent and responsive
-material. Under all the arduous conditions under which the majority of
-our regiments had to fight, the greatest trials fell to the infantry
-officer, and right well he did his duty. It is quite enough to compare
-the casualties amongst those officers with those of their brothers
-in the cavalry, artillery, and sappers to see on whom fell the chief
-hardships and dangers. In some regiments the whole set of officers was
-changed several times. The following figures serve as an illustration
-of how they suffered:
-
- Killed and
- Wounded.
- The 3rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost 102
- The 34th East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost 89
- The 36th East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost 73
- The 1st East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost 71
- The 4th East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost 61
- The 23rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost 50
-
-It is impossible to recall the gallant war services of these and of the
-officers of many other regiments without profound respect and emotion.
-
-It must always be borne in mind that the infantry of the Line is the
-backbone of our Service in peace as well as in war. Consequently, we
-should make much more of those who serve in it than we do, and give
-them a better chance. At present the list of regimental commanding
-officers includes far too many Guardsmen or officers of the General
-Staff. I am convinced that if the importance of service in the Line is
-to be maintained, we must put an end to the present unfair acceleration
-of promotion amongst Guards and General Staff officers as compared with
-that of their brothers. The latter produce a great many men capable
-of being good regimental commanders; all that is wanted is to know
-how to select them. Since the last Turkish War they have undoubtedly
-made considerable progress, and it is for us to arrange that this
-improvement is continued by fostering it in every way.
-
-Owing to casualties, the company commanders were changed too often
-for efficiency, but they generally performed good service, lack of
-initiative being, as usual, their chief fault. It is most important
-for the good of the Service that captains (of all arms) displaying
-distinguished military qualifications should be quickly promoted to
-field rank. Yet recommendations sent to St. Petersburg were not acted
-on for a very long time, if ever. In such a matter some discretion
-should be allowed the Commander-in-Chief, and he should be empowered
-to promote junior officers to the rank of Lieutenant-Colonel for
-distinguished service in the field. Special men would thus arrive
-at the command of independent units and regiments, posts where the
-personality of the man in command is so important. It often happened
-that a regiment which had done badly absolutely changed its character
-with a change of commanding officers. Seniority should not be the
-only guide for promotion, and the establishment of field-officers
-in Manchuria constituted a quite adequate number from which good
-regimental commanders could have been liberally selected. During the
-period when we were occupying the Hsi-ping-kai positions, many of
-the regimental commanders in all the armies were good men, and the
-1st Army was particularly lucky in this respect. Though many of the
-infantry brigadiers who came out to the war proved failures, amongst
-the regimental commanders were many capable field-officers, whose
-advancement to the rank of General gave us some first-class brigade
-commanders. In the 1st Army alone were Major-Generals Lechitski,
-Stelnitski, Dushkevitch, Lesha, Riedko, Dobotin, etc. Thus, even under
-the unfavourable conditions under which they served, we found enough
-good material amongst our infantry officers to give us some confidence
-for the future. Had the war been continued, many of the colonels
-promoted to generals for distinguished service would have commanded
-divisions. This is as it should be, for it ought to be possible for a
-regimental commander to rise within a year to the command even of an
-army corps, if he be sufficiently brilliant.
-
-I repeat that the tasks which fall upon infantry in battle nowadays are
-of such exceptional difficulty that the promotion of its officers for
-distinguished field service should be made exceptionally rapid. I am
-aware that even a good regimental commander may make a bad divisional
-general; but I also maintain that a regimental commander who has
-successfully commanded in several fights, has shown a knowledge of
-his work, keenness, enterprise, and personal bravery, and has won the
-confidence of his men, should be promoted as quickly as possible. He
-may find it difficult at first to get his bearings under the new and
-more complicated conditions of a high command, where he has to rely
-upon maps and the reports of others instead of upon the direct evidence
-of his own eyes and ears, but still he will grapple with the situation,
-even of an army corps commander, far better than some general whose
-experience has been confined to office-work and peace manœuvres.
-
-Finally, in order to give due importance to the principal Arm—infantry
-(infantry of the Line in particular)—I consider the following measures
-necessary:
-
-1. To give a better education to the officers entering it.
-
-2. To improve their material and social position.
-
-3. To provide officers and men with a smarter uniform.
-
-4. To accelerate their promotion and put an end to the system by which
-Guardsmen and officers of the General Staff get more rapid advancement,
-and so block the way of their unfortunate brothers to regimental and
-divisional commands.
-
-5. To facilitate as much as possible the special promotion in war of
-distinguished company officers to field rank.
-
-6. To award regimental commanders who display particular merit on
-service rapid advancement to the rank of General, without regard to
-their seniority or the speed of their promotion.
-
-The two last of these recommendations also obviously apply to officers
-of the other Arms.
-
-
- ORGANIZATION.
-
-In my opinion, our experiences in the recent war have shown the
-necessity for such an organization in our army as I will now describe:
-
-_Infantry Regiment_: To consist of 4 battalions, each of 4 companies.
-Each company to have a strength of 250 combatants. In addition to the
-16 combatant companies per regiment, there should be scout sections
-(mounted and dismounted), and machine-gun sections with 16 portable
-guns. Strength of regiment, 5,000 men.
-
-_Cavalry and Cossack Regiments_: As at present.
-
-_Infantry Brigade_: 2 regiments, 8 battalions.
-
-_Cavalry Brigade_: 2 regiments, 12 squadrons or _sotnias_.
-
-All brigades should be capable of acting independently.
-
-_Infantry Division_: To consist of 2 infantry brigades, 1 regiment of
-artillery,[47] 1 sapper battalion, 1 telegraph company, 2 squadrons or
-_sotnias_ of cavalry, transport company, parks, bakeries, hospitals.
-Total, 17 battalions, 48 guns, and 2 squadrons or _sotnias_.
-
-_Cavalry Division_: To consist of 3 separate brigades, 1 horse
-artillery battery. Total, 36 squadrons or _sotnias_, and 12 guns.
-
-_Army Corps_: To consist of 3 infantry divisions, 1 artillery brigade,
-including a regiment of howitzers, 1 cavalry brigade,[48] 1 sapper
-brigade,[49] 1 transport battalion, 1 battalion for camps on the line
-of communication. Total, 48 battalions, 169 guns, 12 squadrons or
-_sotnias_, and 3 sapper battalions.
-
-_Reserve Troops_: To be formed into independent brigades, to which
-the reserve units of artillery, cavalry, and sappers should be
-attached. Each brigade to consist of 8 battalions, 2 batteries (24
-guns), 1 squadron or _sotnia_, 2 sapper companies, half a company of
-telegraphists, transport, hospitals, and bakeries. These brigades,
-being organized on an independent footing, would be attached to the
-armies; they would be detailed either as part of the army reserve or
-for independent work in guarding the flanks and rear, or be joined to
-corps, according to circumstances.
-
-This, I think, will give great independence to all units, and the
-creation of independent reserve brigades, outside of the divisional
-and corps organization, would often prevent the breaking up of this
-organization when a battle was in progress. To organize reserve field
-troops beforehand in field formations, such as divisions of three
-brigades, or corps, is not a convenient or suitable arrangement, as
-they will not be ready to take part in the fighting as soon as the
-regulars.
-
- * * * * * *
-
-Amongst steps which will raise the status of regimental service, and
-so attract the best men to it, I consider it necessary, in addition
-to providing an attractive uniform, to establish ranks distinct from
-those borne by officers on the staff, in administrative offices, and
-in departments. According to the scale of our military hierarchy, the
-various commands (exclusive of the Cossack troops) carry ranks as
-follows:
-
-Sub-Lieutenant, Cornet, Lieutenant, and Staff-Captain in the different
-Arms are the ranks given to the junior officers in companies,
-squadrons, and batteries.
-
-A Captain commands a company or a squadron.
-
-A Lieutenant-Colonel commands a battalion, a battery, and a cavalry
-division.[50]
-
-A Colonel commands a regiment and a division of artillery.
-
-A Major-General commands a brigade.
-
-A Lieutenant-General commands a division.
-
-A Lieutenant-General or a full General commands an army corps or a
-military district.
-
-All these ranks are also conferred on officers serving on the staff
-and in departments. Thus, the rank of Colonel, which ought only to
-be given to men in command of regiments, is also borne by those on
-the administrative and police staffs, while generals of all grades,
-who have never held command of troops or even of small units, fill
-up our Generals list. At the time I framed the regulation to limit
-the number of promotions to General’s rank of men not actually in the
-army I was much bothered by numerous officers who feared that their
-further promotion might be blocked. The present large number of ranks
-amongst the officer class is not required. It is quite possible to
-reduce them, and to give to these their old Russian names (to which
-the Cossack[51] troops still adhere), for officers of all Arms doing
-regimental service—namely, _Khorunji_, _Sotnik_, and _Esaoul_. The
-rank of _Pod-esaoul_, which was adopted later, might be excluded.
-_Esaouls_ would command companies, squadrons, _sotnias_, and companies
-(of artillery); _Sotniks_ would command half-companies, half-squadrons;
-and _Khorunjis_ would command sections. The normal establishment of a
-company would be one _Esaoul_, two _Sotniks_, and four _Khorunjis_. The
-same should be done in the cavalry. For those not serving regimentally
-the ranks of Ensign, Lieutenant, and Captain might be maintained,
-those of Sub-Lieutenant and Staff-Captain being abolished. The present
-ranks of field-officers might be conferred on those officers not
-doing regimental service, and the titles of _Voiskovoi Starshina_ and
-Colonel on those with regiments. The first would command a battalion,
-a division of cavalry or artillery; the second, regiments of all Arms.
-The rank of Lieutenant-Colonel to be kept for staff and departmental
-officers, and the rank of Major should be introduced instead of that
-of Colonel. The names of the ranks of those serving with troops to
-correspond generally to the nature of the appointment; thus, officers
-commanding brigades should be called Brigadiers, those in charge of
-divisions, Divisional Generals, of an army corps, Corps Generals. The
-latter rank should also be given to commanders of military districts
-and their assistants. The only officers not actually serving with
-troops who should be allowed to have the title of Corps General
-should be three: the War Minister and the chiefs of the General and
-Headquarter Staffs. For service away from troops only two ranks of
-General should be maintained—Major-General and Lieutenant-General. The
-titles Generals of Infantry and Cavalry, etc., should be abolished. The
-grading would then be as follows:
-
- A.—FOR REGIMENTAL SERVICE.
-
- Commander of section Khorunji.
- Commander of half-company, half-squadron,
- half-_sotnia_ Sotnik.
- Commander of company, squadron, _sotnia_,
- artillery company Esaoul.
- Commanding battalion, battery,
- division of cavalry Voiskovoi Starshina.
- Commanding regiment Colonel.
- Commander of brigade Brigadier.
- Commander of division Divisional General.
- Commander of corps Corps General.
-
-
- B.—FOR EXTRA REGIMENTAL SERVICE.
-
- Ensign, Lieutenant, Captain, Lieutenant-Colonel, Major,
- Major-General, and Lieutenant-General.
-
-Except in the case of the chief staff-officers of districts, the
-transfer of general officers not with troops to service with troops
-should be forbidden. The appointments of Corps Chief Staff-officers
-and Quartermaster-Generals on the staffs of districts should carry
-the rank of Major. Officers going into other departments should take
-purely civil rank, and promotion on retirement should be abolished.
-To accelerate the advancement of specially distinguished colonels,
-it should be possible to appoint them to brigades with the rank of
-Brigadier. There is at present great confusion in this matter of
-accelerated promotion in deserving cases, for colonels can be given the
-command of independent brigades, and yet not of non-independent ones.
-
-As war is a greater strain on the officers than on the men, it is
-important, when granting special privileges for regimental service to
-the latter, that great care should be taken to insure their physical
-fitness. A particularly bad form of unfitness is that caused by
-corpulence, and, unfortunately, many even of our company officers
-suffered from this in Manchuria. One of our regimental commanders was
-so stout that he was practically helpless, and was taken prisoner at
-Te-li-ssu, though unwounded! As to the rank and file, hill-climbing
-with an 80-pound equipment makes campaigning very arduous for those
-of forty years of age or over. Company and field officers can well
-serve up to fifty, but commanding officers of cavalry should not be
-over fifty, and of infantry regiments over fifty-five. The age-limit
-for generals in command of brigades and divisions should be sixty,
-and of corps sixty-three. The necessity for the age regulations we
-now have became apparent during the war, for as a result of them our
-field-officers were relatively young; but our experience proves that
-the limit should be still further lowered in the direction I have
-mentioned.
-
-The proposals set forth above, which it is thought would tend to
-increase our fighting efficiency, are, after all, only details of
-organization and of preparation. The main factors contributing to
-insure victory are the same as they always have been—a high _moral_
-and the power of rapid concentration in superior strength. Diplomacy
-must prepare for the struggle so as to enable all the armed forces of
-the Empire to be put into the field if necessary, and we must have
-numerous efficient railways to facilitate the rapid massing of superior
-numbers. On these two most important factors will depend the plan
-of campaign. The ability to assume the offensive bestows an immense
-superiority, for it gives the initiative to the side which undertakes
-it. The defender’s leading troops are compelled to fall back, his
-less prepared troops are perhaps crushed, while his reinforcements
-are destroyed piecemeal. The result is that the _moral_ of the
-attacker increases, while that of the enemy inevitably diminishes. To
-re-establish a balance under such conditions is not only a matter of
-time, but is extremely difficult. With a defensive plan of operations,
-unshakeable belief in eventual success and immense patience are
-necessary in order to overcome all difficulties, and to defeat the foe
-with a final assumption of the offensive.
-
-From the short sketch I have given of what was accomplished by the
-Russian armed forces in the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries, it
-is seen that we took the offensive in the majority of the wars we
-were engaged in. Without railways, but with a large peace standing
-army (period of service twenty-five years with the colours), with
-equality and often a superiority[52] in armament and training, Russia
-was able to commence operations, and to force her will upon the
-enemy—_i.e._, to assume the offensive. Nowadays we have been left
-behind by our Western neighbours in readiness for hostilities, and
-the recent war disclosed the fact that we had been outdistanced by
-our Eastern neighbour also. Russia will, no doubt, in time find the
-strength and means once more to take her former place amongst other
-Powers as regards fighting efficiency; but it will take years of
-unceasing effort, for rapid concentration and an offensive strategy are
-impossible without great developments in our railway system. No one can
-say whether we shall be allowed to wait for everything to be perfected,
-or whether we shall again be drawn into war before we are ready. It is
-therefore absolutely necessary to prepare without loss of time to make
-war under conditions as unfavourable as those of the recent conflict.
-
-Without referring here to the necessity for diplomatic preparation for
-hostilities, and the proper attitude of all grades of Russian society
-during war, I will comment in the most general lines on those measures
-which should, in my opinion, be taken for the more useful employment
-of resources already at our disposal. The principle which is of such
-importance in field operations, that troops once engaged will not be
-relieved, must be finally accepted. Therefore, every unit going into
-action should know that it will be supported, but not replaced. The
-principle in its broadest sense applies without distinction to all
-ranks who join the field army, and till victory has been attained not
-a soul should be able to return home or receive another appointment
-outside the theatre of operations. Those who prove themselves unfit
-for their appointments at the actual front should be given other
-employments for which their bodily and mental qualifications are
-fitted. In such a serious business as war in defence of country no
-personal ambition should or can have place, and the removal of a
-person from the field army should be considered the greatest possible
-disgrace—a stain which the service of a lifetime cannot efface.
-Officers thus removed should be deprived of their military rank,
-dismissed the Service, and should forfeit all rights and privileges
-gained in the Service, and officers and men so removed should be
-deprived of the right to hold any Government post whatever, whether
-under the War Department or not.
-
-The punishment for cowardice should be death.
-
-I have touched upon the question of accelerated promotion for good
-service in the field, and the converse applies. Senior commanders
-who show themselves unfit for their appointments ought to be at once
-removed from their commands and given posts corresponding to their
-capabilities. Commanders of corps and divisions considered unfit
-may, in order to guard their military honour, request to be allowed
-to remain in the army in command of divisions or brigades. Only one
-kind of seniority can be acknowledged in war—namely, the ability to
-gain the victory. General officers incompetent for field service can
-do very useful work on the lines of communications, in the direction
-and training of the reserve troops, the management of hospitals, the
-administration of the inhabitants of the country, etc. If we ever mean
-to be capable of defeating a powerful enemy, we must not allow an army
-corps commander who is struck off from the command of his corps, and
-who does not even display personal courage, to become a member of the
-Committee of Imperial Defence; nor must we allow junior commanders who
-fail when tested by war to receive appointments in non-mobilized units,
-nor permit hundreds of officers who leave the front on account of
-ill-health, and under various pretexts, to remain away and not return.
-I say nothing of the case where an army commander leaves his army
-during active hostilities without even reporting his departure to the
-Commander-in-Chief.
-
-If courts of honour are found to be a necessity in peace-time, how
-much more are they necessary in war? In addition to being formed in
-regiments, they should be formed in corps and armies to adjudicate
-upon the conduct in action of senior commanders up to the rank of
-Divisional General. It is vital that the existing immunity of men who
-show cowardice in action, or who are guilty of disgraceful conduct out
-of action, should at once cease. For this purpose I consider we should
-form soldiers’ courts of honour in every company and independent unit,
-as a means for suppressing the worst elements found in the ranks. For,
-with the lack of moral development of the modern man in the street,
-it is absolutely necessary to have some such tribunals upon whose
-verdict corporal punishment can be awarded to private soldiers. To
-leave the field under the pretext of assisting or carrying away the
-wounded—except for the men specially detailed for this duty—should be
-punished with the utmost rigour. And to fight an action to a finish,
-officers must not hesitate to sacrifice their last reserves, if
-necessary, and also themselves. It is necessary to draw attention to
-this, as instances occurred in the war where officers, having given
-orders for a retirement, were themselves the first to go. Such an
-example is always infectious, and leads to disorganization of units
-and loss of confidence in the commander. Commanders of forces who do
-not in battle support neighbouring units when able to do so should be
-deprived of their appointments, tried, and, if necessary, punished by
-death. Commanders of all ranks should be thoroughly alive to the value
-of every man in the ranks. Therefore, every endeavour should be made to
-keep units as strong as possible during an action.
-
-Finally, I will touch briefly on several points. I will permit myself
-to express the opinion that the existing regulations as to rewards
-in war require revision and considerable alteration. At present far
-too many honours are bestowed. Another point that demands attention
-is that of malingering. As we have seen, sickness was more prevalent
-amongst the officers, in spite of their better living, than among
-the men. Unfortunately, also, the medical officers more than once
-called my attention, when I was inspecting hospitals, to cases of
-malingering amongst officers as well as men. The great majority of
-patients, of course, were really ill, but much of the sickness was due
-to the individual not taking proper care of himself. Officers must
-realize that, however honourable a thing it is to be wounded, it is as
-dishonourable to remain in hospital when their comrades are fighting.
-It should be ruled for all ranks that in such cases the period of
-sickness should not count as service, and that during it pay should
-be forfeited. All officers and officials absenting themselves for
-more than two months should be removed from their appointments, and
-appointed to the reserve or depôt troops. Amongst the many regrettable
-things to be noted in the late war was the disgraceful conditions
-under which both men and officers were often taken prisoner. The
-existing regulations, which lay down that all the circumstances of
-a case of capture should be investigated, were not complied with.
-Officers who returned straight to Russia from being prisoners in Japan
-were appointed by the War Department even to the command of divisions.
-There is only one thing which justifies capture—the fact of being
-wounded. All those who surrender when they have not been wounded should
-be tried by court-martial for not fighting to the last.
-
-The regulations regarding fortresses should be revised, and the
-occasions upon which a fortress is allowed to surrender should be
-absolutely cut out, for fortresses may be taken, but should never,
-under any circumstances, surrender. Commandants of fortresses who
-surrender them, captains who surrender their ships, officers in command
-of units that lay down their arms, should be considered as forfeiting
-all rights, and should be condemned to be shot without trial, and all
-those not in command who surrender unwounded should be deprived of
-their military rank from the day of their surrender. During the war
-the Press did much to undermine the authority of officers in command,
-and to lower the _moral_ of the men, by indiscriminate revelations.
-In the next war only such events should be allowed to appear in the
-newspapers as may help to encourage the men. When active operations
-are over, the circumstances are changed, and it is then essential for
-the good of the Service to have a thorough investigation into all
-shortcomings.
-
-But it is not sufficient that all ranks of the army should be
-imbued with the spirit of fighting on till victory is won; it is
-necessary that the whole nation should have the same feeling, and
-to the best of their ability assist towards a happy issue of the
-struggle being carried on by the army. In our state of backwardness
-(especially as regards railways) we are doomed in our next war to a
-slow concentration, and therefore to a protracted campaign. Being
-unable at once to put large forces into the field, and to seize the
-initiative, we may again be compelled to bear the consequences of our
-unreadiness—frequent reverses, and retirement; but we must, without
-wavering, firmly believe in eventual success, however unfavourable the
-conditions at the start. The moral and material resources of Russia are
-immense, and the fixed determination on the part of the army and the
-whole nation to win is our principal guarantee of victory.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- SUMMARY OF THE WAR
-
-
-I have already reviewed[53] (in Chapters VIII., IX., X., and XI.)
-the causes of our failure. They can be summarized in three groups:
-
-1. Those causes independent of the War Ministry.
-
-2. Those dependent on the War Ministry, for which officers in the field
-had no responsibility.
-
-3. Those for which officers in the field were alone responsible.
-
-The first group comprises—
-
-(_a_) The absence of any diplomatic arrangement which would have
-enabled us to despatch and distribute our whole army freely as
-circumstances dictated (similar to that which in 1870–71 made it
-possible for the Prussians to move the whole of their armed forces
-against France).
-
-(_b_) The subordinate part played by the fleet during the war.
-
-(_c_) The inferiority of the Siberian and Eastern Chinese Railways.
-
-(_d_) The internal disorders in Russia, which affected the spirit of
-the army.
-
-The second group comprises—
-
-(_a_) The delay in mobilizing the reinforcements for the Far East.
-
-(_b_) The transfer into the reserve during the war of well-trained
-soldiers—men who were still liable for colour service—from the military
-districts in European Russia, while untrained elderly reservists were
-being sent to the front.
-
-(_c_) The belated despatch of drafts to the front. (The reason of this
-was also the inefficiency of the railways.)
-
-(_d_) The delay in promoting those who particularly distinguished
-themselves in the field. (Many recommendations were ignored.)
-
-(_e_) The deficiencies in our technical equipment.
-
-(_f_) The faults of organization (absence of troops for protecting
-communications, dearth of transport, unwieldiness of the army and corps
-organizations).
-
-(_g_) Deficiencies in the _personnel_ both of officers and men.
-
-The third group comprises—
-
-(_a_) The absence of a true military feeling among the troops.
-
-(_b_) The poor spirit in action shown by some of them.
-
-(_c_) The lack of determination on the part of commanders of all
-degrees to carry out the tasks entrusted to them.
-
-(_d_) The breakdown of the organization under the stress of war.
-
-The weak points of our forces, which were so noticeable in the wars
-waged in the second half of the last century, had not been entirely
-eliminated during the fifty years which intervened since the Crimea,
-and were again evident in the recent struggle—namely:
-
-1. We were inferior to our enemy in technical troops and equipment.
-
-2. The “command” was unsatisfactory.
-
-3. The army was insufficiently trained tactically.
-
-4. We did not insure victory by having considerable superiority in
-numbers.
-
-We did not have before us any clear idea of our object, and
-consequently did not show sufficient determination in its prosecution.
-
-So many different reasons have been advanced for our failure that the
-question naturally arises as to what foundation there really is for my
-opinion—shared by the greater part of the army in the field—that if we
-had not concluded peace so hastily victory would have crowned our arms.
-
-My belief that we could, and ought to, have issued victorious from the
-struggle is based upon—
-
- I. The steady growth of our material forces.
-
- II. The growth of our moral forces.
-
- III. The gradual deterioration of the enemy
- in both respects.
-
-
- I.
-
-We have already seen how fatal the inefficiency of our railways was for
-us. Yet, though six months before the outbreak of war only two pairs
-of short trains were available for military purposes, when peace was
-concluded we had ten and even twelve pairs of full trains running in
-the twenty-four hours. Thus, during hostilities the carrying capacity
-of the railway grew sixfold, and was capable of still further increase.
-Notwithstanding all our reverses, the army continued to grow in
-numbers, and was 1,000,000 strong when peace was concluded, and more
-than two-thirds of this number (including the newly arrived drafts,
-the new corps, and the Pri-Amur troops) had not been under fire.
-Moreover, owing to improved rail transport and the proper exploitation
-of all local resources, the whole number was assured of everything
-necessary, both for fighting and subsistence, to an extent that had
-never previously been the case. We had received a proper proportion
-of artillery of every nature, reserves of light railway material,
-telegraph and wireless telegraph stores, and entrenching and technical
-tools and equipment of all sorts. We had constructed three strong
-lines of defence at Hsi-ping-kai, Kung-chu-ling, and Kwang-cheng-tzu;
-our communications in rear were safe; almost every army corps was in
-possession of its own line of rails; and the Sungari and other rivers
-were crossed by many bridges. The war strength of all units had been
-considerably augmented. Russia’s resources for continuing the struggle
-were greater than those of Japan, for not only had our Guards and
-Grenadiers not been drawn upon, but the greater part of the army was
-still at home.
-
-
- II.
-
-Though an improvement of _moral_ is by no means as easy to bring about
-in an army as that of its material condition, the officers who were
-most in touch with our men were convinced that it was done in our
-case. It may possibly be a peculiarity of the Russian soldier that
-he possesses latent moral strength of the kind which is developed
-slowly, and not destroyed by any trials to which the individual is
-subjected; but to those who made a study of the war it appeared
-perfectly clear that our men showed an increasing spirit of stubborn
-determination as the campaign progressed. In the early fights before
-the battle of Liao-yang—at Te-li-ssu and Ta-shih-chiao—we withdrew
-after comparatively small losses. At the latter fight two army corps,
-and at Yang-tzu-ling one corps, retired, though they together did not
-collectively lose as many men as the 1st East Siberian Rifle Regiment
-alone lost in the battle of Mukden. At Liao-yang our men fought better
-than in the previous fights; on the Sha Ho they showed a better spirit
-than at Liao-yang; while at Mukden many units showed a still further
-improvement. We were all convinced, therefore, that in a defence of,
-or an offensive advance from, the Hsi-ping-kai position, the men would
-fight even better than at Mukden, for the improvement in spirit shown
-by our troops had been progressive and steady. They had learned much,
-particularly during their long stay in direct touch with the enemy
-on the Sha Ho. Even the reserve units, which failed in the early
-fights, fought with great bravery and steadiness at Mukden. To prove
-this, it is only necessary to recall the exploits of the 71st and
-54th Divisions, the later arrived reserve units of the 55th and 61st
-Divisions at Mukden, and of many regiments of the 10th, 17th, and 1st
-Army Corps. The regiments of the 4th Siberian Corps and the East
-Siberian Rifles, indeed, were an example throughout the war.
-
-The Tsar, in his Order to the army and fleet of January 14,
-1905, predicted this improvement in the _moral_ of the troops,
-notwithstanding their reverses, with great foresight. His belief in the
-spirit of the army was expressed in the following memorable words:
-
- “Though we may be sore at heart on account of the disasters and
- losses that have befallen us, do not let us be discouraged. By
- them Russia’s strength is renewed, and her power increased.”
-
-As operations continued we made corresponding progress in our tactics.
-We learned how to attack and make use of the ground, and how to
-employ artillery, and learned by heart the lesson of keeping strong
-reserves in hand [at the Hsi-ping-kai position the reserve of the 1st
-Manchurian Army alone consisted of eighty battalions]. We also learned
-how to obtain intelligence of hostile forces. At the close of the war
-our knowledge of the Japanese dispositions was more complete than
-it had ever been; indeed, we had accurate information of the exact
-whereabouts, not only of their main bodies, but also of many individual
-units. (This was chiefly obtained from prisoners.)
-
-We received as reinforcements 300,000 regular soldiers then with
-the colours, most of whom had volunteered for the front, and the
-1905 recruits. These young soldiers were ready to face any danger;
-they arrived in the highest spirits, and their cheerfulness and
-evident keenness to see some fighting did one’s heart good. The
-older reservists were mostly employed on duties in the rear. As a
-result, volunteers were always forthcoming for the numerous raids and
-reconnaissances made by the 1st Manchurian Army from the Hsi-ping-kai
-position, or for any other adventurous work. The mainspring of the
-improvement in our spirit, however, was the more careful selection made
-of the officers appointed to command units. Many of these now began to
-display military qualifications of a high order. The fighting round
-Mukden had produced generals of a calibre upon which we could have
-fully relied in any subsequent battles. As regards the general question
-of the readiness of the 1st Manchurian Army for renewed fighting after
-the Mukden battle, I concluded my report on this force as follows:
-
- “With the occupation of the Hsi-ping-kai position the army
- found itself confronted with a great work.
-
- “No map of the neighbouring country existed, and the little
- information we had of the enemy was chiefly remarkable for
- its absolute vagueness. There were no roads to the rear, no
- local depôts for the supply of the army, and no fords over
- the Sungari River, which was a standing menace, as the usual
- Spring floods were still ahead of us.
-
- “The co-ordinated and willing efforts of all ranks, however,
- soon changed all this. The fortified line of works from
- Hsi-ping-kai Station to the village of Kung-chu-ling became
- practically invincible, and the order was given to use it as a
- _place d’armes_ and accumulate strong reserves there. In May
- there were eighty battalions in reserve behind the left flank;
- practically one-half of the five army corps was located here.
-
- “A two-verst[54] map was made, showing not only the country
- in our rear, but the strip of ground right up to the enemy’s
- positions.
-
- “By means of reconnaissances and the employment of spies,
- we gradually sifted our inaccurate intelligence till our
- information was correct. We were able first to locate the
- disposition of the enemy’s armies, then of his divisions, and,
- finally, of small units.
-
- “The services to the rear were carried out with similar energy;
- roads were laid out, the Sungari was bridged, and storehouses
- were built.
-
- “At the beginning of July the army was almost ready to advance;
- the only thing lacking was the equipment for light railways for
- horse traction. Without this it was impossible to advance in
- any great strength.
-
- “During the last few months a horse railway was laid to
- Ya-mu-tzu, and the carriage of supplies for a forward movement
- was thus assured.
-
- “A connected series of reconnaissances were carried out in
- order to gain knowledge of the ground in front.
-
- “The army was brought almost up to full strength by the drafts
- and new units which had joined.
-
- “In August it was quite ready for battle, and its now
- recuperated and reinforced veteran corps waited the order for a
- forward movement in complete confidence.”
-
-General Bilderling, who commanded the 2nd Manchurian Army (which
-suffered the most heavily at Mukden), finishes his report on this army
-as follows:
-
- “The army occupied the Hsi-ping-kai position, shattered and
- disorganized by the battle of Mukden; but it has recovered with
- extraordinary rapidity. With the arrival of the young soldiers
- and reservists, all the units have been brought up to full war
- strength, and it is only in the officers that there is still
- a great deficiency. The mounted units have been reinforced by
- fresh squadrons and by horses from the artillery reserve; the
- guns and waggons which were lost or had become unserviceable
- have been replaced. Every division has been strengthened by
- mounted and dismounted machine-gun sections, and howitzer
- batteries have been formed; a light railway for horse-draught
- has been laid along the whole length of the position and in
- rear of it; and, profiting by recent experience, the troops are
- now thoroughly proficient in all exercises and manœuvres. Thus
- the army, by reason of its numbers, material composition, and
- training, has become really better prepared for hostilities at
- the close of the war than it was at the beginning, and again
- constitutes a menace to the enemy.”
-
-The 3rd Manchurian Army, which, under the command of General Batianoff,
-formed a reserve for the 1st and 2nd Armies, and contained corps which
-had arrived latest and had not been in action, was also a large and
-reliable body of men.
-
-Of course, there is a skeleton in every cupboard, and naturally in such
-a large force as the three armies constituted there were weak spots.
-Thus, there were to be found amongst the men, and even the officers,
-a certain number of poor-spirited creatures who disbelieved in the
-possibility of victory. But even such characters would have plucked up
-their spirits and done good service at the first success.
-
-From the moment I joined the army in Manchuria, I invariably told every
-unit that I met or reviewed that the war could only end after we had
-been victorious; that till then none of us would be allowed to return
-home; and that victory was certain when sufficient reinforcements
-reached us. And belief in these facts sank into the hearts of officers
-and private soldiers. Both before and after Mukden, I more than once
-heard the men themselves—particularly those in hospital—say that they
-could not return home till the enemy had been defeated. “The women
-will laugh at us,” were their words. Another important factor, and
-one which the Russian especially values, is constant and affectionate
-care for his bodily needs and his health. For anyone who has not been
-on active service it is difficult to appreciate how troops who have
-been disorganized and badly shaken by hard fighting can regain heart
-if they suddenly find hot food ready for them. A night’s rest, a full
-stomach, ammunition replenished, a quiet calling of the roll, and the
-calm demeanour of their officers—all assisted to make our splendid
-soldiers once more ready for the fray. As regards the army’s _moral_
-generally, I should mention that the nearer our men were to the enemy,
-the better were their spirits and the fewer the carping comments and
-criticisms which always do so much harm; there was no time to read the
-papers. When I visited the advanced units of the 1st Army (those of
-the 2nd, 3rd, and 4th Siberians, and of the 1st Army Corps commanded
-by Colonels Prince Trubetski, Tikhomiroff, Redkin, and General
-Kashtalinski), I found universal keenness to advance. The men were well
-looked after, discipline was strict, and the attitude of both men and
-officers was one of quiet and steady determination. But in proportion
-as the distance from the advanced lines increased, and direct touch
-with the enemy was lost, there was time for talk and gossip. It was on
-the lines of communication (particularly at Harbin) that drunkenness
-and gambling took place, besides other forms of dissipation that
-disgraced the army. It was here that the white-livered brigade
-collected, leaving the front under any excuse even when fighting was in
-progress, and, indeed, what else could be expected of them? It is much
-to be regretted that some of our pressmen judged the army by what they
-saw at Harbin, and that we were judged by this standard even in Russia.
-Many officers and others in authority who had failed to pass the
-“ordeal by fire” lived on in Russia, and from them a correct opinion
-as to the self-sacrifice and devotion of the army and its readiness to
-continue the war could hardly have been expected. Unfortunately for
-us, also there happened to be on the Committee of Imperial Defence two
-general officers who had been at the front. One had left it; the other
-had been deprived of his command of an army corps. Clearly, such men
-as these could not have much assisted this new and important body to
-insist on the necessity of continuing the struggle.
-
-A step taken by me to raise and to maintain the spirit of the army
-was the rapid promotion of those officers who had most distinguished
-themselves in the field. We obtained a number of our best senior
-regimental officers by promoting captains, and, what is more important,
-we appointed many distinguished officers to the command of regiments
-without regard to their lack of seniority, or to the fact that some
-of them were only lieutenant-colonels. In a very short time these
-commanding officers improved their regiments almost beyond recognition,
-and fully proved how important a careful selection is in war. By
-promoting to Major-General those colonels who had most distinguished
-themselves on service, we began to get at the head of brigades leaders
-who were worthy of every confidence, and offered a splendid selection
-from which to choose divisional and corps commanders.
-
-A further step which I took to woo victory was to enforce the humane
-treatment of the Chinese population of Manchuria. I, and those
-immediately under me, insisted on their being protected (as far as war
-conditions permitted) from unnecessary hardships, and on their property
-being guarded, and I made a point of their being promptly paid in
-cash for everything they brought in. This assisted us considerably in
-getting supplies, and, notwithstanding the great hardships we ourselves
-occasionally suffered, I invariably insisted on these relations being
-maintained. Consequently, not once was I forced to have recourse to
-requisitioning supplies or transport, nor had I to use force to get
-local labour. The results surpassed all my expectations, for, in spite
-of the great efforts made by the enemy to raise the Chinese population
-against us, and in spite of the unfriendly feeling towards us of
-many of the Chinese authorities themselves, the mass of the people
-appreciated our attitude, remained quiet, and, by freely bringing in
-their products, saved us from hunger. Although they might have easily
-kept us in a perpetual state of alarm by killing isolated officials,
-attacking small detachments, destroying the telegraphs and the roads,
-they—with very few exceptions—lived on peacefully in the theatre of
-war, in some instances even joining with us in fighting the Hun-huses.
-
-Thus, besides the plan of campaign for carrying on the war—in which the
-possibility of retiring even behind Harbin was foreseen—the principal
-means taken by me to secure victory were:
-
-1. To instil in all ranks a firm belief that the war could only be
-brought to a close with victory, and that till victory had crowned our
-efforts not one of us would return home.
-
-2. To foster a constant fatherly endeavour on the part of all in
-authority to attend, as far as the exigencies of the Service permitted,
-to the comfort and preserve the health of the troops.
-
-3. To assist in all ways the readiness and preparation of the troops,
-particularly by accelerating, irrespective of mere seniority, the
-promotion of the most distinguished of the officers.
-
-4. To maintain a uniformly humane attitude towards the Chinese
-population of Manchuria.
-
-
- III.
-
-The enemy’s army began to weaken in the moral as well as the material
-sense.
-
-To drive back our army northwards to Hsi-ping-kai called for immense
-efforts and many sacrifices on the part of the Japanese. I have
-stated (in Chapter VII.) that our Headquarter Staff estimated the
-total peace establishment of their army at 110,000 men [of which
-13,000 were always absent on furlough and leave], and the reserve and
-territorial forces at only 315,000, so that the total number available
-for service was, as we thought, not more than 425,000. But, according
-to the figures of the Japanese army medical authorities, more than
-1,000,000 men were called up to the colours, which must have demanded
-a great effort on the part of the nation. It was found necessary also,
-during the war, to alter the existing laws so as to catch those men
-who had already completed their time in the reserve for a further
-period of service in the regular army, and to draft into the ranks
-in 1904 and 1905 the recruit contingent of 1906 as well as that of
-1905. (Towards the end we began to find old men and boys amongst our
-prisoners.) Their casualties were very high; in the Cemetery of Honour
-in Tokio alone 60,600 men killed in battle were buried, and to these
-must be added more than 50,000 who died of wounds. Thus it appears
-from these two sources alone that they lost 110,000—a figure equal to
-the whole peace establishment of the army. Taking into account our
-standing peace army of 1,000,000 men, our losses were comparatively far
-lighter than those of the Japanese. In all some 554,000 men passed
-through their hospitals during the war, of whom 220,000[55] were wound
-cases. Altogether they lost 135,000 men killed and died of wounds and
-sickness. Their losses in officers were particularly heavy, and the
-men fought with such stubborn bravery that whole regiments, and even
-brigades, were on certain occasions almost wiped out of existence. This
-happened, for instance, in the fight for Putiloff Hill,[56] on October
-15; also during the February fighting for the position held by the 3rd
-Siberians on the Kiao-tu Ling [Pass]; in the battle of March 7, at
-Tu-hung-tun[57] and other points. At Liao-yang and Mukden the majority
-of the enemy’s troops suffered very heavily in their frontal attack of
-our positions, and failed to take them. The fate of these battles was
-decided by turning movements. In the fighting on the Sha Ho they tried
-hard to force us back towards Mukden, and many of their units were
-again and again driven off our positions, and only occupied them after
-we had abandoned them of our own accord. The spirit of these Japanese
-troops who had thus seen no success attend their individual efforts
-could not but be shaken. Again, the ever-increasing determination
-displayed by our men must have affected their spirit. Their regulars
-had been placed _hors de combat_ in considerable numbers, and however
-quickly the recruits might be called up and trained, it was not to be
-expected that they would be able to develop the same stubbornness in
-defence, and the same dash in attack, that their comrades had possessed
-in the first campaign. This was noticeable in the fighting in front of
-Mukden, but especially near Hsi-ping-kai. While our scouting parties,
-and the troops of the advanced posts, were pressing the enemy more and
-more boldly, we began to notice a comparative lack of enterprise on
-their part, coupled with a want of their former daring, and even their
-watchfulness. Perhaps the strain of war was beginning to tell on the
-Southern temperament. Indeed, for six whole months they gave us time
-to strengthen ourselves and fortify, without once attempting to attack
-and press us back on the Sungari, and so inflict a crushing defeat.
-While we remained at Hsi-ping-kai the number of prisoners taken by us
-began to increase, and they ceased to display the fanaticism shown by
-those captured in 1904. Many openly acknowledged that they were weary
-of the war, and from the nature of numerous letters from Japan found
-on the killed and prisoners, it was evident that this weariness was
-general. These letters also told of the heavy increase in taxation
-during the war, of the increased cost of the necessities of life,
-and of the dearth of employment. Once an entire company surrendered
-in front of the positions held by the 1st Siberians, a thing that had
-never happened before. Nor were the enemy well situated as regards
-material. Money became more and more scarce, while the requirements of
-the growing army increased. Particular difficulty was found in quickly
-replenishing artillery ammunition. This was very noticeable on the Sha
-Ho.
-
-But what must have been the most serious source of anxiety to Japan
-was the indifference which Europe and America were beginning to show
-to her successes. At first it had seemed profitable to Great Britain
-and Germany that Russia and Japan should be drawn into war, for when
-they were exhausted the hands of both would be tied—ours in Europe, and
-Japan’s in Asia. Nevertheless, it was not to the interest of Europe
-generally to allow the triumph of the Japanese in the battlefields of
-Manchuria to become absolute. A victorious Japan might join with China,
-and raise the standard of “Asia for the Asiatics.” The extinction
-of all European and American enterprises in Asia would be the first
-object of this new great Power, and the expulsion of Europeans from
-Asia would be the end. There is already little enough room on the
-Continent of Europe. Without the markets of the wide world she could
-not exist, and the cries of “America for the Americans,” “Asia for the
-Asiatics,” “Africa for the Africans,” are of serious import for her.
-But the danger is approaching, and is so imminent that the Powers of
-Europe will be forced to sink their differences and unite in order to
-withstand the attempt of the young nations[58] to drive old Europe home
-into the narrow shell which she has long since outgrown. We might have
-taken advantage of this change in international feeling, and have tried
-to close the money markets of the world to Japan. Only one decisive
-victory on our part was wanted to bring about a very serious reaction
-both in Japan and in the army in the field. If we had exhausted her
-financial resources, and had continued the war, we might soon have
-compelled her to seek an honourable peace, which would have been
-advantageous to us.
-
-At Mukden we fought with a shortage in establishment of 300,000 men;
-we began the war with inconsiderable forces; we conducted it under the
-most unfavourable conditions, and without the support of the country;
-we were, moreover, weakened by disturbances in the interior, and were
-connected with Russia only by a single-track weak line. In these
-impossible conditions we put 300,000 of the enemy _hors de combat_,
-and had 600,000 rifles ready at Hsi-ping-kai at a time when they were
-beginning to flag. If we attained such results, can it be said that
-our army accomplished but little? Is it fair to continue applying
-the epithet “Disgraceful” to the war? It cannot be denied that both
-the troops and their leaders did less in the time at their disposal
-than they might have done if properly supported by the country; but
-by the summer of 1905 conditions had begun to change in our favour.
-The conquered are always judged severely, and the leaders should
-naturally be the first to bear the responsibility for disaster to the
-troops under them. We can only be judged as acquitted because of our
-readiness to continue the struggle—a readiness which was created, and
-grew stronger in the army in spite of disaster. We believed in the
-possibility and certainty of victory, and if it had not been for the
-serious internal disturbances in Russia, we should have undoubtedly
-been able to prove the truth of our belief in battle.
-
-Even the inhabitants of Moscow, where, in all the difficult times the
-nation has passed through, a manly and determined voice has always
-been raised in support of the honour and dignity of Russia, showed
-that their spirits had on this occasion fallen. It was with amazement
-and sorrow that we read of a certain action of the Moscow Town Council
-on June 7, 1905. The news had immense effect on the army, and on
-hearing of it I sent the following letter[59] to Prince Trubetski, the
-President of the Moscow nobility:
-
- “An overwhelming impression has been produced throughout
- the army by the news which has reached us from home that
- many poor-spirited people are trying to bring about an early
- peace. It is forgotten that a peace made before victory has
- been won cannot be honourable, and will not therefore be
- permanent. Never has our army been so strong and so ready for
- serious battle as now. Victory is nearer than seems likely
- to those at a distance. The troops have great belief in the
- new Commander-in-Chief;[60] they are assured of everything
- necessary to their wants, and their health is excellent. We
- would welcome news of the enemy’s advance, and are ready to
- move against them, when ordered to, with full faith in our
- strength. The troops have become war-seasoned. Even those units
- which were for various reasons not as steady as they should
- have been in the early fights are now thoroughly reliable.
- Numbers of wounded officers and men are hastening to rejoin,
- though not completely convalescent. Though we have lost the
- fleet, the army remains to us, and, I repeat, it is more
- powerful than it ever was before. Our position is altogether
- stronger and, tactically, better placed than those we held at
- Liao-yang or Mukden, for the Japanese do not envelop us in
- the same way. Though their forces have also been growing in
- numbers, there are many indications that their strength is on
- the wane: their ranks are being filled with men who formerly
- would not have been accepted, and the whole spirit of the army
- has undergone a change. More men allow themselves to be taken
- prisoners than before; their artillery and cavalry are weaker
- than ours, and they are short of gun ammunition. Letters from
- Japan, which we have found on the men, show that a general
- feeling of dissatisfaction with the war is growing among the
- people, for prices have gone up, and they are enduring great
- privations. These are the conditions under which I to-day
- read in letters from Moscow that on June 7 the Town Council
- discussed the advisability of inviting the representatives of
- the people to consider the question of putting an end to the
- war. Last February, on my departure for the front, you, in the
- name of all the representatives of Moscow, bade me farewell
- with words full of courage and of faith in the might of Russia.
- I therefore consider it my duty to send this letter to you.
- If the Muscovites do not feel as able as before to send their
- worthiest sons to us to help us overcome the foe, let them at
- least not prevent us from doing our duty in Manchuria.
-
- “Although there is nothing of a secret nature in this letter,
- its publication in the Press over my signature is very
- undesirable.”
-
-In reply, Prince Trubetski wrote to me on June 14 as follows:
-
- “I have handed over your telegram, which greatly touched me,
- to the Mayor and Zemstvo; I will communicate its contents to
- as many as I can, and I will do everything that is possible to
- get action taken on it. If it may be considered necessary by
- the Tsar to end the war, I do not think it should be discussed
- beforehand in committees. May God help you! My whole heart is
- with you.”
-
-But the efforts of individuals were powerless to check the march
-of events. The serious state of Russia’s internal affairs and the
-hostile—to put the best construction on it—indifference of the people
-resulted in peace being prematurely concluded. The consequences
-of making such a peace, by which Japan was recognized as Russia’s
-conqueror in Asia, will have serious results not only for us, but for
-all the Powers who have possessions or interests on that continent.
-The “Yellow peril,” the appearance of which has only recently been
-foreseen, is now a reality. Notwithstanding her victorious issue from
-the war, Japan is hurriedly increasing her forces, while China is
-forming a large army under the guidance of Japanese officers and on the
-Japanese model. In a very short space of time she and Japan will be
-able to pour an army of more than 1,500,000 into Manchuria, which, if
-directed against us, could proceed to take a great deal of Siberia from
-Russia, and reduce her to a second-rate Power.
-
-We have seen above how the absence of any previous diplomatic
-arrangements forced us to keep the greater part of our armed forces
-in European Russia during the war, which fact constituted one of the
-reasons of our reverses (the Guards and Grenadiers Corps remained
-in Russia, while the reserve troops fought in Manchuria). We have
-one consolation in that we now know that our Western neighbours are
-not pursuing any policy of aggression against us, for they had an
-excellent opportunity in the years 1905 and 1906[61] to alter the
-existing frontier had they wished to do so. We may hope, therefore,
-to be able to come to some understanding with the Powers of Europe by
-which, should we be again attacked in the Far East, we shall be able
-to throw the whole of our armed forces into a struggle with either
-Japan or Japan and China combined. Another reason for our failure is
-the fact that we were unable rapidly to make full use of such forces
-as were available, because of the weakness of railway communication
-between Russia and Manchuria. It is clear that, as matters now stand in
-the Far East, the laying of a second track over the Siberian line and
-the construction of a railway along the bank of the Amur are so vital
-for us that no time should be lost in doing these things. The mere
-construction of a line along the Amur can help us but little, while
-a double-track line, even with forty-eight trains in the twenty-four
-hours, cannot, of course, satisfy all the requirements of the great
-army we should have to put in the field in the event of a fresh war.
-In future we shall only be able to rely to a small extent upon the
-vast supplies of food in Manchuria, and shall be obliged to convey
-the greater portion not only of our munitions of war, but of our
-food-supplies, from European Russia and Siberia. It will therefore be
-necessary to make use of our water communications, for the failure of
-the attempt to transport supplies in 1905 by the Arctic Ocean and the
-River Yenissei cannot be considered final. Particular assistance also
-could be afforded to the army by increasing the population of Siberia,
-and so at the same time augmenting the local resources necessary for an
-army. The rich reserves of metals, coals, and timber in that part will
-assist us in bringing nearer to the Far East not only our food-supply
-base, but also our war base (for ordnance, ammunition, explosives,
-etc.).
-
-Among the main reasons for our disasters must be mentioned the
-indifferent, even hostile attitude of the people to the late war; but
-the menace to our nation from the Far East is now so clear that all
-grades of society ought to prepare—in case of a fresh attack on Russia
-by Japan or China—to rise like one man to defend the integrity and the
-greatness of our Fatherland.
-
-Thus, to attain success in any such future war, which is by no means an
-improbable contingency, we should strive—
-
-1. To be in a position to make use of all our troops;
-
-2. To have thorough railway communication between the Pri-Amur and
-Russia;
-
-3. To prepare the waterways of Siberia for the carriage of heavy goods
-in bulk from west to east;
-
-4. To move the army’s base as far as possible from Russia into Siberia;
-and, what is most important—
-
-5. To make ready to carry on a new war not only with the army, but with
-the whole of a patriotic nation.
-
-History had apparently destined Russia to undergo a bitter trial from
-1904 to 1906, both on the field of battle and at home. Our great nation
-has issued renewed and strengthened from still heavier trials, and let
-us not doubt now but that Russia, summoned by the Tsar to a new life,
-will quickly recover from the temporary blows which she has sustained,
-and will not fall from her high place among the other nations of the
-world. As regards the army, its bitter experiences should not on this
-occasion fail to bear fruit, and the most detailed, thorough, and
-fearless study of all its defects can only bring about a renewal and
-increase of strength. We must remember one point—and it is the main
-point: our officers and many of the men conducted themselves most
-unselfishly in most difficult circumstances. Given this, all our other
-faults can be comparatively quickly mended; but before all else, we
-must not be afraid of openly acknowledging them.
-
-Strength lies—in the truth.
-
-In this important work of rejuvenation which is now beginning in Russia
-for the good of the people and the army, we must remember the great
-words of the Tsar to the Army and Fleet almost two years ago:
-
- “Russia is mighty. During the thousand years of her existence
- there have been years of still greater suffering—years when
- greater danger menaced. Yet she has every time issued from the
- struggle with fresh glory, with added might.
-
- “Though we may be sore at heart on account of the disasters and
- losses that have befallen us, do not let us be discouraged. By
- them Russia’s strength is renewed and her power increased.
-
- “A. N. KUROPATKIN, GENERAL.
-
- “SHESHURINO,[62]
- “_November 30, 1906_.”
-
-
- END OF VOLUME IV. OF THE ORIGINAL
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
- INTRODUCTION AND CONCLUSION TO VOLUME III.[63]
-
-When war seemed likely, the following scheme for the strategical
-distribution of the troops in the Far East in the event of hostilities
-was agreed to by the Viceroy, Alexeieff:
-
-1. The major portion of the troops, consisting of 60 infantry
-battalions, 65 squadrons, 2 sapper battalions, and 160 guns (total,
-65,000 rifles and sabres), were to be sent into Southern Manchuria. The
-main body was to be concentrated in the area Hai-cheng–Liao-yang, and
-the advance guard[64] moved forward to the Ya-lu.
-
-2. The garrison of Port Arthur was to consist of the 7th East Siberian
-Rifle Division (12 battalions), 2 battalions of fortress artillery, and
-1 company of sappers. The 5th East Siberian Rifle Regiment, consisting
-of 4 battalions with 6 guns, was also detailed for the defence of
-the Kuan-tung district, to augment the strength of the garrison if
-necessary.
-
-3. The garrison of Vladivostok was to consist of the 8th East Siberian
-Rifle Division (8 battalions of infantry), with 2 battalions of
-fortress artillery, 2 sapper companies, and 1 mining company.
-
-4. That of Nikolaievsk was to be 1 fortress infantry battalion, 1
-fortress artillery company, and 1 mining company.
-
-This scheme, by which the force detailed for the defence of Port Arthur
-and the whole Kuan-tung Peninsula was limited to sixteen battalions,
-was due to our exaggerated idea of the strength and invincibility of
-our Pacific Ocean Fleet. According to the Viceroy, it was founded
-on the following opinion, expressed by Admiral Witgeft, Chief of
-Alexeieff’s temporary naval staff:
-
- “According to the present relative strengths of the two fleets,
- the possibility of ours being defeated is a contingency that
- need not be considered, and until it has been destroyed it is
- inconceivable that the Japanese can land at Newchuang or any
- other spot on the Gulf of Korea.”
-
-[Illustration: FIELD-MARSHAL MARQUIS IWAO OYAMA.]
-
-But such an attenuation of our force in this quarter was contrary
-to the opinion of a committee—attended by me in my capacity of War
-Minister—which sat in Port Arthur in June, 1903. The Viceroy and senior
-commanders of the garrison were present at the meeting when it was
-resolved and recorded as “essential” that the 3rd Siberian Corps should
-be formed for the defence of Kuan-tung, in addition to the 7th East
-Siberian Rifle Division, its permanent garrison, and that this corps
-should be composed of the 3rd and 4th East Siberian Rifle Divisions,
-each of twelve battalions. In fact, it was considered necessary to have
-thirty-six battalions of infantry, exclusive of reserve battalions,
-for the defence of Port Arthur and the Peninsula. This formation of a
-special army corps for Kuan-tung was thought to be necessitated by the
-existence so close to Port Arthur of Dalny, a magnificently equipped
-port, connected by railway to the fortress, and a most convenient base
-for operations against it.
-
-Feeling that the force allotted to the defence of the Peninsula was
-inadequate, on February 11 I telegraphed as War Minister to Alexeieff
-that I considered it imperative that the 9th East Siberian Rifle
-Division—then under formation—should be sent there in place of the 3rd
-East Siberian Rifle Division, ordered to the Ya-lu. The Viceroy did not
-concur in this view, but he temporarily retained the 13th and 14th East
-Siberian Rifle Regiments.
-
-On February 20, 1904, I was appointed to the command of the Manchurian
-Army. In my first communication to the Viceroy (No. 1 of February 24)
-I again expressed the opinion that, in view of the possibility of it
-being besieged by four or five Japanese divisions, our first efforts
-should be directed to strengthening Port Arthur. And I further stated:
-
- “If Port Arthur is weakly garrisoned, and should be besieged,
- I might be tempted by that fact to assume the offensive before
- there has been sufficient time to concentrate our forces. It is
- for this reason that I have already advised the concentration
- of the 9th Division in Kuan-tung to replace the 3rd.”
-
-However, the Viceroy again disagreed with me, and wrote in a despatch
-of March 1:
-
- “Separate operations against the fortress would only be really
- worth undertaking if the enemy could make certain of seizing it
- by a _coup de main_, and the moment for this has passed. The
- land front is becoming more formidable every day, and, though
- not complete, the works are now well advanced; 200 additional
- guns have been mounted in Port Arthur itself, and more than
- forty at Chin-chou; the strength of the garrison is being
- brought up by the reservists arriving from Trans-Baikalia,
- and the stocks of supplies are being increased. All the bays
- nearest the fortress, as well as the port of Dalny, have been
- mined, and for the rest—the oft-proved stubbornness of the
- Russian soldier in defence can be relied on.”
-
-He had already reported to the Tsar that—
-
- “Although separate operations against Port Arthur would
- threaten the fortress itself with all the hardships of a siege
- or blockade, they would be rather advantageous to our arms
- as a whole, for they would entail a division of the enemy’s
- forces.”
-
-As regards my own recommendations upon the plan of operations to be
-followed against Japan, I drew up two memoranda, which I submitted to
-the Tsar on February 15 and March 4. In the former I stated:
-
- “In the first phase of the campaign our main object should
- be to prevent the destruction of our forces in detail. The
- apparent importance of any single locality or position
- (fortresses excepted) should not lead us into the great error
- of holding it in insufficient force, which would bring about
- the very result we are so anxious to prevent. While gradually
- growing in numbers and preparing to take the offensive, we
- should only move forward when sufficiently strong, and when
- supplied with everything necessary for an uninterrupted advance
- lasting over a fairly long period.”
-
-Against this the Tsar was pleased to note in his own handwriting the
-words “Quite so.”
-
-I left St. Petersburg on March 12, and arrived at Liao-yang on the
-28th. On this date there were collected in the concentration area in
-Southern Manchuria 59 battalions,[65] 39 squadrons and _sotnias_, and
-140 guns. The distribution was as follows:
-
-The _Southern Force_ (under General Sakharoff) of the 1st and 9th East
-Siberian Rifle Divisions—20 battalions, 6 squadrons, and 54 guns—was in
-the area Hai-cheng—Ta-shih-chiao—Newchuang—Kai-ping.
-
-The _Eastern (Advance) Force_ (under General Kashtalinski) of the 3rd
-East Siberian Rifle Division—8 battalions, 24 guns, 8 mountain and 8
-machine-guns—was moved to the Ya-lu.
-
-The _Mounted Force_ (under General Mischenko) of 18 squadrons and 6
-guns was operating in Northern Korea.
-
-The _Main Body_ was divided into two groups:
-
- At An-shan-chan: 5th East Siberian Rifle Division
- of 8 battalions and 24 guns.
-
- At Liao-yang: 2nd Brigades of the 31st and 35th Infantry
- Divisions, 22nd and 24th East Siberian Rifle Regiments—21
- battalions, 10 squadrons, and 24 guns.
-
-In addition to these, the 23rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment—3
-battalions and 4 guns—was allotted to the protection of the Viceroy’s
-Headquarters.
-
-In _Port Arthur_ were the 7th East Siberian Rifle Division—12
-battalions, 2 reserve battalions, 3-1/2 battalions of fortress
-artillery, and a sapper and mining company.
-
-In _Kuan-tung_ were the 5th, 13th, 14th, and 15th East Siberian Rifle
-Regiments, 1 battalion of the 16th East Siberian Rifle Regiment, 2
-battalions of the 18th East Siberian Rifle Regiment, and 1 reserve
-battalion—12 battalions, 20 guns, and 1 _sotnia_ of Cossacks.
-
-On my arrival I approved the following scheme of engineering works:
-The fortification of the positions on the Fen-shui Ling (Passes), and
-at Liao-yang, Mukden, and Tieh-ling; the construction of roads across
-the passes to the Ya-lu, and of three parallel roads from Kai-ping to
-Mukden; the construction of crossings over the Liao River, and the
-hutting of three army corps. I at once took steps also to strengthen
-our advance guard on the Ya-lu, which was some 133 miles distant. Two
-regiments of the 6th East Siberian Rifle Division were sent there, in
-addition to the third battalions for the regiments of the 3rd East
-Siberian Rifle Division. By the time, therefore, that the enemy began
-crossing the Ya-lu, the Eastern (Advance) Force had been increased
-to eighteen battalions, besides which the 21st East Siberian Rifle
-Regiment had been moved towards Ta-shih-chiao. The advance guard was
-under General Zasulitch. Meanwhile the units of the 1st Siberian
-Division were detained by Alexeieff in Harbin, so that, from the middle
-of March to the middle of April, the Manchurian Army did not receive a
-single battalion from the rear.
-
-Notwithstanding the orders Zasulitch had received to avoid a decisive
-engagement with the enemy, who had the superiority in numbers, on
-May 1 part of his force became hotly engaged in what developed into a
-serious fight at the Ya-lu, and after a disastrous finish his eastern
-force was withdrawn to the passes of the greater Fen-shui-ling range,
-which they reached on May 7. In this action only nine of our eighteen
-battalions took any active part, those of the 11th and 12th East
-Siberian Rifle Regiments showing great gallantry and determination.
-When asked why he had disobeyed the orders repeatedly given to him
-not to become entangled in a serious engagement, but to fall back on
-Feng-huang-cheng, Zasulitch gave as his reason that he had hoped to
-defeat the enemy. On May 5 the Japanese began debarking at Pi-tzu-wo,
-and a small force of all arms under General Zikoff was detached
-from the southern force in order to reconnoitre and ascertain the
-importance of this landing. The advance of this column incidentally
-enabled us to repair temporarily the portion of the line which the
-enemy had destroyed, and so to run a train-load of mélinite shells,
-machine-guns, and ammunition through to Port Arthur. The Emperor was
-fully alive to the danger of the situation caused by the dispersion
-of the Manchurian Army, and on May 11 telegraphed his orders for an
-immediate concentration. This was completed by the 14th, and the force
-was grouped on two points—Hai-cheng and Liao-yang. The former group
-consisted of twenty-seven battalions, twelve squadrons and _sotnias_,
-and eighty guns; the latter of twenty-eight battalions, six _sotnias_,
-and eighty-eight guns. The passes over the Fen-shui-ling range were
-guarded by small columns of infantry with guns, and advance and flank
-guards were thrown out. The independent cavalry, operating on our
-flanks east of the passes, was divided in two bodies, under Mischenko
-and Rennenkampf. West of Liao-yang was a small force under General
-Kossagovski, while five and a half battalions of the 1st Siberian
-Division lay at Mukden. At this time also, when the Viceroy returned to
-Port Arthur (after Admiral Makharoff’s death of April 13), the weakness
-of the place began to be shown up, and Alexeieff’s apprehensions as to
-its safety became acute. In a despatch of May 16 he questioned whether
-the place “would be able to hold out for more than two or three months,
-in spite of all the steps taken to strengthen its defences.” On April
-25 the Chief of the Viceroy’s Staff telegraphed to me that, owing to
-the inadequacy of the garrison, Alexeieff considered it essential that
-if the fortress were attacked, the field army should support it as
-energetically and rapidly as possible. Alexeieff was not singular in
-his pessimistic views, for Stössel also gave up hope of a successful
-defence of Port Arthur directly after he had so unnecessarily
-abandoned the Chin-chou position on May 27. On the 28th I received a
-telegram from him urging me to support him speedily and in strength.
-This opinion was again endorsed by Alexeieff, who telegraphed on June
-5 that “Port Arthur cannot strictly be called a storm-proof fortress,
-and it is a question whether it can even stand a siege of the length
-indicated in my telegram of May 16.”
-
-The result of this _volte-face_ on the part of Alexeieff as to the
-powers of resistance of the place was that he pressed me to send part
-of the army at once to assist it, though we were by no means ready for
-such an enterprise. On May 21 he wrote that he considered the moment
-in every way favourable for the army to assume the offensive in one of
-two directions—either towards the Ya-lu, with the object of defeating
-and throwing Kuroki back across the river, detaching a force to contain
-him there, and then moving on to relieve Port Arthur, or else direct on
-that place.
-
-It should be borne in mind that these instructions were given at a time
-when the position of only two of the hostile armies had been fixed. Of
-these, one—of three divisions and three reserve brigades—had forced
-the crossing of the Ya-lu, and the other—of three divisions—had landed
-near Pi-tzu-wo. Moreover, a landing, of the extent of which we had no
-information, was then being carried out at Ta-ku-shan. Consequently
-we did not know the destination of one-half of the enemy’s army, and
-were thus not in possession of two important pieces of knowledge which
-were necessary before any operations of a decisive character could be
-undertaken—namely, the position of the enemy’s main forces and their
-probable plan of operations. It was incumbent on us, therefore, to
-exercise great caution, and to keep our forces as far as possible
-concentrated, so as to be ready to meet the attack of two or even three
-armies. Concerning the two directions in which the Viceroy advocated
-an advance, the following few points suggest themselves. For any
-operations towards the Ya-lu—bearing in mind the necessity for guarding
-our flank and rear against one hostile force landing at Pi-tzu-wo,
-and possibly others landing near Kai-ping or Newchuang—not more than
-sixty to seventy battalions were available of the ninety-four which
-in the middle of May constituted the army; the whole of the food for
-these troops had to be brought up by rail, owing to the exhaustion of
-the local resources—never very plentiful—in the hilly country between
-Liao-yang and Feng-huang-cheng: we had not got the transport to do
-this, for our ten transport trains could only have carried a three or
-four days’ supply for a force of this size; the usual May and June
-rains would have made the movement of our guns and baggage at first
-difficult, and then impossible, and we had at that time no mountain
-artillery or pack transport; we were by no means well placed in the
-matter of artillery parks: the horses for those of the 5th, 6th, and
-9th East Siberian Rifle Artillery Divisions were still _en route_ to
-Harbin, while the 1st and 2nd Siberian Divisions had arrived without
-any. Finally, if Kuroki should fall back behind the Ya-lu without
-accepting battle, we should have been obliged to retire and leave at
-least an army corps to contain him. When the rainy season came on, this
-corps itself would have been obliged to withdraw, as with interrupted
-communications it would have been seriously threatened by Kuroki’s
-far larger force, well provided with both mountain artillery and
-pack transport. For these reasons an offensive towards the Ya-lu was
-impracticable.
-
-Under the conditions laid down by the Viceroy as to keeping screens on
-the Fen-shui Ling (Passes), and leaving a reserve at Hai-cheng[66]
-until such time as fresh reinforcements had been received, a direct
-advance on Port Arthur could only be made with one corps of twenty-four
-battalions. In view of the possibility of Kuroki taking the offensive
-in superior force (after reinforcement by the troops already beginning
-to land at Ta-ku-shan) against our cordon, which extended along the
-Fen-shui-ling range for more than sixty-six miles, and in view of the
-possibility of the Japanese cutting off any detachment moving on Port
-Arthur by landing somewhere in its rear, the despatch of this corps
-130 miles to the south could not but be considered a most risky and
-difficult operation.
-
-As our numerical weakness absolutely precluded a general assumption
-of the offensive on our part, I pointed out that by such a movement
-for the relief of Port Arthur we risked disorganizing the whole army.
-I also drew attention to the fact that, according to the report of
-Captain Gurko, who had just arrived from the fortress, its combatant
-strength amounted to at least 45,000 men (including sailors), and that
-the enemy could not therefore have any very overwhelming superiority.
-My views upon the inexpediency of any movement towards Port Arthur were
-communicated to the War Minister in my telegrams (Nos. 692 and 701)
-of May 28 and 30. But in a telegram of the 31st the Viceroy urgently
-requested me to advance to the relief of the fortress, and expressed
-the wish that four divisions should be detailed for the operation;
-while on June 6 he quoted to me a message from St. Petersburg in which
-it was stated that the time was “ripe for the Manchurian Army to assume
-the offensive.”
-
-At the end of May the first reinforcements—the 3rd Siberian
-Division—began to arrive in the concentration area. This enabled me to
-increase the force detailed for the advance into Kuan-tung up to 32
-battalions,[67] 22 squadrons and _sotnias_, and 100 guns. As a reserve
-to this force, the 2nd Brigade of the 31st Division was placed in the
-area Kai-ping—Hsiung-yao-cheng, and to a brigade of the 3rd Siberians
-was allotted the duty of watching the coast from Newchuang to the
-latter place. To hold Kuroki and the troops under Nodzu that had landed
-at Ta-ku-shan in check, 40 battalions, 52 _sotnias_, and 94 guns were
-left on the Fen-shui Ling (Passes), distributed over a length of more
-than sixty-six miles. The general reserve consisted of the 5th East
-Siberian Rifle Division at Liao-yang, and a brigade of the 3rd Siberian
-Division at Hai-cheng. Early in June the force detailed under General
-Shtakelberg for the operations towards Port Arthur began to concentrate
-at Te-li-ssu, with its advance guard at Wa-fang-tien. On the 13th the
-Japanese themselves began to advance from Pu-lan-tien, and by the
-evening of that day we had been able to rail two regiments of the 9th
-East Siberian Rifle Division into Te-li-ssu. On the 14th the enemy’s
-attack of our position there was repulsed, and on the following day
-Shtakelberg proposed to make a counter attack, having been reinforced
-at noon by the Tobolsk Regiment. However, the battle ended in our
-defeat, and we were forced to fall back. General Gerngross, who was
-in command of the 1st East Siberian Rifle Division, was wounded, but
-remained in action. Shtakelberg’s orders gave him freedom of action,
-but he was instructed not to accept decisive battle if the enemy were
-in superior numbers. Simultaneously with the enemy’s advance from the
-south, Kuroki moved forward on the 14th to the Ta Ling[68] (Pass)
-from Hsiu-yen, where three (according to some reports four) Japanese
-divisions were concentrated. Their 12th Division and three reserve
-brigades were left to watch our eastern force, and a further movement
-on Kai-ping, Ta-shih-chiao, or Hai-cheng was quite likely.
-
-In order to be in a position to check the combined advance of the
-two Japanese groups, I thought it advisable to strengthen our
-southern force, and therefore so rearranged our dispositions that
-87 out of 110 battalions were massed on the southern front, in the
-area Kai-ping—Hai-cheng, against Oku and Nogi. Fortunately for us,
-the critical position of our eastern front during the operations at
-Te-li-ssu was not appreciated by Kuroki, which fact favoured Count
-Keller’s demonstration towards Feng-huang-cheng in the middle of June.
-Otherwise Kuroki might have seized Liao-yang. On the 25th the enemy’s
-advance against our eastern force was commenced. On the 27th Keller
-withdrew some of his troops from the Fen-shui Ling (Passes) without
-opposition, and by July 1 the main body was concentrated seven miles
-east of Lang-tzu-shan and twenty-seven from Liao-yang. On June 27,
-without any serious engagement, but under pressure from the enemy, we
-abandoned the Fen-shui Ling (Passes), which they at once occupied.
-A few days previously—on June 23—about a division of the enemy had
-been located by Rennenkampf to the east of Sai-ma-chi. Believing that
-Hai-cheng constituted our greatest danger, as the enemy might, if they
-gained a success there, cut off Shtakelberg’s force close by, on the
-29th I concentrated forty-one battalions and eighteen _sotnias_ under
-Zasulitch at Hsi-mu-cheng, intending with them to hurl back the enemy
-on to their Hai-cheng line of advance. However, on the same day we
-discovered that those of the enemy who had moved at first from the Ta
-Ling (Pass) along the Hsi-mu-cheng road had again retired to it.
-
-This danger being temporarily averted, I ordered the 31st Infantry
-Division back to Hai-cheng. As the defence of Liao-yang from the east
-was the next most urgent matter, a brigade of the 9th Division, which
-had just arrived from Russia, was moved to Lang-tzu-shan to act as
-a reserve to the eastern force, which had been previously augmented
-by the return to it of two regiments of the 3rd East Siberian Rifle
-Division. The other brigade was sent, under General Hershelman, who
-commanded the division, to Hsi-kei-an village [at the junction of the
-Liao-yang and Mukden roads], so as to cover the left flank of the
-eastern force and guard the road to Mukden. Taking into consideration
-the considerable increase of the eastern force, I ordered Count Keller
-to take the offensive, so as again to get possession of the passes.
-He did so, but although he had forty battalions under his command,
-he advanced with only twenty-four. Though our troops were successful
-in the early hours of July 17, thanks to the gallant conduct of the
-24th East Siberian Rifles under Colonel Lechitski, the result of the
-day’s action was not favourable. Keller stopped the advance before
-even bringing into action his strong reserves, with the result that at
-nightfall the eastern force was once more on its former positions on
-the Yang-tzu Ling (Pass). On the 19th the brigade of the 9th Division
-was driven from its position at Chiao-tou, and fell back towards
-Hu-chia-tzu.[69]
-
-By the middle of July the disposition of the enemy’s forces was
-approximately as follows: Kuroki, with three field divisions and
-reserves, had captured the three Fen-shui Ling and Mo-Tien Ling
-(Passes), and, with his outposts thrown out on the roads to Liao-yang,
-had reached the valley of the Tang Ho, a tributary of the Tai-tzu Ho.
-Nodzu, with an army of approximately the same strength, had captured
-the passes on the Kai-ping, Ta-shih-chiao, and Hai-cheng roads, and
-had two divisions and a brigade in reserve on the Hai-cheng line of
-advance and one on the Ta-shih-chiao line. Oku, having moved up from
-Kuan-tung with his army of some four divisions, had driven back our
-outposts and occupied Kai-ping. Two brigades were left in reserve on
-the line Feng-huang-cheng—Kuan-tien-chang. Thus, according to our
-information, two armies of about 90 to 100 battalions had advanced
-against us from the east, and one of about 50 to 60 battalions from
-the south, whilst Nogi’s army of 3 divisions and 2 reserve brigades
-had been left to operate against Port Arthur. Our dispositions were
-briefly: 44 battalions against Kuroki’s army; 28 battalions on the
-line Fen-shui-ling—Hai-cheng against 2 divisions and 1 reserve brigade
-of Nodzu’s army; 48 battalions against Oku’s army, and 1 division of
-Nodzu’s; 16 battalions were in the general reserve at Hai-cheng, and
-four in garrison at Liao-yang. It must, however, be borne in mind that
-the effective strength of our battalions was very far short of the
-prescribed establishment.[70] From the beginning of the war up to July
-only 3,600 men were received in the way of drafts.
-
-With the above dispositions of the opposing forces, we should,
-according to the theory of the art of war, have been able to operate
-on “interior lines.” But for us this was extremely difficult, as,
-in the first place, we had not enough men to attain the necessary
-superiority over any one of the hostile groups without laying ourselves
-open to defeat by the other two; and, in the second, the rains had so
-seriously damaged the roads as to prevent the rapid movement (as we
-had heavy guns and baggage) necessary for successful action even on
-interior lines. Finally, as their bases (Korea, Ta-ku-shan, Pi-tzu-wo)
-were enveloping it was possible for each of their groups to refuse an
-unequal battle, and fall back without exposing its communications.
-Still, notwithstanding these unfavourable conditions, it was proposed
-to attack Kuroki, who menaced our communications most, at the earliest
-favourable moment. The troops which could be employed to strike him
-were distributed in two directions: twenty-four battalions of the
-eastern force on the main road from Liao-yang to Lang-tzu-shan, with
-its outposts on the Yang-tzu-ling heights; and twenty-four battalions
-of the 10th Army Corps on the line Liao-yang—Sai-ma-chi, with its
-outposts five miles short of Chiao-tou. Twenty-four battalions of the
-17th Corps were told off to remain as a reserve to these two groups at
-Liao-yang, while to prevent our left flank being turned, and to cover
-the Mukden road, the 11th Pskoff and 2nd Dagestan Regiments, which
-had just arrived from Russia, were ordered to Pen-hsi-hu. But on July
-23, when I inspected the 10th Corps, I found that it was absolutely
-incapable of operating in the hills, as it had no pack-animals. In
-fact, those companies on outpost duty on steep or high ground had
-actually to remain all day without food or water. As the units of the
-17th Corps were in a similar condition, it was impossible even to think
-of at once assuming the offensive.
-
-Meanwhile, on the 23rd and 24th, the enemy themselves took the
-initiative by attacking the 1st and 4th Siberian Corps south of
-Ta-shih-chiao. In spite of the fact that the position held by these
-corps was very extended (eleven miles), and was divided in the centre
-by a rocky ridge, and that its left flank could have been easily
-turned, all the enemy’s efforts were repulsed. The regiments of the 4th
-Siberians, who bore the heat and burden of the day, behaved splendidly,
-but “in view of the great superiority of the enemy and the development
-of an attack from the direction of Ta-ling,” Zarubaeff, who was given
-general instructions but allowed freedom of action, decided early
-on the morning of the 25th to withdraw his force towards Hai-cheng.
-On learning of this, I ordered General Sluchevski to make immediate
-preparations for offensive operations, and, if Kuroki should cross the
-Tai-tzu Ho and move towards Mukden, at once to advance, whether his
-troops were prepared for operating in the hills or not, and endeavour
-to strike Kuroki’s communications. However painful the abandonment
-of the port of Newchuang was for us after our tactical success at
-Ta-shih-chiao—for the enemy could now make use of it as a new base—the
-strategical position of our army was improved. With the departure of
-the southern force towards Hai-cheng, our greatly extended front was
-diminished by twenty miles.
-
-On July 31 the enemy advanced all along the line. As far as our
-southern group was concerned, their blow was directed against
-Zasulitch, who was holding a position west of Hsi-mu-cheng, especially
-against his right flank, which was driven back in spite of the devoted
-efforts of the Voronej and Kozloff Regiments. As any further success
-on their part threatened to cut off the 2nd Siberians from the main
-body of the southern group, I withdrew Zasulitch’s force to Hai-cheng.
-On the same day, the enemy’s operations on the eastern front were
-directed against both our groups. In the action on the Yang-tzu Ling
-(Pass) General Count Keller was killed, and the unexpected death of
-this gallant commander, together with the abandonment without orders
-by the 23rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment[71] of the position which
-protected his left flank, greatly influenced Kashtalinski (Keller’s
-successor) in coming to his too hasty decision to withdraw the force
-to Lang-tzu-shan. At the same time the 10th Corps was taken partly by
-surprise,[72] and driven from its advanced posts towards Hu-chia-tzu.
-Sluchevski, learning of the retirement of the eastern force towards
-Lang-tzu-shan, and fearing for his right flank, then withdrew his corps
-to An-ping. In these operations the corps commander displayed a lack of
-energy, and several regiments showed great unsteadiness, especially the
-reservists, many of whom actually left the ranks during the progress of
-the fight.
-
-The complicated nature of the situation now necessitated extreme
-caution on our part, lest anything should prevent our concentration in
-strength at Liao-yang, and there fighting a decisive battle against all
-three Japanese armies with some hope of success. From Liao-yang to our
-position on the eastern front, An-ping–Lang-tzu-shan, was twenty miles,
-and to Hai-cheng forty miles. In order to insure the movement of the
-troops on the southern front to their positions at Liao-yang in good
-time, it was necessary to move them from Hai-cheng to the position at
-An-shan-chan—fifteen miles from Liao-yang—which was fortified at the
-beginning of the war. The retirement began early on August 2, and on
-the following day the troops were concentrated on the position. In my
-report to the Tsar of August 4, I gave the following general reasons
-for withdrawing to the line An-shan-chan–Lang-tzu-shan–An-ping after
-the July fighting:
-
-1. The Japanese superiority in numbers.
-
-2. They were accustomed to hills and hot weather; they were younger,
-carried lighter loads, and had numerous mountain artillery and pack
-transport.
-
-3. Their energetic and intelligent leadership.
-
-4. The extraordinary patriotism and military spirit of their troops; and
-
-5. The lack of such a spirit on our side (caused by general ignorance
-of what we were fighting for).
-
-Every moment gained at the beginning of August was of great importance
-to us, as the units of the 5th Siberians, which the Viceroy agreed
-to send to the front—instead of into the Pri-Amur district, as was
-proposed earlier—should have been beginning to arrive in Liao-yang.
-Orders were therefore issued to fortify an advanced position half a
-march from Liao-yang in addition to the main position at that place,
-and for this time was required. Still, in spite of the obvious and
-immense importance of every day we gained by delaying the enemy’s
-advance, General Bilderling, who had taken over the command of our
-eastern front from July 31, wrote that it was necessary to withdraw
-his troops immediately without fighting to Liao-yang itself, while
-Sluchevski urged that the army should be concentrated still further
-north—in the area Liao-yang–Mukden. These officers reiterated the same
-opinions still more forcibly early in August, when the difficulty of
-moving their troops towards Liao-yang became greatly increased by the
-heavy rains. The Viceroy, who was much perturbed about the fate of Port
-Arthur by the news of the unfortunate result of the naval operations
-on August 10, and whose fears were increased by Stössel’s highly
-alarmist reports, was at the same time urging me (August 15) to assist
-the fortress and make an advance of some sort—though it were only a
-demonstration—towards Hai-cheng.
-
-On August 25 the enemy again advanced, and on the 26th attacked us
-on the eastern front, but their onslaught on the 3rd Siberians at
-Lang-tzu-shan and the attempt made to turn our right flank failed.
-Ivanoff (who was in command of the corps) handled his artillery most
-skilfully, and all units of this corps behaved well. The reserves
-sent up by Bilderling arrived in good time, but the enemy obtained a
-position on the left of the 10th Corps which enabled them to menace the
-retirement of this corps along the Tang Ho. In the hot fight on the
-26th again several units of the 10th Corps did splendidly. At this time
-a strong turning movement was discovered being developed against the
-left flank of our An-shan-chan position; but by delaying and inflicting
-heavy loss on the enemy on the Lang-tzu-shan and An-ping positions,
-all the corps were able to fall back on the advanced positions at
-Liao-yang, where the army was concentrated on August 29. At the
-beginning of the action there the army was short of its prescribed
-strength by 350 officers and 14,800 men. Excluding the men detailed for
-extra duty (on the communications, etc.), the average strength of our
-companies was only 140 to 150 rifles, and those companies that lost
-most heavily in the previous fights could muster less than 100.
-
-The detailed account of the battle of Liao-yang has long ago been
-submitted to Headquarters. The following is a general description of
-it: On August 30 and 31 the enemy attacked our advanced positions with
-great determination, especially that of the 1st and 3rd Siberians, but
-were repulsed everywhere with heavy loss. In this fight the regiments
-of the 1st, 9th, 3rd, 6th, and 5th East Siberian Rifle Divisions
-rivalled each other in steadiness and gallantry, while the dispositions
-made by Shtakelberg and Ivanoff were good. Our success, however, was
-by no means lightly gained. Our artillery expended as much as 100,000
-rounds of ammunition, leaving us with only 10,000 rounds in the army
-reserve. Moreover, excluding eight battalions furnishing guards and
-holding the works of the main Liao-yang position, on September 1 only
-sixteen battalions were left in the general reserve. During the 31st
-we observed that large bodies of Kuroki’s army were crossing on to
-the right bank of the Tai-tzu Ho. And, as the position held by the
-10th Corps (against which Kuroki should have been operating in full
-strength) had not for two days been subjected to any such determined
-attacks as that held by the 1st and 3rd Siberians, there was every
-reason to suppose that Kuroki’s main body was moving round to operate
-against our communications. Accordingly a decision had to be made of
-one of two alternatives: either—
-
-1. To contain Kuroki with a small force and advance to the south
-against Oku and Nodzu; or—
-
-2. To fall back on the main Liao-yang position, leave as few troops
-as possible to defend it, and then attack in force that portion of
-Kuroki’s army which was moving round our left, and endeavour to crush
-it by driving it back on the Tai-tzu Ho, which at that time of the year
-was unfordable except at a few points.
-
-As regards the first, even if we were successful against Oku and Nodzu,
-they could always fall back on their communications if in difficulties,
-and so draw us away from Liao-yang, while any success by Kuroki which
-might lead to an attack by him on our communications would threaten
-us with catastrophe.[73] In order to collect sufficient force to
-move against the two armies, it would have been necessary to have
-contained Kuroki with only such troops as were on the right bank of the
-river—namely, the 17th Corps and two regiments of the 54th Division
-(total, forty battalions) under Bilderling. But as these troops were
-not yet seasoned, it was impossible to rely on their performing such an
-extremely difficult task as that of holding in check Kuroki’s superior
-numbers on the necessarily extended position they would have to occupy
-[this fear was justified by subsequent events]. These considerations
-led to the adoption of the second alternative.
-
-On the 31st, under cover of darkness and without being pressed, we
-began the evacuation of the advanced positions, which had already been
-of value to us, inasmuch as the enemy had been weakened by the losses
-incurred in attacking them. By the following morning as many as 100
-battalions, with artillery and cavalry, had crossed on to the right
-bank of the river. The Japanese did not occupy our abandoned positions
-till the evening of that date, when they began to shell Liao-yang.
-The general disposition of the army was as follows: 56 battalions, 10
-_sotnias_, and 144 guns (under Zarubaeff) were still on the left bank;
-30 battalions, 5 _sotnias_, and 84 guns were on the right for the
-defence of Liao-yang itself. In addition to the small columns detailed
-to guard our flanks and rear, the remainder of the army, totalling
-93 battalions, 73 squadrons and _sotnias_, and 352 guns, were told
-off to attack Kuroki. But in making this calculation as to the number
-of battalions available, it is essential to explain a very important
-factor. During the whole period of the war from its commencement
-till August only 6,000 men had been received at the front as drafts
-to repair wastage, and, as I have said, we began the fighting round
-Liao-yang with a shortage of 15,000 men. The result of this, taken
-in connection with the great number of men that had to be detached
-for various non-combatant duties, and also our losses in the fighting
-that had already taken place in the neighbourhood, was that the actual
-strength of the ninety-three battalions was, on September 1, only from
-50,000 to 55,000 rifles. For instance, the twenty-one battalions
-comprising the 10th Corps (which took part in the affair of September
-2) only numbered 12,000 rifles, and the total of the twenty-four
-battalions of the 1st Siberians only amounted to 10,000. Kuroki’s army,
-on the other hand, was calculated to number approximately from 65,000
-to 70,000 men. The plan of operations for the troops crossing on to the
-right bank was as follows: The force was to deploy between the position
-held by the 17th Corps near the village of Hsi-kuan-tun and the heights
-near the Yen-tai mines, which were to have been held by Orloff’s force
-of thirteen battalions. Using the Hsi-kuan-tun position as a pivot,
-the army was to throw its left forward so as to strike the Japanese in
-flank. The position for the 17th Corps near this village was chosen by
-Bilderling in preference to that which had been prepared for defence
-beforehand on the right bank on the line San-chia-tzu–Ta-tzu-pu, and
-sufficient attention was not paid to its fortification. All that was
-done was to dig a few trenches, and no field of fire had even been
-cleared in the _kao-liang_ crops. The consequence was that, in the
-early morning of September 2, the enemy drove the 137th Niejinsk
-Regiment from the peak north-east of this place, which constituted the
-left flank position of the 17th Corps, and to regain this hill became
-the first thing we had to do. For this Bilderling was given forty-four
-battalions, with the 3rd Siberians in reserve, while the 1st Siberians
-and Orloff’s column were to assist by threatening the Japanese right.
-Both Bilderling and Shtakelberg had been instructed as to what was
-expected of them, but they were given an absolutely free hand as to
-their dispositions. Notwithstanding the large force under Bilderling’s
-command, the operations failed in their object. Although the peak was
-recaptured on the evening of the 2nd, we were again driven off during
-the night, and had to fall back some two miles, only halting on the
-Erh-ta-ho heights.
-
-Orloff, on the other hand, moved from his position on the heights south
-of the Yen-tai mines before he ought to have done, without waiting for
-the arrival of the 1st Siberians. His troops became at once immersed
-in a perfect sea of _kao-liang_, and were fired on from front and
-flank; parts of the column were seized with panic, and the whole force
-retreated in disorder towards Yen-tai station. A large portion even
-went as far as the station itself. This sudden and unexpected departure
-from the field of 12,000 men had a disastrous result on this flank. We
-lost an excellent position, which should have served as the support for
-our advance from the left, and the enemy, spreading away to the north,
-had by 5 p.m., in spite of the gallant efforts of Samsonoff and his
-Siberian Cossacks, occupied the whole range of heights and the Yen-tai
-mines. With the occupation of these heights the whole of our left was
-endangered. At midnight Shtakelberg reported that, owing to his heavy
-losses in the preceding battles, he would not be able to take the
-offensive, or even to accept battle on the following day.
-
-Meanwhile the armies of Oku and Nodzu had advanced in force against
-Liao-yang, but had been driven back by Zarubaeff. Here the main burden
-of the fighting fell on the 5th East Siberian Rifle Division, which
-behaved extremely well, as did the regiments of the 4th Siberians. On
-the night of the 3rd, however, Zarubaeff reported that, though the
-enemy had been repulsed, he had only three battalions left in reserve,
-and needed reinforcements and gun ammunition. At the same time a
-message came in from Lubavin, who was covering the Pen-hsi-hu–Mukden
-line, informing me of his retirement to the Tung-chia-fen Ling (Pass),
-sixteen miles from Mukden. From this it is evident that if, choosing
-the first alternative, we had marched against Oku and Nodzu, Kuroki
-could most certainly have driven back the 17th Corps and 54th Division,
-and have seized the railway in rear of our troops moving southwards.
-As we knew, however, that Kuroki was not operating against us with his
-main body during the battle of the 2nd, we realized it might have been
-sent to turn our left. Such being the situation, we had to decide
-whether to maintain our hold on the river, or to abandon Liao-yang
-and retire to the position on the left bank of the Hun Ho in front of
-Mukden, which had been already fortified.
-
-As regards the first alternative, it seemed possible that we might,
-by an immense effort and skilful manœuvring, be able to hold on to
-Liao-yang and throw Kuroki behind the Tai-tzu Ho. But for this it was
-essential to draw in the force that had crossed to the right bank, and
-to deploy it on a fresh line farther to the north, so that we might be
-able to attack the enemy’s position on the heights near the Yen-tai
-mines from the north as well as from the west. Such a movement would
-have exposed our right, and would have isolated the position still
-held by the 17th Corps on the right bank of the river. The Japanese
-might drive it in and issue in rear of the troops at Liao-yang, for
-that place was only eleven miles distant from the position to which
-the 17th Corps would have had to retire if it were driven back. The
-defenders of Liao-yang, being then attacked by Oku and Nodzu combined,
-would be in a critical situation. As regards the second alternative,
-a retirement on Mukden presented great disadvantages and dangers. It
-increased the distance to Port Arthur; it would have to be carried out
-under pressure from the enemy in front and on the left, and the roads
-had been so much damaged by rain that it was doubtful whether we
-should succeed in getting our transport or even artillery to Mukden.
-The abandonment of Liao-yang could not fail both to depress the troops
-who had so gallantly defended it and encourage the enemy. But, on
-the other hand, we should be extricated by such a retirement from a
-situation in which we were threatened in front and flank. A successful
-withdrawal would also give time for the 1st Army Corps to come up, and,
-what was not less important, for us to replenish artillery ammunition,
-of which we were very short. Besides this, the banks of the Tai-tzu Ho
-were specially unsuited for our troops, as they were almost entirely
-covered with _kao-liang_. Our men were unused to this, lost their heads
-whenever they got into it, and were very liable to panic.
-
-On the whole, our past experiences of the offensive did not inspire any
-confidence that we should be able to cope with the difficult situation
-implied by a retention of Liao-yang. I decided, therefore, on the
-retirement towards Mukden, which was carried out by September 7. The
-most difficult work, especially on the early morning of the 5th, fell
-to the lot of the 1st Siberians, who had to beat off Kuroki’s force
-attacking from the east; this they did with success, and without losing
-a single trophy, in spite of the difficulties in which we were placed.
-
-A general account of the operations round Liao-yang, and a statement
-of all the considerations which led to our retirement, were telegraphed
-to the Emperor on September 11. On the 14th the army was made happy by
-the following gracious message, which I received from His Majesty:
-
- “From your reports of the fighting at Liao-yang, I appreciate
- that it was impossible for you to have held that position
- longer without risk of being completely cut off from your
- communications. Under such conditions, and in face of the
- existing difficulties, the retirement of the whole force across
- country without the loss of guns or baggage was a brilliant
- feat of arms. I thank you and the gallant troops under your
- command for their heroic conduct and enduring self-sacrifice.
- May God help you all!”
-
-Upon retirement, our troops were grouped in two principal bodies—
-
-1. The defence of the main position on the left bank of the Hun Ho was
-entrusted to the 10th and 17th Corps under Bilderling, to whom was
-subordinated Dembovski’s force of 10 battalions of the 5th Siberians,
-which was guarding the near right flank of the main position.
-Altogether, the troops under Bilderling’s command amounted to 75
-battalions, 53 squadrons and _sotnias_, 190 guns, 24 mortars, and 3
-sapper battalions.
-
-2. The protection of the left flank from Fu-shun to the west was
-entrusted to Ivanoff’s force, consisting of the 2nd and 3rd Brigades of
-the 4th and some units of the 5th Siberians (total, 62 battalions, 26
-_sotnias_, 128 guns, and 2 sapper battalions).
-
-3. To keep touch between these two main groups were the 1st Siberians
-under Shtakelberg (total, 24 battalions, 10 squadrons and _sotnias_, 56
-guns, and 1 sapper battalion). To his force was entrusted the defence
-of the portion of the Hun Ho from Chiu-tien to Pu-ling.
-
-4. The general reserve was disposed in two groups—
-
-(_a_) 4th Siberians (24 battalions, 6 squadrons, 96 guns, 12 mortars,
-and 1 sapper battalion) on the line Erh-tai-tzu–Khou-kha.[74]
-
-(_b_) 1st Army Corps, which concentrated in Mukden early in
-September[75] (32 battalions, 6 squadrons, 96 guns, 1 sapper
-battalion), along the Mandarin road on the line Pu-ho–Ta-wa.
-
-5. The protection of the extreme right was entrusted to Kossagovski
-(6-1/2 battalions, 9 squadrons, 14 guns), the main body of which was at
-Kao-li-tun on the Liao.
-
-6. A brigade of the 6th Siberians (8 battalions and 1-1/2 _sotnias_)
-was concentrated at Tieh-ling to protect our communications.
-
-7. The Trans-Baikal and Ural Cossack Brigades which did not belong to
-any corps were joined together under the command of Mischenko (21
-_sotnias_ and 8 guns).
-
-Besides putting the finishing touches to the main position at Mukden,
-which had already been fortified, the defensive work consisted of
-strengthening the Fu-liang and Fu-shun positions, and throwing up some
-works on the right bank of the Hun Ho between Mukden and Fu-liang. The
-object of these was to check the enemy crossing until our reserves
-could come up. In addition to this, much was done to improve the
-communications towards Tieh-ling. On September 20 I learned by telegram
-from the Viceroy of the formation of the 2nd Manchurian Army. This was
-to comprise the 6th Siberians and 8th Army Corps, five Rifle brigades
-from Russia, a Cossack infantry brigade, the 4th Don and 2nd Caucasian
-Cossack Divisions, and three dragoon regiments of the 10th Cavalry
-Division. General Grippenberg was appointed to the command of this
-force on September 24.
-
-Our position at Mukden had some very grave defects.
-
-1. Its left flank (Fu-liang–Fu-shun) was, owing to the bend in the Hun
-Ho to the north-east of Mukden, thrown much too far back. If the enemy
-were successful on this flank, and came out on to our communications,
-we should be compelled to abandon the main position prematurely.
-
-2. Almost immediately in rear of the position was the River Hun, which
-was at the time unfordable, and could only be crossed by bridges.
-Behind the river was the town itself.
-
-3. The Fu-shun coal-mines, which were most necessary to us (for railway
-fuel), were right in front of the position.
-
-These drawbacks, as well as our great desire to prevent any of the
-enemy’s forces being detached for the reinforcement of Nogi’s besieging
-army, drove us to try and take the offensive as soon as possible.
-
-Meanwhile the drafts whereby to replace our losses were still arriving
-at the front very slowly; during July and August only 4,200 men were
-received. On September 29 the eight corps composing the Manchurian Army
-could only muster 151,000 rifles, the deficit in officers being 670.
-Besides these corps, the Viceroy put the 6th Siberian Corps[76] under
-my command, with the proviso that it should not be included in the
-army, and should not be split up.[77] It was concentrated at Mukden on
-October 8. My requests that the units of the 1st Siberian Division—some
-ten battalions—which were not included in the army, might be made over
-to me were not acceded to. But although we were really too weak, an
-advance seemed more advantageous than waiting for the enemy to attack,
-for there seemed little chance of our being able to hold our ground on
-the Mukden positions.
-
-According to our information, the Japanese main forces had crossed
-on to the right bank of the Tai-tzu Ho, between Liao-yang and
-Pen-hsi-hu, and were disposed approximately as follows: In the
-centre, behind the line Yen-tai station–Yen-tai mines, six divisions
-with brigades in reserve; on the right, écheloned along the line
-Pan-chia-pu-tzu–Pen-hsi-hu, two divisions with brigades in reserve;
-on the left, more or less along the line San-de-pu–Sha-tai-tzu, two
-divisions with their reserves. The enemy had fortified their positions
-on the Yen-tai heights and at Pan-chia-pu-tzu. It was decided,
-therefore, that the first object of our advance was to hurl the
-Japanese back on to the left bank of the Tai-tzu Ho. To do this we
-were to deliver a frontal attack, and at the same time endeavour to
-turn their right, so that, if successful, we should dislodge them from
-the hills. Orders were issued for the forward movement to commence on
-October 5. The following was the plan of advance decided upon by me:
-
-1. _Western Force._—This force, under Bilderling, consisting of the
-10th and 17th Corps (total, 64 battalions, 40 squadrons and _sotnias_,
-196 guns, and 2 sapper battalions), was to make a demonstration in
-front against the enemy’s main force.
-
-2. _Eastern Force._—This force, under Shtakelberg, consisting of
-the 1st, 2nd, and 3rd Siberians (total, 73 battalions, 29 squadrons
-and _sotnias_, 142 guns, 6 mortars, 32 machine-guns, and 3 sapper
-battalions), was to attack the right flank of the enemy, moving round
-it from the east. The first objective of this force was the enemy’s
-positions at Pan-chia-pu-tzu.[78]
-
-3. _The General Reserve._—This, consisting of the 1st Army Corps and
-4th Siberians, with Mischenko’s brigade (total, 56 battalions, 20
-_sotnias_, 208 guns, 30 mortars, and 2 sapper battalions), was to move
-up in rear of the interval between the western and eastern forces.
-
-4. _The 6th Siberians_ (32 battalions, 6 _sotnias_, 96 guns, and 1
-sapper battalion) was to remain temporarily in Mukden (with a brigade
-at Tieh-ling), so that it might either be moved to a flank or added to
-the reserve, according as the operations developed.
-
-5. _Flank Guards._—A force of 30-1/2 battalions, 39 _sotnias_, 82 guns,
-and 1 sapper battalion was told off to protect the flanks. Of this,
-19-1/2 battalions, 25 _sotnias_, 64 guns, and the sapper battalion were
-to take part in the attack of the enemy’s position while keeping touch
-with Dembovski’s and Rennenkampf’s columns of the eastern and western
-forces respectively.
-
-6. Should the enemy concentrate towards their right, an endeavour
-was to be made to break through their centre in the direction of the
-Yen-tai mines by the 6th Siberians, with Bilderling’s force and the
-general reserve.
-
-The advance began on October 5, and meeting with no determined
-opposition, we on the 9th occupied the following positions:
-
-_Western Force._—The line Shih-li-ho–Ta-pu.
-
-_Eastern Force._—The line San-chia-tzu–Shang-shan-tzu–Ununin.
-
-_In the Centre._—By the range of hills south of Khaamatan (with the
-assistance of a portion of the general reserve).
-
-The 4th Siberians, especially the Tomsk, Barnaul, and Irkutsk
-Regiments, did excellent work, as did Mischenko’s mounted force,
-reinforced by the 4th East Siberian Rifle Regiment. Rennenkampf’s
-column moved out into the Tai-tzu Ho Valley, and worked along both
-banks of the river towards Pen-hsi-hu. Though the independent
-regiments of the 1st and 3rd Siberians suffered heavily, overcame
-the difficulties of the locality, and made altogether a gallant bid
-for success, they failed in their object, mainly owing to the lack
-of co-ordination in the plan of operations, and of cohesion in its
-execution. On the evening of the 10th the Japanese themselves took the
-offensive, having concentrated their main forces opposite our right and
-centre. Bilderling’s western force, after fighting desperately against
-heavy odds and losing forty-six guns, fell back on the 12th on to the
-main position on the Sha Ho. Our centre, augmented by the 1st Corps,
-found itself, in consequence, too far forward, and was obliged on the
-evening of the 13th to commence a retirement on to the high ground near
-the position of the western force, and occupied the heights south of
-Erh-ta-ho. From the 10th to the 12th Shtakelberg’s eastern force made a
-gallant but vain endeavour to get possession of the almost inaccessible
-ridges to the north of the road from Pen-hsi-hu to the Yen-tai mines.
-His dangerous position, thirteen miles in advance, and the necessity
-for collecting enough troops in our centre to repulse the further
-attacks of the enemy’s main body, compelled me on the 12th to order him
-to withdraw to the high ground of the position occupied by the rest of
-the army, and to move a portion of his force in support of our centre.
-The enemy’s further attempts to drive us from the ground we were
-holding were unsuccessful, though we were hard pressed on the Sha Ho,
-and the general desire to retire on our Mukden positions became very
-great. In a night attack on the 15th the enemy succeeded in dislodging
-two regiments of the 22nd Division from the “One Tree Peak,” which they
-were holding on the left bank of the Sha Ho between the villages of
-Sha-ho-pu and Sha-ho-tung. The loss of this height, which commanded us
-on the right bank of the river, and constituted, so to speak, the key
-of our position, by no means improved the situation. On the evening of
-the 16th, therefore, I concentrated a force of twenty-five battalions
-under Putiloff, whom I ordered to attack the enemy in front and flank.
-After desperate hand-to-hand fighting, he succeeded on the morning of
-the 17th in driving them off the heights, and captured eleven guns, one
-machine-gun, many limbers and waggons. This episode put the finishing
-touch to the major operations of both sides, and we now proceeded to
-pass the winter in our respective positions in close touch with one
-another.
-
-The reasons of the indecisive issue to the battle were:
-
-1. Shtakelberg’s unskilful disposition of the large force put under his
-command, which was (as we discovered later) almost three times the size
-of that opposed to him.
-
-2. The absence of proper control and generalship among senior
-commanders of the western force.
-
-3. The abortive operations of, and lack of energy displayed by the
-officer commanding the 10th Corps. (Among other things, he not only
-retired quite unnecessarily on October 12 from his position on the left
-bank of the Sha Ho, but also neglected to warn his neighbour in command
-of the 1st Corps, who was in consequence placed in a critical position.)
-
-4. The useless manœuvres of the officer commanding the 31st Division,
-who several times ordered one of his brigades to retire without due
-cause.
-
-5. The unsteadiness of many units.[79]
-
-6. The lack of cohesion in the operations of the 6th Siberians (on the
-right of the western force).
-
-During this battle of the Sha Ho the senior commanders—Generals
-Bilderling and Shtakelberg—were given instructions as to what was
-required of them generally, but were left to make their dispositions
-independently.
-
-As will be seen from the above brief sketch of events, the September
-fighting had no decisive results. The two sides suffered equally, and
-lost about 50,000 men each. Still, our assumption of the offensive,
-even with inadequate numbers, greatly improved our strategical
-position by moving our general front thirteen miles forward in front of
-Mukden, and afforded us a matter of four and a half months of time. As
-soon as we occupied the positions on the Sha Ho from Shou-lin-tzu on
-the right flank to Kao-tu-ling on the left, we set to work fortifying
-them. Besides ten battalions of the 1st Corps, the whole of the 1st
-Siberians and twenty-four battalions of the 6th Corps were moved into
-the general reserve in rear of the centre, and we were confident that
-we would be able to hold our ground. We still had, however, a very
-small number of men—indeed, in some units the shortage was alarming.
-The total strength of the 252 battalions comprising our army on October
-25 was only 140,000 rifles, which works out at an average strength of
-550 per battalion, while many battalions could not even muster 400
-men. Not less disquieting was the lack of officers, which now amounted
-in the infantry alone to over 2,700, or an average deficiency per
-battalion of eleven. Meanwhile the drafts to repair wastage were still
-coming up in driblets. In October and November we only received some
-13,000 men. It was not till December 8 that they began to reach us in
-any quantity; during that month and the first half of January 72,000
-arrived. I reported upon this vital question in my letters to the Tsar
-of October 26 and November 5.
-
-In his despatches of October 23 and 26 His Majesty was pleased to
-inform me that I had been appointed to the supreme command of all the
-forces in the Far East, that General Linievitch was appointed to the
-command of the 1st, and General Baron Kaulbars to the command of the
-3rd Army.[80] My first act was to augment the army by adding to it the
-whole of the 1st Siberian and 61st Divisions, the latter of which was
-intended by Alexeieff for the Pri-Amur district. This at once added
-20,000 rifles to the field army; the leading units also of the 8th
-Corps began to arrive at the beginning of November, and at the end of
-the month were concentrated at Mukden. But the main thing which still
-remained to be done was the improvement of our railway communication
-with Russia, which became more than ever necessary on account of the
-increased army to be supplied.
-
-On November 28 the effective strength of all three armies, including
-the 8th Corps, amounted to 210,000 men. Our information as to the enemy
-put their strength at this date at about 200,000. Although we were
-rather superior in numbers, our superiority was too slight to insure
-a successful offensive under the particularly difficult conditions
-offered by the intense cold weather, and the fact that the enemy’s
-positions were strongly fortified. The low temperature rendered the
-lightest trench work practically impossible, and made the provision of
-a large amount of warm clothing an absolute necessity. Our preparations
-for the offensive, as regards making Mukden an intermediate base and
-our engineering work, began in November. In addition to the branch
-railway to the Fu-shun mines, which was completed that month, a branch
-was laid to the right flank of our dispositions,[81] and a field line
-to Rennenkampf’s force on the left.[82] But still, when December came
-we were not ready to advance, mainly owing to the delay in railway
-construction, largely caused by the weather. Although I was informed
-by the War Minister, in a communication dated November 8, that the
-running capacity of the Siberian and Trans-Baikal lines would from
-October 28 be brought up to twelve pairs of military trains, we never
-received as many right up to the end of the war. The result of this was
-that the expected drafts, as well as the three Rifle brigades, arrived
-about ten days later than we had calculated on receiving them, and
-there was great delay in the distribution of warm clothing to the men,
-particularly felt boots. Very great difficulty also was experienced in
-collecting the food-supplies necessary for the forward movement, and
-in organizing new transport units.
-
-When, in the middle of December, I summoned a meeting of the three
-army commanders and consulted them as to the possible date of an
-advance, in view of the critical state of affairs at Port Arthur, they
-unanimously stated that it was essential to await the arrival of the
-whole of the 16th Corps. On receiving the news of the surrender of
-the fortress, I again asked their opinions as to whether—in view of
-Oyama’s armies being probably augmented by that of Nogi—they did not
-consider it desirable to commence an advance at an earlier date. But
-they still adhered to their former opinion, modifying it only to the
-extent that we should begin our advance while this corps was arriving,
-and not wait until its concentration was completed. As regards the
-actual plan of the offensive operations, the opinions of the three
-army commanders were the same—namely, that we should deliver the
-main blow with as large a force as possible at the enemy’s left, and
-envelop it. The only difference of opinion was as to the depth of this
-envelopment. The boldest and most original plan was that proposed by
-Grippenberg—namely, that he should undertake, with the 2nd Army, a
-wide turning movement—almost an envelopment—of the enemy’s left in the
-direction of Yen-tai station, and cut himself free from the 3rd Army.
-He considered it necessary to have seven corps under his command for
-this operation. This, however, was impracticable, as, even without
-leaving any troops as a general reserve, besides the 16th Corps then
-arriving, only four corps could be given him—namely, the 8th, 10th,
-1st Siberian, and the Composite Rifle Corps. General Linievitch, who
-was apprehensive that the enemy might attack the 1st Army, thought
-it dangerous to give Grippenberg the 1st Siberians. Kaulbars, in his
-turn, thought it impossible, without grave risk of the 3rd Army being
-driven from its positions, to detach any portion of it to the 2nd Army.
-Finally, Grippenberg’s plan, though it promised great advantages in the
-event of success, seemed very risky, for it extended our already long
-front still more, and made it so attenuated that it would be liable to
-be broken by a determined attack at any point. Moreover, no general
-reserve would be left at my disposal with which to deal with any
-unforeseen emergency.
-
-After proposing the above bold plan, Grippenberg suddenly went to the
-other extreme, and became pessimistic. For instance, on January 13,
-he informed me that the campaign was as good as lost, that we ought
-to retire to Harbin, hold on to that point and Vladivostok, and from
-thence move with two armies “in other directions.” On my asking him
-which were the directions in which we should move, he gave no clear
-explanation. The same idea was expressed also in a report received on
-the same day (dated January 12) from General Ruzski, the Chief of the
-Staff of the 2nd Army. In it was contained Grippenberg’s opinion that
-it was impossible for us to dream of being successful after Nogi’s
-arrival, and that—
-
- “The officer commanding the Army accordingly inclines to the
- conclusion that, under the circumstances, the best solution of
- the question would be to fall back to Mukden, or further if
- necessary, and there to await a favourable opportunity to take
- the offensive.”
-
-However, it was finally decided, in accordance with the opinions of
-Linievitch and Kaulbars, and with the consent of Grippenberg, to take
-the offensive in January, on the condition that complete and direct
-touch was maintained between all three armies.
-
-According to our information, the strength of the Japanese armies was
-approximately as follows:
-
- Kuroki’s Army 68 battalions, 21 squadrons,
- and 204 guns
- Nodzu’s Army 50 battalions, 11 squadrons,
- and 168 guns
- Oku’s Army 60 battalions, 29 squadrons,
- and 234 guns
-
-or a total in all three armies under Oyama of 178 battalions, 61
-squadrons, and 606 guns. It was calculated that they could put 200,000
-rifles in the field against us on January 14, 1905. As a matter of
-fact, we underestimated the number. From the prisoners we took we knew
-accurately what was going on in their 1st Army, but we were unable to
-ascertain with sufficient accuracy and in good time what was happening
-in the rear, or what reinforcements were being received. Their
-fortified positions were as follows: The left flank up to the village
-of Hsiao-tung-kou was held by Oku. In the centre was Nodzu’s army. On
-the right was Kuroki. Opposite Rennenkampf, on our extreme left, was a
-force under Kavamura amounting to about 15,000 to 20,000 men. Nogi’s
-army was estimated at 72 battalions, 5 squadrons, and 156 guns; but
-which units had reached Oyama, and how they were grouped, we did not
-know.
-
-In order to induce the enemy to detach as many men as possible for
-their line of communications, and so weaken their front, to handicap
-their supply arrangements, and to stop the rail transport of Nogi’s
-units to the front, a raid by a mounted force[83] was organized against
-their line of communications. The objects of this raid, which was under
-Mischenko, were:
-
-1. To seize Newchuang station, and destroy the large stocks of
-food-supplies collected there; and—
-
-2. To blow up the railway-bridges and destroy the track on the portion
-of the line from Ta-shih-chiao to Kai-ping.
-
-Neither object was fully attained, chiefly owing to the slowness with
-which the force moved. Individual episodes that occurred are, however,
-very instructive, and show that our cavalry is quite fitted to perform
-the most self-sacrificing duties.
-
-The plan agreed upon for the main advance was explained in my orders of
-January 19. Just as it had been in September, our primary object was to
-drive the enemy behind the Tai-tzu Ho, and to inflict on him as much
-damage as possible. The force selected for our first attentions was
-Oku’s left-flank army, the left wing of which was to be enveloped. The
-advance of the 1st and 3rd Armies against the positions held by Nodzu
-and Kuroki were to be started and developed in accordance with, and
-depending upon, the measure of success attending the efforts of the 2nd
-and 3rd Armies to capture the enemy’s left-flank positions on the Sha
-Ho. The armies were given the following tasks:
-
-1. The 2nd Army was to gain possession of the line of Japanese
-works San-de-pu–Lita-jen-tun–Ta-tai–San-chia-tzu, and then the line
-Tsun-lun-ian-tun–Ta-ta-san-pu along the Sha Ho. And, conformably to
-the enemy’s action and the success attained by the 3rd Army, it was,
-while throwing a strong containing force to the south, to develop its
-operations towards the line San-tia-tzu–Shih-li-ho, and on the heights
-south of the last village.
-
-2. The 3rd Army was to capture the line of works Chang-ling-pu–Ling-
-shen-pu, and then the line along the Sha Ho from the latter point to
-Hun-ling-pu inclusive. And, conformably to the enemy’s action and the
-successes attained by the 2nd Army, it was to develop its operations
-towards the line Hei-te-kai Peak–Hung-pao Shan Peak.
-
-3. The 1st Army was to co-operate in the capture of Hou-te-kai
-Peak, and seize the heights near the villages of Cheng-san-lin-tzu
-and Shih-shan-tzu. And according to the action of the enemy and
-the successes attained by the 2nd and 3rd Armies, it was, with the
-assistance of the 3rd Army, to develop its operations towards the
-positions near the villages Ta-pu, San-chia-tzu, Shan-lu-ho-tzu, which
-we had occupied on the 10th to 12th October.
-
-In my orders of January 21 it was clearly defined that the above scheme
-would require modification dependent on the line of action adopted by
-the Japanese.
-
-If, contrary to our calculations, the enemy preferred to contain our
-2nd and 3rd Armies, and to fall with the rest of their forces on the
-1st, or on the interval between the 1st and 3rd Armies, the position
-would call for a very energetic advance against their flank by the 2nd
-and 3rd Armies.
-
-If they should at once fall back on their second line of positions
-without holding on to their first line, we should endeavour to turn
-their retirement into a disordered retreat.
-
-January 25 was the day fixed for the commencement of our advance,
-but, owing to the action of Grippenberg, who should have started the
-movement, the arrangements had to be altered. Almost a fortnight before
-our operations began our chances of success had been unfortunately
-reduced by certain dispositions made by him. The corps to be attached
-to his army were disposed as follows:
-
- 8th Corps South of the River Hun on
- both sides of the railway.
- 10th Corps At Bai-ta-pu village on the
- Mandarin road.
- 1st Siberians Behind the right flank of the
- 1st Army.
-
-The right of the 2nd Army between the 5th Siberians and the River
-Hun was only protected by cavalry, while a separate column of five
-battalions and two cavalry regiments under Kossagovski was on the right
-bank of the river. Notwithstanding the instructions issued that these
-dispositions were to hold good as long as possible, in order that we
-might conceal our intentions from the enemy, and also that the 10th
-Corps—intended to act as a reserve in the event of their striking at
-our centre—was not to be moved from its place without my knowledge, on
-January 14 Grippenberg transferred the 14th Division over on to the
-left bank of the Hun, and on the 16th, without letting me know, moved
-the 10th Corps closer to the right of the 3rd Army. These movements,
-of course, at once disclosed our intentions, and information soon came
-in that the enemy had, in their turn, commenced moving their troops
-westwards and fortifying opposite our new dispositions.
-
-The strength of the army was:
-
- +--------+-------+----------+-----+-------+-----+-------+-------+
- | | Bat- |Squadrons |Field|Mortars|Siege|Machine| Sapper|
- | |talions| and |-Guns| |-Guns| -Guns | Bat- |
- | | | Sotnias | | | | |talions|
- +--------+-------+----------+-----+-------+-----+-------+-------+
- |2nd Army| 120 | 92 | 412| 24 | 4 | 20 | 3 |
- |3rd Army| 72 | 18 | 294| 54 | 56 | 12 | 3 |
- |1st Army| 127 | 43 | 360| 12 | -- | 8 | 5 |
- |General | | | | | | | |
- | Reserve| 42 | -- | 120| -- | -- | 4 | -- |
- | +-------+----------+-----+-------+-----+-------+-------+
- | Total| 361 | 153 |1,186| 90[84]| 60 | 44 | 11 |
- +--------+-------+----------+-----+-------+-----+-------+-------+
-
-By the middle of January our numbers were, as regards rank and file,
-almost up to the authorized war strength, except in the Composite
-Rifle, 8th and 16th Corps, which had arrived short, so that the total
-of our forces was about 300,000 rifles. Although the establishment in
-officers was not fully complete, we now had some 5,600 in the infantry,
-which gave us on the average 15 per battalion.
-
-The advance began on January 25, as ordered, the 1st Siberians first
-seizing the village of Huan-lo-to-tzu, and later, after a hot fight
-lasting all day, the village of Hei-kou-tai;[85] Kossagovski’s
-column gained possession of Chi-tai-tzu and Ma-ma-kai without much
-difficulty. San-de-pu was not attacked that day. Of the 14th Division,
-which was intended for this attack, three regiments were sent on
-the 22nd to join Mischenko’s force, in order to strike a separate
-blow at a small Japanese force of all arms, which, according to
-spies, was in occupation of A-shih-niu. Mischenko moved against this
-place with his infantry, but found no enemy there, and so the 14th
-Division was marched forty miles on a fool’s errand, and only arrived
-at Chang-tan on the morning of the 26th, thoroughly exhausted. The
-action of the 25th for the village of Hei-kou-tai, which we only
-seized with great difficulty and after heavy loss, in spite of our
-overwhelming superiority, indicated that such strongly fortified
-points as San-de-pu and Lita-jen-tun could not be attacked without
-proper previous preparation, for we could not afford to waste men. I
-particularly underlined the necessity for this in my directions—“For
-the operations of the 2nd Army in capturing the enemy’s fortified
-line San-de-pu–Lita-jen-tun–Ta-tai,” dated January 15, and also in
-my instructions with regard to the 2nd Army’s operations against the
-Lita-jen-tun portion, dated January 16. Notwithstanding this, in the
-orders for the dispositions of the 2nd Army on January 26, it was to
-operate on the line from Hou-leng-tai to the Hun—over a distance of
-ten miles against a fortified position—and to capture the two strongly
-defended points, San-de-pu and Lita-jen-tun. Grippenberg, moreover,
-came to no understanding with Kaulbars as to co-operation, and it was
-only upon a request made by the commander of the 10th Corps that the
-commander of the 3rd Army arranged to co-operate with his artillery,
-and so prepare the assault of the 5th Siberians. Being by chance in
-Hsui-tun just at the time when the 10th Corps was making ready to carry
-out its allotted task, I was able to avert a dispersed attack (over a
-stretch of thirteen miles), and to prevent the employment of troops in
-an unprepared assault on strongly fortified positions. The attack to
-be made by the left flank of the 2nd Army on the morning of January 26
-was countermanded by Grippenberg himself, but the order was delayed
-in transmission, and if I had not been in Hsui-tun it would have taken
-place.
-
-The attack of the village of San-de-pu by the 14th Division alone
-failed, and it could hardly have done otherwise in the absence of
-any artillery preparation. Neither the ground round it nor the
-fortifications of the place itself had been studied, and no sketch-plan
-of it had been made or issued to the troops. The result was that our
-guns shelled a village called Pei-tai-tzu, north-east of San-de-pu,
-all day instead of the place itself, which they did not touch, while
-the 14th Division attacked and captured Pao-tai-tzu (to the west of
-San-de-pu), and reported to me they had taken San-de-pu. The outer
-enclosure of San-de-pu village was mistaken by this division for that
-of a _reduit_ inside the village, and acting upon the assumption that
-they were not strong enough to seize this _reduit_, they were ordered
-back to their former positions, and abandoned Pao-tai-tzu. Meanwhile,
-having received the report that San-de-pu had been taken, Grippenberg
-gave orders for the heavy guns and mortars with the 8th Corps to be
-sent at once to the 10th Corps, in order to prepare the assault of
-Lita-jen-tun next day. At the same time, as his men, who had had no
-sleep for three nights, were utterly exhausted, he asked permission
-to rest his army on the 27th. Accordingly, the 1st Siberians were
-ordered to halt in the area south-east of Hei-kou-tai; but as we
-had not yet taken this area, the order led to this corps having to
-fight a separate action on the 27th for the possession of Su-ma-pu
-and Piao-tsao. When it became known on the morning of the 27th that
-San-de-pu had not been taken, Grippenberg was obliged to give up all
-idea of repeating the attack on the 27th, as he had sent his heavy
-guns to the 10th Corps. The decision was also necessitated by the fact
-that the Japanese had sent up strong reinforcements. When Shtakelberg
-was informed that San-de-pu had not been taken, he did not consider
-it possible to carry out Grippenberg’s twice repeated order to cease
-his attack, and late in the evening, after a hot fight, he seized the
-greater part of Su-ma-pu by a disconnected attack with four regiments.
-But being counter-attacked at dawn on the 28th by superior numbers both
-in front and on the left, he was forced to fall back with great loss
-(6,000 men). By that evening the 1st Siberians were holding a position
-on the line Tou-pao–Chu-san-ho-tzu, which the Japanese continued to
-assault with great fury till the early morning. The despatch of troops
-towards Su-ma-pu in no way met the circumstances: it led to a needless
-digression from the main objective of the whole operations—_i.e._,
-San-de-pu—and generally to a still greater extension of the already
-too long front occupied by the 2nd Army. In order to divert the enemy’s
-attention from our right flank by a demonstration, the villages of
-Hsia-tai-tzu and La-pa-tai were attacked and seized on January 27 by
-part of the 10th Corps under Tserpitski; but as we were not ready to
-storm San-de-pu, these places were abandoned.
-
-The cavalry of the 2nd Army, under Mischenko, made a bold dash at the
-enemy’s rear, and succeeded in killing and capturing a good many;
-but their success would have been far greater had the Don regiments
-under Teleshoff not been late in arriving. Mischenko, who was at the
-head of the advanced _sotnias_, was severely wounded, and Teleshoff,
-who succeeded in the command, failed to carry out the task entrusted
-to him. He neither sent word that the Japanese were receiving
-reinforcements, nor helped the Siberians when they were fighting for
-Su-ma-pu.
-
-By evening on the 28th the situation in the 2nd Army was roughly as
-follows: The positions north of San-de-pu, along a front of eight
-miles—from the positions occupied by the 3rd Army up to the River
-Hun—were held by the 10th Corps and 15th Division; sixteen battalions
-of the former had been brought closer to the river, and behind them
-was the reserve of the 3rd Army, a brigade of the 17th Corps. The
-Composite Rifle Corps and 1st Siberians were distributed along a front
-west of San-de-pu, on the line Chan-chua-tzu–Tou-pao. Kossagovski’s
-force was at San-chia-tzu. The reserve of the 2nd Army consisted of
-only one regiment of the 14th Division,[86] and Grippenberg had (26th
-to 28th) three times asked for reinforcements to be sent him from the
-general reserve. The front of the 2nd Army was spread over twenty
-miles. Thus, by the evening of the 28th the greater part of that army
-was separated from the 3rd Army by San-de-pu village, which was still
-in the enemy’s hands, and was dispersed over a long line fronting
-south-east. Whilst so distributed, not only was it difficult to assist
-it with troops from the 3rd Army in the event of its being attacked,
-but there was the danger, if the enemy reinforced heavily, of their
-being in a position to employ San-de-pu as a pivot, force back the
-Rifle Corps, and break through on to the communications of the 1st
-Siberians. Meanwhile reports came in which showed that only a portion
-of the enemy’s available forces were operating against Grippenberg,
-while the movement of Kuroki’s and Nodzu’s troops to the west showed
-that the enemy could still throw another six divisions into the fight.
-They might be moved against the weakened and extended front of the 3rd
-Army, thrust into the interval between the 3rd Army and the Hun Ho, or
-used as reinforcements to the troops operating against our positions
-west of San-de-pu.
-
-About 7 p.m. Kaulbars reported to me that the enemy had at 4 p.m. begun
-a movement in great strength towards their advanced positions. At the
-same time this movement became disclosed, and we opened artillery and
-rifle fire. As the reserve of the 3rd Army had already been given
-to the 2nd, I was obliged, as a temporary measure, to give Kaulbars
-the 72nd Division from my reserve. This left me with only thirty
-battalions of the 16th Corps, which had just arrived. Although the
-positions held by the Composite Rifle Corps and 1st Siberians had
-behind them an ice-covered river with steep frozen banks that hindered
-the crossing of all three arms, and were therefore inconvenient, yet
-the situation of the 2nd Army—enveloping San-de-pu, as it did—offered
-us certain advantages if we could only drive back the troops attacking
-the 1st Siberians and succeed in storming that place on the 29th.
-When, therefore, the above report came in from Kaulbars, the Chief of
-Staff of the 2nd Army was asked on the telephone when it was proposed
-to start the assault on San-de-pu. To this Ruzski replied that it
-certainly could not take place next day, as it had not been properly
-prepared by artillery, and that it was impossible then to fix a time
-for it. On account of the vagueness of this reply, he was instructed
-to report to Grippenberg the information sent in by Kaulbars, and also
-the orders in which the 2nd Army was instructed to take up a more
-concentrated position in the early hours of the 29th, assuming as their
-first task the defence of the line Ssu-fang-tai—Chang-tan—Ta-man-ta-pu.
-Grippenberg, who was in a neighbouring apartment with a telephone,
-did not say a single word to this message,[87] and these orders
-were carried out. All the enemy’s attacks on the positions
-Tou-pao–Chu-san-ho-tzu were repulsed by the 1st Siberians before
-retiring.
-
-Thus ended our first attempt at the offensive, and it cost us 10,000
-men. The chief cause of our failure was, of course, our neglect to
-prepare properly the assault on San-de-pu, which again was a sign that
-we did not yet sufficiently respect our foe. Though a contempt of the
-enemy was all through the war evinced by the senior officers when
-they first arrived at the front, yet after our first actions it was
-generally, and perhaps unfortunately, replaced by an exaggerated idea
-of their merits. The absence of proper touch between Grippenberg and
-the corps under him was also responsible for much, as, owing to it, the
-transmission of orders and of information was greatly delayed. The
-whole of the 8th and Composite Rifle Corps, again, did not shine in
-action. For instance, on the 28th, certain units of the 15th Division,
-though not at all pressed, began to retire without permission. By
-doing so they exposed the siege battery they were covering, which was
-preparing to destroy its guns and blow up its ammunition preparatory to
-retiring itself.
-
-On January 30 Grippenberg reported himself sick by letter, and by the
-Tsar’s permission left on February 3 for St. Petersburg. This action
-of his set a fatal example both to those under him and to the rest of
-the army, and was most harmful to all discipline. The opinions, also,
-that he had expressed, to the effect that the campaign was virtually
-over, and that we should retire to Mukden and Harbin, had a dangerously
-disturbing effect on our weaker members. It was in the long-run more
-harmful than any single defeat of a portion of our force would have
-been.
-
-When the right flank of the 2nd Army fell back, the army held a
-line from Fu-cha-chuang-tzu to Ssu-fang-tai. The enemy made several
-unsuccessful attempts to drive us from those of their advanced
-positions that we had captured, their main efforts being directed
-towards the recapture of Pei-tai-tzu and Chang-tan-ho-nan. We, on our
-side, made energetic preparation to continue the advance we had begun
-so unluckily. Fresh siege batteries were brought up, the approaches to
-the enemy’s defended posts were carefully reconnoitred, and detailed
-plans were made. On February 16 we received some drafts, which were
-used to make good the casualties in the 1st Siberians and the Composite
-Rifle Corps, both of which had suffered so heavily at Hei-kou-tai.
-
-On February 10 General Kaulbars assumed command of the 2nd Army,
-and Bilderling temporarily took over command of the 3rd. Meanwhile,
-early in this month, information kept coming in that large bodies of
-Japanese cavalry with guns, together with bands of Hun-huses, were
-collecting in Mongolia, especially near the portion of the railway
-between Kung-chu-ling and Kuang-cheng-tzu, and early on the morning
-of the 12th the enemy raided the line north of the station of the
-former name and blew up a railway-bridge. The same day a reconnoitring
-party of the Frontier Guards suddenly came on a Japanese force of two
-cavalry regiments, a battalion, and some 2,000 Hun-huses near the
-Mongolian frontier. In the ensuing action we lost a number of men and
-one gun. General Chichagoff continued to report with great insistence
-that large bodies of the enemy—over 10,000 strong—were collecting in
-Mongolia for the purpose of cutting our communications. Believing these
-reports, I detailed a brigade of the 41st Division and the whole of
-the Don Cossack Division to reinforce our protective troops on the
-railway itself, upon which, of course, we were dependent for supplies,
-drafts, and reinforcements. In addition to this, I also put some 15,000
-reservists[88] under the command of General Nadaroff, to strengthen the
-Frontier Guards and the line-of-communication troops generally.
-
-The rumours that we heard at this same time also of the landing of a
-large Japanese force in Northern Korea (assumed to be in connection
-with the liberation of Nogi’s army by the surrender of Port Arthur),
-part of which might be detailed for operations against Vladivostok,
-compelled me to take in hand the strengthening of our forces in the
-Primorsk district, and of the Vladivostok garrison in particular. With
-this end in view, a mixed brigade of six battalions, formed from men
-of the 1st Army, was sent to the fortress. In order to enable this
-brigade to be expanded into a division, and each of the Rifle regiments
-in the Primorsk district into regiments of four battalions, it was
-necessary, first of all, to divide the drafts which had come up for the
-army between the field army and the troops in the Primorsk district.
-Although forced to reduce the strength of the field army to the above
-extent, I made a mistake in not insisting upon a sufficiently strong
-general reserve being formed. To do this I should have taken the whole
-of the 17th Corps into my reserve, though such a course would have been
-against the opinion of General Bilderling (who considered it dangerous
-to weaken the 3rd Army, as he had no reliance in the steadiness of the
-reserve troops of that army, the 5th and 6th Siberians). Instead of the
-thirty-two battalions, which would have been thus obtained, only one
-division, the 6th Siberians,[89] was added to the general reserve.
-
-In my orders issued after our disastrous action at Hei-kou-tai, it was
-laid down that as many units as possible should be taken out of the
-firing-line, so that strong army reserves might be formed. In order
-to render this possible, it was pointed out that defensive positions
-should not be held in equal strength along the whole front; that it
-was sufficient to prepare and hold the most important portions of a
-line as strongly as possible; and that, by holding on to these at all
-costs, time would be gained in which reserves could be pushed up to any
-threatened section. Unfortunately, I left too much to the experience
-and discretion of the army commanders, and did not sufficiently insist
-on exact compliance with my instructions.
-
-Adhering to the original plan of offensive operations decided upon in
-accordance with the opinions of all the army commanders, I requested
-Kaulbars to fix the first day for the advance. He first chose February
-23, but owing to the troops of the 2nd Army being worn out with the
-very heavy work they had done in connection with the fortification of
-the positions, the advance was, at his own request, postponed till
-the 25th. On the 24th, however, Kaulbars heard that the date for
-the assault of San-de-pu was known to the enemy. He therefore lost
-hope of success, and asked that the assault might be indefinitely
-postponed. Meanwhile, on the 23rd, the enemy advanced in force against
-the Ching-ho-cheng column, and this body fell back from its fortified
-position next day after fighting an unsuccessful engagement.
-
-At the commencement of the Japanese advance our armies were distributed
-as follows:
-
-_Right Flank._—2nd Army, consisting of the 1st Siberians, Composite
-Rifle, 8th and 10th Corps, a brigade of the 3rd and a mixed brigade
-of the 5th Siberians (total, 126 battalions), occupying the line
-Ssu-fang-tai–Chang-tan–Hou-lien-tai, a length of sixteen miles.
-
-_Centre._—3rd Army, consisting of the 5th Siberians (less
-two regiments), 17th Corps, and one division of the 6th
-Siberians (total, 72 battalions), occupying the line Hou-lien-tai–Ling-
-shen-pu–Sha-ho-pu–Shan-lan-tzu, a length of eleven miles.
-
-_Left Flank._—Here were the 1st Army (less one regiment), 4th, 2nd,
-and 3rd Siberians (the latter less one brigade), 71st Division,
-Independent Siberian Reserve Brigade, and two Trans-Baikal
-infantry battalions (total, 128 battalions), occupying the line
-Shan-lan-tzu–Lu-chiang-tun–Erh-ta-kou–Lia-cheng-wu-tun, and further
-along the right bank of the Sha Ho, having its left flank three miles
-east of the Kao-tai Ling (Pass), a length of thirty miles. The 1st Army
-also had independent columns at Ching-ho-cheng and Hsin-tsin-tin.
-
-_The General Reserve_ consisted of forty-four battalions—namely, the
-16th Corps (less one brigade) on the railway six miles south of Mukden
-station, 72nd Division, and 146th Tsaritsin Regiment, behind the right
-flank of the 1st Army at Huang-shan.
-
-On February 23 the shortage in the infantry (rank and file) of all
-three armies was 49,000.
-
-A “Short Account of the Operations round Mukden in February, 1905,” was
-submitted to His Majesty the Tsar with a letter from me dated May 13,
-1905. A detailed description of these operations has been completed,
-and has now also been submitted to His Majesty. The whole of the
-Mukden operations can be divided into three phases:
-
-1. From February 23 to 28, till the turning movement against our right
-flank developed.
-
-2. From February 28 to March 9—the period of our concentration on the
-right bank of the Hun Ho, and our attempts to drive back the enemy who
-were enveloping us.
-
-3. From March 9 to 16—our final attempt to hold on to Mukden, and our
-forced abandonment of it.
-
-
- FIRST PHASE.
-
-During this the enemy directed their attention exclusively to the left
-flank of the 1st Army—to Rennenkampf’s force, the 3rd, and (partly) the
-2nd Siberians. Amongst the troops operating against Rennenkampf was the
-11th Japanese Division from Port Arthur, and from this it was surmised
-that other portions of Nogi’s army were also acting on that flank. The
-widely extended position of the 1st Army, bearing in mind the absence
-of an adequate army reserve; the concentration of large bodies of
-the enemy against the 2nd and 3rd Siberians, disclosed on February
-24; the retirement of the Ching-ho-cheng force; the possibility of a
-turning movement against it; and, finally, the decision of the officer
-commanding the 2nd Army to postpone the attack indefinitely—all these
-made me decide to reinforce the 1st Army quickly from my general
-reserve, not only in order to check the enemy, but also in order
-to operate actively ourselves. The first reinforcements despatched
-were: a brigade of the 6th East Siberian Rifle Division on February
-24 to protect the left flank of the Ching-ho-cheng force, and the
-146th Regiment and 2nd Brigade of the 72nd Division on February 25
-to reinforce the left flank of the 1st Army. Finally, when it was
-discovered that the enemy were operating in great strength against the
-left flank of the Kao-tai Ling position, the 1st Siberians and 1st
-Brigade of the 72nd Division were sent on February 27 to assist the
-1st Army in its projected advance. On this day, also, the 85th Viborg
-Regiment was sent to reinforce Daniloff’s force. When the 1st Army
-received these additions, amounting in all to fifty-four battalions,
-the advance of Kuroki’s army and of the right flank force of Kavamura
-was checked; but still our intended advance did not take place (owing
-to the exaggerated reports as to the enemy’s strength), and the 1st
-Siberians were sent back to the right flank to rejoin the general
-reserve.
-
-
- SECOND PHASE.
-
-The first report of large bodies of Japanese infantry appearing near
-Ka-liao-ma, on the left bank of the Liao, was received on February 28.
-News came in also of the enemy moving along the right bank, and of the
-appearance of their columns at Hsin-min-tun. It was essential to take
-immediate steps to meet them on the way to Mukden in their turning
-movement. I thought it was possible, by using the positions of the 3rd
-Army as a pivot of manœuvre, and withdrawing its right flank on to
-the line Ling-shen-pu–Shua-lin-tzu–Lan-shan-pu, to leave[90] for the
-defence of the section between the 3rd Army and the Hun Ho, and of that
-on the right bank, a total of forty-eight battalions, and to transfer
-on to the right bank the remainder of the 2nd Army (forty-eight
-battalions), and, after reinforcing them with twenty-four battalions
-of the 16th Corps and thirty-two battalions collected from the 3rd and
-1st Armies, to detail them for operations against Nogi. The command
-of the troops collected on the right bank of the Hun was entrusted
-to Kaulbars, and I pointed out to him several times the particular
-importance of rapid and energetic action against the turning movement
-which threatened Mukden and our communications.
-
-The first units sent from the main reserve at Mukden to the west were:
-
-1. Towards Kao-li-tun, on the river, to operate against the wide
-turning movement along the River Liao, a brigade of the 41st Division
-under Birger.
-
-2. To Sha-ling-pu, the 25th Division, under General Topornin,
-commanding the 16th Corps.
-
-3. Simultaneously the 2nd Brigades of the 9th and 31st Divisions were
-concentrated under the command of Topornin, south of the 25th Division,
-on March 2.
-
-The successive arrangements made by Kaulbars, in view of the enemy’s
-advance—already commenced on the right of the 2nd Army; the abandonment
-of Ssu-fang-tai; the withdrawal of troops from the right bank; the
-relief of corps that had been engaged, and the retention of troops
-which had already started towards Mukden, not only disclosed to the
-Japanese the possibility of free movement along the right bank of the
-river, but delayed the arrival on the western front of reinforcements
-from the 2nd Army. General Topornin therefore received no support
-either on March 2 or 3; still, he successfully continued on March 3
-the attack commenced the day before on the village of Sha-ling-pu.
-However, in view of the turning movement that had now become quite
-clear against our right flank, Kaulbars ordered a retirement—though the
-enemy were in no way pressing us—to the western Mukden fortifications.
-The troops took up a line fronting on Ma-tuan-tzu–Wu-kuan-tun, and,
-in spite of the orders given, did not occupy either the old railway
-embankment or the fortified position west of Lin-min-shan-tzu.
-This direct withdrawal towards Mukden placed our troops in a very
-disadvantageous position, and enabled the enemy both to continue their
-turning movement, and make it wider and more dangerous. Immediately
-after our retirement from Sha-ling-pu, they moved forward quickly
-and enveloped our western front, and, moving on March 3 across on to
-the main Hsin-min-tun road, began to threaten Mukden from the north.
-Birger’s brigade, which had now returned from Kao-li-tun, fell back on
-Hu-shih-tai station.
-
-The protection of Mukden on the west and north was placed under
-Kaulbars, and was undertaken by units joining the general reserve.
-
-1. The composite divisions of three regiments of the 17th Corps under
-De Witte took up the fortified position at Khou-kha[91] on the morning
-of March 3.
-
-2. A force of seven battalions under Colonel Zapolski was sent to
-Hu-shih-tai station.
-
-3. The 10th Rifle Regiment was concentrated at siding No. 97.
-
-4. Eighteen battalions of the 1st Siberians came up as a reserve to
-these on March 3.
-
-The concentration which I had ordered of the units of the 2nd Army on
-the right bank of the Hun was taking place extremely slowly. Indeed,
-some regiments which had already assembled had been sent back to the
-left bank. When I reached Mukden on the 3rd, I impressed on Kaulbars
-the necessity of not losing any time, and told him to attack the
-following day, but gave him a free hand as to the direction of attack.
-He did not carry out the order, owing to the concentration of his
-army on the right bank not having been completed. Meanwhile, in the
-early hours of March 4, the important hamlet of Ssu-hu-chia-pu was
-evacuated by the 2nd Army, and at the same time Ivanoff withdrew the
-15th Division from the position behind the Hun and the right flank
-of the 3rd Army, which he had been told to defend, without fighting.
-The latter thus became exposed. A brigade of the 5th Siberians and
-nine _sotnias_ of cavalry, which had remained on the right bank near
-Tung-chen-tzu, were moved across to the left.
-
-During March 4, which was thus lost to us for offensive operations,
-Nogi continued his turning movement, which was now becoming enveloping
-and dangerous. Accordingly, after discussing the matter with Kaulbars,
-I ordered him on the 5th to concentrate sufficient troops for the
-purpose, and to attack the enemy’s left, and I again emphasized the
-fact that our main chance of success lay in the rapidity and energy
-with which he struck. In an order of the 2nd Army of March 5, a force
-of forty-nine battalions was organized to make the attack under the
-command of Gerngross. Here again the concentration was too slow, and
-the right column only moved out from the line Sha-ho-tzu–Khou-kha about
-2 p.m. Its right flank might have been strengthened by a brigade of the
-41st Division with Zapolski’s column, and the left flank by sixteen
-battalions of the 25th Division. We therefore might have contained the
-enemy on the Yang-hsin-tun–Hsiao-sha-ho-tzu line with a force under
-Tserpitski, and have attacked with a mass of seventy-seven battalions.
-
-Kaulbars, alarmed at Tserpitski’s exaggerated reports as to the nature
-of the attacks made on his left by some three divisions, moved a
-brigade from Gerngross’s force behind the left flank, sent another
-on to the left bank of the river, and stopped Gerngross’s attack
-till such time as the result of Tserpitski’s action should be known.
-The net result of these proceedings, of the late commencement of the
-operations, and of their half-hearted nature, was that, although we
-met with no opposition, on the 5th we moved our right only on to the
-line Pao-ta-tun–Fang-hsin-tun–San-chia-fen; and so another day was
-lost. In accordance with my orders for energetic action, the advance
-of the right was continued on the 6th, but it was carried out with
-less men than on the previous day (thirty-three battalions), without
-energy or cohesion, and met with determined opposition at the village
-of Liu-chia-kan. Then, before the whole of Gerngross’s force had
-become engaged, Kaulbars stopped the advance, and gave orders to take
-up the defensive. That day we got possession only of Tsuang-fang-chih.
-In short, notwithstanding the great strength of the 2nd Army, with its
-reinforcements of more than fifty battalions, on March 4, 5, and 6—the
-three most important days—we moved our right only a few miles forward,
-and took to defensive measures even on the western front.
-
-Owing to the ill success of the operations of the 2nd Army on March
-5, I issued orders to all the armies to send back their divisional
-baggage along their respective lines of communication towards the
-north of Mukden. On the 5th the Japanese began a series of attacks
-on our northern and western fronts. On the left flank of our west
-front they were everywhere repulsed by Tserpitski and Hershelman,
-whose forces amounted to forty-nine battalions. In the centre of
-the western front they won a partial success, on March 7 compelling
-units of the 25th Division to retire temporarily from Wu-kuan-tun.
-But on the northern front, which was the most dangerous for us,
-they won great successes, on the 7th and 8th getting possession of
-several villages. From there they repeatedly attacked our northern
-force of twenty-five battalions under Launits, which was holding the
-line Ta-heng-tun–San-tai-tzu–Kung-chia-tun. At the same time their
-columns moved still farther to the north, and threatened Hu-shih-tai
-station. To protect this, I despatched a force of six battalions of
-the 4th Siberians to Tsu-erh-tun under Colonel Borisoff. To secure our
-retirement to Tieh-ling, in case we should not succeed in beating off
-Nogi’s army, on the evening of March 7 I gave orders to the 1st and 3rd
-Armies, who were too far forward, to retire early on the 8th to our
-fortified positions south of Mukden—at Fu-liang and Fu-shun. With their
-retirement and the concentration of the whole of the 2nd Army on the
-right bank it became possible to allot forty-eight battalions from the
-1st and 3rd Armies to operate against Nogi, and to collect seventeen
-battalions into the reserve of the 2nd Army. Of these reinforcements,
-General Artamonoff’s force of ten battalions alone arrived under my
-command on the 8th.
-
-
- THIRD PHASE.
-
-Having failed in our attempts to stop Nogi’s army, which was moving
-round our right flank, first on the line from Sha-ling-pu to the
-old railway embankment, and then on the line of the Hsin-min-tun
-main road, I decided to try once more to block it on the line
-Ku-san-tun–Tsu-erh-tun, and, if a favourable opportunity occurred, to
-assume the offensive from this line. On the 9th we had the following
-troops available for the purpose:
-
-1. Borisoff’s column of 6 battalions holding the villages of
-Tung-chan-tzu, Ku-san-tun, and Hsia-hsin-tun.
-
-2. Artamonoff’s column of 9 battalions[92] at Tsu-erh-tun.
-
-3. Hershelman’s column of 14 battalions, sent from the reserve of the
-2nd Army to that place. Total, 29 battalions.
-
-On March 9 I ordered Lieutenant-General Muiloff, to whom was given
-the command of these troops, to co-operate with Launits’ force in an
-attack on the village of Hei-ni-tun. The operation was carried out in
-a disjointed manner, without careful reconnaissance, and without any
-arrangement for co-operation having been made with Launits; a bad storm
-and clouds of sand also impeded us, and the attack failed. The Japanese
-continued their advance to the north-west. Thus, by the 9th, the enemy
-was still not driven back on the side where they were most dangerous;
-part of the village of San-tai-tzu, taken from us in the early hours
-of that day, remained in their hands. The situation, indeed, appeared
-critical, for we received news on the same evening of the Japanese
-advance to the Hun Ho against the section Fu-liang–Hsiao-fang-shen,
-which was held by weak units of the 1st Army, 4th and 2nd Siberians.
-Indeed, if we delayed the withdrawal on Tieh-ling longer there was
-great danger that some of our most advanced forces in the south and
-south-west might be cut off. Therefore orders were given that same
-evening for a retirement to Tieh-ling early on the 10th, and for this
-operation roads were allotted as follows: The 2nd Army was to proceed
-along both sides of the railway and west of the Mandarin road; the 3rd
-Army along the Mandarin road and others to the east of it, as far as
-the Fu-liang–Hsi-chui-chen–Hui-san–Shu-lin-tzu road; the 1st Army along
-the latter, and the roads to the east of it.
-
-Meanwhile the enemy had on the 9th broken through the 1st Army near
-Chiu-tien, driving back part of the 4th Siberians from this point
-to Leng-hua-chi. The officer commanding the 2nd Siberians (next
-to them) did nothing but merely hold his position on the River
-Hun at Hsiao-fang-chen, and the enemy spread out along the valley
-Hsiao-hsi-chua–Hu-shan-pu. The attempt made to drive them back at night
-by the Tsaritsin Regiment failed.
-
-During the early morning of the 10th our position became yet worse;
-on the right flank the Japanese drove back Borisoff’s force to
-Hsiao-kou-tzu and opposite San-tai-tzu, and penetrated as far as the
-grove of the Imperial tombs. On the east large bodies of them appeared
-in sight of the Mandarin road. One was opposite Levestam’s force, while
-another began shelling the Mandarin road near Ta-wa from the heights
-near Hsin-chia-kou. The orders given on March 5 for the baggage to
-be sent back in good time had not been carried out, and part of the
-impedimenta of the 2nd and 3rd Armies, which was stretching along the
-road near Mukden early on the 10th, blocked the passage of the 5th and
-6th Siberians and 17th Corps. On this morning also the Japanese, who
-had broken through near Chiu-tien on the 9th, began to press our left
-flank under Meyendorff. The troops sent as reinforcements did not act
-together, and were driven back north-west. By 10 a.m. Meyendorff was in
-full retreat—not north-east, but north-west towards the Mandarin road,
-which he crossed between Ta-wa and Pu-ho. The 6th Siberians now began
-to retire prematurely, and by so doing exposed the right of the 1st
-Corps and the left of the 17th. This unnecessarily sudden retirement
-of more than forty battalions under Meyendorff and Soboleff placed the
-17th Corps and the 5th Siberians in a difficult position. Instead of
-fronting south, they had to front south-east. After a hot fight this
-force, consisting of thirty battalions, was also obliged to move to
-the rear prematurely. They did not go to Ta-wa, but west and south of
-the Mandarin road. This opened out a way for the enemy to that road,
-and also to the railway north—further on the portion between Mukden
-and Wen-ken-tun. By seizing this section about 2 p.m., before the
-rearguards or even the tail of the main body had passed Wa-tzu, they
-took our troops in flank. We had evacuated the village of San-tai-tzu
-prematurely, and it was quickly occupied by the Japanese. Between
-Wa-tzu and this village there is a defile, less than three miles long,
-through which a large part of the 2nd Army had to force its way under
-attack from both sides. Portions of the rearguards under Hanenfeld and
-Sollogub, which tried to get round to the east of it, were captured or
-destroyed.
-
-I instructed General Dembovski to organize the defence of the Mandarin
-road at Ta-wa, and for that purpose to utilize the troops retiring
-along it. By 10 a.m. the distance between the portions of the enemy on
-the west and east of the railway was only seven miles. It was vital
-to stop any further contraction of the area of retirement of the 2nd
-Army. This might be done by blocking the Japanese advance to the
-railway from the west and north-west. As I was more anxious about the
-latter direction than any other, I moved out the eighteen battalions
-under Zarubaeff, which had joined my reserve from the 1st Army, on
-to the line Ma-kou-chia-tzu–Yang-tzu-tun, and ten battalions of the
-72nd Division on the front Tung-shan-tzu–Hsiao-hsin-tun. The first
-force covered the railway between Hu-shih-tai and San-tai-tzu, and the
-second barred the enemy’s advance and supported the right flank of
-Artamonoff’s column. As a reserve to these troops, in case of pressure
-from the east, a brigade of the 1st Siberian Division was left near
-Hu-shih-tai station. By 4 p.m. the state of affairs on the Mandarin
-road became worse, as, immediately after General Levestam’s force had
-retired behind Pu-ho, Dembovski also abandoned his positions near
-Ta-wa, and moved off to the west. The fighting ceased as darkness came
-on. The last of the 2nd Army to fall back were portions of the 1st,
-2nd, and 3rd Rifle Regiments under Lieutenant-Colonel Korniloff; they
-broke through near Wa-tzu in the pitch dark, though hemmed in by the
-enemy on three sides.
-
-We continued to retire during the night, covered by the rearguard under
-Muiloff and that of Zarubaeff’s column. On the 11th several units of
-the 1st and 3rd Armies collected at the village of Yi-lu; but the
-greater part of the 3rd Army fell back direct on Tieh-ling. Bilderling
-was unable to carry out his proposal of remaining on the River Yi-lu
-till the 12th, and, having taken command of Shileiko’s force, after
-slight opposition retired northwards from Yi-lu village. By doing
-this he placed the rearguards of the 2nd Army that were still south
-of this point in a very precarious position. The main bodies of all
-the armies began on the 11th to occupy a position eight miles south
-of Tieh-ling on the Fan Ho. The 2nd Army took up a line to the west
-and the first one to the east of the Mandarin road, the 3rd remaining
-in reserve. Everything possible was done to restore order amongst the
-troops, transport, and parks. On the 13th the enemy’s advanced troops
-reached our positions, and on the 14th they attacked, directing their
-main effort on the line between the sections held by the 2nd Siberians
-and 72nd Division. All their attacks were repulsed with great loss, and
-many hundreds of dead were left in front of our position. Our losses
-were 900.
-
-The two-weeks battle had badly disorganized several units, especially
-those of the 2nd and 3rd Armies. The men who had got separated from
-their own units and attached to others had to be sorted out and
-restored, baggage, transport, and parks had to be separated, and
-ammunition replenished. To carry this out made it essential that we
-should not be in direct touch with the enemy—that there should be
-some space between us. For this reason, and on account of the turning
-movement against our right flank along the River Liao, discovered by
-the cavalry, I decided not to accept battle at Tieh-ling, but to order
-a general retirement of all the armies on the 14th to the Hsi-ping-kai
-position, which was the best one between Tieh-ling and the River
-Sungari. The 1st and 2nd Armies began to move out of Tieh-ling on March
-16, and by the 22nd were on the heights of Hsi-ping-kai.
-
-
- CONCLUSIONS UPON THE BATTLE OF MUKDEN[93]
-
-Both the nearness of the events related above and our ignorance
-about the enemy make it impossible for any detailed and absolutely
-impartial judgment to be formed upon the reasons for our defeat in
-this great battle. The records that have been collected so far,
-however, are sufficient to throw light upon a few facts—upon certain
-of our dispositions that did not correspond to the requirements of the
-case. Those made by the commander of the 2nd Army, to which force was
-entrusted the duty of stopping Nogi’s turning movement towards our
-rear, are of particular interest, and certain of them which had a very
-important bearing on the issue of the operations are now described.
-
-General Kaulbars made neither a sufficient nor a clever use of his
-cavalry. This fact, coupled with the unfortunate selection of its
-leaders, was the reason why the mounted branch did such bad work,[94]
-and behaved in a manner that can hardly be called “devoted” during the
-Mukden operations. In the instructions given on March 1 to Grekoff’s
-cavalry to operate against Nogi, the object to be attained was plainly
-set forth, but how it was to be attained was not clearly defined. The
-execution of its most important task was also made the more difficult
-by the fact that Grekoff’s force was, on the same day as the orders
-were issued, split up into two almost equal groups, of which the
-eastern was found to be fighting Oku instead of Nogi. To rectify this,
-the cavalry under Pavloff was ordered on the same day by Kaulbars
-to undertake a special task against the turning columns, but on the
-2nd the order was changed, and eight of Pavloff’s _sotnias_ were put
-under the command of Launits, who was operating against Oku. No touch
-was maintained between their different groups, and the greater part
-of the mounted forces clung to the infantry, and did practically no
-fighting (the losses suffered by this Arm during the twenty-three days’
-operations in February and March were quite insignificant). Yet most of
-our regiments were quite capable of performing the most difficult tasks
-of war. The action of the infantry of the 2nd Army on the positions
-which they had taken up was completely passive. They did not try to get
-into touch with the enemy to ascertain their strength and dispositions
-(by taking prisoners), or to occupy advanced posts where these would
-be advantageous. The reconnoitring patrols of this army also did but
-little work. The consequence of such unsatisfactory performance of
-their duties by the cavalry and advanced infantry units of the 2nd Army
-was that information of the enemy was so meagre that the appearance of
-a great mass of Nogi’s army on and to the east of the Hsin-min-tun road
-came as a complete surprise to Kaulbars.
-
-Owing to the appearance of large hostile bodies near Ka-liao-ma, I
-had on February 28 already ordered him[95] to take immediate steps
-to ascertain their exact strength, the direction in which they were
-moving, and their intentions. I repeated this order[96] on March 2,
-instructing him to find out their strength and dispositions more
-accurately if possible, and to frame some plan of action. I pointed
-out the necessity for energetic steps to ascertain the whereabouts of
-Nogi’s main body—whether it was opposite Sha-ling-pu, or whether it was
-executing a wider turning movement. On the morning of March 5 I for
-the third time[97] asked Kaulbars to find out where Nogi’s left flank
-was. Not one of these orders was carried out, with the result that I
-had inadequate and incorrect information upon which to form a decision
-as to the strength and whereabouts of the enemy operating on the right
-bank of the Hun. Tserpitski’s alarmist reports to the effect that more
-than three divisions were opposed to him made the fog worse. Kaulbars,
-who had been ordered to stop Nogi’s flanking movement, on the strength
-of incorrect information, all the time turned his chief attention
-towards the western front to Oku, whom he took for Nogi. The latter,
-owing to the 2nd Army’s inaction on March 3, 4, 5 and 6, was made a
-present of four days in which to complete his sweeping movement to the
-north-east,[98] and Kaulbars continued to see danger only on the west,
-paying insufficient attention to what was happening on the Hsin-min-tun
-road, north-west of Mukden. On March 1 he conceived a most complicated
-“castling” manœuvre, which he endeavoured to carry out when in direct
-touch with the enemy. The Composite Rifle Corps was ordered to cross
-from the right bank of the Hun on to the left, and the 8th Corps from
-the left to the right. The Rifle regiments crossed over the river,
-and by so doing evacuated the most important section near Chang-tan,
-but the 8th Corps was unable to get across. The enemy at once took
-advantage of this, and, rapidly throwing their 8th Division forward
-along the right bank of the river, drove back the relatively weak force
-of ours still on that side. Kaulbars, moreover, stopped the movement on
-Sha-ling-pu (of the Composite Division under Golembatovski), which had
-already been started, and by so doing deprived us of the possibility
-of checking the heads of the enemy’s columns on March 2. Finally, the
-5th Rifle Brigade under Churin—which was moving by my orders to operate
-against Nogi—was stopped on March 3 by Kaulbars in the valley on the
-right bank of the Hun, and found itself among the troops opposing Oku.
-
-After weakening Topornin by sixteen battalions, Kaulbars, on reaching
-his force, countermanded the advance on Sha-ling-pu, which had been
-begun on the morning of the 3rd, and suddenly withdrew thirty-two
-battalions to Mukden without fighting. This made our position
-distinctly worse. He took no steps to establish and maintain touch
-with Birger’s brigade on the Hsin-min-tun road, and never informed
-the latter of the order to retire he had given to Topornin on the
-3rd. In telling Launits on the morning of March 3 of his decision (to
-withdraw Topornin’s force to Mukden), he stated that “Grekoff’s column
-and Birger’s brigade are probably cut off from Mukden,” but he made
-no attempt to help Birger. And yet up to 2 p.m. on the 3rd Birger’s
-brigade was not even engaged. Our attempt to retake Ssu-hu-chia-pu on
-March 4 was stopped by Launits, owing to the receipt of orders from
-Kaulbars not to attack if it was likely to be a costly operation.
-Kaulbars did nothing that day, although he had under his command
-119 battalions[99] on the right bank of the Hun, and although I
-had ordered him to assume the offensive. Moreover, he did not even
-know the whereabouts of the troops under him. Although he had 113
-battalions under his command on the right bank on March 5, he again
-did nothing. He did not carry out my orders to attack the enemy’s left
-energetically, and permitted these troops, which were at Khou-kha—next
-to Gerngross’s force—to deploy very slowly, and stopped their advance
-before they had got in touch with the enemy. Moreover, yielding to
-the preconceived idea of the main danger lying in the west, he moved
-sixteen splendid battalions of the 10th Corps from Gerngross’s force,
-operating towards Hsin-min-tun, on to the left flank of the army. Yet
-again on the 6th, although he had 116 battalions on the right bank,
-he effected scarcely anything, for our active operations towards
-Hsin-min-tun were conducted with an insufficient force, and therefore
-failed.
-
-The result of his dispositions from March 2 to 5 was that on the 6th
-we did not have a single battalion of the 2nd Army operating against
-Nogi, whereas we should have had forty.[100] All ninety-six battalions
-of the 2nd Army were on that day distributed on the defensive against
-Oku. This distribution of troops, which in no way met either the
-general requirements or the definite task given to Kaulbars—to stop
-Nogi’s army—constituted one of the main reasons of the failure of our
-operations at Mukden.
-
-On the 2nd and 3rd the following troops were given to Kaulbars from my
-reserve for his operations against Nogi:
-
- Battalions.
- 16th Corps 24
- 1st Siberians 18
- De Witte’s column (3rd Army) 15
- Zapolski’s column 4
- ――
- Total 61
-
-Moreover, sixteen battalions of the 10th Corps (2nd Army) were by my
-orders concentrated opposite Sha-ling-pu on the 2nd, and on the 7th
-the 10th Rifle Regiment and two battalions of the 4th Siberians were
-sent from my reserve to join Kaulbars’ army—_i.e._, he was given in all
-eighty-one battalions, of which sixty-five had not previously belonged
-to the 2nd Army. Of these, as transpired later, as many as thirty-five
-battalions did not take part, or only took very little part, in any
-fighting up to the 10th—_i.e._:
-
- Battalions.
- 1st Siberians 13
- De Witte’s column 13
- 2nd Brigade, 9th Division 8
- 10th Rifle Brigade 2
- ――
- Total 35
-
-These units either occupied defensive positions, and merely watched
-the Japanese making a flank march past them,[101] or were moved for no
-reason from one place to another (2nd Brigade of the 9th Division).
-Their losses from the 3rd to 9th were trifling.
-
-On the 4th, when I ordered Kaulbars to “move every available man on to
-the right flank near the Hsin-min-tun road,” the reverse was done. Two
-regiments (Tambov and Zamost) were moved from the right bank of the
-river on to the left; the 2nd Brigade of the 9th Division was ordered
-to move away from the Hsin-min-tun road, and crossed from Huang-ku-tun
-to Liu-kou-tun, and the Primorsk Dragoons from an important position
-on this road were sent to the rear to Hu-shih-tai.[102] On March 5 we
-were able to collect more than 100 battalions for operations against
-Nogi, 70 being concentrated by my instructions. But although Kaulbars
-had received orders to send an army corps on to the right bank of the
-Hun to engage Nogi, he not only did not carry out the order, but lost
-five days (March 2 to 6), and thus allowed the turning movement to
-develop so far that part of the force I had collected (25th Division)
-was on the 7th operating, not against Nogi, but against Oku’s left
-flank. Moreover, as he had on the 5th also weakened the force collected
-by me to act against Nogi by sending 16 battalions to the left flank of
-the 2nd Army, the result of these dispositions and our inaction during
-these five days was that on the 7th only 37 battalions operated against
-Nogi instead of 100. The loss of time, and the weakness of the force
-that actually opposed Nogi, were largely contributory to our failure.
-
-Having so far employed only a very small part of the troops entrusted
-to him for offensive operations, on the 7th Kaulbars definitely and
-finally assumed the defensive. He did not even seize the opportunity
-of the repulses suffered by the enemy at Wu-kuan-tun and against
-Tserpitski’s force to attack. On the 7th, 8th, and 9th, with 140
-battalions at his disposal, he assumed a passive rôle everywhere.
-While allowing a great confusion of units, he did not take proper
-steps, which he was quite able to do, to re-establish the corps,
-divisional and brigade organization, and on the 8th he did not take
-advantage of the possibility of forming a reserve from the entire 10th
-Corps, which would have enabled him to re-establish the organization
-of the other corps. On the 4th he removed Generals Muiloff, Topornin,
-and Kutnevich from the command of their corps for no reason, and as
-he did not replace them by other officers, the staffs of these corps
-were headless. The employment of the reserves in the 2nd Army was
-neither carried out by arrangement, nor in accordance with the actual
-necessities of the situation, so that there were instances of reserves
-being sent up when not required (Gerngross on March 8). In spite of
-my order, which he received on the 5th, to send back the baggage and
-transport to the north, Kaulbars only obeyed this instruction in regard
-to Tserpitski’s and Gerngross’s columns on the 9th, and thus made
-our retirement, especially that of our rearguards, most difficult.
-He failed to observe the appearance or concentration of the enemy
-on the northern front, and took no steps to avert this danger. The
-concentration of our forces on this side was carried out under my own
-orders. Had it not been for this, the enemy would have seized the
-village of San-tai-tzu and the grove of the Imperial tombs on the 7th.
-
-One occasion when Kaulbars did issue orders that met the case was
-when he ordered Launits to attack the enemy on March 10 at Hei-ni-tun
-so as to assist the retirement, and he got together a strong force
-for this purpose. But then, when these troops were on the point of
-commencing the attack, he went to Launits and countermanded it, without
-even informing me of this most important change in his previous
-dispositions. Yet, had this attack been only partially successful, it
-would have greatly relieved the situation. Right up to March 13 not one
-of the arrangements made by him was fully carried out, and it is clear
-that he did not even then in the least appreciate the conditions. In
-addition to wasting time, extending his front, and acting only on the
-defensive, he did not realize the danger of Nogi’s appearance at such
-a moment north of Mukden, nor of his movement round our flank. In a
-letter to me of August 11, he wrote that on March 8 and 9, “although we
-had been retiring for a week, circumstances were going very well for
-us, as, the further the enemy moved northwards, the nearer they were
-getting to their Poltava.”
-
-From the above it can be seen that Kaulbars’ dispositions, his
-inaction, and his misunderstanding of the whole situation, could not
-lead the 2nd Army to Poltava. On the contrary, on March 8 and 9, 1905,
-it was nearly a case of Tsushima.
-
-It only remains for me to conclude with a few pages out of the short
-report on the war which I submitted to His Majesty the Emperor.
-
- “Of the many causes contributing to the disastrous issue to the
- Battle of Mukden, I will only mention the following:
-
- “1. The fall of Port Arthur liberated Nogi’s army, the whole
- of which took part in the battle. The formation of the new
- divisions in Japan was completed at the same time, and, judging
- by the prisoners we captured, two of these also took part in
- the battle. The immediate making good of wastage in their ranks
- presented no particular difficulty to the enemy, owing to the
- relative proximity of Japan to the theatre of war, and the
- resultant ease with which she was able to transport her troops
- by sea. Judging by the muster rolls found on the dead and
- wounded, the effective strength of their companies was between
- 200 and 250 rifles, and all casualties were at once replaced.
-
- “The liberation of Nogi’s army and the landing of troops in
- Northern Korea compelled us to increase the force detailed
- for the defence of the Primorsk district and Vladivostok,
- and the appearance of bodies of Japanese cavalry, together
- with artillery and numerous bands of Hun-huses in Mongolia,
- coupled with the raids on the railway, which were becoming
- more frequent, necessitated steps being taken to increase the
- railway guard along its 1,350 miles’ length in Manchuria.
-
- “These two measures took fourteen battalions and twenty-four
- _sotnias_ from the field army, and also a large number of the
- 80,000 reservists then being sent to the front as drafts.
-
- “All these things combined enabled the Japanese at the battle
- of Mukden to be as strong as, if not stronger than, we were in
- the number of rifles.
-
- “2. The tardy discovery by our cavalry of the enemy’s movement
- round our right flank, when ‘strong columns of Japanese
- infantry’ had already appeared at Ka-liao-ma.
-
- “3. The complete lack of energy displayed by the officer in
- command of the 2nd Army in repulsing Nogi’s force which was
- moving round us, with the result that we lost seven most
- important days (March 1 to 8).
-
- “4. His complete ignorance of the strength and whereabouts of
- the enemy moving round his right. The lack of information and
- the inaccuracy of what was received rendered some of my own
- dispositions not only unnecessary, but wrong. As a particular
- instance, I may mention that I only knew for certain when
- it was too late that the enemy were not making (as had been
- reported) a wider turning movement on both banks of the Liao
- towards Tieh-ling.
-
- “5. The lack of energy displayed by senior officers of the
- 3rd Army on March 10 in overcoming the difficulties of the
- retirement. Their passive attitude with regard to the enemy’s
- movements towards the Mandarin road—illustrated by the
- diversion of the various columns (on encountering the enemy)
- towards the west on to the line of retirement of the 2nd Army,
- instead of forcing back the enemy away from the Mandarin road.
-
- “The inaction of the 55th Division of the 6th Siberians was
- remarkable. The commander of this unit, who only had this one
- division under his command, decided to place it directly under
- the officer in command of the 1st Corps. Having done so, he
- rode away from his division to Ta-wa village. When he reached
- the railway on the morning of the 11th, he was unable to inform
- me where his division[103] was!
-
- “6. The failure of the commanders of the 2nd and 3rd Armies
- to carry out the orders I had given some days before the
- retirement began to send back the baggage and transport
- northwards. It was the disorder and panic which occurred
- amongst these auxiliary services on the retirement that caused
- the loss of so many guns and limbers, and ammunition and
- baggage waggons.
-
- “7. The inertia displayed by the officers commanding the 2nd
- Siberian Division and the 2nd Siberians, when an attempt was
- made to prevent the enemy breaking through near Chiu-tien, and
- when later they spread north of the Mandarin road. Besides the
- twenty-four battalions of the 1st Corps and the 4th Siberians,
- which did remain on the right flank of the 1st Army, the 55th
- Division might have been used in this operation. But the
- officer commanding the 2nd Siberians received the enemy’s
- advance passively, merely throwing back his right flank, and
- thus presenting the enemy with an opening for their advance on
- to the Mandarin road.
-
- “8. Nevertheless, I consider that I myself am the person
- principally responsible for our defeat, for the following
- reasons:
-
- “(_a_) I did not sufficiently insist on the concentration of
- as large a general reserve as possible before the operations
- commenced.
-
- “(_b_) I weakened myself just before an important battle by a
- brigade of infantry and a Cossack division (believing General
- Chichagoff’s reports). If I had not sent one brigade of the
- 16th Corps for duty on the communications, and had insisted
- on the 1st Siberians being sent back from the 1st Army at
- full strength, I should have had two full corps available for
- operations against Nogi’s turning movement.
-
- “(_c_) I did not take adequate measures to prevent the
- confusion of units. Indeed, during the battle I was myself
- compelled to contribute to the disintegration of corps.
-
- “(_d_) I should have made a better appreciation of the
- respective spirit of both sides, as well as of the
- characteristics and qualifications of the commanders, and I
- should have exercised more caution in my decisions. Although
- the operations of the 2nd Army from March 2 to 7 failed in
- their object, my firm belief in ultimate victory resulted in my
- ordering a general retirement later than I ought to have done.
- I should have abandoned all hope of the 2nd Army defeating the
- enemy a day sooner than I did; the retirement would then have
- been effected in complete order.
-
- “(_e_) When convinced of Kaulbars’ inertia and passive tactics,
- I should have taken command of the troops on the right bank of
- the Hun personally. On March 9 I should similarly have taken
- command of Muiloff’s force, and acted as a corps commander.”
-
-In my letters of March 31 and May 13, 1905, to His Majesty the Emperor,
-I reviewed generally the factors which made the war extraordinarily
-difficult for us.[104]
-
-Has the army survived its Tsushima? No; it went through nothing
-nearly so bad as that. We fought hard everywhere, and we inflicted
-greater losses on the enemy than they on us. We were weaker in numbers
-than they were, and we retired. Even the Mukden reverse owes its
-reputation as a decisive Japanese victory to the impressions of our
-own correspondents, who were with the baggage and in rear. Can one say
-that the Russian land forces were defeated, when in the first important
-battles (at Liao-yang and on the Sha Ho) we only put into action a
-fourteenth part of our armed forces, and at Mukden, at a time when the
-Japanese had already put forth their greatest efforts, we had less than
-a sixth of our force? Nor must it be forgotten that we fought against a
-nation of 50,000,000 martial and ardent souls, who, hand in hand with
-their Emperor, were able to grasp victory by fearing no sacrifice. To
-defeat such a foe in such a distant theatre of war, great and continued
-efforts were required of the whole of our country as well as of the
-army. In the beginning of the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries we
-waged great wars with such leaders as Charles XII. and Napoleon. In
-these we also experienced defeat, but in the end we issued absolute
-victors. In the eighteenth century, between defeat at Narva and victory
-at Poltava nine years elapsed; in the nineteenth, between defeat at
-Austerlitz and our entry into Paris there was also nine years’ interval.
-
-The events which happened in the Far East in 1904–05 can, owing to
-their historical importance and their significance for Russia and the
-whole world, be placed alongside those through which Russia passed
-in the early years of the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries. In
-the struggle with Charles XII. and Napoleon the Russian people was
-at one with the Tsar, and bravely bore all trials and sacrifices,
-strengthening and improving the army, treating it with kindness,
-believing in it, wishing it well, and profoundly respecting it for its
-gallant deeds. The people realized the necessity for success, hesitated
-at no sacrifice, and were not troubled by the time required to gain it,
-and the harmonious efforts of Tsar and people gave us complete victory.
-The way to victory is in the present day by the same road which our
-ancestors followed in the early years of the last two centuries.
-
-If mighty Russia, headed by the Tsar, had been permeated by a brave
-and single-minded desire to defeat the Japanese, and had not stinted
-the sacrifices and time necessary to preserve Russia’s integrity and
-dignity, our glorious army, supported by the trust of its ruler and a
-united people, would have fought until the enemy had been vanquished.
-
-
-
-
- APPENDICES
-
-
- APPENDIX I
-
- THE ROYAL TIMBER COMPANY[105]
-
-
-Among the first questions suggested by General Kuropatkin’s narrative
-and the editorials, reports, and official proceedings that he quotes,
-are: Who was State Councillor Bezobrazoff? How did he acquire the
-extraordinary power that he evidently exercised in the Far East? Why
-was “everybody”—including the Minister of War—“afraid of him”? Why
-did even the Viceroy respond to his calls for troops? and why was his
-Korean timber company allowed to drag Russia into a war with Japan,
-apparently against the opposition and resistance of the Tsar, the
-Viceroy, the Minister of War, the Minister of Finance, the Minister
-of Foreign Affairs, the Port Arthur Council, and the diplomatic
-representatives of Russia in Peking, Tokio, and Seoul?
-
-No replies to these questions can be found in General Kuropatkin’s
-record of the events that preceded the rupture with Japan, but
-convincing answers are furnished by certain confidential documents
-found in the archives of Port Arthur, and published at Stuttgart,[106]
-just after the close of the war, in the Liberal Russian review
-_Osvobojdenie_. Whether General Kuropatkin was aware of the existence
-of these documents or not I am unable to say; but as they throw a
-strong sidelight on his narrative, I shall append them thereto, and
-tell briefly, in connection with them, the story of the Ya-lu timber
-enterprise as it is related in St. Petersburg.
-
-In the year 1898, a Vladivostok merchant named Briner obtained from
-the Korean Government, upon extremely favourable terms, a concession
-for a timber company that should have authority to exploit the great
-forest wealth of the upper Ya-lu River.[107] As Briner was a promoter
-and speculator who had little means and less influence, he was unable
-to organize a company, and in 1902 he sold his concession to Alexander
-Mikhailovich Bezobrazoff, another Russian promoter and speculator, who
-had held the rank of State Councillor in the Tsar’s Civil Service,
-and who was high in the favour of some of the Grand Dukes in St.
-Petersburg.
-
-Bezobrazoff, who seems to have been a most fluent and persuasive
-talker, as well as a man of fine presence, soon interested his Grand
-Ducal friends in the fabulous wealth of the Far East generally, and in
-the extraordinary value of the Korean timber concession especially.
-They all took shares in his enterprise, and one of them, with a view
-to getting the strongest possible support for it, presented him to
-the Tsar. Bezobrazoff made an extraordinarily favourable impression
-upon Nicholas II., and in the course of a few months acquired an
-influence over him that nothing afterward seemed able to shake. That
-the Tsar became financially interested in Bezobrazoff’s timber company
-is certain; and it is currently reported in St. Petersburg that the
-Emperor and the Empress Dowager together put into the enterprise
-several million roubles. This report may, or may not, be trustworthy;
-but the appended telegram (No. 5), sent by Rear-Admiral Abaza, of
-the Tsar’s suite, to Bezobrazoff in November, 1903, indicates that
-the Emperor was interested in the Ya-lu enterprise to the extent, at
-least, of the two million roubles mentioned. Bezobrazoff’s “Company,”
-in fact, seems to have consisted of the Tsar, the Grand Dukes, certain
-favoured noblemen of the Court, Viceroy Alexeieff probably, and the
-Empress Dowager possibly. Bezobrazoff had made them all see golden
-visions of wealth to be amassed, power to be attained, and glory to be
-won, in the Far East, for themselves and the Fatherland. It was this
-known influence of Bezobrazoff with the Tsar that made “everybody” in
-the Far East “afraid of him”; that enabled him to enlist in the service
-of the timber company even officers of the Russian General Staff;
-that caused Alexeieff to respond to his call for troops to garrison
-Feng-huang-cheng and Sha-ho-tzu; and that finally changed Russia’s
-policy in the Far East, and stopped the withdrawal of troops from
-Southern Manchuria.
-
-General Kuropatkin says that the Russian evacuation of the province of
-Mukden “was suddenly stopped by an order of Admiral Alexeieff, whose
-reasons for taking such action have not to this day been sufficiently
-cleared up.” The following telegram from Lieutenant-Colonel Madridoff,
-of the Russian General Staff, to Rear-Admiral Abaza, the Tsar’s
-personal representative in St. Petersburg, may throw some light on the
-subject:
-
-
- (No. 1.)
-
- TO ADMIRAL ABAZA,
- HOUSE NO. 50, FIFTH LINE,
- VASSILI OSTROFF, ST. PETERSBURG.
-
- Our enterprises in East constantly meet with opposition from
- Dzan-Dzun of Mukden and Taotai of Feng-huang-cheng. Russian
- officer merchants have been sent East to make reconnaissances
- and examine places on Ya-lu. They are accompanied by Hun-huses,
- whom I have hired. The Dzan-Dzun, feeling that he is soon to
- be freed from guardianship of Russians, has become awfully
- impudent, and has even gone so far as to order Yuan to begin
- hostile operations against Russian merchants and Chinese
- accompanying them, and to put latter under arrest. Thanks to
- timely measures taken by Admiral, this order has not been
- carried out; but very fact shows that Chinese rulers of
- Manchuria are giving themselves free rein, and, of course,
- after we evacuate Manchuria their impudence and their
- opposition to Russian interests will have no limit. _Admiral
- (Alexeieff) took it upon himself to order that Mukden and
- Yinkow (Newchuang) be not evacuated._[108] To-day it has been
- decided to hold Yinkow, but, unfortunately, to move the troops
- out of Mukden. _After evacuation of Mukden, state of affairs,
- so far as our enterprises are concerned, will be very, very
- much worse,[108] which, of course, is not desirable._ To-morrow
- I go to the Ya-lu myself.
-
- (Signed) MADRIDOFF.
-
-Shortly before Lieutenant-Colonel Madridoff sent this telegram to
-Admiral Abaza, Bezobrazoff, who had been several months in the Far
-East, started for St. Petersburg with the evident intention of seeing
-the Tsar and persuading him to order, definitely, a suspension of
-the evacuation of the province of Mukden, for the reason that “it
-would inevitably result in the liquidation of the affairs of the
-timber company.” From a point on the road he sent back to Madridoff
-the following telegram, which bears date of April 8, 1903, the very
-day when the evacuation of the province of Mukden should have been
-completed, in accordance with the Russo-Chinese agreement of April 8,
-1902:
-
-
- (No. 2.)
-
- TO MADRIDOFF,
- PORT ARTHUR.
-
- There will be an understanding attitude toward the affair after
- I make my first report. I am only afraid of being too late, as
- I shall not get there until April 16, and the Chief leaves for
- Moscow on April 17. I will do all that is possible, and shall
- insist on manifestation of energy in one form or another. Keep
- me advised, and don’t get discouraged. There will soon be an
- end of the misunderstanding.
-
- (Signed) BEZOBRAZOFF.
-
-On April 24, 1903, Bezobrazoff sent Madridoff from St. Petersburg a
-telegram written, evidently, after he had made his first “report” to
-“the Chief.” It was as follows:
-
-
- (No. 3.)
-
- TO MADRIDOFF,
- PORT ARTHUR.
-
- Everything is all right with me. I hope to get my views adopted
- in full as conditions imposed by existing situation and force
- of circumstances. I hope that if they ask the opinion of the
- Admiral (Alexeieff), he, I am convinced (_sic_), will give me
- his support. That will enable me to put many things into his
- hands.
-
- (Signed) BEZOBRAZOFF.
-
-General Kuropatkin says that Admiral Alexeieff gave him “repeated
-assurances that he was wholly opposed to Bezobrazoff’s schemes, and
-that he was holding them back with all his strength”; but the Admiral
-was evidently playing a double part. While pretending to be in full
-sympathy with Kuropatkin’s hostility to the Ya-lu enterprise, he
-was supporting Bezobrazoff’s efforts to promote that enterprise.
-Bezobrazoff rewarded him, and fulfilled his promise to “put many things
-into his hands” by getting him appointed Viceroy. Kuropatkin says that
-this appointment was a “complete surprise to him”; and it naturally
-would be, because the Tsar acted on the advice of Bezobrazoff, Von
-Plehve, Alexeieff, and Abaza, and not on the advice of Kuropatkin,
-Witte, and Lamsdorff. It will be noticed that Von Plehve—the
-powerful Minister of the Interior—is never once mentioned by name in
-Kuropatkin’s narrative. Everything seems to indicate that Von Plehve
-formed an alliance with Bezobrazoff, and that together they brought
-about the dismissal of Witte, who ceased to be Minister of Finance on
-August 29, 1903. Anticipating this result of his efforts, and filled
-with triumph at the prospect opening before him, Bezobrazoff wrote to
-Lieutenant-Colonel Madridoff on August 25, 1903, as follows:
-
-
- (No. 4.)
-
- “The great saw-mill and the principal trade in timber will
- be transferred to Dalny, and this in co-partnership with the
- Ministry of Finance. The Manchurian Steamship Line will have
- all our ocean freight, amounting to 25,000,000 feet of timber,
- and the business will become international. From this you will
- understand how I selected my base and my lines of operation.”
-
-In view of the complete defeat of such clear-sighted statesmen and sane
-counsellors as Kuropatkin, Witte, and Lamsdorff, there can be no doubt
-that Bezobrazoff’s “base and lines of operation” were well “selected.”
-
-The document that most clearly shows the interest of the Tsar in the
-Ya-lu timber enterprise is a telegram sent to Bezobrazoff at Port
-Arthur in November, 1903, by Rear-Admiral Abaza, who was then Director
-of the Special Committee on Far Eastern Affairs, over which the Tsar
-presided, and who acted as the latter’s personal representative in
-all dealings with Bezobrazoff and the timber company. In the original
-of this telegram significant words, such as “Witte,” “Emperor,”
-“millions,” “garrison,” “reinforcement,” etc., were in cipher; but when
-Bezobrazoff read it he (or possibly his private secretary) interlined
-the equivalents of the cipher words, and also, in one place, a query
-as to the significance of _artels_—did it mean mounted riflemen or
-artillery? The following copy was made from the interlined original:
-
-
- (No. 5.)
-
- FROM PETERSBURG,
- _November 14–27, 1903_.
-
- TO BEZOBRAZOFF,
- PORT ARTHUR.
-
- Witte has told the Emperor that you have already spent the
- whole of the two millions. Your telegram with regard to
- expenditure has made it possible for me to report on this
- disgusting slander, and at the same time contradict it.
- Remember that the Chief counts on your not touching a rouble
- more than the three hundred without permission in every
- case. Yesterday I reported again your ideas with regard to
- the reinforcement of the garrison, and also with regard to
- the _artels_ (mounted Rifles or artillery?) in the basin.
- The Emperor directed me to reply that he takes all that you
- say into consideration, and that in principle he approves.
- In connection with this the Emperor again confirmed his
- order that the Admiral telegraph directly to him. He expects
- a telegram soon, and immediately upon the receipt of the
- Admiral’s statement arrangements will be made with regard to
- the reinforcement of the garrison, and at the same time with
- regard to the mounted Rifles in the basin. In the course of the
- conversation the Emperor expressed the fullest confidence in
- you.
-
- (Signed) ABAZA.
-
-General Kuropatkin refers again and again to the Tsar’s “clearly
-expressed desire that war should be avoided,” and he regrets that His
-Imperial Majesty’s subordinates “were unable to execute his will.”
-It is more than likely that Nicholas II. did wish to avoid war—if he
-could do so without impairing the value of the family investment in
-the Korean timber company—but from the above telegram it appears that
-as late as November 27, 1903, only seventy days before the rupture
-with Japan, he was still disregarding the sane and judicious advice
-of Kuropatkin, was still expressing “the fullest confidence” in
-Bezobrazoff, and was still ordering troops to the valley of the Ya-lu.
-
-
-
-
- APPENDIX II
-
- BREAKDOWN OF THE UNIT ORGANIZATION AND DISTRIBUTION[109]
-
-
-Amongst the causes which added to our difficulties must be mentioned
-the frequent breakdown in action of the normal organization of the
-troops. It began when war was declared, and though efforts were made
-to rectify things as far as possible, it was not till after the battle
-of the Sha Ho that we were really able to re-establish our formations.
-But both the corps and divisional organization again disappeared during
-the battle of Mukden, and the resulting confusion to a certain extent
-contributed to our defeat.
-
-When war began the corps organization of the troops stationed in the
-Far East was not complete, and one corps was formed of the independent
-Rifle brigades. When the Rifle regiments were brought up to a strength
-of twelve battalions, the normal composition of the 1st and 3rd
-Siberian Divisions was twenty-four battalions. The 2nd Siberian Corps
-was supposed to consist of one Rifle division and one reserve division
-formed in the Trans-Baikal district. Before hostilities commenced,
-a division of the 3rd Siberian Corps (the 3rd East Siberian Rifle
-Division) was moved by the Viceroy to the Ya-lu; the 4th East Siberian
-Rifle Division, with the corps staff, remained in Kuan-tung. The 1st
-Reserve Division, which constituted part of the 2nd Siberian Corps,
-I kept at Harbin, and this corps remained with only one division
-till I was appointed Commander-in-Chief. When the operations began, I
-endeavoured to reform the dislocated corps organization. I therefore
-collected on the line Liao-yang–Feng-huang-cheng the 3rd and 6th
-Siberian Rifle Divisions, and formed with them a corps which I called
-the 3rd Siberians. At first I did not succeed in sending to this corps
-the 23rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment—it being stationed in Mukden as
-a guard on the Viceroy’s Headquarters—and my subsequent request that
-it might be sent to the Ya-lu to join the corps there was refused;
-it was only sent forward after the battle of the Ya-lu. The line
-Liao-yang–Ta-shih-chiao–Port Arthur was guarded by the 1st Siberian
-Corps, at full strength. The 2nd Siberian Corps, in which was included
-the 2nd Brigades of the 31st and 35th Divisions, which had arrived in
-the Far East in 1903, composed my reserve, and was divided between
-Liao-yang and Hai-cheng.
-
-At first, owing to our paucity of numbers, the 3rd Siberians had to
-defend a large tract of country. Six regiments of this corps were
-on the line River Ya-lu–Feng-huang-cheng–Fen-shui-ling–Liao-yang;
-one regiment was on the line Ta-ku-shan (sea and mouth of
-Ya-lu)–Hsui-yen–Ta Ling–Hai-cheng. One regiment was on the line
-Kuan-tien-cheng–Sai-ma-chi–An-ping–Liao-yang. When the 4th Siberians
-arrived, the line Ta-ku-shan–Ta Ling–Hai-cheng was occupied by one
-of its brigades, because a considerable number of Japanese had made
-their appearance in this direction. The remaining three brigades
-were concentrated near the station of Ta-shih-chiao,[110] as a
-reserve either for the 1st Siberians to the south or the brigade
-of the 4th Siberians on the Ta Ling (Pass). All the units of the
-10th Army Corps which arrived from Russia were collected on the line
-Sai-ma-chi–An-ping–Liao-yang, where Kuroki’s army was in force. As
-soon as the units of the 4th Siberians and 10th Army Corps occupied
-the above-mentioned lines, the regiments[111] belonging to the 3rd
-Siberians were moved off to join their own corps. On arriving from
-European Russia, the units of the 17th Army Corps were concentrated
-near Liao-yang, and formed my main reserve.
-
-The two brigades of the 10th and 17th Army Corps, which arrived in the
-Far East in 1903, were organized as independent brigades, and, till the
-troops concentrated at Liao-yang, operated with the advanced forces.
-The brigade of the 35th Division fought with the 1st Siberians, to
-which it was sent up as a reinforcement in the battle of Te-li-ssu. The
-brigade of the 31st Division sent to reinforce the troops operating
-on the line Ta-ku-shan–Ta-Ling–Hai-cheng, together with the 5th East
-Siberian Rifle Division, became part of the 2nd Siberians. When the
-Japanese advanced with all their three armies on July 31, the general
-disposition of our troops was as follows:
-
-1. To the south, opposite Oku’s army, were the 1st and 4th Siberian
-Corps, total forty-eight battalions (the 1st Siberians at full
-strength, the 4th Siberians consisting of three brigades), under the
-command of General Zarubaeff.
-
-2. On the line Ta-ku-shan–Ta Ling–Hai-cheng, opposite Nodzu’s army,
-were the 2nd Siberians and a brigade of the 4th Siberians, total
-twenty-eight battalions, under the command of Lieutenant-General
-Zasulitch.
-
-3. On the line Ya-lu–Fen-shui-ling–Liao-yang, opposite Kuroki’s army,
-were the 3rd Siberians, and the 10th and 17th Army Corps, total eighty
-battalions, under the command of General Bilderling. At this time the
-5th Siberians were, by the Viceroy’s orders, detrained at Mukden,
-and told off to protect the rear and the line Pen-hsi-hu–Mukden, and
-to act at the same time as a reserve for the advanced corps. When we
-moved towards Hai-cheng the brigade of the 4th Siberians operating on
-the line Hai-cheng–Ta Ling–Ta-ku-shan, returned to its own corps. In
-retiring towards Liao-yang, the two brigades of the 10th and 17th Army
-Corps, which had been sent out to the Far East in 1903, joined these
-corps.
-
-During the first days of the battle of Liao-yang the 1st, 3rd, and
-4th Siberians and 10th Army Corps took part at their full strength of
-units. The 2nd Siberians had only one division, and the 17th Army Corps
-concentrated on the right bank of the Tai-tzu Ho, and was not at first
-engaged. When we crossed on to the right bank of the river, in order
-to operate against Kuroki, the corps organization became in several
-instances quite dissolved. In addition to the 2nd and 4th Siberians,
-we had to leave a brigade from both the 3rd Siberians and the 10th
-Army Corps for the defence of the immense fortified camp at Liao-yang
-itself. At the time of our advance at the beginning of October, I did
-everything possible to keep the corps organization intact. The 1st
-and 3rd Siberians and the 1st, 10th, and 17th Army Corps operated at
-full strength, while the 4th and 6th Siberians had three brigades
-each, one brigade of the 4th Siberians being sent to strengthen the
-3rd, which had a particularly difficult task allotted to it, and
-one brigade of the 6th Siberians (which was under me) being left by
-the Viceroy’s orders to protect our rear. The 2nd Siberians, which
-consisted of the 5th East Siberian Rifle Division, was strengthened by
-five reserve battalions. The 5th Siberians was alone (for good reasons)
-split up into two groups, one operating under the command of the corps
-commander on the extreme right flank, the other on the extreme left
-under General Rennenkampf. The account of the September operations
-of the Eastern and Western Forces, given in Chapter IX., shows
-to what an extent the units became mixed by the mere course of the
-fighting. As soon as I was appointed Commander-in-Chief, I did my best
-to prevent this in the future. The 61st Reserve Division, which did
-not belong to an army corps, and had been detailed by the Viceroy to
-strengthen the Vladivostok District, was sent by me to the field army
-and incorporated in the 5th Siberians, in place of the 71st Division,
-which was concentrated on the extreme left flank under the command of
-General Rennenkampf. All the regiments of the 1st Siberian Division
-were sent to join the 2nd Siberian Corps, and the 1st Siberian and
-10th Army Corps were moved at full strength from the first line to my
-main reserve. The 3rd, 4th, and 6th Siberian and the 1st and 17th Army
-Corps were at full strength—distributed along the first lines and in
-reserve. The 2nd and 5th Siberian Corps had each only three brigades,
-one brigade of the latter having been left on the right bank of the
-Hun Ho to protect our extreme right. A brigade of the 5th Division
-holding Putiloff Hill was left, at the special request of the officer
-commanding the 1st Manchurian Army, on the positions which had been
-captured by the splendid regiments of this brigade (19th and 20th East
-Siberian Rifle Regiments). As soon as the 8th and 16th Army Corps
-arrived they were posted to my main reserve; the three Rifle Brigades
-were formed into a Composite Rifle Corps.
-
-Early in January, 1905, I concentrated all three corps of the 2nd
-Army—_i.e._, the 8th, 10th, and Mixed Rifle Corps in reserve, and I
-had in my main reserve the 1st Siberians with a division of the 16th
-Army Corps (the other was still on the railway). We had altogether
-128 battalions in reserve, and our position was most favourable. It
-might, however, have been still better if I had insisted on strong army
-reserves being formed in the 1st and 3rd Armies. My proposal to move
-the 17th Army Corps back from the advanced lines met with a strongly
-worded request that the distribution of the 3rd Army might be left as
-it was. In the 1st Army I might have insisted on the whole of the 4th
-Siberian Corps being sent to join the reserve after the transfer of
-the Rifle Brigade from Putiloff Hill to the strong Erh-ta-ho position.
-I made a mistake also in forming three Rifle Brigades together into
-one corps. If I had kept them as independent brigades, it would have
-been unnecessary to take brigades from army corps whenever independent
-brigades were required. Although the Japanese had fewer battalions
-than we had, these were much stronger than ours; they also had more
-independent units than we had. Their divisions were not organized in
-corps, their small armies being made up of divisions and independent
-brigades, and our corps organization was not sufficiently flexible
-to meet the thirteen to fifteen Japanese divisions, and a similar
-number of independent brigades. The enemy were able to take divisions
-and brigades from the advanced positions and transfer them, without
-upsetting their existing organization, and with far greater ease than
-we could move our corps. When an independent brigade operated against
-us—as, for instance, on the line Sai-ma-chi–An-ping—we were obliged to
-break up our corps organization in order to meet it with one of our
-brigades; this happened in the 10th Army Corps.
-
-Again, owing to the general course of events and other reasons over
-which I had no control, our corps organization had to be broken up
-before the operations at Hei-kou-tai, but was restored as soon as
-possible. It also occurred during the February fighting round Mukden,
-where the circumstances, indeed, did not in every case warrant it.
-After General Grippenberg’s disastrous operations at Hei-kou-tai our
-strategical position was altered much for the worse. Four army corps,
-which had until then been standing in reserve, were sent up into the
-fighting-line, and three of them became hopelessly mixed up in the
-process. At the time I thought it only possible to keep one corps (the
-1st Siberians) in reserve, but the 16th Army corps, the 72nd Division,
-a brigade of the 6th East Siberian Rifle Division, and the Tsaritsin
-Regiment were available, as it turned out. This made a total reserve of
-eighty-two battalions. With such a strong main reserve I hoped to be
-able to meet the enemy successfully, if, on being reinforced by Nogi’s
-army from Port Arthur, they took the offensive.
-
-According to our estimates, the fall of Port Arthur might reinforce
-the Japanese field army by some fifty battalions altogether, but we
-thought that the greater portion of Nogi’s army would be sent to
-operate against Vladivostok, or via Possiet towards Kirin, so as
-to take us in the rear. The possibility of this made us extremely
-sensitive, both as to our rear and as regards Vladivostok. The first
-thing we did, therefore, on Nogi’s army being set free, was to
-strengthen the garrison of the latter place, which was very weakly held
-for the extent of the defences. I sent there from all three armies
-cadres of a strength of six battalions, which were to expand into four
-regiments so as to form the 10th East Siberian Rifle Division. It was
-thought that, upon a general assumption of the offensive, the Japanese
-would simultaneously try to bring about a rising of the local native
-population, and to destroy the railway bridges behind us. To give
-colour to our fears, a whole series of reports, each more alarming than
-the last, were received from General Chichagoff. In these he described
-the large numbers of the enemy that had appeared behind us with the
-intention of seizing Harbin as well as of destroying the railway. I
-mentioned (Vol. III.) how this officer calculated the strength of the
-enemy in our rear at tens of thousands, and how persistent he was in
-his demands that the troops guarding the line might be strengthened.
-As a proof of the urgency of the circumstances, he reported the
-defeat, with a loss of guns, of some Frontier Guards sent out by him
-to reconnoitre east of the Kuan-cheng-tzu station. Later information
-corroborated these reports in so far that parties of the enemy,
-accompanied by bands of Hun-huses, had penetrated far in rear, broken
-through our line of posts between Kuan-cheng-tzu and Bei-tu-ne, and
-were threatening the latter point, which, being our central corn-supply
-depôt, was of immense importance to us. Large bodies of Japanese and
-Hun-huses were also reported as moving in the direction of Tsit-si-har
-with the intention of blowing up the important railway-bridge across
-the River Nonni, and thus cutting our railway communication. One of the
-large bridges near the station of Kung-chu-ling was, after a skirmish
-with our guards, destroyed. In the face of such “circumstantial
-evidence” as the loss of guns and the destruction of bridges, it was
-impossible not to credit General Chichagoff’s reports (the extent of
-their exaggeration we did not find out till later), and to refuse him
-assistance. The security of our communications was literally vital,
-for even their temporary disorganization meant catastrophe. Not only
-the flow of reinforcements to the front, but the collection and
-distribution of local supplies would have ceased. As we were over 5,300
-miles away from our base (Russia), we had been forced to form a local
-supply base, and the loss of this would have threatened the army with
-starvation. As, therefore, the actual numbers guarding the railway were
-small, I increased them by one brigade of the 16th Army Corps and four
-Cossack regiments. My staff inclined to the opinion, indeed, that six
-Cossack regiments should have been sent.
-
-In February the Japanese moved forward in strength, carrying out a
-frontal attack combined with simultaneous turning movements against
-both our flanks. To carry out such an operation successfully implies
-great numerical superiority on the side of the attackers, or else
-great attenuation along their front; and relying, apparently, on the
-strength of their positions, the Japanese did weaken their front to a
-very great extent. Our best plan would accordingly have been to have
-attacked them in the centre in the hope of breaking through there, and
-then operating afterwards against the outflanking movements. But this
-might have been disastrous, for if they succeeded in holding their
-frontal positions with comparatively small numbers stiffened by extra
-artillery and machine guns and well reinforced by reserves [which
-were in their case splendidly organized], we might still have been
-outflanked by the turning movements.
-
-The special difficulty of frontal attacks was amply confirmed during
-the Mukden battles, for, although our troops there held very extended
-positions, they repulsed the Japanese whenever the latter made only a
-frontal attack. When, therefore, the Japanese assumed the offensive,
-and Kavamura’s movement round our left flank developed, I determined to
-check it by attacking Kuroki in front and flank. The situation on our
-left had become very alarming, for by losing the strong Ching-ho-cheng
-position and retiring towards Ma-chun-tan we had exposed the left
-flank of the 3rd Siberian Corps on the Kao-tai Ling (Pass). A still
-wider turning movement threatened to throw the 71st Division back on
-Fu-shun, but the reinforcements rapidly sent to the 1st Army from the
-main reserve were able to arrest Kavamura’s movement, largely owing
-to the behaviour of General Rennenkampf’s and Daniloff’s 71st and 6th
-East Siberian Rifle Divisions, which fought with great gallantry and
-stubbornness. If the 1st Army, which had a strength of 175 battalions,
-had made a successful advance, it ought to have influenced the
-operation then under way against our right. Being anxious to take the
-offensive, I gave Linievitch, commanding the 1st Army, the chance
-of selecting the main point of attack, and he decided to strike the
-point where Kuroki’s and Kavamura’s armies joined. The orders had been
-issued, and the movement had actually begun, when certain unconfirmed
-reports as to the movement of some Japanese divisions round the left
-flank of the 3rd Siberians unfortunately led him to stop the attack
-and send back such units of the 1st Siberian Corps as had been lent to
-the 1st Army for the operation. We had lost several days in collecting
-troops for this offensive movement, and large bodies of the enemy had
-meanwhile been moving round our right. I have described in detail (Vol.
-III.) the steps taken to avert this danger, and the results achieved.
-Here I will only mention them briefly. Against the 2nd Army, which
-consisted of ninety-six battalions, and which was mostly located on the
-left bank of the Hun Ho, Oku was operating with the greater part of
-his army. His right flank was, according to our information, operating
-against the 5th Siberians, and part, probably, against the 17th Army
-Corps of the 3rd Army. Thus, opposed to the troops under General
-Kaulbars’ command at the time when Nogi’s advance developed, there
-were, according to our calculations, not more than thirty-six to forty
-Japanese battalions. As the 2nd Army was reinforced by twenty-four
-battalions of the 16th Army Corps from the main reserve, theoretically
-we should have driven Oku’s army south by an energetic offensive, and,
-having thus cut it off from Nogi’s force, should have fallen on the
-latter. To do this we should have had to seize the fortified positions
-with strong defensive points near the village of San-de-pu by frontal
-attack. Practically, in the much more favourable conditions of a month
-previous, 120 battalions of the 2nd Army had been unable to drive the
-enemy southwards and get possession of this village after six days’
-continuous fighting. There was every reason to fear, therefore, that
-even if we gained possession of these points, and succeeded in forcing
-back Oku’s army, so many men would have been expended in the effort
-that we should have been in no condition to oppose Nogi, who could then
-have captured Mukden, and cut off the 2nd and 3rd Armies from their
-communications.
-
-Whatever course was decided upon, our weakness in power of manœuvre,
-the strength of the Japanese divisions, and their great powers of
-defence, had to be borne in mind. On the whole, a consideration of
-these points rather led to the conclusion that it was probably a
-distinct advantage to them to engage as many of us as possible in a
-frontal attack on their positions, so that they might be the more
-certain of success in their turning movement. After looking at the
-question from all sides, I decided to stand on the defensive in the
-front of the 2nd and 3rd Armies, and to move as quickly as possible
-sufficient troops to the right bank of the Hun Ho to check and then
-drive back Nogi’s army, which was executing the turning movement. The
-first troops to be used for this were those of the 2nd Army, whose duty
-it was to protect the right flank of our whole force. For this purpose
-I first took one corps from this army, calculating that the sixty-four
-remaining battalions could without difficulty withstand any onset by
-Oku (of from thirty to forty battalions). General Baron Kaulbars was
-ordered to move this corps as quickly as possible towards the village
-of Sha-ling-pu, where I proposed to concentrate the units to oppose
-Nogi. To operate against him I then moved up twenty-four battalions
-of the 16th Corps together, putting them also under the command of
-General Kaulbars, while as a reserve to these advanced troops I took
-twelve battalions from the 3rd and the 1st Siberian Corps, which I
-ordered to move towards Mukden and rejoin my reserve as soon as news
-was received of the attack being stopped, and of the departure of
-the 1st Army to Chi-hui-cheng. Thus, arrangements were made for the
-concentration of ninety-two battalions, which by March 3 should easily
-have been able to cover our right flank, check Nogi’s army, and drive
-it back. Unfortunately, our hopes of what was going to be effected on
-this flank were not fulfilled. In order to move this army corps against
-Nogi, Kaulbars essayed a most complicated manœuvre—namely, to move the
-Composite Rifle Corps from the right bank of the Hun Ho on to the left,
-and to replace it on to the right bank by the 8th Army Corps, which was
-to move on Sha-ling-pu. The first part of this plan was carried out—the
-Rifle Corps crossed on to the left bank, but, owing to the Japanese
-pressure, the 8th Army Corps remained on that side. Thus the units
-of the two Corps became mixed up. Of the 2nd Army, only two brigades
-(of the 10th Army Corps), which had been sent there under my orders,
-together with the 25th Infantry Division, arrived at Sha-ling-pu.
-Meanwhile the whole of the 10th Army Corps, or at least twenty-four
-battalions of it, might have been moved there, for it was opposed by
-very few of the enemy. The transfer from the right—the threatened—flank
-of the Rifles had, as is now known, very serious consequences, for by
-it the right flank of the 2nd Army was uncovered too soon, and the
-units there, being attacked in front and flank, began to retreat, which
-caused the adjacent troops to do the same.
-
-From the information I received as to the enemy’s movements, I decided
-to move the 16th Army Corps in two directions—one portion direct on
-Hsin-min-tun, and the 25th Division on Sha-ling-pu. When it became
-apparent that the enemy were not advancing behind the Liao Ho, but
-between it and the Hun Ho, Kaulbars very properly gave orders for a
-brigade of the 41st Division to be sent up towards the 25th Division
-at Sha-ling-pu. We should have thus had the 16th Corps, consisting
-of twenty-four battalions, all together; and to this it was General
-Kaulbars’ intention to add the 8th Army Corps at full strength. As
-this force would have been reinforced by me by another Siberian corps,
-we should have had three army corps against Nogi. Unfortunately,
-however, Kaulbars countermanded the orders already issued to General
-Birger (to join the 25th Division), and this brigade continued to
-act independently, and added to the existing confusion of troops,
-especially when it split up and retired in two directions—towards
-Mukden and Hu-shih-tai station. Instead of the 8th Army Corps arriving
-to reinforce the 25th Division, two brigades of the 10th Army Corps
-turned up. Finally, Linievitch did not consider it possible to carry
-out his orders (to send the 1st Siberian Corps to Mukden at full
-strength), and asked permission to detain two regiments of it, and so
-the divisions of the 1st Siberian Corps arrived in Mukden with only
-three regiments each. Fully recognizing the danger of our position on
-the right flank, the commander of the 3rd Army sent his army reserve
-of three regiments of the 17th Army Corps to Mukden, and on his own
-initiative added to them the Samara Regiment (three battalions), which
-had been sent to him the day before with a view to strengthening his
-left. Meanwhile the different orders given during the fighting between
-February 23 and March 4 by the commanders of the 1st and 2nd Armies
-resulted in an inextricable confusion of lesser units, which added
-to that caused by the breakdown of the corps organization. As there
-were insufficient army reserves, Linievitch reinforced the troops that
-were being attacked from the corps reserves of those corps which had
-not been attacked. For instance, when the enemy’s advance against the
-left flank of the 1st Army began, certain units of the 3rd Siberian
-Corps, by moving eastwards along the front, were able to strengthen
-Rennenkampf’s force. When the Kao-tai Ling position—defended by the 3rd
-Siberians—was attacked, this corps was supported by portions of the 2nd
-and 4th Siberian Corps to the west of them; when the 2nd Siberians were
-attacked they were reinforced by units of the 4th.
-
-Thus the reinforcements sent up by me only served to heighten the
-general confusion of units caused by the orders of the officer
-commanding the 1st Army and of the corps commanders. Against Kavamura
-on March 1 and 2 there were in the 1st Army the 71st Division,
-consisting of three regiments, the whole of the 6th East Siberian Rifle
-Division, one regiment of the 3rd East Siberian Rifle Division, and
-one regiment of the 1st Army Corps—total twenty-nine battalions.[112]
-Against Kuroki were the 3rd East Siberian Rifle Division, consisting
-of three regiments, one regiment of the 71st Division, two of the 4th
-Siberians, and one of the 2nd Siberians—total twenty-five battalions.
-On the assumption that we should attack, I sent to these troops the
-72nd Division and the 1st Siberians at full strength, as well as one
-regiment of the 1st Army Corps—total forty-four battalions. Thus
-sixty-nine battalions were concentrated on and behind the positions
-of the 3rd Siberian Corps. Farther west, on the positions of the 2nd
-Siberian Corps, there remained of this corps fourteen battalions,
-which, reinforced by a regiment of the 4th Siberians, successfully
-repulsed all attacks, including an assault made by the Japanese Guards.
-Still farther west, on the positions of the 4th Siberians, which were
-not attacked, there were twenty to twenty-four battalions of this same
-corps. Finally, against Nodzu’s right twenty-four battalions of the
-1st Army Corps not only completely repulsed all attacks, but pressed
-forward very successfully. Generally speaking, although the units of
-the 1st Army were considerably mixed up, the corps organization of the
-1st, 2nd, and 4th Siberians and the 1st Army Corps was not very much
-disturbed.
-
-In the 2nd Army matters were worse. The unsuccessful attempt to
-“castle” two corps (the Composite Rifle and 8th Army Corps) was the
-start of the break-up of the army corps organization, and in beating
-off the enemy these two corps, together with the 10th, became still
-more involved. Throughout the fighting of the night of March 4 no
-touch was kept between the different units of the 8th Army Corps. The
-14th Division (three regiments) and one regiment of the 15th Division
-crossed on to the right bank of the Hun Ho and moved westwards, while
-the 15th Division (three regiments) arrived behind the left flank of
-the 3rd Army after a night march to the north-east. On the morning of
-the 4th mingled portions of all these corps took up fresh positions on
-both banks of the Hun Ho.
-
-Sufficient efforts were not made to readjust matters either in the
-divisions or corps. The commander of the 10th Army Corps maintained
-under his command only two brigades of the 9th and 31st Divisions
-(consisting of sixteen battalions), which had been moved by my order
-towards Sha-ling-pu; the commander of the 16th Army Corps was with the
-25th Infantry Division, which had sixteen battalions; while neither
-the commanders of the 8th or Composite Rifle Corps had got so many
-troops directly under them. By General Kaulbars’ orders, Tserpitski was
-appointed to command the left wing of the troops moved on to the right
-bank of the Hun Ho; among these was only one regiment of the 10th Army
-Corps, the remainder belonging to the 8th Army, Composite Rifle, and
-5th Siberian Corps. At the same time as Kaulbars appointed Tserpitski,
-he removed the commanders of the 8th, Composite Rifle, and 16th Corps
-from the direct command of troops. This gave the _coup de grâce_ to
-the corps organization of this army. It was now completely destroyed.
-As I have mentioned (Vol. III.), there was an opportunity on March 6 of
-withdrawing the whole of the 10th Army Corps from the first line, and
-so reorganizing the 8th Corps and the Composite Rifles properly, but
-the commander of the 2nd Army did not seize it.
-
-The inaction of the 2nd Army on March 4, its passive and disastrous
-operations on the 5th and 6th, placed our right flank in a very
-difficult position. Nogi was moving not only along the flank, but to
-the rear of the 2nd Army. The commander of this army, continuing to
-see danger where there was none, paid particular attention to Oku’s
-operations, and left Nogi to move round to our rear without hindrance.
-Indeed, had I not interfered on March 7, Nogi’s force would have seized
-Shan-tai-tzu, the Imperial Tombs, and Mukden, and moved in rear of the
-2nd Army. By my orders the defence of the positions near Shan-tai-tzu,
-Ta-heng-tun, and Wen-ken-tun was organized so as to face to the north
-and west. The movement of the 3rd Army towards the Hun Ho contracted
-our position, and enabled me to withdraw to my main reserve portions of
-the 9th, 15th, and 54th Divisions, and by means of this concentration
-the danger of Nogi’s movement to our rear was temporarily averted,
-but in the section held by the 2nd Army we were fighting on three
-fronts—west, south, and north. Under such conditions I naturally sent
-into action those units which were nearest. Still, the defence of the
-northern front was entrusted to a brigade of the 41st Division, the
-Volinsk Regiment, and to the 9th Rifle Regiment. Near Tsu-erh-tun were
-concentrated three regiments of the 9th and three of the 54th Divisions.
-
-On the 6th and 7th I made a final attempt to wrest victory from the
-Japanese. Hoping that Kuroki had suffered heavily on the preceding
-days, and relying on the splendid material in the 1st Army, I made
-up my mind, after considerable discussion of the matter with its
-commander on the telephone, to weaken that army considerably, so as to
-make certain of having sufficient men at Tsu-erh-tun. I augmented my
-main reserve by the whole of the 72nd Division, a brigade of the 2nd
-Siberian, and eighteen battalions from the 1st Army and 4th Siberian
-Corps. The commander of the 1st Army was of opinion that if we did not
-soon have a success on the right this weakening of the 1st Army might
-be a danger, but though fully realizing the force of his contention, I
-considered it necessary to take the risk for the following reasons:
-
-1. One hundred and five splendid battalions were still left under the
-command of General Linievitch.
-
-2. The enemy in front of the 1st Army must, according to the reports
-sent in by its commander, have lost very heavily.
-
-3. The Japanese had transferred almost the whole of Oku’s army to
-the right bank of the Hun Ho, immediately after Nogi’s, and we had
-either to break through this disposition or strengthen those of our
-forces on the right bank of the Hun Ho by a lateral movement. As I
-have described already (Vol. III.), our hopes were not realized. The
-movement of the reserves to Tsu-erh-tun was effected very much more
-slowly than we had counted upon, and, taking advantage of our reduction
-in strength on the front held by the 1st Army, the enemy broke through
-there. At the point of our position (Chiu-tien) where the enemy broke
-through, _there should have been, according to the arrangements of the
-officer commanding the 1st Army, four regiments of the troops under
-his command, but as a matter of fact there were only ten companies
-of the Barnaul Regiment_.[113] Taking all the circumstances into
-consideration, our retirement was, in my opinion, a day too late, and
-instead of throwing all the reinforcements which arrived at Tsu-erh-tun
-into the fight, some of them (General Zarubaeff’s force) had to be kept
-as a last reserve in case the enemy attempted to close us in with a
-ring of fire.
-
-In the last fights at Mukden, the 4th Siberian Corps was scattered
-along the whole front, but the enemy being at that spot in
-inconsiderable strength, did not attack its strong position at
-Erh-ta-ho. Thirty-two splendid battalions of this corps might have
-been used by the commander of the 1st Army for a local counter-attack,
-or, together with the troops of the 1st Army Corps or those of the 2nd
-Siberians, for a greater effort at the counter-offensive, for which a
-very favourable opportunity presented itself when the enemy attacked
-the 2nd Siberians. By advancing we could have taken the attacking
-forces in flank and rear, and the Japanese Imperial Guards would have
-been threatened with disaster. But the opportunity was not seized.
-Hence the 4th Siberian Corps, having no force opposed to it, only
-formed, so to speak, a reserve to the 1st and 2nd Armies.
-
-On the whole, the confusion was at its greatest between March 8 and 10
-on the northern front of the 2nd Army, but the energetic and gallant
-General Launits was in command, and he not only beat back all attacks,
-but rescued the inert units of the 2nd Army, whose rear Nogi was
-threatening. On March 10 General Muiloff, in command of the rearguard
-(composed only of the Lublin Regiment), gallantly and successfully
-carried out the difficult duty of covering the retirement of the 2nd
-and 3rd Armies.
-
-It must be remembered that, though the corps organization mostly
-broke down, the regimental organization was preserved, and this
-gave a cohesion in action which, when taken advantage of, served us
-right well. The preservation of the regimental organization was also
-important on account of the rationing of the troops. The first line
-transport (with field kitchens and two-wheeled ammunition carts) were
-kept with regiments, and so ammunition and food were in many cases
-most opportunely forthcoming in spite of the mixing up of units. The
-nearness of our supplies also at Mukden enabled us easily to refill
-regimental reserves. Against the 1st Siberian Corps at the bloody
-action at Su-no-pu (near San-de-pu) on January 27—a fight that was more
-or less unpremeditated on both sides—units of five different Japanese
-divisions were engaged, though the enemy had a comparatively small
-force in the field. The enemy, therefore, must also have suffered from
-confusion.
-
-I have endeavoured to give some explanation of how it was that
-units got mixed up; but I consider that it was in many cases quite
-unnecessary. Consequently, when I reported to the Tsar that I was
-mainly responsible for our disaster at Mukden, I pointed out that one
-of my mistakes was that I did not sufficiently legislate to prevent
-this confusion, and that, as a matter of fact, I was forced by
-circumstances to add to it.
-
-
-
- INDEX
-
-
- ABAZA, Admiral, his connection with the Royal Timber Company,
- ii. 309–313
-
- Abdur Rahman, and Afghanistan, i. 84, 85
-
- Adabash, Colonel, his information on Japanese reserve forces, i. 206
-
- Afghanistan:
- her frontier, i. 62;
- Britain’s advance, i. 63, 84;
- and Russia, i. 64–66, 87;
- a buffer State, i. 85;
- Boundary Commission, i. 86
-
- Alexander I., Emperor of Russia:
- more freedom for the army, i. 14;
- his example, i. 20
-
- Alexander II., Emperor of Russia:
- the clamour for peace, i. 22;
- the emancipation of the serfs, i. 23;
- military economy, i. 87;
- the Siberian Railway, i. 149
-
- Alexander III., Emperor of Russia, military economy, i. 87
-
- Alexeieff, Admiral:
- stops work at Port Arthur, i. 126, 128;
- the Boxer rebellion, i. 154;
- stops the evacuation of Mukden, i. 169;
- his connection with Bezobrazoff and the Royal Timber Company,
- i. 173–185, ii. 306–313;
- becomes Viceroy of the Far East, i. 187;
- his negotiations with Japan, i. 188–198;
- disperses his troops and fleet, i. 225;
- his opinion of the fleet, i. 237, 238;
- report on the Eastern Chinese Railway, i. 246;
- presses for relief, i. 257;
- strategical distribution of troops, ii. 205–211;
- the weakness of Port Arthur, ii. 213, 229
-
- Alien population, dangers of an, i. 102
-
- Alma, battle of the, i. 17
-
- America, Russia hands over her possessions in, i. 35
-
- Ammunition:
- defects in gun, i. 137;
- average expenditure of rifle, ii. 149, 150
-
- Amur district, Russia’s annexation of, i. 35
-
- Armament (see Army):
- inferior, i. 15;
- moral effect of, i. 107, 108;
- artillery, i. 121, 135;
- for Port Arthur, i. 129;
- test of a new field-gun, i. 136;
- defects in gun ammunition, i. 137
-
- Army, Russian:
- the Great Northern War, i. 5, 6;
- reductions in, i. 8;
- distribution of, i. 9;
- struggle with France, i. 10;
- annexation of Finland, i. 12;
- in the Crimean War, i. 13–21;
- in the Turkish wars, i. 24–34;
- casualties in the two main struggles, i. 36;
- peace and war establishments, i. 38;
- relative speed of mobilization, i. 88–90, 272–284;
- losses in the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries, i. 99;
- incapacity of generals, i. 101;
- improvement of, i. 113, 119–124;
- value of the Siberian Corps, i. 125;
- want of railway transport, i. 131–134, 156, 242–268;
- re-armament of the artillery, i. 135, 136;
- defects in gun ammunition, i. 137;
- numbers in the Pri-Amur district, i. 144;
- its distribution, i. 225, ii. 209, 210;
- its favourable state when peace declared, i. 230–234;
- defeats at Yalu, Chin-chou, and Te-li-ssu, i. 257, 258;
- loss at Sha Ho, i. 259;
- the reservists, i. 278–290;
- shortage and capabilities of officers, i. 290–294, 300–305;
- discipline, i. 295, 296;
- corporal punishment, i. 297–299;
- want of sappers, i. 305;
- machine-guns, i. 306–309;
- criticism of staff work, ii. 2, 3;
- cavalry at manœuvres, ii. 4;
- attack and defence, ii. 5;
- column formation, ii. 6;
- work of the artillery, ii. 7;
- work of the sappers, ii. 7, 8;
- criticism by commanders, ii. 9;
- tactical instruction, ii. 10–25;
- relative positions of, ii. 33, 34, 37–40;
- absence of military spirit and patriotism, ii. 35, 183;
- adverse conditions, ii. 37, 39;
- effect of the rainy season and dysentery, ii. 41;
- difficulties in organization, ii. 44–60;
- defects in the command, ii. 60–72;
- in the rank and file, ii. 72–80;
- Kuropatkin’s final address to, ii. 88–97;
- suggestions for the improvement of:
- (1) the senior rank, ii. 98–114;
- (2) the regulars and reservists, ii. 114–127;
- (3) reserve organization, ii. 128–131;
- (4) augmenting the combatant infantry, ii. 131–136;
- (5) machine-guns, ii. 136;
- (6) depôt troops, ii. 137–139;
- (7) communication troops, ii. 139, 140;
- (8) engineer troops, ii. 141–146;
- (9) artillery, ii. 146–151;
- (10) cavalry, ii. 151–155;
- (11) infantry, ii. 155–161;
- (12) organization, ii. 161–176;
- summary of the war, ii. 177–204;
- gradual improvement in spirit, ii. 183, 188, 189;
- strategical distribution of, ii. 205, 271;
- Kuropatkin’s narrative of the war, ii. 205–305;
- strength of, ii. 258;
- breakdown of the unit organization and distribution, ii. 314–335
-
- Artamonoff, General, ii. 281, 282
-
- Artillery:
- rearmament of the, i. 121, 135;
- machine, i. 306–309, ii. 136, 137;
- suggested improvements, ii. 146–155, 162
-
- Asia:
- Russia’s war with Turkey, i. 26;
- Russia’s position in, i. 34;
- Russia’s frontiers, i. 40–46;
- opposition to Russia’s expansion in, i. 147
-
- _Asia for the Asiatics_, ii. 195, 196
-
- Austerlitz, Russia’s heavy loss at, i. 98
-
- Austria:
- war with Napoleon, i. 10;
- Crimean War, i. 16;
- her frontier with Russia, i. 51–54;
- her strategic railways, i. 55;
- her speed of mobilization, i. 90;
- her perfected organization, i. 103
-
- Austro-Hungary:
- Russian frontiers, i. 44, 50–52;
- trade with Russia, i. 52;
- possibility of war with Russia, i. 53, 54
-
- Azov, surrender of, i. 6
-
-
- Baikal, Lake, great obstacle to the Siberian Railway, i. 149, 248, 254
-
- Balasheff, Acting State Councillor:
- his warlike despatch, i. 178;
- investigation of the Royal Timber Company, i. 181
-
- Baltic Sea: Russian aims, i. 5, 9;
- defence of, i. 114
-
- Batianoff, General, Commander of the 3rd Manchurian Army, ii. 186
-
- Batoum, i. 32
-
- Bayazet, the defence of, i. 26
-
- Berlin:
- Congress, i. 32;
- Treaty of, i. 82
-
- Bessarabia, Russian annexation of, i. 13, 24
-
- Bezobrazoff, State Councillor:
- his connection with the Royal Timber Company, i. 169, ii. 306–313;
- his propositions, i 172–174;
- Kuropatkin’s report on, i. 177–179;
- investigation of the Royal Timber Company, i. 180, 184
-
- Bilderling, General, Commander of the 2nd Manchurian Army:
- his report, ii. 186;
- criticism on, ii. 228, 234, 247;
- his force, ii. 242;
- withdraws to position on the Sha Ho, ii. 245, 286
-
- Black Sea, the:
- Russian progress towards, i. 6, 12, 13;
- Russia deprived of a war fleet in, i. 19, 24, 33;
- coast defence on, i. 114
-
- Blume, M., theorist in strategy, ii. 69
-
- Borisoff, Colonel, at Mukden, ii. 281, 283
-
- Borodino, Russian loss at, i. 98
-
- Boskey, General, surprises the Russians at the battle of the Alma,
- i. 17
-
- Bothnia, Gulf of, Russian aims, i. 9, 41, 42
-
- Boxer Rebellion, i. 136, 154, 155
-
- Bulgaria:
- Turko-Servian War, i. 24, 25;
- Russian behaviour in, i. 29, 30
-
- Burun, M., on the Russian fleet, i. 236, 237, 240, 241
-
-
- Caucasus, the:
- her Russian frontier, i. 5, 8, 33, 34, 57, 58;
- her troops, i. 26, 114
-
- Cavalry:
- not sufficiently used, ii. 151, 152;
- failure of the officers, ii. 153–155, 288;
- details of units, ii. 162
-
- Censorship, necessity for press, ii. 176
-
- Charles XII., King of Sweden, war with Russia, i. 5
-
- Cherniaeff, General, Geok Tepe, i. 32
-
- Chichagoff, General, his alarmist reports, ii. 302, 321, 322
-
- China:
- peaceful attitude of, i. 5;
- Peking Treaty, i. 35;
- Russian frontier and trade, i. 67, 68;
- war with Japan, i. 69, 151, 201–204;
- Russian policy, i. 72, 157;
- the awakening of, i. 91;
- Boxer Rebellion and treaty with Russia, i. 154–162;
- her alarm at Russia’s policy, i. 170;
- Russian treatment of the Chinese, ii. 190, 191
-
- Chin-chou, battle of, i. 257
-
- Civil disorder, repression of, ii. 125
-
- Constantinople, Russian advance to walls of, i. 30, 82
-
- Cossacks. See Cavalry
-
- Crimean War:
- strength of Russian army, i. 13;
- Russia’s unpreparedness, i. 16, 101, 109;
- Inkerman, i. 18;
- siege of Sevastopol, i. 19;
- a premature peace, i. 20–22
-
-
- Dalny:
- Russian annexation of, i. 69;
- Japanese use of, i. 127;
- its fortifications, i. 172, ii. 207;
- commerce, i. 190;
- coal storage at, i. 246
-
- Danube, the, Russian acquisition and loss of the mouths of,
- i. 13, 16, 19, 24, 32
-
- Defence schemes, ii. 26–30
-
- Dembovski, General, at Mukden, ii. 285, 286
-
- Demchinski, M., _Were we Ready for War?_ i. 111
-
- Djam, Russian force at, i. 84
-
- Dragomiroff, General, and quick-firing artillery, i. 136;
- his theories, ii. 8, 10, 11
-
- Dubniak Hill, capture of, i. 25
-
- Dukhovski, General, Governor-General and Commander
- in the Pri-Amur district, and the Siberian Railway, i. 151, 171
-
- Dushkevitch, Colonel, i. 302
-
-
- Eastern Chinese Railway:
- the bad condition of, i. 131, 132, 182–242;
- a parallel in Persia, i. 193;
- suggested sale to China, i. 221;
- capacity of, i. 243–256
-
- Emmanuel, Major, his appreciation of the Japanese army, i. 222
-
- Engineers, ii. 141–146;
- details of units, ii. 162
-
- Essen, Admiral, his daring sally from Vladivostok, i. 239
-
- Esthonia, Russian annexation of, i. 5
-
- Eupatoria, the Allies’ disembarkation at, i. 17
-
-
- Feng-huang-cheng, Russian occupation of, i. 170–174, 184
-
- Finance Minister, dual capacity of, i. 139
-
- Finland, Russian annexation of, i. 5, 12, 41;
- Russian frontier, i. 8 _n._, 9;
- her aims for autonomy, i. 42
-
- Fortresses, work on the, i. 126–130
-
- France:
- her struggles with Russia, i. 10;
- strength of her army, i. 15;
- cause of Franco-Russian _entente_, i. 46;
- lessons from the Franco-German War, i. 78–81
-
- Friederichsham, Treaty of, i. 40, 41
-
- Frontiers (see Russia), Russian, i. 8 _n._, 35, 40–77
-
-
- Galicia, strategic value of, i. 54, 55
-
- Geok Tepe, Russian attack on, i. 31, 85, 148
-
- Georgia, Russian annexation of, i. 8
-
- Germany:
- war with Napoleon, i. 10;
- her Russian frontier, i. 44, 45;
- her Russian trade, i. 45, 59;
- her strategic preparations, i. 46–49;
- possibilities of war, i. 49, 50;
- trade in Persia, i. 59, 60;
- lessons from the Franco-German War, i. 79, 80;
- her relative speed of mobilization, i. 90;
- her perfect organization, i. 103, 113;
- her military expenditure, i. 112, 113
-
- Gerngros, General:
- the Boxer Rebellion, i. 155;
- wounded at Te-li-ssu, i. 219;
- the battle near Mukden, ii. 278, 279, 293, 297
-
- Giers, M., Russian Minister for Foreign Affairs,
- on the cession of Kuldja, i. 93
-
- Glinski, M., _The Resurrected Dead_, i. 292
-
- Godunoff, Boris, and the Caspian Sea, i. 4
-
- Goltz, Von der, a distinguished German writer,
- his dictum on war, i. 88
-
- Gorbatoff, M., _Thoughts Suggested by Recent Military Operations_,
- ii. 75, 76
-
- Great Britain:
- strength of her army, i. 15;
- the Crimean War, i. 16–20;
- her trade with Persia, i. 59, 60;
- Russia and Afghanistan, i. 62–67, 84, 85;
- Afghan Boundary Commission, i. 86;
- treaty with Japan, i. 269
-
- Grieg, Admiral, Russian Minister of Finance,
- on the cession of Kuldja, i. 93
-
- Grippenberg, General, Commander of the 2nd Army:
- his peculiar theories and behaviour, i. 299,
- ii. 11, 23–25, 55–60, 251–253, 257, 260, 261, 264–267, 320;
- _The Truth about the Battle of Hei-kou-tai_, ii. 83
-
- Grodekovi, General, i. 154, 155
-
- Guber, General, ii. 52
-
- Gulistan, Treaty of, i. 60
-
- Guns. See Artillery
-
- Gurieff, M., _The Outbreak of the Russo-Japanese War_, i. 146
-
- Gurko, General, siege of Plevna, i. 26; criticisms by, ii. 9
-
-
- Hamilton, General Sir Ian, an appreciation of the Japanese army,
- i. 223
-
- Harbin:
- concentration at, i. 155, 160;
- railway difficulties, i. 245, 254, 261, 268;
- drunkenness at, ii. 188
-
- Hei-kou-tai, operations at, ii. 82, 83, 271, 320
-
- Hei-ni-tun, Russian attack on, ii. 282
-
- Herat, proposed railway, i. 67;
- and Russia, i. 86
-
- Hershelman, General, i. 279
-
- Hsi-mu-cheng, concentration at, ii. 42
-
- Hsi-ping-kai positions:
- Russian occupation of, i. 229, ii. 32, 182, 287;
- handed over to Japan, i. 232;
- preparations near, ii. 184, 185, 194
-
- Hun-huses, raids by, i. 158, 159
-
-
- Imeretinski, General, at Plevna, i. 28
-
- India and Russia’s policy, i. 64–67
-
- Infantry (see Army):
- the chief arm, ii. 155;
- improvement in, ii. 156;
- officers’ casualties, ii. 157, 158;
- promotion in the field, ii. 159;
- _field_ v. _office_ training, ii. 160;
- organization and details of units, ii. 161–170;
- penalties on active service, ii. 171–175
-
- Istomin, Admiral, his heroic death, i. 18, 21
-
- Ivanovitch, Tsar Theodore, i. 4
-
-
- Japan:
- peaceful attitude of, i. 5;
- Russia and Saghalien, i. 35;
- Peking Treaty, i. 35;
- war with China, i. 69, 151, 202–204;
- events leading up to the war with Russia, i. 123–130, 151, 157–166,
- 170, 177–179;
- the Royal Timber Company, i. 172;
- Kuropatkin’s visit to, and impressions of, i. 174, 175, 217–223;
- progress of negotiations, i. 188, 193;
- Russia’s bluff, i. 193–198;
- her early history, i. 199;
- birth of her army, i. 200–202;
- expedition to China, i. 203;
- her estimated strength, i. 203, 208, ii. 192;
- expansion for war, i. 204–206;
- her loss in the war with Russia, i. 207, ii. 192;
- her sea-transport, i. 209;
- Russian criticisms on the army of, i. 210;
- her officers in Russian employ, i. 212;
- her reserve troops, i. 213;
- the _samurai_ spirit, i. 214;
- her resentment with Russia, i. 215;
- her system of education, i. 217–219;
- Korea a vital question, i. 219;
- German and English appreciations of, i. 222, 223;
- her disembarkations on Liao-tung Peninsula and Kuan-tung unhindered,
- i. 225;
- her advantages, i. 226;
- their moral tone, i. 227;
- the nation with the army, i. 228;
- partial exhaustion, i. 230, 235, ii. 194, 195;
- strength of the fleets in the Far East, i. 236, 237;
- the naval battles near Port Arthur and Vladivostok, i. 238–241;
- her victories at the Yalu, Chin-chou and Te-li-ssu, i. 257, 258,
- ii. 38, 83;
- her treaty with Great Britain, i. 269;
- relative positions after fifteen months’ war, ii. 31–35, 39–44;
- her losses, ii. 192, 193;
- Kuropatkin’s summary of the war, ii. 217–287, 314–335
-
- Jassy, Treaty of, i. 6
-
- Jilinski, General, Headquarter Staff, i. 206, 256
-
-
- Ka-liao-ma, ii. 274, 290
-
- Kamchatka, Russian annexation of, i. 35
-
- Kao-li-tun, ii. 275
-
- Kars, the capture of the fortress of, i. 26, 30, 32, ii. 14
-
- Kashgaria, i. 70;
- Chinese take possession of, i. 92
-
- Kaufmann, General, i. 32;
- and Afghanistan, i. 85;
- the cession of Kuldja, i. 92, 93;
- the Bokhara Khanate, i. 147
-
- Kaulbars, General, ii. 58;
- in command of the 3rd Army, ii. 249, 265;
- in command of the 2nd Army, ii. 268;
- the assault of San-de-pu, ii. 271;
- battles near Mukden, ii. 272–287;
- criticisms on, ii. 288–305, 324–335
-
- Keller, General Count, ii. 42, 221;
- his death, ii. 71, 226
-
- Khanates, the, i. 147, 148
-
- Khilkoff, Prince, Minister of Ways and Communications,
- and the Siberian Railway, i. 246, 248, 250, 254
-
- Khiva, Russian failure to gain possession of, i. 5
-
- Kipke, Surgeon-General, list of Japanese casualties, i. 207, 208
-
- Kirghiz tribes and Russia, i. 4 _n._, 5, 8 _n._
-
- Kirin, capture of, i. 155
-
- Kondratenko, General, the hero of Port Arthur, i, 300, ii. 71
-
- Korea:
- independence of, i. 69;
- necessity for quiet in, i. 72, 73;
- Russian activity in, i. 153, 178;
- timber concession, i. 170;
- council at Port Arthur on, i. 180, 181;
- the Treaty of Peking, i. 199;
- a vital question, i. 219
-
- Korniloff, Admiral, siege of Sevastopol, i. 18;
- heroic death, i. 21
-
- Korniloff, Lieutenant-Colonel, ii. 286
-
- Kronstadt, fortifications of, i. 126
-
- Kruimoff, Captain, i. 303
-
- Kuan-tung Peninsula: Russian annexation of, i. 35, 69;
- Japanese land and fortify, i. 127, 257;
- Russian defence force, ii. 206, 207
-
- Kuang-cheng-tzu, seizure by rebels, i. 155
-
- Kuldja, province of, i. 70;
- the cession to China of, i. 92–95, 148, 149
-
- Kuprin, M., _The Duel_, ii. 69
-
- Kuroki, General:
- in command of the 1st Japanese Army, i. 257, 258;
- his opinion of the Russian shells, i. 306;
- his victory at Te-li-ssu, ii. 38;
- his positions, ii. 39, 40, 216, 222;
- his turning movement, ii. 230–232, 264;
- strength of his army, ii. 253;
- battle of Liao-yang, ii. 317;
- at Mukden, ii. 323,329, 332
-
- Kuropatkin, General, Minister of War, afterwards Commander-in-Chief:
- his report on the possibilities of the twentieth century, i. 39;
- his report on the Russian frontiers and their suitability, i. 40–77;
- deductions from the work of the army as a guide to future wars,
- i. 96–110;
- the work before the War Department, i. 111–144;
- his opinion on the Manchurian and Korean questions, i. 145–198;
- difference of opinion with Admiral Alexeieff, i. 167–169;
- the Royal Timber Company, i. 172–184, ii. 306;
- his impressions on visiting Japan, i. 174, 175, 217–223;
- his reports on the Manchurian position, i. 176–179, 189–193;
- his responsibility for the rupture with Japan, i. 177–179;
- his pyramid of Russian interests, i. 185, 186;
- resignation on the establishment of the Viceroyalty, i. 187;
- his proposal to give way, i. 189;
- his report on strength of Japanese army, i. 242;
- on necessity for Russian railway improvements, i. 252–254, 263–268;
- on mobilization, i. 271–289;
- on reserve of officers, i. 293, 294;
- his recommendations as to officers, i. 301–305;
- on machine-guns and ammunition, i. 306–309;
- his criticisms of staff work, ii. 2, 3;
- of cavalry, ii. 4;
- of attack and the defence, ii. 5, 6;
- of column formation in attack, ii. 6;
- on the work of the artillery and sappers, ii. 7, 8;
- on criticism by commanders, ii. 9;
- on tactical instruction of our troops, ii. 10;
- his supplementary and monthly instructions, ii. 12, 13, 15–22;
- reasons for the reverses at Plevna, ii. 13, 14;
- his diagram of, and opinion on, the relative positions in Manchuria,
- ii. 33–44;
- on difficulties in organization, ii. 44–60;
- on defects in _personnel_, ii. 60–72;
- on the rank and file and Social Revolutionists, ii. 72–81;
- on the countermanding of orders, ii. 81–84;
- takes the blame for the defeat at Mukden, ii. 85, 86, 335;
- his farewell address, ii. 87–97;
- his suggested improvements in the senior ranks and all arms,
- ii. 98–176;
- his summary of the war, and conclusions, ii. 177–305;
- breakdown of the unit organization and distribution, ii. 314–335
-
- Kushk, proposed railway to, i. 67;
- defeat of Afghans at, i. 86
-
- Kutnevitch, General, ii. 297
-
-
- Lamsdorff, M., Minister for Foreign Affairs,
- and the Royal Timber Company, i. 173, 174, ii. 306, 311, 312
-
- Launits, General, his gallantry, ii. 334
-
- Lessar, Acting State Councillor, Russian Minister in China,
- council at Port Arthur on the Yalu enterprise, i. 175, 180
-
- Levestam, General:
- withdrawal to Hsi-mu-cheng, ii. 40;
- the battle near Mukden, ii. 283, 286
-
- Liao-tung Peninsula, Japanese land at, i. 225, 257
-
- Liao-yang:
- seizure by rebels, i. 155;
- Russian concentration at, i. 225, 242, 258;
- battle at, ii. 18, 83, 229, 230, 317;
- Russian retirement, ii. 86;
- Japanese losses at, ii. 193;
- Kuropatkin’s arrival at, ii. 209
-
- Linievitch, General:
- capture of Peking, i. 155;
- in command of the 1st Army, i. 230, ii. 249, 324;
- Commander-in-Chief, i. 301, ii. 198;
- and Kuropatkin, ii. 56, 58
-
- Livonia, Russia’s annexation of, i. 5
-
- Lomakin, General, his disastrous expedition against the Turcomans,
- i. 31
-
- Losses, Russian, in the two main struggles, i. 36;
- in past wars, i. 98;
- in the future, i. 99
-
-
- Madridoff, Lieutenant-Colonel, and the timber concession,
- i. 175, 181, 184, ii. 309
-
- Makharoff, Admiral, i. 225, 238
-
- Maksheef, Professor, on military expenditure, i. 111–113
-
- Malakhoff Hill, capture of, i. 19
-
- Malingering, i. 174
-
- Maloshevitch, N. S., _Memoirs of a Sevastopol Man_, i. 16
-
- Manchuria (see also Railways):
- Russian movements in, i. 35;
- the question of annexation, i. 71, 105, 157–179;
- expansion of Russian garrison, i. 122;
- the rising in, i. 126;
- the War Minister’s opinion on, i. 145;
- investigation of the timber concession, i. 180–184;
- pyramid of Russian interests, i. 185, 186;
- negotiations, i. 187–198;
- Japanese invade Southern, ii. 32–44;
- summary of the war, and conclusions, ii. 177–305
-
- Martinoff, M. E., _Spirit and Temper of the Two Armies_, ii. 77, 78
-
- Menshikoff, M., Russian writer, ii. 69
-
- Menshikoff, Prince, Commander-in-Chief, Crimean War, i. 17;
- battle of Inkerman, i. 18;
- superseded, i. 19
-
- Meyendorff, General Baron, Commander of 1st Army Corps, i. 302;
- retreat of, ii. 284
-
- Milutin, General:
- the emancipation of the serfs, i. 24;
- Plevna, i. 25;
- cession of Kuldja, i. 93;
- the improvement of the army, i. 113
-
- Mischenko, General:
- retirement of the local railway guards, i. 155;
- his cavalry successes, ii. 150
-
- Mobilization, relative speed of, i. 90;
- inconveniences of, i. 272–286
-
- Moscow, a poor spirit in, i. 198, 199
-
- Muiloff, Lieutenant-General, ii. 282;
- removal of, ii. 297;
- his gallantry, ii. 334
-
- Mukden:
- seized by the rebels, i. 154;
- recaptured, i. 155;
- battles round, i. 229 _n._, 260, ii. 43, 246, 272–305, 314–335;
- Japanese losses at, ii. 193, 194;
- Russia’s unfavourable position at, ii. 196, 197, 240, 241
-
-
- Nakhimoff, Admiral, i. 18;
- his heroic death, i. 21
-
- Namangan, occupation of, i. 148
-
- Narbut, General, member of the military council, i. 293
-
- Narva, reasons for Russian defeat at, i. 5
-
- _Nasha Jizu_, newspaper, _The Viceroy Alexeieff’s Firm Policy_, i. 109
-
- _Navarin_, Russian battleship, terrible loss on, i. 240
-
- Navy, Russian:
- state of, i. 15;
- disadvantages of, i. 107;
- its uselessness at Port Arthur, i. 131;
- the Pacific Squadron, i. 224;
- minor part played by, i. 236;
- strength of Japanese and, i. 236, 237;
- battles at Port Arthur and Vladivostok, i. 238–241
-
- Newchuang:
- Russian intentions, i. 157;
- evacuation of, ii. 43
-
- Nicholas II., Tsar of Russia, on improvements in the army, i. 120–122;
- his efforts against war, i. 145, 187;
- railway transport, i. 245, 252, 263–268;
- mobilization, i. 272;
- orders concentration, ii. 212;
- on Kuropatkin’s retirement at Liao-yang, ii. 238;
- his connection with the Royal Timber Company and Bezobrazoff,
- ii. 306–313
-
- Nicolaeff, Grand-Duke Michael, operations in Asia, i. 26
-
- Nicolai-Pavlovitch, the late Emperor, his warning, i. 16
-
- Nishtabtski, Treaty of, i. 5
-
- Nodzu, General, lands on the Liao-tung Peninsula, i. 236;
- his advance, ii. 222;
- summary of the war, ii. 177–305, 314–335
-
- Nogi, General, lands on the Liao-tung Peninsula, i. 236;
- on the fall of Port Arthur, i. 260;
- at Mukden, ii. 84, 152, 281;
- summary of the war, ii. 177–305, 314–335
-
- Norway, her frontiers, i. 40
-
-
- Obrucheff, General, Chief of Headquarter Staff:
- cession of Kuldja, i. 93;
- the improvement of the army, i. 113
-
- Offensive, advantages of strategic, ii. 169
-
- Officers, Russian:
- incapacity of, i. 101, ii. 1–11;
- the shortage of, i. 290–295;
- General Grippenberg’s resignation, i. 299, ii. 57;
- quality of, i. 300–303;
- _The Resurrected Dead_, i. 305;
- the susceptibilities of, ii. 57, 58;
- defects in, ii. 61–72, 95–97;
- suggested improvements, ii. 98–113;
- casualties among, ii. 157;
- line officers have no fair chance, ii. 158;
- promotion in the field, ii. 159;
- _field_ v. _office_ training, ii. 160, 161;
- suggested changes in rank of, ii. 164–168;
- removal of incompetent, ii. 172
-
- Oku, General:
- his landing on the Liao-tung Peninsula, i. 236, 256;
- joins General Nodzu’s army, ii. 43;
- battle of Liao-yang, ii. 84;
- summary of the war, ii. 177–305, 314–335
-
- Organization, Russian:
- defects in, i. 26, 27, 88, 89, 119;
- difficulties in, ii. 44–60;
- Kuropatkin’s proposals on, ii. 161–176;
- breakdown of, ii. 314–320
-
- Orenburg-Tashkent Railway, i. 86 _n._
-
- Orloff, General, at Liao-yang, i. 279;
- retreat to Yen-tai, ii. 234
-
- Osaka, great exhibition at, i. 219
-
- Ostolopoff, Colonel, i. 302
-
- _Osvobojdenie_, the Royal Timber Company, ii. 307
-
-
- Pacific Ocean, opposition to Russian access to, i. 146, 147
-
- Patriotism in Japan and Russia, ii. 78–80, 121–123, 227
-
- Paul II., Emperor of Russia, and the army, i. 8
-
- Pavloff, Chamberlain, Russian Minister in Korea, Yalu enterprise,
- i. 175, 180
-
- Pavlovski, M., engineer of Siberian Railway, i. 253
-
- Peking, Treaty of, i. 35, 199;
- capture of, i. 155
-
- Penalties on active service, ii. 171, 173
-
- Persia:
- war with Russia, i. 33;
- frontier and trade with Russia, i. 58, 59;
- the cockpit of the Middle East, i. 59;
- Great Britain and Germany in, i. 60;
- Russian aims in, i. 61
-
- _Personnel_, defects in, ii. 60–72
-
- Peter the Great:
- war with Sweden, i. 5;
- war with Turkey, i. 6;
- founder of the Russian fleet, i. 7;
- his struggles with Charles XII. and Napoleon, i. 10, 11;
- his counsel, i, 20;
- his influence, i. 41
-
- Petroff, General, i. 245
-
- Petrovitch, Paul, Emperor, his reforms, i. 38
-
- Plancon, M., diplomat, investigation of the Timber Company, i. 180
-
- Plehve, Von, Minister of the Interior, and the Timber Company, ii. 311
-
- Plevna, battle at, i. 25–30;
- the cause of the Russian reverses at, ii. 13
-
- Poland, Russia’s neighbour, i. 3;
- her struggles with Russia, i. 7;
- the problem of, i. 10, 11;
- rebellion, i. 23
-
- Poltava, Russian victory at, i. 5, 11, 41
-
- Port Arthur:
- Russian aims, i. 69;
- work at, i. 126, 127;
- armament for, i. 128, 129;
- the council on the timber concession, i. 180–184;
- Kuropatkin’s advice as to, i. 189, 190;
- Chino-Japanese War, i. 202;
- naval battles at, i. 238–241;
- fall of, i. 260;
- garrison at, ii. 205, 208;
- weakness of, ii. 211, 213, 214;
- result of fall of, ii. 299
-
- Pri-Amur district and Russia, i. 77;
- increase of troops in, i. 121, 122, 144, 151
-
- Punishment, corporal, ii. 173
-
- Putiloff Hill:
- Japanese losses at, ii. 193;
- movement of troops from, ii. 319
-
-
- Railways, the Siberian, i. 123, 149, 156;
- as a factor in the Japanese War, i. 131–134, 198;
- the problem of, i. 242–254, ii. 31;
- necessity for guarding, ii. 37
-
- _Razsvet_, newspaper, on Kuropatkin’s responsibility, i. 177
-
- _Razviedchik_ (_The Resurrected Dead_), i. 292
-
- Rediger, Lieutenant-General, War Minister, his report, i. 138, 139
-
- Rennenkampf, General:
- capture of Tsitsihar and Kirin, i. 155;
- in the Tai-tzu Ho Valley, ii. 244, 254, 273;
- Liao-yang, ii. 318, 328;
- the gallantry of his troops, ii. 323
-
- Reservists, Russian, i. 275–286, ii. 73, 163
-
- Revenue, Russian, i. 142
-
- Revolutionists, Social, ii. 75–80
-
- Roop, General, criticisms by commanders, ii. 9.
-
- Roslavleff, M., on Kuropatkin’s responsibility, i. 176, 177;
- the council at Port Arthur, i. 184
-
- Roumania:
- Russian frontier, i. 44, 56;
- her aspirations, i. 57.
-
- Rozhdestvenski, Admiral, result of his defeat at Tsushima, i. 241, 242
-
- Rusin, Captain, Russian naval attaché, his report on the Japanese
- navy, i. 206, 207
-
- _Ruski Viestnik_, article on the fleets in the Far East, i. 236, 237
-
- Russia:
- extent of, in the eighteenth century, i. 2, 3;
- her neighbours, i. 3;
- her aims, i. 4;
- the Great Northern War and its result, i. 5–7;
- extension of, in the nineteenth century, i. 8, 35;
- reductions in the army, i. 8;
- closer touch with Europe, i. 9;
- struggles with France, i. 10;
- Polish problem, i. 11;
- annexation of Finland, i. 12;
- further wars with Turkey, i. 13, 24;
- deterioration of the army, i. 14;
- her navy, i. 15;
- her unpreparedness, i. 16;
- Crimean War commences, i. 16;
- Allies’ disembarkation permitted, i. 17;
- battle of the Alma, i. 17, 18;
- Inkerman, i. 18;
- siege of Sevastopol, i. 18, 19;
- a premature peace, i. 20–22, 81, 82;
- emancipation of the serfs, i. 23;
- Plevna, i. 25;
- failure of assaults, i. 26;
- her slow concentration and shortcomings, i. 27–29;
- her ultimate success, i. 30;
- Geok Tepe, i. 31;
- Kushk, i. 32;
- her position, i. 33–35;
- losses in the two centuries, i. 36, 37, 98, 99;
- peace and war establishments, i. 38;
- her future, i. 39;
- her Swedish frontier, i. 40–44;
- her German frontier and trade, i. 44–50;
- her Austro-Hungarian frontier, i. 50–55;
- Austria’s strategic railways, i. 55;
- her Roumanian frontier, i. 56;
- her Turkish frontier and trade, i. 57;
- her Persian frontier and trade, i. 58, 59;
- her aims in Persia, i. 61;
- her frontier with Afghanistan, i. 62;
- her policy versus Great Britain, i. 63–66;
- no wish for India, i. 67;
- her Chinese frontier, trade, and policy, i. 67–73;
- her position, i. 73–77;
- lessons from Franco-German War, i. 79, 80;
- _National_ wars, i. 80, 81;
- her isolation in 1878, i. 83;
- her lever against Great Britain, i. 84;
- Afghan Boundary Commission, i. 85, 86;
- military economy, i. 187;
- her disabilities, i. 188, 189;
- relative speed of mobilization, i. 90;
- the awakening of China, i. 91;
- cession of Kuldja, i. 92–94;
- her complications, i. 95;
- deductions from the past, i. 96;
- strain of armed peace, i. 97;
- probable losses in the future, i. 99;
- dangers of alien population, i. 102;
- the chief duty of the twentieth century, i. 103;
- her handicap on the west, i. 104, 114;
- her forward movement in Manchuria, i. 105;
- the disadvantages of a navy, i. 106, 107;
- military expenditure, i. 112, 118;
- expansion of forces in the Pri-Amur district, i. 121–123;
- commencement and causes of the war with Japan,
- i. 123, 151, 156, 157;
- work at Port Arthur, i. 127, 130;
- railway factor, i. 131–149;
- line of communications 5,400 miles long, i. 135;
- dual capacity of Finance Minister, i. 139, 140;
- her finance and revenue, i. 141–144;
- War Minister’s opinion on the Manchurian and Korean questions,
- i. 145;
- inception of the Siberian Railway, i. 149–155;
- Boxer Rebellion, i. 154, 155;
- her intentions as to Manchuria, and the result, i. 157–170;
- treaty with China, i. 158, 160;
- influence of M. de Witte, i. 171;
- the Royal Timber Company, i. 172–184, 306–313;
- pyramid of her interests, i. 185, 186;
- establishment of a Viceroyalty in the Far East, i. 187;
- Kuropatkin’s special reports, i. 188–193;
- her bluff, i. 194–198;
- reasons for her reverses in the war with Japan, i. 229–309,
- ii. 1–97;
- suggested improvements in the army, ii, 98–176;
- summary of the war, ii. 177–287;
- conclusions upon the battle of Mukden, i. 288–305;
- breakdown of the unit organization and distribution, ii. 314–335
-
- _Russki Invalid_, article on military expenditure, i. 111, 112;
- on duty and love of country, ii. 78–80
-
- Russo-Chinese Bank, De Witte’s influence over the, i. 172
-
-
- Saghalien, Russian garrison at, i. 148, 200;
- part concession of, to Japan, i. 232
-
- St. George, the Cross of, ii. 16
-
- St. Petersburg Convention, i. 40 _n._
-
- Sakharoff, General, Chief of the Headquarter Staff, i. 115, 207;
- War Minister, i. 252;
- the Siberian Railway, i. 261;
- mobilization, i. 272, 273, 276, 277;
- unfitness of generals, i. 300;
- his description of the Japanese plans, ii. 30;
- commands the Southern Force, ii. 209
-
- Samoiloff, Lieutenant-Colonel, military attaché in Japan,
- his views on Japanese strength, i. 208
-
- Samsonoff, General, and his Siberian Cossacks, ii. 234
-
- Sappers. See Engineers
-
- Serfs, emancipation of the, i. 23, 24
-
- Servia, war with Turkey, i. 24
-
- Sevastopol, siege of, i. 18, 19, 83;
- Russian loss at, i. 98
-
- Sha Ho, Russian strength at battle of, i. 242, ii. 182;
- Japanese loss at, ii. 193
-
- Shipka Pass, defence of the, i. 26, 30
-
- Shtakelberg, General:
- on the Yalu, ii. 38;
- concentration at Te-li-ssu, ii. 218, 219;
- battle near the Yen-tai Mines, ii. 234;
- strength of his force, ii. 243 _n._;
- faulty disposition of his troops, ii. 246, 247;
- his attack on Su-ma-pu, ii. 262
-
- Siberian Railway. See Railways
-
- Siberian Rifle Regiments, East, expansion and value of, i. 124–126,
- ii. 183, 207
-
- Sinope, Russian victory at, i. 15, 16, 107
-
- Skobeleff, General, at Plevna, i. 26, 28;
- seizes Geok Tepe, i. 31, 85, 148
-
- Solovieff, M., historian, the Crimean War, i. 21, 22
-
- Sosnovski, Lieutenant-Colonel, and the Chinese, i. 92
-
- Spade, revival in the army of the use of the, i. 142
-
- Stössel, General:
- defence of Port Arthur, ii. 213;
- his alarmist reports, ii. 229
-
- Subotin, General, capture of Mukden, i. 155
-
- Sungari River, Russian withdrawal to, i. 232
-
- Surrender, the question of, ii. 175
-
- _Suvoroff_, Russian battleship, gallantry on the, i. 240
-
- Suvoroff, General, his campaigns, i. 8, 10
-
- Sviatosloff, Grand-Duke, i. 4
-
- Sweden as Russia’s neighbour, i. 3;
- war with Russia, i. 12, 36;
- her Russian frontier, i. 40–44
-
-
- Tartars as Russia’s neighbours, i. 3
-
- Ta-shih-chiao, battle of, ii. 182
-
- Tashkent, Russian occupation of, i. 87, 147
-
- Tchernaya, battle of the, i. 18
-
- Telegraph and telephones, need for, ii. 143, 144, 162
-
- Te-li-ssu, Russian disaster at, i. 257, 258
-
- Territorial system, the, ii. 126
-
- Tieh-ling, retirement from, ii. 86
-
- Timber Company, the Royal:
- its importance, i. 169;
- Bezobrazoff’s propositions, i. 172;
- investigation of, i. 173–184;
- history of, ii. 306–313
-
- Todleben, General:
- Crimean War, i. 21;
- assault on Plevna, i. 26
-
- Togo, Admiral:
- naval battle at Port Arthur, i. 238, 240
-
- Topornin, General, ii. 276, 292, 297
-
- Trans-Baikal Railway to Vladivostok, i. 69;
- capacity of, i. 247–256
-
- Trans-Baikal Cossack, success of, ii. 153
-
- Triple Alliance, the, i. 46, 51, 87, 113
-
- _Trous de loup_, i. 215, 216
-
- Trubetski, Prince, President of the Moscow nobility,
- correspondence with Kuropatkin, ii. 198–200
-
- Tserpitski, General, ii. 279, 280, 290, 296, 297, 330
-
- Tsitsihar, capture of, i. 155, ii. 322
-
- Tsushima, defeat of Russian fleet at, i. 238–241
-
- Turkey, and Russia, i. 3;
- wars with Russia, i. 6, 81–83;
- her army, i. 15;
- her peace strength, i. 15;
- Crimean War, i. 16;
- war with Servia and Russia, i. 24;
- Plevna, i. 25;
- Russian loss, i. 36;
- possibility of trouble with Russia, i. 58
-
- Turkomans, Russian expedition against the, i. 30–32, 85, 86
-
-
- Ujin, Colonel, his pack telephone system, ii. 143 _n._
-
- Uniform, value of, ii. 100–103
-
- Units, proposed details of, ii. 161–163;
- breakdown of, ii. 314–335
-
- _Ushakoff_, Russian ironclad, total loss of, at Tsushima, i. 240
-
- Ussuri districts, Russian annexation of, i. 35, 69, 200
-
-
- Vannovski, General, War Minister:
- the improvement of the army, i. 113;
- succeeded by General Kuropatkin, i. 115;
- on the allotment of funds, i. 117
-
- Velichko, Major-General, armament for Port Arthur, i. 128
-
- Viceroyalty, establishment of the, i. 187
-
- Vladivostok:
- Trans-Baikal Railway, i. 69;
- fortification of, i. 126, 148, 151, 200;
- Russian fleet at, i. 237;
- daring sally from, i. 239;
- garrison at, ii. 206
-
- Vogak, Major-General, council at Port Arthur, i. 180
-
-
- War Department (see also Army), problems for the Russian, i. 1–39;
- expansion of the army, and growing complications of defence
- problems, i. 78–96;
- the chief duty of the twentieth century, i. 102–104;
- taken by surprise, i. 105;
- estimate procedure and inadequacy of funds allotted,
- i. 116–122, 138, 139;
- ready by September, 1905, i. 134;
- lines of communication 5,400 miles long, i. 135;
- dual capacity of Finance Minister, i. 139;
- Manchurian and Korean questions, i. 145–198;
- reasons for the Russian reverses, i. 229–309, ii. 1–97;
- measures for the improvement of the army, ii. 98–176;
- the causes of Russian failure summarized, ii. 177–204
-
- Wei-hai-wei, Japanese occupation of, ii. 30
-
- Witgeft, Admiral, his death while attacking the Japanese fleet, i. 238
-
- Witte, Sergius de, Minister of Finance, and Dalny, i. 127, 172;
- his dual capacity, i. 139;
- his influence, i. 171;
- and the Russo-Chinese Bank, i. 172;
- and the evacuation of Manchuria, i. 173;
- and the Royal Timber Company, i. 173–184, ii. 306–313
-
-
- Yakub Beg, death of, i. 92
-
- Yalu, battles on the, i. 125, 257, ii. 38;
- the timber concession, i. 169–184, ii. 306–313;
- naval engagement at the mouth of the, i. 202
-
- _Yellow Peril_, the, a reality, ii. 200
-
- Yen-tai mines, battle at the, ii. 234–236
-
-
- Zarubaeff, General, i. 303;
- withdraws his troops towards Hai-cheng, ii. 225;
- the retreat from Mukden, ii. 232, 285, 286, 333
-
- Zasulitch, General, his defeat, ii. 38, 211, 212, 225
-
- Zikoff, ii. 212
-
-
- THE END
-
-
- BILLING AND SONS, LTD., PRINTERS, GUILDFORD
-
-[Illustration: Sketch map of area containing the battlefields of
-LIAO-YANG, THE SHA-HO, HEI-KOU-TAI & MUKDEN showing some of the more
-important places mentioned]
-
-[Illustration: MAP OF THEATRE OF OPERATIONS SOUTH OF MUKDEN]
-
-
-
-
- _JUST OUT._
-
- ARTILLERY AND EXPLOSIVES.
-
- ESSAYS AND LECTURES WRITTEN AND DELIVERED AT VARIOUS TIMES.
-
- By Sir ANDREW NOBLE, K.C.B., D.C.L., F.R.S.
-
- With Numerous Diagrams and Illustrations. Medium 8vo. 21s. net.
-
-“The experience of Sir Andrew Noble covers such a wide field, and so
-many important changes have taken place in connection with rifled guns,
-their ammunition and projectiles, during the long period dealt with,
-that the views of so eminent an expert are of an incalculable value.
-He is therefore to be congratulated on his decision to bring into
-one volume the mass of important information and invaluable details
-respecting the progress in naval and artillery science.”—_Broad Arrow._
-
-
- THE FRONTIERSMAN’S POCKET BOOK.
-
- Compiled and Edited by ROGER POCOCK, on behalf of the Council of the
- Legion of Frontiersmen.
-
- With Illustrations. Leather, 5s. net.
-
-“A very handy and well-packed little volume.... It brings
-together a large amount of well-digested practical information
-about camping, means of travel, signals, shooting, first-aid,
-and, in short, everything that a pioneering, handy man ought to
-know.... May be heartily recommended to all classes of scouts and
-frontiersmen.”—_Scotsman._
-
-
- FORTIFICATION:
-
- ITS PAST ACHIEVEMENTS, RECENT DEVELOPMENTS, FUTURE PROGRESS.
-
- By Colonel Sir GEORGE S. CLARKE, R.E., K.C.M.G., F.R.S.,
-
- Governor of Bombay.
-
- New Edition Enlarged. With numerous Illustrations.
-
- Medium 8vo. 18s. net.
-
-“The reflections of this great soldier-statesman will be found as
-fascinating as they are instructive, and that reasonable intelligence
-is the only essential qualification for reading them with profit as
-well as with interest and pleasure.”—_Westminster Gazette._
-
-
- THE BATTLE OF WAVRE AND GROUCHY’S RETREAT.
-
- A STUDY OF AN OBSCURE PART OF THE WATERLOO CAMPAIGN.
-
- By W. HYDE KELLY, R.E.
-
- With Maps and Plans. Demy 8vo. 8s. net.
-
-“... brings forward, with a vividness and brilliancy which compel
-attention throughout one of the most obscure pages in the story of the
-famous struggle.”—_Birmingham Post._
-
-
- OFFICIAL ACCOUNT OF THE SECOND AFGHAN WAR, 1878–1880.
-
- PRODUCED IN THE INTELLIGENCE BRANCH, ARMY HEAD QUARTERS, INDIA
-
- Abridged Official Account. With numerous Maps and Illustrations.
-
- Medium 8vo. 21s. net.
-
-“An excellent compendium of the whole war, clearly written and
-amply illustrated by photographs, maps, and diagrams.... It is
-a narrative that will fascinate the many who love to read about
-warlike movements.... It is a story of wise and patient preparation,
-carefully arranged generalship, supreme daring, amazing tenacity.
-Undoubtedly the right thing has been done in giving to the world a
-stirring story, which has remained too long, many will think, a secret
-record.”—_Sheffield Independent._
-
-
- THE GERMAN OFFICIAL ACCOUNT OF THE WAR IN SOUTH AFRICA
-
-PREPARED IN THE HISTORICAL SECTION OF THE GREAT GENERAL STAFF, BERLIN.
-
- With Maps and Plans. Demy 8vo. 15s. net each.
-
-PART I.—From its Commencement in 1899 to the Capture of General
- Cronje’s Forces at Paardeburg. Translated by Colonel W. H. H.
- WATERS, R.A., C.V.O. PART II.—The Advance to Pretoria, the
- Upper Tugela Campaign, etc., etc. Translated by Colonel HUBERT
- DU CANE, R.A., M.V.O.
-
-“The most valuable work in which, since its close, the war has been
-discussed. It stands alone, because it is the only work in which the
-war has been surveyed by trained and competent students of war, the
-only one of which the judgments are based on a familiarity with the
-modern theory of war. The best book that has yet appeared on the South
-African War.”—_Morning Post._
-
-
- THE BOOK OF WAR.
-
- Translated into English by Captain E. F. CALTHROP, R.A.
-
- Crown 8vo. 2s. 6d. net.
-
-This work, the writings of Suntzu and Wutzu, Chinese strategists of
-about the fifth century B.C., is the most famous work on the art of war
-in the Far East. It deals with operations of war, statecraft, moral
-and training of troops, stratagem, the use of spies, etc., and for
-twenty-five centuries it has been the bible of the Chinese or Japanese
-ruler. The book is distinguished alike by the poetry and grandeur of
-its language and the modernity of its spirit.
-
-
- A WEEK AT WATERLOO IN 1815.
-
- LADY DE LANCEY’S NARRATIVE.
-
- BEING AN ACCOUNT OF HOW SHE NURSED HER HUSBAND,
- COLONEL SIR WILLIAM H. D. LANCEY, MORTALLY WOUNDED
- IN THE GREAT BATTLE.
-
- With Photogravure Portraits and other Illustrations.
-
- Square crown 8vo. 6s. net.
-
-“Pages of writing of terrible beauty, subtlety, delicacy, and power
-describe her nursing of him and his death. It is not a jagged series of
-poignant notes.... There is no heroine in English history or literature
-more worshipful than Lady de Lancey.”—_World._
-
-
- THE STORY OF THE BATTLE OF WATERLOO.
-
- By the Rev. G. R. GLEIG. With Map and Illustrations.
-
-
- MOLTKE IN HIS HOME.
-
- By FRIEDRICH AUGUST DRESSLER.
-
- Authorized Translation by Mrs. C. E. BARRETT-LENNARD.
-
- With an Introduction by Lieut.-General LORD METHUEN.
-
- With Illustrations. Demy 8vo.
-
-This does not attempt to give a biography of the great Field-Marshal,
-but contains a series of sketches and incidents of his life, and of the
-characteristics and surroundings of one of the greatest soldiers of the
-nineteenth century.
-
-
- THE MILITARY LIFE OF H.R.H. THE DUKE OF CAMBRIDGE.
-
-WRITTEN UNDER THE AUTHORITY OF THE LATE DUKE FROM DOCUMENTS IN HIS OWN
- POSSESSION.
-
- By Colonel WILLOUGHBY VERNER,
-
- Late Rifle Brigade.
-
- Assisted by Captain ERASMUS DARWIN PARKER,
-
- Late Manchester Regiment.
-
- With Portraits. 2 Vols. Medium 8vo. 36s. net.
-
-“We congratulate the authors on the manner in which they have
-accomplished their task, and send our hearty good wishes after the
-volumes they have launched.”—_Saturday Review._
-
-
- LUMSDEN OF THE GUIDES.
-
- A SKETCH OF THE LIFE OF SIR HARRY LUMSDEN, HIS
- SERVICES IN THE AFGHAN VALLEY, PUNJAB AND FRONTIER
- CAMPAIGNS, AND OF THE RAISING OF THE FAMOUS
- CORPS OF GUIDES.
-
- By Sir P. LUMSDEN and G. R. ELSMIE.
-
- Portraits, Maps, and Illustrations. Demy 8vo. 7s. 6d. net.
-
-
- THE AUTOBIOGRAPHY OF SIR HARRY SMITH.
-
-INCLUDING HIS SERVICES IN SOUTH AMERICA—IN THE PENINSULA AND FRANCE—AT
- NEW ORLEANS—AT WATERLOO—IN NORTH AMERICA AND JAMAICA—IN SOUTH AFRICA
-DURING THE KAFFIR WAR—IN INDIA DURING THE SIKH WAR—AND AT THE CAPE, ETC.
-
- Edited by G. C. MOORE SMITH.
-
- With some additional Chapters supplied by the EDITOR.
-
- With Portraits and Illustrations.
-
- Cheap Edition in 1 Vol. 10s. 6d. net.
-
-
- THE LIFE OF JOHN COLBORNE, FIELD-MARSHAL LORD SEATON.
-
- By G. C. MOORE SMITH.
-
- With Maps, Portraits, and other Illustrations. Demy 8vo. 16s. net.
-
-
- THE LIFE OF JOHN NICHOLSON, SOLDIER AND ADMINISTRATOR.
-
- By Captain LIONEL J. TROTTER.
-
- With Portrait and 3 Maps.
-
-
- THE LIFE OF HENRY PELHAM, FIFTH DUKE OF NEWCASTLE.
-
- SECRETARY OF STATE FOR THE COLONIES, 1852–54 AND 1859–64,
- AND SECRETARY OF STATE FOR WAR, 1852–55
-
- By JOHN MARTINEAU,
-
- Author of “The Life of Sir Bartle Frere.”
-
- With Portraits. Demy 8vo. 12s. net.
-
-“Among the most interesting and absorbing books of the moment may
-safely be named The Life of Henry Pelham.”—_M.A.P._
-
-“Mr. Martineau’s work is a model of painstaking research and lucid
-expression. He has the true historian’s temperament, his perspective
-and his judgment are unimpeachable.”—_Western Mail._
-
-
- LONDON: JOHN MURRAY, ALBEMARLE STREET, W.
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTES
-
-[1] [To economize ammunition at manœuvres, batteries sometimes signal
-that they are firing instead of actually doing so.—ED.]
-
-[2] [What in the British Army are colloquially known as “Pow-wows.”—ED.]
-
-[3] [1903.—ED.]
-
-[4] Independent fire is difficult to control, and almost impossible to
-stop in action.
-
-[5] [The Cross of St. George corresponds to our Victoria Cross, but is
-more easily won.—ED.]
-
-[6] [Russian regiments in Europe, as a rule, consist of four
-battalions. East Siberian Rifle regiments in the late war had
-three.—ED.]
-
-[7] [Liao-yang.—ED.]
-
-[8] [The Sha Ho.—ED.]
-
-[9] [Hsi-ping-kai, Kung-chu-ling, and Kuang-cheng-tzu.—ED.]
-
-[10] [1903.—ED.]
-
-[11] [See next page.—ED.]
-
-[12] It was followed by the 2nd Infantry Division; 10th and 17th Army
-Corps; 5th Siberian Corps; 1st Army Corps, and 6th Siberian Corps.
-
-[13] The leading units of the 10th Army Corps arrived on June 30.
-
-[14] Sixty miles by a road which the rains had made very difficult.
-
-[15] [A European Russian regiment contains four battalions.—ED.]
-
-[16] My report of June 20.
-
-[17] The officer commanding the 2nd Manchurian Army stated that the
-whole war strength of his force (total of rifles, sabres, guns, with
-twenty-five men to a gun, and ten to a machine-gun) constituted, on an
-average, only half the actual numbers.
-
-[18] This amounted in some units to as much as 20 per cent. in men, and
-30 per cent. in officers.
-
-[19] [Behind and between armies.—ED.]
-
-[20] [One man on one full day’s work.—ED.]
-
-[21] [General Kuropatkin’s views on this point appear to have changed,
-see p. 270.—ED.]
-
-[22] [Who had succeeded Grippenberg in the command of the 2nd Army.—ED.]
-
-[23] Or sergeant-majors.
-
-[24] [On account of student disorders that had led to the closing of
-the Universities.—ED.]
-
-[25] Medical students.
-
-[26] [General Kuropatkin himself.—ED.]
-
-[27] Our communications were threatened, and the Yen-tai Mines on the
-flank were in the enemy’s hands.
-
-[28] The retirement from Liao-yang was orderly, while that from Mukden
-more nearly approached a rout; but it is not certain that the Russians
-were really beaten at the former place when the decision to retire was
-made.—ED.
-
-[29] [_Sic._ This seems almost incredible.—ED.]
-
-[30] [The portion of this chapter which immediately follows deals in
-great detail with the breakdown of the unit organization. It has been
-separated from the text, and is given in Appendix II.—ED.]
-
-[31] When the appointments of Inspector-Generals were created, some
-confusion resulted between the powers of these and that of the district
-commanders.
-
-[32] Two in the two brigades, and two on the divisional staff.
-
-[33] [Service with the colours in Russia has been reduced generally
-from five to three years.—ED.]
-
-[34] The transport was not fully horsed.
-
-[35] [By this expression is meant a land not belonging to Russia.—ED.]
-
-[36] [The term used by common folk in Russia when addressing men of
-higher birth.—ED.]
-
-[37] Owing to famine in the Kholm district in the years just before
-the war, the reservists in it were called up later than those in the
-neighbouring districts, and the majority of them were consequently
-stationed on the line of communications.
-
-[38] [Summary courts-martial under martial law.—ED.]
-
-[39] With two-wheeled baggage-carts, the number has to be increased by
-an additional fifty-four men.
-
-[40] Cooks and mess caterers, eighteen of each—_i.e._, sixteen per
-company, and two with scout sections, one mounted, one dismounted.
-
-[41] Three per company.
-
-[42] [This is taking a regiment at 4,000—_i.e._, the men actually in
-the firing-line and not employed specially—for scout sections, etc.—ED.]
-
-[43] I several times reported to the War Minister that the despatch of
-drafts to fill up wastage in the units already at the front was much
-more necessary than the despatch to us of fresh units.
-
-[44] [Battle of Hei-kou-tai.—Ed.]
-
-[45] Colonel Ujin’s pack-telephone system, which I tried in Manchuria,
-is a very good one.
-
-[46] [Presumably squares on a map.—ED.]
-
-[47] Artillery regiments to be subordinate in all respects as regards
-command to the divisional commander. The commander of an artillery
-brigade must technically superintend and inspect all batteries with an
-army corps.
-
-[48] One cavalry regiment per division.
-
-[49] One sapper battalion and one company of sappers per division; one
-mining and two telegraph companies as corps troops.
-
-[50] [_Sic._ This word is rather misleading. Some formation less than a
-regiment is meant.—ED.]
-
-[51]
-
- Voiskovoi Starshina = Lieutenant-Colonel }
- Esaoul = Captain } Of
- Sotnik = Lieutenant } Cossacks.
- Khorunji = Cornet }
-
-
-[52] In the wars with Turkey and Persia, in the Caucasus and Central
-Asia.
-
-[53] [The first portion of this chapter, which is a recapitulation
-of what has already been written in Chapters I. to VII., has been
-omitted from this translation. What is now given touches more upon the
-war itself.—ED.]
-
-[54] [About 1–1/3 miles to the inch.—ED.]
-
-[55] [_Sic._ Killed and wounded (see p. 207, Vol I.).—ED.]
-
-[56] [At the Sha Ho.—ED.]
-
-[57] [At Mukden.—ED.]
-
-[58] [Possibly the author refers to China, Japan, and India being young
-in a national sense.—ED.]
-
-[59] [? Telegram.—ED.]
-
-[60] [General Linievitch.—ED.]
-
-[61] [? 1904 and 1905 also.—ED.]
-
-[62] [The name of General Kuropatkin’s country estate in the province
-of Pskoff.—ED.]
-
-[63] [This chapter is composed of the introduction and conclusion to
-Volume III. of the original, which have been translated, as they add
-some light on points not touched upon in Volume IV.—ED.]
-
-[64] Eighteen infantry battalions, 25 squadrons, 86 guns total, 19,000
-rifles and sabres.
-
-[65] Two of them sapper battalions. The third battalions formed in
-Russia for all the East Siberian Rifle Regiments were only then
-beginning to arrive.
-
-[66] The Viceroy’s letter (No. 2,960) of June 6 called attention to the
-necessity of “bearing in mind measures to guard against the event of an
-advance by Kuroki.”
-
-[67] 1st and 9th East Siberian Rifle Divisions, and 2nd Brigade of the
-35th Division.
-
-[68] [There are several passes of this name.—ED.]
-
-[69] [This action is apparently what is elsewhere known as that of
-Chiao-tou.—ED.]
-
-[70] [The reasons for this are given in great detail in Volume
-IV.—_i.e._, Chapters I. to XII. of this book.—ED.]
-
-[71] This regiment did splendidly in later fights.
-
-[72] The 122nd Tamboff Regiment was attacked when bivouacking.
-
-[73] The positions held on August 31 by the portion of Kuroki’s army
-that crossed the river were only eleven miles from the railway.
-
-[74] [? Houton.—ED.]
-
-[75] The corps also arrived at the front with a shortage of about 400
-men per regiment—_i.e._, 1,600 per division.
-
-[76] Less one brigade garrisoning Tieh-ling.
-
-[77] [Presumably because it was destined for the 2nd Army.—ED.]
-
-[78] Including Rennenkampf’s column, Shtakelberg had under him 85
-battalions, 43 _sotnias_, 174 guns, and 3 sapper battalions.
-
-[79] A very large number of men, particularly of the 1st Corps, left
-the ranks without reason. At Mukden, however, this corps fought with
-great gallantry and steadiness.
-
-[80] [Grippenberg had already been appointed to the command of the 2nd
-Army.—ED.]
-
-[81] From Ssu-chia-tun station to Ta-wang-chiang-pu.
-
-[82] From Fu-shun to Ma-chia-tun.
-
-[83] Of 72 squadrons and _sotnias_, 4 mounted scout parties, and 22
-guns.
-
-[84] Including thirty siege-guns.
-
-[85] Its garrison was not more than two battalions.
-
-[86] Two regiments of the four in this division had been sent to
-reinforce the Composite Rifle Corps, and one regiment to reinforce the
-1st Siberians.
-
-[87] General Grippenberg could not use the telephone himself, as he was
-somewhat deaf.
-
-[88] Out of the 80,000 men of the drafts which had arrived.
-
-[89] According to the programme of the arrival of the troops, I
-calculated on increasing my reserve by three and four Rifle brigades,
-but they arrived more than ten days late.
-
-[90] For operations against Oku.
-
-[91] [? Houton.—ED.]
-
-[92] One was ordered to support General Launits.
-
-[93] [The body of Vol III. in the original deals in great detail with
-the battle of Mukden, and is omitted in this translation.—ED.]
-
-[94] Except from February 27 to March 1.
-
-[95] 12.20 p.m., February 28.
-
-[96] 3.25 p.m., March 2.
-
-[97] 6.45 a.m., March 5.
-
-[98] [Query north-west.—ED.]
-
-[99] In addition to five and a half battalions of the 41st Division.
-
-[100] Sixteen battalions of the 19th Corps, concentrated at Sha-ling-pu
-under my orders on March 2; sixteen battalions of Golembatovski’s; and
-eight battalions of Churin’s division, detained by Kaulbars on the way
-to join the troops operating against Nogi.
-
-[101] Major-General Krauze’s report.
-
-[102] And fifty battalions collected towards Hsin-min-tun were thus
-left with two squadrons of the Niejinsk Dragoons.
-
-[103] In the afternoon of the 11th this division began to move on
-Tieh-ling; it had only suffered small loss during the battle.
-
-[104] [Only the concluding portion of what follows in the original is
-given here; the remainder is an exact repetition of what has been more
-than once recapitulated.—ED.]
-
-[105] [This extract is, by the kind permission of the editor, reprinted
-from _McClure’s Magazine_, where it appeared as an editorial note upon
-the article on these memoirs, published in September, 1908.—ED.]
-
-[106] _Osvobojdenie_, No. 75, Stuttgart, August 10, 1905. No question
-has ever been raised, I think, with regard to the authenticity of these
-letters and telegrams; but if there were any doubt of it, such doubt
-would be removed by a comparison of them with General Kuropatkin’s
-memoirs.—G. K.
-
-[107] Asakawa, who seems to have investigated this matter carefully,
-says that the original contract for this concession dated as far back
-as August 26, 1896, when the Korean King was living in the Russian
-Legation at Seoul as a refugee.—“The Russo-Japanese Conflict,” by K.
-Asakawa, London, 1905, p. 289.
-
-[108] The italics are mine.—G. K.
-
-[109] [Extracted from Chapter X.—ED.]
-
-[110] At the junction of roads near Newchuang.
-
-[111] The 21st and 23rd East Siberian Rifle Regiments.
-
-[112] Of these a brigade of the 6th East Siberian Rifle Division and
-one regiment of the 1st Army Corps were sent by my orders.
-
-[113] The Omsk Regiment lost its way, and for a long time could not be
-found, and the Krasnoyarsk and Tsaritsin Regiments were kept with the
-2nd Siberian Corps.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Russian army and the Japanese War,
-Volume II, by Aleksei Nicolaevich Kuropatkin
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RUSSIAN ARMY AND THE JAPANESE WAR ***
-
-***** This file should be named 60975-0.txt or 60975-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/9/7/60975/
-
-Produced by Brian Coe, David Tipple and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/60975-0.zip b/old/60975-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 72aee78..0000000
--- a/old/60975-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h.zip b/old/60975-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 9ae9b97..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/60975-h.htm b/old/60975-h/60975-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index de06968..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/60975-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,15442 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
-"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>The Russian Army and the Japanese War, Vol. II, by General
- Kuropatkin&mdash;A Project-Gutenberg eBook</title>
-
-<link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-
-<style type="text/css">
-
-/* Default settings */
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: 0em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
- text-indent: 1.25em;
- line-height: 1.45;
-}
-
-/* Useful class properties and values */
-
-.noindent {
- text-align: left;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.center {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.left {
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.right {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.reduced {
- font-size: 90%;
-}
-
-.small {
- font-size: 75%;
-}
-
-.tiny {
- font-size: 60%;
-}
-
-.skip1 {
- margin-bottom: 1em;
-}
-
-.skip2 {
- margin-top: 1em;
-}
-
-.skip3 {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
-}
-
-.skip4 {
- margin-bottom: -2em;
-}
-
-.corrno {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.smcap {
- font-variant: small-caps;
-}
-
-.sig1 {
- margin-top: 1em;
- line-height: 1.3;
- font-size: 90%;
- margin-left: 3em;
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-.adr1 {
- text-indent: 55%;
- font-variant: small-caps;
-}
-
-.groups {
- margin-left: 4em;
- text-indent: -1.5em;
-}
-
-/* Appendices */
-
-.apptitle {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- letter-spacing: 0.15em;
- font-size: 150%;
-}
-
-.appendices {
- background-color: #DDEAF0;
- padding-top: 0.5em;
- padding-bottom: 0.5em;
- padding-left: 1em;
- padding-right: 1em;
-}
-
-.sal1 {text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: left;
- font-variant: small-caps;
- margin-bottom: 0.0em;
-}
-
-.sal2 {text-indent: 3em;
- font-variant: small-caps;
- text-align: left;
- margin-top: 0.0em;
- margin-bottom: 0.0em;
-}
-
-.sal3 {text-indent: 6em;
- font-variant: small-caps;
- text-align: left;
- margin-top: 0.0em;
- margin-bottom: 0.0em;
-}
-
-.norm {
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
- /* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnotes {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size: 90%;
- padding: 0.3em;
- margin-bottom :5em;
- page-break-after: always;
-}
-
-.lspace {
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
-}
-
-/* Headings */
-
-h1,h2,h3 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
-
-h1 {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-weight: bold;
- word-spacing: 0.1em;
- page-break-before: always;
- line-height: 0.9;
-}
-
-.h1lh {
- line-height: 1.25;
-}
-
-h2 {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size: 120%;
-}
-
-div.chapter {
- page-break-before: always;
-}
-
-h2.nobreak {
- page-break-before: avoid;
-}
-
-.capsub1 {
- text-indent: 0em;
- font-size: 70%;
-}
-
-.capsub{
- margin-left: 1.5em;
- text-indent: -1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-top: 0.5em;
-}
-
-h3 {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: small-caps;
- font-size: 100%;
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
-}
-
-.hitalic {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size: 100%;
- font-style: normal;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- margin-top: 0.5em;
-}
-
-
-/* Rules */
-
-hr {
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 1.5em;
- clear: both;
- border-top: 1.5px solid black;
-}
-
-hr.chap {
- width: 64%;
- margin-left: 18%;
- margin-right: 18%;
-}
-
-hr.page {
- width: 80%;
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-
-
-/* FRONT MATTER */
-
-/* Title Page Etc. */
-
-.bastard {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-weight: bold;
- font-size: 200%;
- line-height: 1.25;
- word-spacing: 0.2em;
-}
-
-.subtitle{
- font-size: 60%;
- font-weight: normal;
-
- }
-
-.author1 {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 125%;
- font-weight: bold;
- margin-bottom: 1.5em;
- word-spacing: 0.3em;
-}
-
-.bby {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 95%;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em;
-}
-
-.author2 {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-
-.subauthor {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 0em;
- font-size: 75%;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
-}
-
-.maps {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 1.5em;
-}
-
-.vols {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- font-size: 90%;
-}
-
-.publisher {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 2.5em;
-}
-
-/* Table of Contents */
-
-.contchap {
- font-size: 100%;
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 2.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
-}
-
-.contindex {
- font-size: 100%;
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: left;
- margin-top: 2.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
-}
-
-.pages {
- font-size: 75%;
- margin-right: 0em;
- margin-left: 2em;
- float: right;
- margin-top: 0em;
- margin-bottom: 0em;
-}
-
-.csummary {
- margin-left: 2em;
- margin-right: 3em;
- text-indent: -2em;
- margin-bottom: -1em;
- margin-top: -0.5em;
-}
-
-.csum1 {
- text-align: center;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-top: 1em;
-}
-
-
-.flr {
- float: right;
- margin-left: 2em;
- text-indent: 0em;
- margin-right: -3em;
-}
-
-.flri {
- float: right;
- margin-left: 2em;
- text-indent: 0em;
- margin-right: 0em;
-}
-
-/* Lists */
-
-.offensives {
- list-style-type: none;
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- margin-left: 2em;
- line-height: 1.5;
-}
-
-.growth {
- list-style-type: upper-roman;
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- margin-left: 2em;
- line-height: 1.5;
-}
-
-/* Tables of Illustrations and Maps */
-
-table.illus {
- width: 98%;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- font-size: 94%;
-}
-
-
-.tdb {
- vertical-align: bottom;
-}
-
-.maps2 {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size: 100%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
-}
-
-/* Second title */
-
-.title2 {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-weight: bold;
- font-size: 150%
-}
-
-/*---------------------------------------------------------------------
- Tables
----------------------------------------------------------------------*/
-
-/* Useful classes for tables */
-
-/* Table of Losses */
-
-/* A table class for a boxed table. */
-
-.boxed {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- border: 1px solid black;
- border-collapse: collapse;
- font-size: 84%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- line-height: 1.1;
-}
-
-/* A table class for a table with no borders */
-
-.nobox {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- font-size: 90%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- line-height: 1.1;
-}
-
-.nobox2 {
- margin-left: 4em;
- font-size: 100%;
- margin-top: -2.0em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- line-height: 1.1;
-}
-
-
-/* a class for centred items */
-
-.tdc {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- vertical-align: bottom;
-}
-
-/* A class for centred items with vertical-top */
-
-.tdct {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- vertical-align: top;
-}
-
-
-/* a class for left-aligned items */
-
-.tdl {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: left;
- vertical-align: bottom;
-}
-
-/* a class for left-aligned items, vertically-aligned: top */
-
-.tdlt {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: left;
- vertical-align: top;
-}
-
-/* a class for right-aligned items, vretically aligned" bottom */
-
-.tdr {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: right;
- vertical-align: bottom;
-}
-
-/* A td/th class for boxed and centred items. */
-
-.tdbc {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- border: 1px solid black;
- padding: 0.5em;
-}
-
-/* A td/th class for centered items borded only on the left. */
-
-.tdblc {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- border-left: 1px solid black;
- padding: 0.25em;
-}
-
-/* A td/th class for left-aligned items borded only on the left. */
-
-.tdbll {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: left;
- border-left: 1px solid black;
- padding: 0.25em;
-}
-
-/* A td/th class for centered items borded only on the left.
- with vertical-alignment: bottom. */
-
-.tdblcb {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- border-left: 1px solid black;
- padding: 0.25em;
- vertical-align: bottom
-}
-
-.tdblr {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: right;
- border-left: 1px solid black;
- padding: 0.25em;
-}
-
-.total {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- border-top: 1.5px solid black;
- padding-top: 0.5em;
- vertical-align: bottom;
- width: 1em;
-}
-
-.totalr {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: right;
- border-top: 1.5px solid black;
- padding-top: 0.5em;
- vertical-align: bottom;
- width: 1em;
-}
-
-
-/* A td/th class for footnotes. */
-
-.tdfn {
- text-indent: -0.2em;
- text-align: left;
- padding-left: 0em;
-}
-
-.rservice {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: -1em;
- font-size: 90%;
-}
-
-.xrservice {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 1em;
- font-size: 90%;
-}
-
-/* Images */
-
-.figcenter {
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- text-align: center;
- }
-
-img {
- max-width: 90%;
- height: auto;
- padding: 2px;
- border: 2px solid black;
-}
-
-.caption {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-size: 100%;
-}
-
-
-/* Page numbers */
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
- font-size: 72%;
- text-align: right;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-/* Block Quotations */
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-top: 1.25em;
- margin-bottom: 1.25em;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
- margin-right: 1.5em;
- background-color: #faebd7;
- padding-top: 0.5em;
- padding-bottom: 0.5em;
- padding-left: 1em;
- padding-right: 1em;
-}
-
-/* Thoughtbreaks */
-
-.tbreak {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- letter-spacing: 1.5em;
- margin-top: 0em;
- margin-bottom: -0.5em;
-}
-
-/* Footnotes */
-
-#fn {
- background-color: #EEE;
- border: dashed 1px;
- color: #000;
- margin-left: 2.5%;
- margin-right: 2.5%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- padding: 1em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: 0.5em;
- font-size: 0.7em;
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-.fnote {
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: 0.75em;
- text-indent: 0em;
- line-height: 1.45;
-}
-
-.endvol {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 75%;
- margin-top: 6em;
- margin-bottom: 6em;
-}
-
-/* Advertisements */
-
-#adverts {
- background-color: #d5efe7;
- border: dashed 1px;
- color: #000;
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- margin-bottom:1em;
- padding: 1.0em;
- text-indent: 0em;
- font-size: 100%;
- page-break-before: always;
-}
-
-.advitem {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em;
- font-size: 132%;
- line-height: 1.2;
-}
-
-.advsub {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 0em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- font-size: 100%;
- line-height: 1.1;
-}
-
-.advsub2 {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-top: 0em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- font-size: 100%;
- line-height: 1.1;
-}
-
-
-.advauthor {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 0em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- font-size: 84%;
-}
-
-.advsmall {
- font-size: 90%;
- line-height: 1;
- margin-bottom: 1.5em;
- margin-top: 0.5em;
-}
-
-.advsmall2 {
- font-size: 90%;
- line-height: 1;
- margin-bottom: 1.5em;
- margin-top: -1.0em;
-}
-
-
-.advtiny{
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 84%;
- line-height: 1;
- margin-top: -0.25em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
-}
-
-.advvtiny{
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 76%;
- line-height: 1;
- margin-top: -0.25em;
- margin-bottom: 1.0em;
-}
-
-.advhang {
- margin-left: 2em;
- text-indent: -2em;
- font-size: 84%;
- line-height: 1.1;
-}
-
-.lancey {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: center;
- font-size: 84%;
- margin-bottom: 0.75em;
-}
-
-/* INDEX */
-
-.idxnone {
- list-style-type: none;
- page-break-before: avoid;
- page-break-after: avoid;
-}
-
-.idx0 {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: left;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- margin-top: 0em;
- page-break-before: avoid;
-}
-
-.idx1 {
- text-indent: 1em;
- text-align: left;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- margin-top: 0em;
- page-break-before: avoid;
-}
-
-.idx2 {
- text-indent: 2em;
- text-align: left;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- margin-top: 0em;
- page-break-before: avoid;
-}
-
-.idx3 {
- text-indent: 3em;
- text-align: left;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- margin-top: 0em;
- page-break-before: avoid;
-}
-
-.idxs {
- text-indent: 0em;
- text-align: left;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- page-break-before: avoid;
-}
-
-
-/* Added for poor quality epub readers. */
-
-@media print, handheld
-{
- table {
- max-width: 100%;
- }
-}
-
-</style>
-</head>
-
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Russian army and the Japanese War,
-Volume II, by Aleksei Nicolaevich Kuropatkin
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Russian army and the Japanese War, Volume II
- Being historical and critical comments on the military
- policy and power of Russia and on the campaign in the Far
- East
-
-Author: Aleksei Nicolaevich Kuropatkin
-
-Translator: Alexander Bertram Lindsay
-
-Release Date: December 20, 2019 [EBook #60975]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RUSSIAN ARMY AND THE JAPANESE WAR ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Brian Coe, David Tipple and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<div class="transnotes">
-
-<p class="skip3">
-Transcriber’s Notes:
-</p>
-
-<ul>
-<li class="lspace">
-A small number of obvious typos have been corrected. Except for
-these corrections, the spelling and punctuation of the book have
-not been changed.
-</li>
-
-<li class="lspace">There are 113 footnotes in the source book marked by
-characters such as * and †. The footnote markers have been replaced by
-numbers and each footnote has been moved to the end of the book.
-</li>
-
-<li class="lspace">
-The first volume of this book has been posted to the Gutenberg site.
-</li>
-
-<li class="lspace">
-The index to <i>both volumes</i> of this book is near the end of this
-volume. In this index the links to the pages of Volume&nbsp;I are listed
-after the lower-case Roman numeral, i, and are <i>external links</i>:
-the links to the pages of Volume&nbsp;II are <i>internal links</i> and
-are listed after the number ii.
-</li>
-
-<li class="lspace">
-The external links in the index can only be followed in the HTML version.
-</li>
-
-<li class="lspace">
-If you are reading the HTML version then clicking any of the maps will
-open a larger image of it.
-</li>
-
-</ul>
-</div>
-
-<!-- <hr class="page" /> -->
-
-<p class="bastard">
-THE RUSSIAN ARMY AND THE<br />JAPANESE WAR
-</p>
-
-<hr class="page" />
-
-<div class="figcenter" id="kuropatkin">
-<img src="images/reviewing.jpg" alt="" width="680" height="488" />
-<div class="caption">GENERAL KUROPATKIN REVIEWING HIS TROOPS.</div></div>
-
-<hr class="page" />
-
-<h1>
-<span class="h1lh">THE RUSSIAN ARMY AND<br />
-THE JAPANESE WAR,</span><br />
-<span class="subtitle">
-BEING HISTORICAL AND CRITICAL COMMENTS ON<br />
-THE MILITARY POLICY AND POWER OF RUSSIA<br />
-AND ON THE CAMPAIGN IN THE FAR EAST,
-</span></h1>
-
-<p class="author1">BY GENERAL KUROPATKIN.</p>
-
-<p class="bby">TRANSLATED BY</p>
-
-<p class="author2">CAPTAIN A. B. LINDSAY,</p>
-
-<p class="subauthor">2ND KING EDWARD’S OWN GURKHA RIFLES<br />
-TRANSLATOR OF “THE BATTLE OF TSU-SHIMA”;
-“THE TRUTH ABOUT PORT ARTHUR,” ETC.</p>
-
-<p class="bby">EDITED BY</p>
-
-<p class="author2">MAJOR E. D. SWINTON, D.S.O., R.E.,</p>
-
-<p class="subauthor">AUTHOR OF “THE DEFENCE OF DUFFER’S DRIFT”;<br />
-AND EDITOR OF “THE TRUTH ABOUT PORT ARTHUR.”</p>
-
-<p class="maps">WITH MAPS AND ILLUSTRATIONS</p>
-
-<p class="vols">IN TWO VOLUMES: VOL. II.</p>
-
-<p class="publisher">NEW YORK<br />
-E. P. DUTTON AND COMPANY<br />
-1909</p>
-
-<hr class="page" />
-
-<p class= "center smcap">
-Printed in Great Britain
-</p>
-
-<hr class="page" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_v">[Pg v]</a></span></p>
-<h2 class="nobreak">CONTENTS TO VOL. II</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="pages">PAGES</p>
-
-<p class="contchap"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX</a></p>
-
-<p class="csummary">
-Reasons for our reverses (<i>continued</i>): The insufficient tactical
-preparation of our troops—Measures taken to improve it
-<span class="flr">1–25</span>
-</p>
-
-<p class="contchap"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X</a></p>
-
-<p class="csummary">
-Reasons for our reverses (<i>conclusion</i>): Particular difficulties
-of the strategic situation—Defects in organization and
-<i>personnel</i>—Absence of a military spirit in the army, and lack of
-determination in carrying operations to a finish—Breakdown of our
-organization under the strain of active service
-<span class="flr">26–97</span>
-</p>
-
-<p class="contchap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI</a></p>
-
-<p class="csummary">
-Suggested measures for the improvement of the senior ranks; for the
-improvement of the regulars and reservists; for the reorganization of
-the reserve troops; for increasing the number of combatants in
-infantry regiments—Machine-guns—Reserve&nbsp;troops—Troops on the
-communi&shy;cations—Engineers—Artillery—Cavalry—Infantry—Organization
-generally
-<span class="flr">98–176</span></p>
-
-<p class="contchap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII</a></p>
-
-<p class="csummary">
-Summary of the war
-<span class="flr">177–204</span></p>
-
-<p class="contchap"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_vi">[Pg vi]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="csummary">
-Introduction and conclusion to Volume III.
-<span class="flr">205–305</span></p>
-
-<p class="contchap"><a href="#APPENDIX_I">APPENDIX I</a></p>
-
-<p class="csummary">
-The Royal Timber Company
-<span class="flr">306–313</span></p>
-
-<p class="contchap"><a href="#APPENDIX_II">APPENDIX II</a></p>
-
-<p class="csummary">
-Breakdown of the unit organization and distribution
-<span class="flr">314–335</span></p>
-
-<p class="contindex"><a href="#INDEX"><span class="smcap">Index</span></a>
-<span class="flri">336–348</span></p>
-
-
-<hr class="page" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_vii">[Pg vii]</a></span></p>
-<h2 class="nobreak">ILLUSTRATIONS TO VOL. II.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table class="illus" summary="List of Illustrations">
-<tbody>
-<tr>
- <td class="left"><a href="#kuropatkin">GENERAL KUROPATKIN
- REVIEWING HIS TROOPS</a></td>
- <td class="right"><i>Frontispiece</i></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="left"></td>
- <td class="right tiny">OPPOSITE PAGE</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="left"><a href="#linievitch">
- GENERAL LINIEVITCH</a></td>
- <td class="right">18</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="left"><a href="#nogi">
- GENERAL BARON KITEN NOGI</a></td>
- <td class="right">40</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="left"><a href="#grippenberg">
- GENERAL GRIPPENBERG</a></td>
- <td class="right">100</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="left"><a href="#oyama">
- FIELD-MARSHAL MARQUIS IWAO OYAMA</a></td>
- <td class="right">206</td>
-</tr>
-</tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p class="maps2">MAPS</p>
-
-<table class="illus" summary="List of Maps">
-<tbody>
-<tr>
- <td class="left"><a href="#manchuria">SKETCH-MAP OF MANCHURIA</a>,
- SHOWING MAIN PLACES<br />&emsp;
- ALONG RAILWAY SOUTH OF HARBIN</td>
- <td class="right tdb">27</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="left">DIAGRAM SHOWING THE POSITION OF THE
- <a href="#diagram">THEATRE OF WAR</a><br />&emsp;
- RELATIVELY TO RUSSIA AND JAPAN</td>
- <td class="right">34</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="left">SKETCH-MAP OF AREA CONTAINING THE BATTLE-FIELDS
- <br />&emsp; OF <a href="#battlefields">LIAO-YANG, THE SHA HO,
- HEI-KOU-TAI, AND MUKDEN</a>,<br />&emsp;SHOWING SOME OF THE MORE
- IMPORTANT PLACES MENTIONED</td>
- <td class="right"><i>At the end</i></td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="left">MAP OF THE THEATRE OF OPERATIONS<br />&emsp;
- <a href="#theatre">SOUTH OF MUKDEN</a></td>
- <td class="right"><i>At the end</i></td>
-</tr>
-</tbody>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="page" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_1">[Pg 1]</a></span></p>
-<p class="title2">THE RUSSIAN ARMY AND THE <br />
-JAPANESE WAR</p>
-</div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX<br />
-<span class="capsub1">REASONS FOR OUR REVERSES (<i>continued</i>)</span></h2>
-
-<p class="csum1">The insufficient tactical preparation of our troops—<br />
-Measures taken to improve it.</p>
-
-<p class="noindent">I have touched upon the fact of how our want of
-tactical training was shown up in the Crimean and
-second Turkish Wars. Especially conspicuous
-was the inability of our senior commanders—relying
-as they usually did upon quite inadequate
-information as to the enemy’s strength and dispositions—to
-co-ordinate the operations of the
-different arms towards one end, and their ignorance
-of where to deliver the main attack. The
-minor part played by our cavalry and our comparatively
-great power of defence were also remarked.
-Finally, attention was drawn to the
-fact that our lack of the power of manœuvre
-compelled us to place superior numbers in the
-field against the Turks, a course which had not
-formerly been necessary.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_2">[Pg 2]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>After the war of 1877–78 we set to work to
-study our weak points, in order to eliminate our
-faults. Much must have been accomplished since
-then, for the tactical training of the army at the
-beginning of the recent war was undoubtedly of
-a higher standard than it was twenty-five years
-ago. Still, in some matters we had not progressed,
-while in others we had actually gone
-back. The duty of training the troops rests
-with commanding officers of all ranks, and the
-responsibility for this extends right up to those
-in command of military districts. Although the
-same drill-books and manuals are used by the
-whole army, there is considerable variety in the
-way that the tactical instruction is imparted,
-owing to the diverse views held by the district
-commanders. I have taken part in many manœuvres,
-and was in command of the army at the
-grand manœuvres at Kursk in 1902, and I noted
-down what I considered to be our principal failings
-in this respect. In October, 1903, I submitted
-a report on the subject to the Tsar, in
-which my conclusions on certain points were as
-follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="hitalic">“1.&ensp;<i>Staff Work with the Main Army and with<br />
-Detached Columns at the Grand Manœuvres.</i></p>
-
-<p>“Generally speaking, the staff work cannot be
-characterized as entirely satisfactory. The principal
-reasons for this were the somewhat unhappy
-selection of the officers appointed to be chiefs of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_3">[Pg 3]</a></span>
-the different staffs, the poor organization of the
-staffs themselves, due to a limited personnel and
-to an insufficient supply of the means of communication
-[telegraph and telephone equipment]
-for both the troops and staffs, and the
-neglect to arrange proper intercommunication
-between units by making use of mounted orderlies,
-automobiles, or cyclists. Intelligence of
-the enemy as well as of the disposition of
-other units was always received late by those
-whom it concerned, because the cavalry was
-badly organized, and could not carry out its
-orders properly.</p>
-
-<p>“The amount of writing done by the various
-staff-officers was colossal. They worked the
-whole evening and all night; their effusions were
-lithographed or printed, and were sent off in all
-directions; but the orders were rarely received
-by the troops in proper time. At the manœuvres
-of the Warsaw Military District in 1899, cases
-came under my notice of general officers commanding
-divisions receiving the order to move in
-the morning two hours after the time appointed
-for them to start.</p>
-
-<p>“In many instances staff-officers with troops
-seemed ignorant of how a reconnaissance should
-be carried out, and consequently did not
-gauge the dispositions of the enemy’s forces
-with sufficient accuracy. This reacted in turn
-on the dispositions made by the chief commanders,
-more particularly in their employment
-of the reserves (Kursk manœuvres and those
-at Pskoff and Vlodava). Similarly, they did
-not know how to arrange for the maintenance
-of touch along the front and to the rear, a
-defect which caused a delay in the receipt
-of orders and information which was quite
-avoidable.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_4">[Pg 4]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="hitalic">“2.&ensp;<i>Work of the Cavalry at Manœuvres.</i></p>
-
-<p>“The increased importance now attached to
-the strategic or independent duties of cavalry has,
-in my opinion, acted detrimentally upon the
-cavalry work with the troops. The spirit of the
-strategic rôle was in most cases not properly
-grasped, and the chief idea of the masses of
-mounted troops of both sides appeared to be to
-meet each other. They therefore neglected to
-furnish the commanders of their sides with the
-information of the enemy, so necessary before an
-action, and left the infantry without their co-operation
-during the actual combat; this was
-the same whether they were acting in attack or
-defence. Long-distance patrols often did useful
-work, but owing to the lack of proper means for
-the quick transmission of the information collected,
-it reached the troops to whom it might
-be useful after the enemy’s dispositions had been
-changed. The near patrols did not work in with
-the long-distance ones. Our mounted troops
-were frequently allowed to lose touch with the
-enemy at night under the pretext that the men
-and horses required rest, and the employment of
-a dozen troopers was grudged after dark, when
-by day whole divisions and corps were futilely
-marched and countermarched, and sent upon
-duties which were not always in accordance with
-the general idea of the operations.</p>
-
-<p>“The cavalry work should be more strictly in
-co-operation with that of the other arms than it
-is at present, and all officers in command of
-mounted units should remember that their rôle
-is auxiliary, and largely consists in assisting the
-General in command to come to a proper decision
-by the completeness and accuracy of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_5">[Pg 5]</a></span>
-information they send back; that the cavalry
-should help the commanders, firstly, to frame a
-plan of action, then to crush the enemy on the
-field of battle.</p>
-
-<p class="hitalic">“3.&ensp;<i>Attack and the Defence.</i></p>
-
-<p>“Here again information was wanting. When
-commanders made up their minds either to attack
-or to stand on the defensive, they were never
-able to feel, from their information of the enemy
-and the locality, that they thoroughly knew
-what they were doing, or that it really was in
-accordance with the spirit of the general idea.
-We were strong in the defence, but we rarely
-delivered a soundly conceived or executed attack.
-In the attack column commanders did not always
-take pains to obtain enough accurate information
-as to the dispositions and strength of the enemy,
-so as to be able to appreciate the situation properly
-and draw up a reasoned plan of battle, to
-select the direction of the main attack, to allot
-the troops for it, and take steps to deceive the
-enemy as to its precise direction. When they
-had massed sufficient first-line troops for the
-main attack, they did not also move up the reserves
-of all arms.</p>
-
-<p>“In particular, we did not know how to conduct
-the advance, and then deliver the assault
-with proper preparation by artillery and rifle fire.
-Many commanders seem, unfortunately, to be
-wedded to the idea of carrying out a continuous
-advance without making any use of the rifle. If
-we ever encounter an enemy, such as the Germans,
-who systematically train their troops to
-advance under cover of their own heavy rifle-fire,
-we shall be worsted, for in peace we often advance
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_6">[Pg 6]</a></span>
-almost without firing a rifle to a range of 1,000
-or even 800 paces of the position.</p>
-
-<p>“The guns also frequently ceased fire at the
-same critical period—<i>i.e.</i>, when their attacking
-infantry are nearing the enemy. My inquiries as
-to the reason for this were usually met with the
-reply that their ammunition was expended. If
-the absolute necessity for keeping in hand a considerable
-number of rounds for the assistance of
-the decisive infantry attack is not realized now
-that we have quick-firing guns, our artillery will
-in war become useless at the very moment when
-its co-operation is most vital.</p>
-
-<p>“In defence we are better than in the attack,
-and we know how to make the most of the fire
-effect of both guns and rifles. The ranges in
-front of a position are usually measured and
-clearly marked. But proper use is not made
-of reserves. We do not, as we should, throw
-them into the firing-line, so as to increase the
-volume of fire after the enemy’s main attack has
-developed, nor do we launch them in a fierce
-counter-attack after he has come within decisive
-range. The reserves are often kept in mass, and
-thrown against the attack without any supporting
-rifle-fire. Many regiments and brigades told off
-as reserves to a defensive position go through
-the whole manœuvres without firing a single
-round.</p>
-
-<p class="hitalic">“4.&ensp;<i>The Revival of the Column Formation
-in the Attack.</i></p>
-
-<p>“Other European armies are now doing everything
-possible to minimize the murderous effect
-of modern rifle and artillery fire on themselves,
-and are, at the same time, endeavouring to
-develop their own fire to the utmost, both in
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_7">[Pg 7]</a></span>
-the attack and defence; indeed, the Germans, in
-their efforts to this end, have gone the extreme
-length of deploying all their troops—sometimes
-even to the sacrifice of their reserves—in long
-thin lines. We, on the other hand, judging by
-the last manœuvres, are going to the other
-extreme, for our decisive attack is delivered
-almost without any fire preparation, and with
-men massed in quarter column!</p>
-
-<p>“If a stop is not put to the increasing density
-of our attack formations, we shall suffer for it
-heavily. It is all the more dangerous for us, as
-we do not assist our assaulting infantry properly
-with supporting gun and rifle fire.</p>
-
-
-<p class="hitalic">“5.&ensp;<i>The Work of the Artillery.</i></p>
-
-<p>“Artillery positions were in most cases skilfully
-chosen, but the fire discipline was often
-bad. As batteries can only carry a limited
-number of rounds in the field, it is vital that
-the gunners should be taught to economize every
-round; this is, of course, particularly important
-with quick-firing guns. But we often fired more
-rounds than were necessary: fire was opened too
-hurriedly, at quite unimportant targets, with the
-result that, at the critical moment of the attack,
-batteries had to signal that they were in action,
-for all their ammunition had been expended.<a id="FNanchor_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a></p>
-
-<p class="hitalic">“6.&ensp;<i>The Work of the Sappers.</i></p>
-
-<p>“The bloody lessons of Plevna and Gora
-Dubniak put fresh life into our military
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_8">[Pg 8]</a></span>
-engineering, which lasted for a certain time
-after the Turkish War. Our sappers became
-skilful at constructing trenches and redoubts,
-and the other troops were also trained in field-works,
-and began to like entrenching themselves.
-But a reaction soon set in. This was largely
-due to General Dragomiroff, who did much to
-bring about a return to the old order of things,
-when it was held that everything was decided
-by the bayonet. He was quite opposed to the
-use of cover, and carried his orders on this
-subject to the height of absurdity, even forbidding
-his men to lie down while advancing to attack!
-</p>
-
-<p>“To dig oneself into the ground means labour,
-and takes much time. Moreover, instructions
-used to be issued that all trenches dug had to
-be filled in again, and all redoubts dismantled.
-This at once limited the scope of trench-work in
-the army. The entrenching tool, which after the
-Turkish War had been valued next to cartridges
-and biscuits, was relegated to the mobilization
-store, and never brought out for use or even
-for inspection. At many manœuvres the men
-were not practised at all in the fortification of
-positions; at others the alignment of trenches
-was traced only. While giving the sapper
-units full credit for their excellent training, I
-cannot but express my fear that they specialize
-far too much in a mass of detail, and ignore
-the fact that their main duty in war is to
-co-operate in every way with the infantry, both
-in strengthening defensive positions and in the
-attack of them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_9">[Pg 9]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="hitalic">“7.&ensp;<i>Criticism by Commanders.</i></p>
-
-<p>“It is gradually becoming the custom to omit
-all criticisms<a id="FNanchor_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> at grand manœuvres. Mistakes,
-therefore, pass unnoticed, are repeated, and tend
-to become chronic. I remember some very
-instructive manœuvre criticisms made by General
-Gurko, and I have listened with interest and
-advantage to others made by General Roop.
-Discussions after the operations are always held
-in the Kieff and St.&nbsp;Petersburg Military Districts,
-but nowadays some officers in command
-of districts neither make any remarks themselves
-when present at manœuvres, nor expect them to
-be made by the officers commanding sides or
-the other seniors. Orders issued after a long
-period—though they may enumerate the various
-points noticed—and the reports eventually printed
-of large concentrations and manœuvres, are comparatively
-useless for instruction. To be of use,
-criticisms must be made by the commanders, and
-made on the spot.</p>
-
-<p>“It is, however, important to realize how rare
-the power of good criticism is. The remarks
-usually made are either quite colourless or too
-highly pitched. Some of our most capable
-general officers also seem peculiarly ‘unlucky’
-in the way they manage unnecessarily to hurt
-the feelings of commanding officers by their
-harsh way of putting things. They forget that
-to lower the prestige of a senior in the presence
-of his juniors always produces a bitter harvest,
-especially in war. They forget the infinite
-variety of the conditions of different tactical
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_10">[Pg 10]</a></span>
-situations, and that at peace manœuvres there
-is no need for one side to win or lose. Again,
-independent action, though certainly not wrong
-in itself, is often put down as a mistake and
-adjudged to be wrong because the senior commander
-has his own opinion in the matter. Such
-narrow-minded criticism deprives officers in
-command of units of the spirit of independence,
-of initiative, and of the desire for responsibility.
-Instead, they try to discover the fads of the
-officer in command, in order to ‘play up’ to
-them.</p>
-
-<p class="hitalic">“8.&ensp;<i>Conclusion as to the Tactical Instruction
-of our Troops.</i></p>
-
-<p>“Although the opinion of the generals in
-command of military districts in all matters pertaining
-to military training should, and do, carry
-great weight, yet there must be some limit to
-individual action. It is impossible, for instance,
-to permit each of them to train the troops
-in his command entirely in accordance with
-his own views as to what is most important
-in war; for the instruction of attack and defence
-should not be carried out on entirely
-different lines in the different districts. Yet
-this is more or less what has been done. We
-at headquarters are partly to blame, owing to
-the delay in the publication of the field-service
-manuals and the instructions for the combined
-training of all arms. As an example of what
-I refer to: General Dragomiroff has trained the
-troops under him in the Kieff Military District
-to attack according to a system of his own, of
-which the soundness is open to doubt. If some
-of his theories are carried out in war, they will
-result in heavy loss, and therefore their inculcation
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_11">[Pg 11]</a></span>
-in peace seems entirely wrong. His
-order that the skirmishers escorting artillery
-should be on a line with the guns themselves
-would only cause the premature silencing of the
-latter; and another, that the lines of skirmishers
-advancing to attack should not lie down
-when halted, is simply impossible of execution.
-When bullets are flying, a line lies down of its
-own accord as soon as it halts, and quite rightly
-so, as men get cover more easily when lying
-than standing. And now, following General
-Dragomiroff’s example, in the Vilna Military
-District General Grippenberg has begun to act
-according to his own theories, and depart from
-the textbook. In his District Orders this year,<a id="FNanchor_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a>
-in which were published his criticisms on the work
-done at manœuvres, he recommends that infantry
-in close order should receive cavalry with independent
-fire<a id="FNanchor_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> instead of with volleys. He insists,
-also, that when a line is advancing by short
-rushes, these rushes should begin from the flanks.</p>
-
-<p>“Unfortunately, much that I saw when inspecting
-the troops in the different districts and
-on grand manœuvres led me to the conclusion
-that the tactical training, especially in command,
-of officers commanding units, from regiments
-upwards, is neither sound nor uniform.”</p>
-</div> <!-- End of quotation -->
-
-<p>My strictures on the peace tactical training
-of the army were, unfortunately, only too well
-confirmed during the war.</p>
-
-<p>The theatre of war in Manchuria presented
-many peculiarities of climate, topography, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_12">[Pg 12]</a></span>
-inhabitants. It was unlike any of the “probable”
-theatres of operations we had studied, and
-was, therefore, quite new to the troops who
-came from European Russia. The Japanese
-were not only new and practically unknown
-foes, but the nature of the information that we
-did possess about them tended to show our great
-superiority, and therefore incited us to contempt.
-The existing edition of our “Field Service
-Regulations” was obsolete, and the revised
-edition was still in the Press. Special instructions,
-therefore, had to be issued, in order to
-assist our troops to grapple with the entirely
-strange conditions under which they were placed.
-These were compiled and printed under my
-direction, and distributed to officers in command
-of all units, from companies and squadrons upwards,
-and to all chief staff-officers. In them
-I emphasized the necessity of getting to know
-something about the enemy, enumerated their
-strong and weak points, and drew attention
-to their patriotism and traditional indifference
-to death. I stated that their strong points
-predominated, and that in the Japanese we
-should find a very powerful opponent, even
-when reckoned by European standards. I continued:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“It is most important that in the first engagements,
-in which they will certainly be in superior
-strength, we should not give the Japanese the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_13">[Pg 13]</a></span>
-satisfaction of victory, for that will only still
-further elevate their spirit.</p>
-
-<p>“No particular or new tactics need be adopted
-against our present enemy, but we must not
-repeat the mistakes in manœuvring which cost
-us so dear in the Turkish War of 1877–78.”</p></div>
-
-<p>I then mentioned the causes of our reverses
-at Plevna, and commented in detail on the
-most important. After capturing Nicopolis, our
-troops moved on Plevna in ignorance of the
-strength and dispositions of the enemy. As far as
-obtaining this information was concerned, our
-cavalry was not well handled. In the first fight at
-Plevna (July&nbsp;20, 1877) we attacked with too
-few men and in detail. We did the same in the
-fights of July&nbsp;31 and September&nbsp;12, but to an
-even greater extent, and the attacks were carried
-out in too dense a formation, were not sufficiently
-prepared by fire-effect, and our own
-numerous cavalry and that of the Roumanians
-did practically nothing. The attacks on September&nbsp;10
-and 11, 1877, failed because our troops
-were badly distributed and untrained. I attached
-an appreciation of the work of our troops in
-the Turkish War as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“In this war the staff work was not always
-successful. The troops often received orders
-too late, and time was wasted waiting for their
-receipt before commencing a move. Units
-arriving at night on the positions allotted to
-them did not always find the officers who should
-have been waiting their arrival to guide them.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_14">[Pg 14]</a></span>
-Officers in command of troops were often not
-informed by the staff as to the enemy’s strength
-and dispositions, or as to our own neighbouring
-columns. Lack of information was the principal
-cause of our disasters; we sometimes
-attacked in entire ignorance of the enemy’s
-strength and dispositions, and even partially so of
-our own.</p>
-
-<p>“As an example of what our troops can do
-in an attack may be quoted the capture of Kars;
-it is a very instructive case. Though the weak
-field-works of Plevna resisted our efforts for five
-months, at Kars neither strong parapets nor deep
-ditches could check our onslaught. Our gallant
-Caucasians advanced on the fortress by night;
-they were well led, and always had a body of
-scouts skilfully thrown out in front, and they
-captured strongholds that had been termed
-‘impregnable’ with great bravery.</p>
-
-<p>“In the defence our troops have always
-fought well. Let us remember the defence of
-the Shipka Pass, and imitate it.”</p></div>
-
-<p>After a short review of our errors in the
-Turkish War, I enumerated those which were
-still noticeable in our peace manœuvres.</p>
-
-<p>As operations developed the enemy’s peculiarities
-became as well known as our own, so I was
-able in August, September, October, and December,
-1904, to issue supplementary instructions.</p>
-
-<p>Notwithstanding the number of our cavalry,
-and what our scouts had been able to do, we
-had not ascertained the general dispositions and
-strength of the enemy. The information brought
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_15">[Pg 15]</a></span>
-in by spies was exaggerated and unreliable. The
-result was that, when we had carried out any offensive
-operations, we had advanced without knowing
-anything of the enemy. My instructions ran:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="hitalic"><i>Instructions issued in August.</i></p>
-
-<p>“In our attacks we have started the advance
-too rapidly, without strengthening positions
-already occupied, and without full artillery co-operation,
-and we have stopped the action at a
-period when we still had large numbers both in
-the general and regimental reserves. In retirements
-we have withdrawn to positions previously
-occupied by us without having taken steps to
-hold our ground on any of them, which preparation
-would not only have greatly assisted the
-retirement itself, but, what was far more important,
-would have enabled us to renew the
-attack.</p>
-
-<p>“Another point is, that many of our defensive
-positions have not corresponded to the numbers,
-when extended, told off to defend them. Nevertheless,
-the enemy’s frontal attacks, even if we
-hold quite chance positions, usually fail, and we
-have been obliged to abandon our ground owing
-to the turning movements which their superior
-numbers have made possible.</p>
-
-<p>“In attacking, especially among hills, the
-infantry must wait so that the assault may be
-prepared by fire, in order to get breath or to
-give time for the co-operation of a turning movement.
-There is also another and involuntary
-reason for halting—namely, the enemy’s fire.
-Owing to this, units halt, or, what is worse, begin
-to retire without orders; what then usually
-happens is this: A few men begin to trickle
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_16">[Pg 16]</a></span>
-back from some company that has come under a
-particularly hot fire; they are followed by their
-own company, which is in turn followed by the
-companies on either side, even though the latter
-may perhaps be holding strong ground. Such a
-moment is, indeed, critical, and unless some brilliant
-officer appears who possesses the secret of
-rallying retreating men and succeeds in making
-the company hold its ground, the action is lost.
-But besides setting a personal example to the
-men, a commanding officer must at once push
-forward some of his reserves to stop the rot
-among those retreating. The most important
-thing at such a crisis is the example set by the
-officers or the steadiest men, particularly by
-Cavaliers of the Order of St.&nbsp;George.<a id="FNanchor_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> A company
-commander’s example is everything to his
-company. Therefore, however deserving he may
-be in peace, a company commander who does not
-display personal gallantry in action should be
-instantly removed from his command.</p>
-
-<p>“The most effective method of guarding
-against a sudden emergency either in attack or
-defence—and this is particularly true in hilly
-country—is to have in hand a strong reserve, and
-not to make use of it too lightly. This we have
-not done in recent actions; we have told off weak
-reserves, and used them up too quickly. Whole
-regiments have sometimes been sent in support
-where two companies or a battalion would have
-been ample.<a id="FNanchor_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_17">[Pg 17]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“In all kinds of operations officers in command
-must keep the forces on either flank, as well as
-their seniors, informed of everything that happens.
-We are, unfortunately, not accustomed to do
-this. Before an action the smallest details are
-reported, but as soon as an action begins we
-become so preoccupied with the fight that the
-most obvious duties are forgotten. Chief staff-officers
-of all grades will in future be held responsible
-for the frequent transmission of reports
-during an action.”</p></div>
-
-<p>The special attention of commanding officers
-was also called to the necessity for providing
-their men with hot food during action, and to
-the excessive expenditure of ammunition in our
-fights.</p>
-
-
-<p class="hitalic"><i>Instructions issued during September.</i></p>
-
-<p>The following were the main instructions given
-by me while preparing for an advance after the
-fighting in August:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“It is a regrettable fact that so far, whenever
-we have taken the offensive, we have met with
-reverse. Owing to our lack of information, to
-which I have already drawn attention, instead of
-delivering a confident attack according to a
-clearly-thought-out plan, we have acted in a
-half-hearted manner. We often deliver our main
-attack too soon, and regardless of the enemy’s
-intentions. Instances have occurred where we
-have detailed attacking columns as small as a
-battalion; in others we have operated without
-any definite plan of action. Finally, there have
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_18">[Pg 18]</a></span>
-been cases where not enough determination
-has been shown in pressing forward to the objective.”</p></div>
-
-<p>The importance of gaining even slight successes
-over the enemy’s advanced troops at the beginning
-of a forward movement, the fact that in the
-attack of positions turning movements should
-always be made in combination with frontal
-attacks, and the advantage of pushing on energetically
-when once an advance had commenced,
-were all points specially noted. The necessity
-of holding on determinedly to every yard of
-ground gained was accentuated, and leading units
-in a frontal attack were warned not to deliver
-the assault until the synchronous turning movement
-had been fully developed. Every use was
-to be made of fire-effect of every sort. I wrote:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“A glaring case of that lack of co-operation
-from which we suffer so much was the fight
-of September&nbsp;2,<a id="FNanchor_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> when the left column began the
-action far too soon, and therefore finished by
-retiring in disorder. This had the worst results
-on the success of the whole operation.</p>
-
-<p>“I must again remind all ranks of the great
-necessity for economizing ammunition, especially
-gun ammunition. At Liao-yang we used up in
-two days our special artillery reserve of more
-than 100,000 rounds. The conveyance of gun
-ammunition to the front is very difficult, and
-batteries which have expended theirs become
-mere dead-weight to the army.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="figcenter" id="linievitch">
-<img src="images/linievitch.jpg" alt="" height="650" width="541" />
-<div class="caption">GENERAL LINIEVITCH.</div></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_19">[Pg 19]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The peculiarities attendant on operations in
-a country covered with such crops as <i>kao-liang</i>
-were also reviewed in detail:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Any men leaving the ranks in action under
-pretext of accompanying or carrying away
-wounded men will be severely punished.</p>
-
-<p>“Companies and squadrons must be as strong
-as possible for an attack. To this end the most
-strict precautions must be taken to limit the
-number of men employed on extraneous duties
-and for transport work. The Cossacks are not
-to be employed as orderlies and escorts by the
-officers under whom they may be temporarily
-serving. Sound horses in possession of sick
-Cossacks should be taken from them, and made
-over to those who are horseless, but fit for duty.</p>
-
-<p>“It is to be regretted—and I have more than
-once commented on it—that commanding officers
-do not pay proper attention to the order that the
-soldier’s emergency biscuit ration, carried on the
-person, should remain untouched. This reserve
-ration is constantly being eaten, and no steps are
-taken immediately to replace it. Many commanding
-officers calmly allow the whole of the
-men’s portable reserve to be consumed under
-the pleasing conviction that it is the duty of
-someone else to bring up fresh supplies to the
-regimental commissariat.</p>
-
-<p>“The above instructions only touch on a few
-details of field-work. The main guide for action
-is the ‘Field Service Regulations,’ but these
-cannot, of course, meet every case which may
-arise in the entirely new circumstances under
-which we are now operating. I expect commanding
-officers of all ranks, therefore, to show greater
-initiative in the performance of their duties.”</p></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_20">[Pg 20]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>My instructions issued in October included
-remarks on our offensive operations during the
-end of September. Amongst other things, I
-said:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“I still notice faults in the method of conducting
-attacks. Thick lines of skirmishers are
-too closely followed by the supports and reserves.
-The formations have generally been ill adapted
-to the ground, and have been such as to form an
-excellent target. If this close-order formation had
-been assumed in these cases just before a bayonet
-charge, then, despite the heavy sacrifices entailed,
-there would have been some point in it, because
-of the additional force and impetus given to the
-assault; but it was adopted when the attack was
-still at long range, and so caused useless and
-heavy loss. We should in such cases imitate the
-Japanese, and do what we used to in the
-Caucasus—make every use of cover. Every
-effort must be made to reconnoitre well, in
-order that advantage may be taken of every fold
-of the ground, and of every stick and stone, and
-the attack may be enabled to advance as close as
-possible to the enemy with the least possible
-loss. The way to do this is for individual men,
-or groups of men, to advance by short rushes till
-the attacking units are able to collect. On open
-ground, if the attacking infantry has to wait for
-the artillery preparation, it should entrench itself
-as rapidly as possible.</p>
-
-<p>“In retreating, the movement to the rear of
-large masses together afforded the enemy a
-splendid target, for which we suffered. Again,
-to avoid unnecessary loss in retirement, portions
-of a position have often been stubbornly held
-until a withdrawal could be effected under cover
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_21">[Pg 21]</a></span>
-of darkness. If the portion of ground on either
-side happens to have been already abandoned,
-and the Japanese are sufficiently mobile to make
-use of it, such isolated defence of any one section
-of a position might cost very dear. We must
-learn how to retire by day—by the same methods
-as laid down above for the attack (by rushes), and
-avoid close formations in doing it.</p>
-
-<p>“I and other senior officers have noticed
-during an action hundreds and thousands of
-unwounded men leaving the ranks, carrying
-wounded to the rear. In the fights of October&nbsp;12
-to 15<a id="FNanchor_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> I personally saw wounded men being
-carried to the rear by as many as nine others.
-This abuse must be put down with the utmost
-rigour, and until an action is over only the
-stretcher-bearers should take wounded to the rear.</p>
-
-<p>“The Japanese are fortifying the positions
-along our front, converting villages, knolls, and
-hill-tops into strong, defensible points, and
-strengthening their positions with obstacles.
-These positions should be carefully studied, their
-strong points noted, and in every section of our
-line a plan of possible operations against the
-corresponding portions of the enemy’s position
-should be made. The early organization of the
-artillery preparation of any attack on these
-selected points is important.</p>
-
-<p>“Detachments of sappers and scouts should
-be sent ahead of the assault to destroy the
-obstacles round fortified villages, which should
-be well shelled. Till the assault is made the
-advance should be under cover, and if the leading
-troops find they are not strong enough to capture
-the point on which they have been directed, they
-must hold on to a point as near to the enemy as
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_22">[Pg 22]</a></span>
-possible, in order to press forward again when
-reinforced.”</p></div>
-
-<p>Finally, in my instructions issued in December,
-1904, I recapitulated the most important points
-brought out by our recent experiences, such as—</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“1.&ensp;The necessity, in order to avoid loss, for
-our attack formations to be better adapted to
-the ground.</p>
-
-<p>“2.&ensp;Economy in artillery ammunition.</p>
-
-<p>“3.&ensp;The more intelligent employment of rifle-fire,
-and the necessity for volley-firing at night.</p>
-
-<p>“4.&ensp;The great value of night operations.</p>
-
-<p>“5.&ensp;Proper communication between all senior
-commanders.</p>
-
-<p>“6.&ensp;The necessity for the mutual co-operation
-of all arms, and the maintenance of touch in
-battle.</p>
-
-<p>“The surest road to success is the determination
-to continue fighting, even when the last reserve
-has been exhausted, for the enemy may be in
-the same, if not in worse plight, and what is not
-possible in daylight may be accomplished at
-night. Unfortunately, in recent fights, some
-commanders even of large forces have confessed
-themselves unable to carry out the operation
-entrusted to them, at a moment when they still
-had in hand big reserves which had not fired a
-shot.”</p></div>
-
-<p>Of course, as soon as our disasters began, the
-papers started to accuse our troops of insufficient
-training, and they were not far wrong. In the
-first place, most of the men were reservists who
-had forgotten a great deal. In the second, this
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_23">[Pg 23]</a></span>
-war was our first experience of smokeless powder,
-of quick-firing artillery, of machine-guns, and of
-all the recent developments in means of destruction,
-and much was strange and unexpected.
-Our preconceived notions were upset, and we
-were baffled by the deadly nature of indirect
-artillery-fire, by the new attack formations—when
-advancing infantry is rarely visible, and
-one man at a time crawls up almost unseen,
-taking advantage of every inch of cover. Our
-troops had been instructed, but what they had
-learned varied according to the personal idiosyncrasies
-of this or that district commander. The
-stronger the officer commanding a district, the
-less did he feel bound to abide by the authorized
-method of instruction and training laid down
-in the existing drill-books. General Grippenberg
-was no exception to this. In spite of the
-regulation as to the use of volleys for repulsing
-night attacks; in spite of war experience which in
-every way confirmed the necessity and value of
-volley-firing; in spite of the Commander-in-Chief’s
-instructions on this point, he made up his mind
-some days before a battle to re-teach the force
-under his command. He ordered the employment
-of independent fire at night. His “Instructions
-for the Operations of Infantry in
-Battle” [signed by him on January&nbsp;4, 1905],
-printed and issued to the troops, aroused consternation
-and amusement throughout the army.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_24">[Pg 24]</a></span>
-In this book it was actually laid down that volleys
-were only to be resorted to if the enemy suddenly
-appeared at close quarters, and that immediately
-after a volley a bayonet attack should be made.
-While condemning the method in which our
-troops operated at the Ya-lu, he, in the above
-“Instructions,” gives a recipe for action whereby
-two of our battalions might destroy a Japanese
-division. After a summary of the amount of
-small-arm ammunition expended, he said:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“If our two battalions had been deployed and
-had opened rapid independent fire, the Japanese
-division would have been destroyed, and we
-should have won the day.”</p></div>
-
-<p>Such a simple matter did General Grippenberg
-consider the annihilation of a Japanese division!
-But a few days later, when he moved against the
-Hei-kou-tai position with a strong force of 120 battalions,
-his own prescription proved to be valueless.
-In the first few days, when he was opposed
-by not more than two divisions, he was unable to
-take San-de-pu, got his troops into confusion, gave
-the enemy time to bring up strong reinforcements,
-and retired—to St.&nbsp;Petersburg.</p>
-
-<p>As to the attack formation adopted by the
-troops arriving from Russia, the 41st&nbsp;Division
-had in particular been taught to work in very
-close formation, and not taught to make use of
-the ground. It came from the Vilna district,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_25">[Pg 25]</a></span>
-which was commanded before the war by General
-Grippenberg. Our gunners also arrived at the
-front with only one idea of artillery tactics—to
-place their batteries in the open and make
-use of direct fire. For this we paid dearly in our
-very first fight.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_26">[Pg 26]</a></span></p>
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X<br />
-<span class="capsub1">REASONS FOR OUR REVERSES (<i>conclusion</i>)</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="capsub">Particular difficulties of the strategic situation—Defects
-in organization and <i>personnel</i>—Absence of a military
-spirit in the army, and lack of determination in
-carrying operations to a finish—Breakdown of our
-organization under the strain of active service.</p>
-
-<p class="noindent">It is the duty of every Headquarter Staff to
-work out all possibilities, and, regardless of
-existing international relations, to provide for
-war in every probable quarter. Accordingly,
-our general line of operation in case of war with
-Japan had been duly drawn up in conjunction
-with the staffs of the Pri-Amur and Kuan-tung
-districts, and had been approved. The following
-is an extract from the paper dealing with the
-subject:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Taking advantage of her military position—for
-she will be more ready for war than we are,
-and will therefore possess in the first period of
-the campaign a great numerical superiority both
-by sea and land—Japan can afford to define her
-objectives only generally. She may (1) confine
-her attention to the occupation of Korea, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_27">[Pg 27]</a></span>
-not take the offensive against us (which will most
-probably be the case); or (2) occupy Korea and
-also assume the offensive—</p>
-
-<ul class="offensives">
-<li>(<i>a</i>) In Manchuria.</li>
-<li>(<i>b</i>) Against Port Arthur.</li>
-<li>(<i>c</i>) In the Southern Ussuri district (Vladivostok).</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p>“Should Japan decide on the first alternative,
-then, taking into consideration the number of
-reinforcements we shall need, and the adverse
-conditions under which they will have to be
-conveyed to the front, we shall be forced at first
-to allow her to seize Korea—without retaliative
-action on our part, if only she will confine herself
-to occupying that country, and not develop plans
-against Manchuria and our territory. Should
-she choose the second alternative, we should be
-obliged to fight, and ought at once to make up
-our minds not to end the war until we have
-utterly destroyed her army and fleet. In view,
-however, of her numerical superiority and greater
-readiness during the first period of the struggle,
-we shall have to assume a generally defensive
-rôle. Any troops we may have within the
-theatre of operations should as far as possible
-keep clear of decisive actions, in order to avoid
-being defeated in detail before we can concentrate
-in force.</p>
-
-<p>“The numerical superiority of the Japanese
-fleet will probably prevent our squadron from
-any major active operations, and it will have to
-confine its action to the comparatively modest
-task of delaying the enemy’s landing as much as
-possible. The defence of our own possessions
-should be carried out by the forces in the
-Southern Ussuri and the Kuan-tung districts,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_28">[Pg 28]</a></span>
-which are formed for that particular object, and
-based on the fortresses of Vladivostok and Port
-Arthur. All the remaining troops, except those
-allotted to the line of communications and to
-maintain order in Manchuria, should be concentrated
-in the area Mukden-Liao-yang-Hsiu-yen.
-As the Japanese advance, these troops, while
-delaying them as much as possible, will gradually
-be compelled to retire on Harbin. If it becomes
-evident in the first period of the campaign that
-the whole Japanese effort is being directed
-against us in Manchuria, then the force which
-would be concentrated first of all in the Southern
-Ussuri district (1st&nbsp;Siberian Corps) would be
-transferred there.”</p>
-
-</div> <!-- End of quotation -->
-
-<div class="figcenter" id="manchuria">
- <a href="images/manchuria_large.jpg">
- <img alt="" width="421" height="700" src="images/manchuria.jpg" /></a>
-<div class="caption">Sketch Map of MANCHURIA</div></div>
-
-<p>The two years succeeding the date on which
-this paper was written saw great alterations in
-the strength, dispositions, and readiness of our
-military and naval forces in the Far East. There
-was also considerable change in the political
-conditions in Manchuria and in Northern Korea
-in consequence of the active policy which we had
-begun to assume. It was therefore found necessary
-in 1903 to consider a revision of the above
-scheme in accordance with these altered conditions.
-During those two years our strength in
-the Far East had grown by the increase in our
-land forces and fleet, and the improved efficiency
-of the railways. We have already seen what
-was done to improve the latter. It will suffice
-to say here that, instead of the twenty waggons
-available over the whole Chinese line in 1901,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_29">[Pg 29]</a></span>
-the War Department in 1903 received seventy-five
-in the twenty-four hours, and hoped, on the
-strength of promises made, to have five through
-military trains by the beginning of 1904. The
-fleet, which in 1901 was considered inferior to
-the Japanese, was, at the end of 1903, stated, on
-the authority of the Viceroy, Admiral Alexeieff,
-to be so strong that any possibility of its defeat
-by the Japanese was inadmissible. But in those
-same two years Japan had not been idle, and
-had been unceasingly increasing her naval and
-military forces. In consequence of this the
-relative local strengths of the two nations were
-still much the same in 1903 as they had been in
-1901, and it was thought prudent to adhere to
-the same general plan of operations as had been
-drawn up and approved two years previously.
-To give an official opinion of that time, I quote
-an extract from a memorandum I submitted to
-the Tsar on August&nbsp;6, 1903:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“In the report which will be sent in from the
-Headquarter Staff, the conclusion arrived at
-after a careful appreciation of the resources of
-both nations is the same as that reached two
-years ago—namely, that in the event of war with
-Japan, we should act on the defensive; that the
-concentration and general distribution of our
-troops should remain the same; that although
-we may move troops on to the line Mukden-Liao-yang-Hsiu-yen,
-we cannot hold our ground
-in Southern Manchuria in the first period of the
-war if that region be invaded by the whole
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_30">[Pg 30]</a></span>
-Japanese army. We should therefore still count
-upon Port Arthur being cut off for a considerable
-period, and in order to avoid defeat in detail,
-should withdraw towards Harbin until reinforcements
-from Russia enable us to assume the
-offensive. But I may add that, while accepting
-the same plan of operations as we did two years
-ago, we can now have far greater confidence in
-the issue of a struggle. Our fleet is stronger
-than the Japanese, and as reinforcements will
-arrive now more quickly than they could have
-formerly, it will take less time for us to be in a
-position to advance.”</p></div>
-
-<p>In a memorandum by the Chief of the Headquarter
-Staff, submitted to me on February&nbsp;12,
-1904—<i>i.e.</i>, a few days after the enemy had
-attacked our fleet at Port Arthur—General
-Sakharoff described the Japanese intentions as
-follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“The Japanese plan appears to be—</p>
-
-<p>“1.&ensp;To inflict a crushing blow upon our fleet
-so as to paralyze its activity once and for all,
-and thus guarantee freedom of movement to
-their transports. To attain this end they have
-not hesitated to attack us before the declaration
-of war (<i>vide</i> the night operations of February&nbsp;8
-and 9). The transfer to them by the British of
-Wei-hai-wei also has given them an advantageous
-naval base right on the flank of any
-operations undertaken by our squadron.</p>
-
-<p>“2.&ensp;To capture Port Arthur in order to attain
-the same object—the destruction of our fleet.</p>
-
-<p>“3.&ensp;To advance on and capture Harbin, so as
-to isolate the Pri-Amur district from the rest
-of Russia, and to destroy the railway.”</p></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_31">[Pg 31]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Our hopes as to the promised improvement
-of the railway were unfortunately not realized,
-while our fleet, damaged by the enemy’s onslaught
-before the declaration of war, was not
-only weaker than the enemy’s, but failed even
-to perform the modest task expected of it in
-1901. Consequently the concentration of our
-troops was a far slower business than we thought
-it would be, while the Japanese, having gained
-command of the sea, threw the whole of their
-army on to the continent. Thus, gaining the
-initiative on land as well as on the sea, and fired
-as they were with immense patriotism, the enemy
-commenced the war superior to us morally as
-well as materially. However, though the task
-before us was one of extreme difficulty, our
-resources were immensely superior to the enemy’s,
-and the moment when we should become completely
-ready for the struggle was only postponed.
-Notwithstanding the unfavourable conditions
-under which we started, after fifteen
-months’ fighting we were holding the Hsi-ping-kai
-positions, and, although we had not actually
-assumed the offensive, we had by no means retired
-as far as Harbin, which had been accepted as
-a possibility in the original scheme. If we had
-only possessed the determination necessary to
-carry this scheme right through, we ought not
-to have ended the war until we had utterly
-defeated the enemy. Therefore, whatever we
-did accomplish can only be looked upon as preparatory
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_32">[Pg 32]</a></span>
-to the decisive struggle. One of the
-assumptions of our original scheme of operations
-was that, if a strong Japanese force invaded
-Southern Manchuria, we should not be able, in
-the first period of the war, to hold it. In the
-event the whole Japanese army invaded that
-area, but the opposition shown by our troops at
-Liao-yang, on the Sha&nbsp;Ho, and at Mukden, was
-
-
-so effectual that, though the enemy gained
-possession of the greater portion of Southern
-Manchuria, they did not reassume the offensive
-against us for six months. The difficulties which
-the Japanese surmounted in advancing from
-Ta-shih-chiao to Tieh-ling cannot be compared
-to those which would have faced them, in the
-three defensive lines which we had constructed
-on the way to Harbin,<a id="FNanchor_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> had they attempted to
-drive us to that place. I reiterate what I have
-so often said in the preceding chapters: though
-the war was brought to an end, the army was
-not beaten. Of the great force which lay ready
-on the Hsi-ping-kai position in August, 1905,
-one-half had never been under fire. Further on
-I will explain how it was that we never acquired
-the material and moral superiority necessary to
-defeat the enemy during the fifteen months that
-the war did last.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_33">[Pg 33]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In the diary I kept when in Japan<a id="FNanchor_10"></a><a href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> I drew
-a diagram, with explanatory notes, to illustrate
-the Japanese question and show the possibility
-of our being able to defend our interests in
-Manchuria and Korea by force. I reproduce
-the diagram<a id="FNanchor_11"></a><a href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> and the notes <i>in extenso</i>:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“This diagram shows Japan’s comparatively
-favourable situation with regard to the theatre
-of operations. Her base—indeed, her whole
-country—is only about 600 miles by sea from
-our shores, and 135 from Korea.</p>
-
-<p>“Our territory in Asia is so vast and so thinly
-populated that we shall be compelled to make
-European Russia, which is 3,400 to 6,000 miles
-distant, our base. For a protracted war with
-Japan it is evident that the single-line Siberian
-Railway will not suffice; we shall be obliged to
-lay a second track, and to increase the number
-of trains in the twenty-four hours. Also, as it
-runs for a considerable distance along the Chinese
-frontier and through Chinese territory, it cannot
-be relied on in the event of war with both China
-and Japan together.”</p></div>
-
-<p>We were glued to the railway, and could not
-move away without risk of being left without
-supplies. Our field artillery and heavy four-wheeled
-transport carts were unable to travel
-over most of the hill roads. The summer rains
-made the movements of the army, with its heavy
-baggage trains and parks, extremely difficult;
-teams of twenty horses were harnessed to guns,
-and even empty carts had to be man-handled.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_34">[Pg 34]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" id="diagram">
- <img alt="" width="700" height="283" src="images/diagram.jpg" />
-<div class="caption"> DIAGRAM SHOWING THE POSITION OF THE THEATRE OF WAR<br />
-RELATIVELY TO RUSSIA AND JAPAN.</div></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_35">[Pg 35]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But of all our difficulties, the complete command
-of the sea obtained by the Japanese right at the
-beginning of the war caused the greatest. With
-their three armies they cut off Port Arthur,
-and began an advance from an enveloping base
-against our army, which was still tied to a
-railway-line. Our southward advance for the
-relief of Port Arthur was threatened by Kuroki’s
-army based on Korea. Any movement against
-him was out of the question, especially for those
-corps which had arrived from Russia, as they
-were quite unused to hilly country. Our
-communications through Manchuria were only
-weakly defended, and might be cut at any
-moment by the Chinese, while those further
-west were liable to interruption (bridges destroyed,
-strikes, frost, etc.). The feeding of the
-army depended on local resources, which a
-hostile population could easily conceal, carry
-away, or even destroy; and as the amount of
-supplies obtained from Russia was extremely
-small and uncertain, the army might very easily
-have been starved. The chance actions at the
-Ya-lu and Te-li-ssu, in which our most reliable
-troops were worsted, still further improved the
-enemy’s <i>moral</i>, and lowered ours.</p>
-
-<p>With the absence of a proper military spirit
-among our troops, and the evil influence of
-the many seditious manifestoes against the war
-circulating amongst them; with the unsteadiness
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_36">[Pg 36]</a></span>
-shown by many units in the first fights, and with
-all the other defects above mentioned, a great
-numerical superiority was necessary—I must
-speak perfectly plainly—in order to defeat an
-enemy worked up to a pitch of fanatical excitement.
-But we did not obtain this superiority
-until it was too late—when we were waiting on
-the Hsi-ping-kai position, and negotiations for
-peace were being carried on at Portsmouth.
-Up to December we were fighting with what
-seemed a fairly large force, according to a tally
-of battalions; but these were greatly under
-strength, for in the most important early period
-of the war—from May to October inclusive—we
-lost very many men, and received but few drafts.
-In many cases the Japanese battalions were
-twice as strong as ours. While all our actions
-were hampered by insufficient information regarding
-the enemy, the intelligence we received
-as to what was happening in our rear—in Mongolia
-and in the Manchurian provinces—was so
-alarming as to compel us to detach a large force
-to protect our communications. Again, when
-the enemy became complete masters of the sea,
-we had to detail sufficient troops to guard against
-a landing in the Vladivostok and the Ussuri
-districts. All these things combined to complicate
-our position and give the enemy the
-initiative at the start, and right manfully did
-their whole nation strive to seize their advantage.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_37">[Pg 37]</a></span>
-Their land communications were safe; their sea
-communication with their base was quick and
-sure. We, on the contrary, could only put in
-the field a fraction of our land forces, and, till
-we could concentrate sufficient men for an
-offensive, were tied down to a definite course
-of action. We had—</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;To make certain of and protect the concentration
-of the reinforcements which were
-arriving, so as not to allow them to be destroyed
-as they came up.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;To take steps to relieve Port Arthur.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;To maintain order in our rear, and to
-guard the railway.</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;To feed the army—mainly on local supplies.</p>
-
-<p>5.&ensp;To guard the Ussuri district.</p>
-
-<p>Had the Japanese got possession of our communications,
-a catastrophe unprecedented in
-military history might have resulted. Without
-any victory in the field, the mere destruction of
-the railway in our rear, combined with the cutting
-off of local resources, would have threatened
-us with starvation—and disaster. Such were the
-unfavourable conditions under which we fought
-for fifteen months, and our army was not only <i>not</i>
-
-
-completely defeated, but grew in strength, while
-our communication with Russia gradually became
-better secured and more efficient. We had
-always recognized the possibility of being driven
-back to Harbin and beyond; but this never
-happened, and we held on to Hsi-ping-kai.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_38">[Pg 38]</a></span>
-The situation could only have been improved in
-one way—by a rapid concentration of sufficient
-troops for, and an assumption of, an offensive all
-along the line. While these troops were collecting,
-each fight—quite independent of its actual
-result—would have really helped us if it had at
-all weakened the enemy. But our departure from
-our accepted plan of operations began at the
-commencement of the war, when, instead of
-fighting a rearguard action, General Zasulitch
-got seriously engaged against the whole of
-Kuroki’s army at the Ya-lu, and was defeated.</p>
-
-<p>In May, when the 3rd&nbsp;Siberian Division<a id="FNanchor_12"></a><a href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> had
-alone arrived at Liao-yang (besides the troops of
-the Pri-Amur Military District), the Viceroy,
-fearing for the fate of Port Arthur, instructed
-me to assume the offensive towards the Ya-lu
-against Kuroki’s army, or southwards for the
-relief of the fortress of Port Arthur. But the
-inadequate force with which General Shtakelberg
-pushed forward, owing to ignorance of the
-fact that the Japanese were in superior strength,
-got drawn into a serious engagement at Te-li-ssu,
-and was defeated. With the arrival of all
-the units of the 4th&nbsp;Siberian Corps and one
-division of the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps, it seemed
-possible to contain Kuroki’s army, to concentrate
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_39">[Pg 39]</a></span>
-fifty to sixty battalions rapidly in the direction of
-Ta-shih-chiao, and to attempt to hurl back Oku
-to the south. It seemed as if our army had a
-splendid chance of operating on interior lines.
-The enemy was strung along three lines of
-advance—Dalny, Kai-ping, Ta-shih-chiao (Oku);
-Ta-ku-shan, Hsiu-yen, Ta-ling, Hai-cheng
-(Nodzu); Ya-lu, Feng-huang-cheng, Fen-shui-ling,
-Liao-yang (Kuroki). We occupied the
-central position—Liao-yang, Hai-cheng, Ta-shih-chiao—with
-advance guards thrown forward on to
-the Fen-shui-ling heights. We might have been
-able, by containing two armies and deceiving
-the enemy by a demonstration, to strike the third
-army in force. A blow delivered at Kuroki or
-Nodzu did not promise success, owing to our lack
-of training in, and unpreparedness for, hill warfare
-[we had no mountain artillery, our baggage was
-heavy, and we were uncertain of receiving supplies,
-owing to the insufficiency of transport material].
-The only other course was to strike at Oku, who
-was based on the railway, but such an operation
-was risky, because Kuroki and Nodzu might
-have driven back our screens and fallen on our
-communications. On June&nbsp;26 and 27, when
-only one brigade of the 31st&nbsp;Division of the
-10th&nbsp;Army Corps<a id="FNanchor_13"></a><a href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> had arrived at Liao-yang, the
-Japanese on the eastern front (Kuroki and Nodzu)
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_40">[Pg 40]</a></span>
-themselves took the offensive and seized the
-passes (Fen-shui Ling, Mo-du Ling, Da Ling) on
-the Fen-shui-ling heights. We opposed them in
-insufficient strength, and did not even make them
-disclose their numbers. The troops of the eastern
-force withdrew towards Tkhavuop, and General
-Levestam’s force to Hsi-mu-cheng. Our screens
-were thus situated as follows: on Kuroki’s line
-of advance, only two marches from Hai-cheng;
-on Oku’s line of advance at Ta-shih-chiao, four
-marches from Liao-yang.<a id="FNanchor_14"></a><a href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> Our position was
-critical, particularly if the information we had
-received as to the Japanese collecting in considerable
-force to operate against Hai-cheng was confirmed.
-Still, if we were able to strike a rapid
-blow at Oku, we might rob the enemy of the
-initiative, and after forcing back Oku’s army,
-have fallen on Nodzu. After we had driven
-back these troops, Kuroki’s position would
-have been so far forward and so far separated
-from the other groups that the danger of his
-breaking through to Liao-yang would have been
-minimized. But for such decisive operations the
-first requisite was the concentration of sufficient
-troops for offensive operations against Oku.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" id="nogi">
-<img alt="" width="515" height="680" src="images/nogi.jpg" />
-<div class="caption">GENERAL BARON KITEN NOGI.</div></div>
-
-<p>At the end of June&nbsp;we had altogether available
-against the three Japanese armies 120 battalions,
-and were inferior to the enemy both in the
-number of battalions and the number of men.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_41">[Pg 41]</a></span>
-Our position was made worse by an epidemic of
-dysentery which broke out amongst the troops
-at Ta-shih-chiao, and swept off a considerable
-number of men. The Krasnoyarsk Regiment<a id="FNanchor_15"></a><a href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a>
-was the greatest sufferer, having as many as
-1,500 men down with the disease at the end of the
-month. But the main thing which delayed any
-advance on our part was the rain, which made
-all moves difficult, and some places absolutely
-impassable for transport. It was even difficult
-to convey supplies to our various stationary forces
-over distances of less than a march. In spite of
-the lack of pack-saddles, wheeled transport had
-to be given up for pack transport, and not even
-pack-animals could do more than seven to eleven
-miles in the twenty-four hours. On the Liao-yang–Lang-tzu-shan
-road things were still
-worse, for the bridges over the mountain streams
-had been carried away, and communication
-between the eastern force (3rd&nbsp;Siberian Corps,
-under Count Keller) and Liao-yang was interrupted
-for some time. Far, therefore, from being
-ready to advance, the officers commanding the
-1st and 4th&nbsp;Siberian Corps found the greatest
-difficulty in rationing their troops, and on
-June&nbsp;29 asked that they might be withdrawn
-towards the positions near the railway at Ta-shih-chiao,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_42">[Pg 42]</a></span>
-and that the country east of the line
-might be left to the cavalry, with a few infantry
-units in support.<a id="FNanchor_16"></a><a href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a></p>
-
-<p>General Count Keller was persistent in his
-demands that communication should be maintained
-between his force and Liao-yang, but we
-had neither the material, the means, nor the time
-to comply with his wishes, which would have
-meant the laying of a light railway and the
-strengthening of the road bridges. As I feared
-that the Japanese might make a fresh forward
-movement on Hai-cheng, I ordered thirty-nine
-battalions to concentrate near Hsi-mu-cheng on
-June&nbsp;29. The short march from Hai-cheng was
-accomplished on the 28th with great difficulty
-through a sea of mud, and on the 29th Hsi-mu-cheng
-was temporarily cut off by the mountain
-streams in flood. The feeding of the troops
-collected there was found to be so difficult that
-as soon as it was known that the enemy, instead
-of advancing, had retired towards the Fen-shui
-Ling (Pass), certain units were ordered to return
-to the railway. Taking advantage, on July&nbsp;18,
-of the screen formed by a portion of the
-17th&nbsp;Army Corps, we attempted to advance
-against part of Kuroki’s army in the hope of
-forcing our way forward and gaining a partial
-success. For this Count Keller had under his
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_43">[Pg 43]</a></span>
-command forty-three battalions, but the attempt
-failed. He stopped the action before any large
-number of our troops had become engaged. On
-the 29th Oku’s army took the offensive; we had
-to evacuate Ta-shih-chiao and Newchuang after
-a feeble resistance, and allowed Oku and Nodzu
-to join hands. When on July&nbsp;23 I inspected&ensp;
-the units of the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps, who were
-holding the position near Hu-chia-tzu, I found
-out how absolutely incapable of operating in hilly
-country the troops newly arrived from Russia
-were. Before sending them forward, it was
-necessary to train them in hill fighting, and to
-provide them with pack transport. On July&nbsp;31
-all three Japanese armies advanced, and we
-concentrated after a series of battles round
-Liao-yang. Here, in spite of our resistance, the
-three armies were able to join hands. Their
-attacks on the left bank of the Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho were
-repulsed, but owing to the unfortunate nature of
-our operations on the right bank, the conditions
-became so unfavourable to us that I was obliged
-to order a retirement to Mukden. The withdrawal
-was conducted without the loss of a
-single gun or transport cart, while the enemy
-lost in men more heavily than we did. In the
-detailed accounts I have given in the first three
-volumes of the operations at Liao-yang, on the
-Sha&nbsp;Ho and at Mukden, our difficulties and the
-causes of our defeats are explained. The course
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_44">[Pg 44]</a></span>
-of events showed that our original scheme of
-operations was quite a correct forecast, for in it
-the probable necessity of retiring towards Harbin
-had been foreseen. Indeed, matters at Liao-yang,
-on the Sha&nbsp;Ho, and especially at Mukden, might
-have been very much worse for us than they were,
-and might have necessitated our retirement on
-Harbin early in October, 1904, when, as a matter
-of fact, we remained in Southern Manchuria.</p>
-
-<p>Clausewitz has truly laid down that an army
-should be inseparably connected with its base, but
-our base was Russia, more than 5,000 miles away.
-The way that this one difficulty alone was overcome
-will perhaps be eventually appreciated at
-its true worth. The very complicated attendant
-circumstances demanded great and patient efforts
-on the part of the whole nation in order to turn
-them to our advantage. Our reverses were explicable,
-and even in our defeat we exhausted our
-enemy, while ourselves increasing in strength. It
-was inevitable that a different complexion would
-have been put on the face of things as soon as
-circumstances became more favourable to us.</p>
-
-<h3>Difficulties in Organization.</h3>
-
-<p>The war showed that our army organization
-gave us too small a percentage of actual combatants
-as compared with the total numbers
-whom we rationed. By this I mean that, in
-spite of the immense numbers that we maintained
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_45">[Pg 45]</a></span>
-in the face of great difficulties, we were
-unable to put enough men into action to win.
-Our establishments of all arms, of parks, hospitals,
-transport corps, field bakeries, staffs, and all
-offices and institutions, include a large percentage
-of non-combatants, which was swollen in the
-last war by the absence of any organized line of
-communication troops, the necessity of carrying
-out a large amount of railway construction, and
-of appointing officers and men to newly formed
-supply and transport units. Even so the
-number of non-combatants laid down in the
-establishments for each unit was not sufficient
-to perform the duties that fell to them, and it
-became necessary, for reasons which will be
-mentioned later, to detail combatants for
-domestic duties. As but few non-combatants
-were wounded in action, the proportion of them
-to the combatant element became still greater
-after every big fight. It was usual, when a
-battle was imminent, to order back to their units
-all men who were on extra-regimental duties,
-but in spite of all the steps taken, the fighting
-number was never more than 75 per cent. of the
-number of men on the strength. In the beginning
-of April, 1905, when we were preparing
-the theatre of war up to the River Sungari, the
-combatant element of the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army
-actually fell to 58 per cent. of the strength.
-As in previous wars, the infantry, of course, did
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_46">[Pg 46]</a></span>
-most of the fighting, and also carried out by far
-the greater number of fatigues and extra duties.
-As they also lost more men in action, their
-fighting strength was proportionately more reduced
-than that of the other arms.<a id="FNanchor_17"></a><a href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a> In April,
-1905, the percentage of rifles in the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian
-Army to the total number of men that
-had to be rationed was 51·9 per cent. When
-the convalescents returned to the ranks, its
-strength amounted by the beginning of December
-to 192,000 men, of whom 105,879 carried rifles;
-but we could only put a much smaller number
-in action owing to various duties, fatigues, etc.
-In August, 1905, the number of rifles was
-58·9 per cent. of the total of men rationed.</p>
-
-<p>To obviate this state of affairs, and to insure
-that companies should be as strong as possible in
-action, I gave orders on June&nbsp;9, 1905 [when I
-was commanding the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army],
-that out of each of the four battalion regiments,
-not more than 369 combatants should be detailed
-for extra duties. This figure included 128
-stretcher-bearers, 35 bandsmen, and 48 men for
-baggage guards. In addition to this, a large
-number of men were required for road and bridge
-work on the communications, for guards for the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_47">[Pg 47]</a></span>
-different stores, for working parties to assist
-the supply and medical services, for policing
-villages, for duty with the improvised transport
-units, etc. True, this had its compensations,
-for we were able thus to get rid of the 2nd
-Category reservists from the ranks; but we felt
-the loss in the number of rifles we could place in
-the firing-line. Of course, there were, in addition,
-the sick, the wounded, and the convalescents
-with units and in hospital. In this way the
-total of all ranks classed as combatants but
-absent from the firing-line, or not doing combatant
-work, amounted on the average to 800
-men out of every four-battalion regiment, or
-about one-quarter of its strength. To carry on the
-campaign without properly organized units on the
-communications, without sufficient camp guards,
-without making roads and bridges, without allowing
-men for transport and baggage duties, was
-impossible. Notwithstanding the good payment
-we offered, the native population did not come
-forward to work freely, especially when fighting
-was imminent. A certain number were employed
-on transport, but they were very unreliable, and
-bolted at the first alarm, often taking their
-horses and carts with them. During the battle
-of Mukden, for instance, the whole of the
-hired transport of the 1st&nbsp;Army, consisting of
-400 carts, entirely disappeared. Our attempts
-to obtain Russian hired labour were a failure,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_48">[Pg 48]</a></span>
-though the rates of pay offered were liberal
-enough.</p>
-
-<p>The extent to which transport duties were
-responsible for weakening the fighting strength
-of the army can be seen from the fact that, during
-the fifteen months of war, 122 transport units
-were formed, and 8,656 carts, 51,000 horses, and
-20,000 pack-animals purchased. For duty with
-these, 328 officers, 22,000 men, 1,700 hired
-civilians (Russians), and 9,850 Chinamen were
-employed. These 122 units were improvised
-under adverse conditions and from small cadres,
-and, as they had to be raised in a hurry, there
-was nothing for it but to appoint to them men
-and officers from the army.</p>
-
-<p>The strength of units also decreased most
-marvellously in action. This was partly due to
-losses, but often also due to the habit of men
-leaving the firing-line to carry wounded to the
-rear. This was sometimes done with permission,
-sometimes without. Very often the men who
-retired did not have this excuse.</p>
-
-<p>I have pointed out (in <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#CHAPTER_VII">Chapter VII</a>.) that the
-army did not receive its drafts in time, and that
-we had to fight below strength; this shortage
-was still further increased for the following
-reasons: The war establishment of a company
-was 220 rifles; but from this number had to be
-deducted the shortage with which units arrived
-at the front,<a id="FNanchor_18"></a><a href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a> the sick, and those detailed for
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_49">[Pg 49]</a></span>
-camp and other duties—a procedure which,
-though unprovided for by Regulations, was
-permitted by officers in command. Accordingly
-companies often went into the very first fight at
-a strength of only 160 to 170 rifles. For a long
-time the personal supervision exercised by commanding
-officers to insure that units took the
-field as strong as possible was very slack. It
-seemed, on the contrary, as if their efforts tended
-all the other way, for they left men behind whenever
-they possibly could, particularly those who
-were most necessary—<i>i.e.</i>, those on whom depended
-the payment and regular rationing of the
-men. Thus, with the exception of the regimental
-adjutant, the staff of a regiment rarely went into
-action; while of the men who are classed as combatants,
-the company clerks, armourer-sergeant,
-cooks, officers’ servants, the butcher, the cattle
-guards and the officers’ grooms, were always left
-behind. The formation of a force of mounted
-scouts took away a certain number of men, and
-stretcher-bearers and bandsmen of course did not
-fight. Finally, owing to the peculiar nature of
-the country, donkeys for carrying water were
-provided for each company, and these required
-men to look after them, and one or two entire
-companies from each regiment had to be detached
-as baggage guard owing to the insecurity of our
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_50">[Pg 50]</a></span>
-communications. Commanding officers thought
-it necessary to leave behind so many men for the
-above purposes that the orders given for them
-to accompany the firing-line were either quite
-neglected, or only half carried out. It was soon
-found that eight bearers per company were
-far too few for carrying wounded, and men
-from the ranks were allowed to help their
-wounded comrades to the rear. From this
-cause companies often literally melted away
-during a fight. There were many instances
-where unwounded men went to the rear under
-pretext of carrying away the wounded, at the
-rate of six, eight, or ten sound soldiers to one
-wounded! The return of these willing helpers
-to the front was not so prompt as it might have
-been, and was difficult to control. The result
-was that a company hotly engaged usually only
-had 100 or less rifles after a few hours’ fighting,
-although its losses might have been inconsiderable.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, as we only asked for drafts strong
-enough to bring companies up to the established
-war strength, without taking into account the
-above extraordinary leakage, the drafts we received
-did not bring companies up to their proper
-strength in action.</p>
-
-<p>The reason why the lines of communication in
-the field<a id="FNanchor_19"></a><a href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a> took so large a number away from
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_51">[Pg 51]</a></span>
-our fighting-line was that we had no proper
-communication units, and the large working
-parties necessary for the light railway, road and
-bridge work had to be drawn from the fighting
-troops. It was entirely owing to the care with
-which the commanding officers on the line of
-communications—especially those in the engineers—had
-been selected that we were able to fight,
-and at the same time to make roads of some
-hundreds of miles’ length for intercommunication
-between corps. For instance, at the end
-of 1904 and the beginning of 1905, when the 1st
-Army was south of the Hun&nbsp;Ho, out of 180,000
-men, 7,000 were on the line of communications.
-At the beginning of July, 1905, when the strength
-of the 1st&nbsp;Army had gone up to 250,000, and
-the communications stretched back a length of
-150 miles to the River Sungari, there were 10,000
-men employed on them—<i>i.e.</i>, 4 per cent. of the
-army’s strength. The length of the road made
-on the Hsi-ping-kai positions by the 1st&nbsp;Army
-alone amounted to 1,000 miles, with bridges of
-more than 20 feet breadth and 50 feet span, and
-nearly 40 miles of embankment. Though the
-greater part of this was done by hired Chinese
-labour, even in this comparatively quiet period the
-troops of the 1st&nbsp;Army were on “works” for a
-period of 30,000 working “man days.”<a id="FNanchor_20"></a><a href="#Footnote_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a></p>
-
-<p>The supply service, also, as has been
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_52">[Pg 52]</a></span>
-mentioned, absorbed a large number of men. The
-field commissariat were unable, at the beginning
-of the campaign, to work the bakeries owing to
-the lack of men. All the bakeries, therefore,
-were taken over by the troops, who had to build
-the ovens, buy flour, and bake the bread themselves.
-Thus the eight field bakeries (of which
-four were in Liao-yang) which arrived in Harbin
-and Liao-yang without transport or men had
-at first to be taken over by the troops. But
-from May, 1904, onwards the Governor-General
-insisted on most of the work being handed back
-to the Commissariat Department. The energy of
-General Gubur, the Field Intendant of the army,
-in obtaining supplies locally rescued it from
-the difficult position in which it was beginning
-to find itself owing to the constantly increasing
-number of mouths and to the inadequate number
-of supply trains. Assisted by Generals Bachinski
-and Andro, General Gubur took full advantage of
-all the resources of the country. For this, again,
-officers and men were necessary to guard supply
-depôts and collect and escort herds of cattle, and
-were taken from the combatant troops. A large
-part of the forage and meat the troops obtained
-for themselves, but this entailed the provision
-of strong foraging parties, which went far afield
-and often remained away a considerable time,
-and of permanent guards to tend the regimental
-cattle. When the troops of the Pri-Amur district
-were concentrated in Manchuria, they left a
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_53">[Pg 53]</a></span>
-number of men behind as “base details” to look
-after their buildings and property. Touch was
-maintained between these base details and the
-units at the front during the whole war; from
-them the troops received their warm clothing
-in winter, and to them it was sent back in the
-summer of 1905. This all meant the employment
-of soldiers. Finally, men had to be told
-off for topographical work, reconnaissance, and
-as escorts for officers and other persons, etc.</p>
-
-<p>The number for all the above duties taken
-together, with the wounded and sick present
-with units, constituted on an average 400 to
-500 men per regiment. This, added to the 369
-authorized “employed” men above mentioned,
-brought the total up to 800. Obviously such a
-loss of numbers must be taken into consideration
-in appreciating the fighting work of the army.</p>
-
-<p>Other things which contributed to the same
-result were the immense development of the
-different staffs and administrations, the auxiliary
-institutions, such as supply parks and hospitals,
-the congestion on the roads caused by the masses
-of baggage which had collected, and the fact
-that both our wheeled and pack transport carried
-less than it was supposed to owing to the hilly
-country and the all-prevailing mud. After heavy
-fighting our army corps, especially those consisting
-of three-battalion regiments, amounted
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_54">[Pg 54]</a></span>
-to less than 10,000 to 15,000 rifles, and yet the
-immense organization, military parks, baggage,
-and transport, etc., for a full corps had still to
-be guarded. Even the regimental standards,
-which should have been a source of strength and
-encouragement in the fight, were in many cases
-prematurely taken to the rear under a guard of
-a company or half a company, the troops at the
-front being weakened by this number at the
-most important moment of an action. I was
-obliged to make a ruling that in action the
-standards should be kept with the regimental
-reserves, and that steps should be taken that
-they should be a symbol of victory in the most
-critical phases of a fight (as used to be the case in
-former wars), and a source of strength instead of
-weakness to the units which possessed them.</p>
-
-<p>In September and October, 1905, instead of
-one Manchurian army, three were formed (the
-1st, 2nd, and 3rd); they were all intended for
-operations in the Mukden area, and were based
-on the one railway which constituted their
-common line of communications. The powers
-of the army commanders were as laid down by
-regulation. Officers in command of armies were
-given (Field Service Regulations, 1890) almost
-all the powers formerly vested in the Commander-in-Chief.
-As regards fighting, it was laid down
-that “in conducting military operations the officer
-commanding an army should be guided by the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_55">[Pg 55]</a></span>
-instructions of the Commander-in-Chief, but
-should act independently.” This latitude would
-be very convenient in operating in Europe,
-where each army would have its own independent
-line of communications; but in the
-conditions which existed at Mukden—one
-common position and one line of communications
-for all—and with a difference of views
-existing between the army commanders as regards
-the conduct of affairs, the arrangement
-was, to say the least of it, extremely unsuitable.
-A difference of opinion upon some vital matter
-might easily arise, when it might be necessary
-either to order the army commander to carry
-out an operation which he thought unnecessary,
-inopportune, or even dangerous, or else to ask
-for him to be replaced. For instance, a fortnight
-before we assumed the offensive on January&nbsp;25,
-after everything had been settled and all plans
-drawn up, General Grippenberg suddenly surprised
-me by his opinion—that the campaign
-was lost; that we should retire towards Harbin,
-hold that point and Vladivostok, and thence
-move with two armies in other directions. In
-which directions, he was unable to explain. The
-Commander-in-Chief’s instructions on many
-essential points, such as the danger of holding
-non-continuous lines<a id="FNanchor_21"></a><a href="#Footnote_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a> and the necessity for having
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_56">[Pg 56]</a></span>
-strong army reserves, were not carried out
-because the responsibility for holding the defensive
-positions occupied by the armies rested
-on the army commanders. Thus my endeavours
-to send at least twenty-four battalions—if not
-the whole of the 17th&nbsp;Army Corps—from the
-3rd&nbsp;Army into the reserve failed, as the officer
-commanding that army thought that his position
-in the centre would not be safe if the regiments
-of the 17th&nbsp;Corps, which was in advance, were
-replaced by reserve regiments of the 6th&nbsp;Siberians.
-As mentioned in the account of the operations
-of the 14th&nbsp;Infantry Division at Hei-kou-tai,
-notwithstanding my instructions to conceal our
-intention of attacking the enemy’s left flank as
-long as possible, General Grippenberg, for no
-apparent reason, and without even asking permission,
-assumed the offensive almost two weeks
-before the time that I had fixed by moving the
-14th&nbsp;Division towards Ssu-fang-tai (on the
-heights by San-de-pu) on January&nbsp;13, and by
-moving the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps into the advanced
-lines between the right flank of the 3rd&nbsp;Army
-and the River Hun on the 16th. By this
-the enemy was informed of our intentions before
-we began our forward movement, and the front
-of the 2nd&nbsp;Army was spread over thirteen
-miles.</p>
-
-<p>With the exception of General Linievitch,
-our army commanders were unnecessarily
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_57">[Pg 57]</a></span>
-sensitive to interference with their powers, and in
-cases where orders would formerly have been
-issued to corps commanders it now became
-necessary to reckon with the personal opinions
-of army commanders, and to guard against
-offending their susceptibilities. After the pomp
-and parade of General Grippenberg’s departure
-from the army, the relationship between the
-army commanders and the Commander-in-Chief
-became still more strained. How jealously they
-looked after their rights, and how strangely they
-interpreted their own powers, is illustrated by
-the following incident: On February&nbsp;19 I sent
-for the three army commanders and their chief
-staff officers, in order to ascertain their views as
-to the plan of operations which should be undertaken
-under the unfavourable conditions brought
-about by the fall of Port Arthur and General
-Grippenberg’s unsuccessful operations at Hei-kou-tai.
-The following courses were open to
-Nogi’s army, no longer required in the Kuan-tung
-Peninsula: it might join the four armies
-already in the field against us; it might, together
-with the divisions formed in Japan and the
-troops in Korea, form a force of seventy to
-eighty strong battalions for operations against
-Vladivostok, or, landing at Possiet Bay, it might
-march against Kirin and Harbin, so as to outflank
-our position at Mukden. I had also been
-continually receiving reports from General
-Chichagoff to the effect that the enemy had
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_58">[Pg 58]</a></span>
-invaded Mongolia, and, aided by numerous bands
-of Hun-huses, had begun to attack the railway
-in our rear, which had forced me to weaken the
-army by detailing an infantry brigade and four
-Cossack regiments to reinforce the railway guard
-and safeguard our position. In spite of these
-reports, Generals Linievitch and Kaulbars expressed
-the opinion that we ought not to change
-our plans, and should carry out the orders I had
-issued on January&nbsp;25—namely, to fall on the
-enemy’s left flank. But when my Chief of Staff
-asked the officer commanding the 2nd&nbsp;Army—who
-was to commence the operation—how he
-proposed to employ his cavalry, Kaulbars,<a id="FNanchor_22"></a><a href="#Footnote_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a> looking
-upon the question as an interference with
-his authority, became annoyed, and said much
-that was unnecessary and quite beside the point.
-As it turned out, the Chief of the Staff had every
-reason to be anxious as to the employment of
-this Army, for its work in the battle of Mukden
-was anything but satisfactory.</p>
-
-<p>The very large powers vested in army commanders
-in the matter of bestowing distinctions
-was both unnecessary and harmful. They were
-authorized to award the fourth class Order of
-St.&nbsp;George on the recommendations of committees
-convened by them; they could give the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_59">[Pg 59]</a></span>
-Distinguished Service Cross to private soldiers,
-and award the Orders of St.&nbsp;Anne, second, third,
-and fourth classes, and St.&nbsp;Stanislav, second and
-third classes, with swords and ribbons. As the
-forces were lying so close together, it was very
-soon noticed that the distribution of decorations
-in the different armies varied very much, being in
-accordance with the personal predispositions of the
-different commanders. In one army they were
-so lavishly bestowed as to excite general derision,
-and their value was much lowered in consequence.
-By far the worst offender in this respect was
-one well-known general, who for one and the
-same engagement [Hei-kou-tai] decorated divers
-officers with two Orders apiece, while, contrary
-to regulations, he bestowed the Distinguished
-Service Cross to fifteen and more men per company
-and battery. I jotted down in my diary
-my impressions after inspecting units of the
-2nd&nbsp;Army. Amongst other things, I noted that
-he had awarded thirty Distinguished Service
-Crosses to a battery, of which only seventy men
-had been in action and even then scarcely under
-fire. Indeed, to my astonishment, as they stood
-on parade almost the whole of the front rank
-were wearing crosses. The officer in command
-told me that he had been ashamed to announce
-these rewards to the men, and to have to try and
-select certain specific acts for them. I told the
-men I hoped that they would show themselves
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_60">[Pg 60]</a></span>
-worthy of these marks of distinction in the fights
-to come!</p>
-
-<p>The large independent powers possessed by
-the army commanders in matters of supply were
-also superfluous in a case where there was only
-one railway and one tract of country in which to
-procure supplies. The only result was that
-prices were raised all round by the fact that the
-different armies were bidding against each other.
-In this respect General Grippenberg’s behaviour
-was most incomprehensible. As meat was very
-scarce in December, I advised him to cut down
-the meat ration from 1 pound to &frac12;&nbsp;pound.
-Instead of this, by an order issued on January&nbsp;3,
-he increased it to 1&frac12;&nbsp;pounds per man per day.
-With the conditions that obtained generally on
-the Sha&nbsp;Ho, and if our army corps had been
-organized on a broader basis, there would have
-been no necessity whatever for three separate
-army commanders with their special powers;
-but they were appointed. And yet, after the
-disaster of Mukden, it was the Commander-in-Chief
-who was generally held responsible for
-everything.</p>
-
-<h3>Defects in <i>Personnel</i>.</h3>
-
-<p>As regards the <i>personnel</i>, I will give in full
-the impressions recorded in my report on the
-1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army at a time when the
-experiences of the war were fresh in my mind;
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_61">[Pg 61]</a></span>
-my opinion in the main agrees with those of other
-senior commanders.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>a</i>)&ensp;<i>The Command.</i>—No appreciation of the
-senior commanders—that is to say, of the work
-done by individual corps, divisional, and brigade
-commanders—can or, indeed, ought to be made
-at present. The personal element is too prominent.
-We must wait till personal feelings
-have died away, so as to be able to draw impartial
-conclusions based on authenticated facts,
-and on facts alone, as to what happened and
-who was to blame. All the same, it may be
-said that the most pronounced weak points
-amongst our senior commanders, especially in
-the first period of the campaign, were their lack
-of initiative, their ignorance of the method in
-which an attack should be conducted, and their
-want of determination. There was never any
-co-ordination in the operations of large units,
-which were really quite remarkable for their
-absolute disconnection. Indifference as to the
-position of neighbouring forces was the rule, and
-a tendency to accept defeat before a fight was
-really lost was painfully evident. Even our best
-commanders preferred their neighbour to be told
-off for the attack, while they themselves remained
-in support. If a column were retiring under
-difficulties, any other forces close at hand would
-withdraw also, instead of coming to its assistance;
-and there was practically no instance of a bold
-forward movement. The work of the regimental
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_62">[Pg 62]</a></span>
-commanders was certainly better than that of
-those higher up, but it was impossible not to
-notice that they did not possess the power of
-making the most of a situation and finding their
-way about. A regimental commander detached
-on special duty could rarely make his arrangements
-without the assistance of an officer of the
-General Staff; he could not, as a rule, read a
-map himself, much less teach those under him
-how to do so. This was especially the case at
-the beginning of the war, and had considerable
-influence on the conduct of operations, as regiments
-often either arrived late at their rendezvous
-or went to points where they were not wanted.
-The lack of eye for country is partly explained
-by the fact that our officers were quite unused
-to hills. Though this defect certainly became
-less marked as time went on, it was still perceptible
-in the operations round Mukden, and
-even afterwards.</p>
-
-<p>Though the officers lacked a proper military
-spirit, they were generally good in other ways,
-particularly those of the regular army. The
-best proof of their gallantry is furnished by the
-number of losses sustained by the 1st&nbsp;Army
-from November, 1904, to September, 1905, from
-which it will be seen that their proportion of
-killed and wounded was considerably higher
-than that of the men.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_63">[Pg 63]</a></span></p>
-
-<table class="boxed" summary="1st Army casualities">
-<tbody>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdbc"></td>
- <td colspan="2" class="tdbc">Officers.</td>
- <td colspan="2" class="tdbc">Rank and File.</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdbc"></td><td class="tdbc">Numbers.</td>
- <td class="tdbc">Percentage<br />
- to Average<br />Strength.</td>
- <td class="tdbc">Numbers.</td><td class="tdbc">Percentage<br />
- to Average<br />Strength.</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdbll">Killed</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;167</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;4⋅1</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;4,779</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;2⋅5</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdbll">Wounded</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;905</td>
- <td class="tdblc">23⋅8</td>
- <td class="tdblc">27,425</td>
- <td class="tdblc">14⋅6</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdbll">Missing</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;&ensp;89</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;2⋅1</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;5,684</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;2⋅9</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdbll"></td>
- <td class="tdbc">1,151</td>
- <td class="tdbc">30⋅0</td>
- <td class="tdbc">37,888</td>
- <td class="tdbc">&ensp;20⋅0</td>
-</tr>
-</tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p>The losses in this army for the whole period
-of the war were somewhat higher:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="1st Army losses">
-<tbody>
-<tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td></td><td class="tdc">Officers.</td>
- <td class="tdc"></td>
- <td class="tdc">Rank and<br />File.</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Killed</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&emsp;396</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">10,435</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Wounded</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;1,773</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">56,350</td>
-</tr>
-</tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p>With the exception of those who had volunteered
-for the front, the officers of the reserve
-were not nearly so well qualified as those of the
-regulars; they were much behind them in
-tactical training, and did not always perform
-their duties with the zeal which should be shown
-on active service. Many ensigns of the reserve
-turned out unsatisfactory, having accepted this
-rank purely to escape becoming private soldiers
-upon mobilization; they had no sympathy with
-the military profession, and hated soldiering.
-They were absolutely without training, and some
-of them had no authority whatever over the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_64">[Pg 64]</a></span>
-men. The ensigns and acting ensigns<a id="FNanchor_23"></a><a href="#Footnote_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a> promoted
-from the ranks for distinguished service
-were excellent in every respect. Having been
-selected from the rank and file, they usually
-appreciated their rank, and had considerable
-authority amongst the men; they got on well
-with the officers, and proved efficient and hard-working
-assistants to the company commanders.
-The extent to which the acting ensigns sacrificed
-themselves to duty is evinced by the fact that
-of 680 in the 1st&nbsp;Army in February, 192 were
-killed and wounded in the Mukden battle—<i>i.e.</i>,
-more than 28 per cent. The moral tone of
-the officers was quite satisfactory; during the
-whole period of the war only nineteen were
-dismissed for unbecoming conduct. In reporting
-on the work done by the officers of the General
-Staff, the majority of the senior officers in command
-of troops expressed the opinion that their
-theoretical training and intelligence stood very
-high, and that their work was unselfish, but that
-they were not sufficiently in touch with the troops,
-and lacked the personal, practical knowledge
-required to enable them to judge properly how
-much might be expected of men, and in what
-way an order would be carried out—a knowledge
-which is necessary if small errors are to be
-avoided in the transmission of orders, etc. They
-recommended that, to give these staff-officers the
-necessary practical training, they should do most
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_65">[Pg 65]</a></span>
-of their service with troops of all three Arms,
-and only a part of their service on the staff;
-while, to prevent them being looked upon by
-the troops as mere clerks, they should be relieved
-of the mass of clerical work that now falls to the
-General Staff. As in other bodies of men, so
-amongst these officers are to be found some
-specially fitted for field-work, and others, again,
-who prefer purely staff duties, and in my opinion
-the two classes should be separated. Generally
-speaking, the General Staff officers in the
-1st&nbsp;Army did everything that was required of
-them. From November, 1904, to September,
-1905, their losses in killed and wounded amounted
-to 12 per cent. of their strength; if the casualties
-which occurred before the formation of the
-1st&nbsp;Army are taken into account, the percentage
-works out as much as 25·7. During the whole
-of the above time only four were sent back to
-Russia on account of sickness, while the majority
-of the wounded returned to the front.</p>
-
-<p>As regards the senior commanders, many
-general officers who had commanded independent
-units with great success in peace-time were quite
-unfitted to take command of large units under
-the stress of war. Few had even had sufficient
-peace practice in the actual command of divisions
-and corps, and many were not up-to-date in their
-knowledge of modern war requirements. The
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_66">[Pg 66]</a></span>
-general characteristic displayed by most was their
-lack of the power of forming a decision and a
-disinclination to accept responsibility. Some
-arrived at the front actually holding important
-commands for which they were—either through
-ill-health or for other reasons—quite unfitted.
-From three army corps, composed of veteran
-regiments which had arrived earlier than others
-in the theatre of war, there retired, or were sent
-back, after the first fights, one corps, four
-divisional, and several brigade commanders.
-Amongst the reasons which contributed to complicate
-the conduct of operations were the frequent
-changes in the Commander-in-Chief, of
-whom there were three in nineteen months.
-From the beginning of the war till the end of
-October, 1904—for eight and a half months—Admiral
-Alexeieff was in supreme command;
-from the end of October to the middle of March,
-1905—four and a half months—I was in command;
-from the middle of March till the end of
-the operations—six months—General Linievitch
-was in command.</p>
-
-<p>The fact that I only commanded for four and
-a half months out of nineteen, and that this
-period was in the middle of operations, was not
-taken into account by those who last year flooded
-Russia with pamphlets and newspaper articles,
-apparently written with the sole object of proving
-that I, both as Commander-in-Chief and as War
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_67">[Pg 67]</a></span>
-Minister, was the person mainly responsible for
-our misfortunes. In a letter to the Tsar, dated
-February&nbsp;21, 1906, from the village of Shuan-chen-pu,
-I wrote on this point as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“I am aware of the serious accusations levelled
-against me in the Press. Though there are
-among them many to which I would scorn to
-reply, I should be happy to accept entire responsibility
-for the disasters which have overtaken
-us, but that such a course would be
-historically incorrect. It would also be a mistake,
-because it would lessen the general desire
-of the whole army for a thorough investigation
-of all the causes of our partial defeats, so that we
-may be able to avoid them in the future.</p>
-
-<p>“I venture to say ‘partial’ defeats, because
-there could be no possible suggestion that our
-land forces in Manchuria suffered defeat similar
-to that sustained by the fleet. When peace was
-concluded we had an army of almost one million
-men, still holding positions occupied by us after
-the Mukden battle, and ready, not only for the
-defensive, but for a most active advance.</p>
-
-<p>“Information that reached us from Japan
-showed that the sources from which she had been
-drawing the men for her armies were drained
-dry, that her finances had been completely exhausted,
-that discontent at the long-drawn-out
-war was already making itself felt among her
-people, and that for these reasons her army could
-not reckon on further success against our superior
-numbers. Therefore, the most searching and
-exhaustive study of all our weak points cannot
-shake the belief prevalent in the army that our
-troops in Manchuria would have been victorious
-if only the war had been continued.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_68">[Pg 68]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“It will be for the future historian to decide
-whether the troops we put into the field
-before March, 1905, would have sufficed for
-victory.</p>
-
-<p>“Nowadays, with the complicated machinery
-of modern armies, the personality of the supreme
-commander is less important than it was. Without
-trusty, able, and energetic subordinates, without
-a spirit of initiative amongst all ranks, without
-a superiority in numbers, and, what is most important,
-without a military spirit amongst the
-troops and patriotism in the whole nation, the
-duty of a Commander-in-Chief is so difficult that
-it is far too much for a merely talented leader.
-It may be said that a military genius would have
-overcome the moral and physical difficulties we
-had to encounter. Possibly; but an Alexeieff,
-a Kuropatkin, a Linievitch, a Grippenberg, a
-Kaulbars, and a Bilderling were unable to do so.</p>
-
-<p>“I venture to remind Your Imperial Highness
-that, on receiving the orders appointing me to be
-Commander-in-Chief, I did not joyfully express
-my gratitude. I replied to the effect that it was
-only a dearth of commanders which led Your
-Majesty to select me. If I still firmly believed
-in victory after the Mukden battle, I had, indeed,
-good grounds for so doing.”</p></div>
-
-<p>The author of the cleverly written article
-entitled “All about Commanders” writes as
-follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“The absence of initiative, the habit of always
-relying upon superiors, and only acting when
-ordered to from above, are characteristics of
-junior commanders which made the work of
-those at the head of the army more difficult.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_69">[Pg 69]</a></span>
-The value of the time element in war also was
-forgotten.”</p></div>
-
-<p>The modern theorist in strategy, Blume, says:
-“Even the greatest genius in a supreme commander
-cannot replace independent action by
-individual leaders.”</p>
-
-<p>Even during actual operations numerous newspaper
-articles appeared, well calculated to discredit
-the officers. They were represented as
-overbearing, rude, dishonourable drunkards. Indeed,
-one of the most gifted of our writers—Menshikoff—went
-very far in this respect, for
-he wrote of the “blunted sense of duty, intemperance,
-moral laxity, and inveterate laziness”
-of a large body of men who never spared
-their lives and performed their duty almost
-religiously. In a diatribe against military life
-by M. Kuprin, called “The Duel,” private
-soldiers were represented as being treated with
-the greatest cruelty, and it was implied that it
-was the custom for our officers to slap and beat
-their men on company parades. The writer
-concluded by saying that the time would come
-when the officers would be caught and beaten
-in byways, when women would deride them,
-and soldiers refuse to obey their orders. In the
-great family of officers—as in other classes—there
-are, of course, bad specimens, but no
-generalization can be made from this as to the
-class as a whole. If some officers were seen
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_70">[Pg 70]</a></span>
-drunk on the lines of communications or at
-Harbin, it is not fair to jump to the conclusion
-that all officers got drunk. They should be
-judged after they have been seen in action, in
-the trenches, and on the line of march, not only,
-as they often were, by what happened in the
-rear. But it is much easier to sit in St.&nbsp;Petersburg
-or Harbin and hurl abuse than it is to
-watch matters at the front. I have alluded to
-the large proportion of killed and wounded
-amongst the officers, which shows that their
-gallantry has not grown less than it used to be,
-and they certainly looked after the welfare of
-the soldier in a way that was unprecedented.
-The men were fed, clothed, cheered up, and kept
-in good fettle. The junior officers were zealous,
-soon found their feet under new and strange
-conditions, and as they grew accustomed to the
-local topography, became good map-readers.
-The most severe critic must acknowledge that
-the standard of our officers, both staff and
-regimental, has been much raised since the
-Russo-Turkish War.</p>
-
-<p>But, according to the opinion of these same
-observers, the private soldier has, on the contrary,
-deteriorated during these twenty-seven years,
-for, though a better man physically, he is
-morally a worse man than he used to be. As
-I have remarked, the men with the colours
-were quite reliable, but many of the reservists—especially
-the 2nd&nbsp;Category men—required much
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_71">[Pg 71]</a></span>
-supervision both in action and out of it, the
-most difficult material to handle being that
-from the manufacturing centres and large towns.
-Soldiers nowadays require more looking after
-than they did formerly, when but few were
-literate. Up to the present, thank God, our
-officers still have a good hold upon the men,
-based on mutual respect; but great endeavours
-were made at the beginning of the war to
-undermine this.</p>
-
-<p>Kirilloff and others have made a dead set
-against the behaviour of the officers of our
-General Staff in the late war, but the majority
-worked most unselfishly, and did good service
-commanding units or on the staff. A large
-number distinguished themselves by their professional
-zeal and gallantry, while some found
-a glorious death in action. At their head may
-be mentioned General Kondratenko, the hero
-of Port Arthur. Among the killed also were
-the gallant General Count Keller, Staff-Officers
-Zapolski, Naumenko, Jdanoff, Pekuti, Vasilieff,
-Mojeiko; and of those who died from wounds
-were Andreeiff and Yagodkin. Among the
-wounded were four divisional commanders—Lieutenant-Generals
-Rennenkampf and Kondratovitch,
-Major-Generals Laiming and Orloff;
-also Staff-Officers Markoff, Klembovski, Gutor,
-Rossiski, Gurko, Inevski, etc. Altogether, about
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_72">[Pg 72]</a></span>
-twenty officers of the General Staff were killed
-and forty wounded. The hostile attitude of the
-Press towards the officers, the endeavour of
-divers persons to undermine their authority, the
-indifference of the intelligent classes in Russia
-to what was happening in Manchuria, and
-especially the anti-Government campaign, which
-was conducted with the object of creating a
-mutiny among the troops, was hardly calculated
-to raise the soldiers’ <i>moral</i>, or to encourage them
-to perform acts of heroism. There was no
-military spirit in the army.</p>
-
-<p class="hitalic"><i>The Rank and File.</i></p>
-
-<p>The rank and file, like the officers, were of
-two classes: those serving with the colours, and
-the reservists. The former were in every respect
-good; they were steady in action, enduring and
-well trained; but the reservists were on a much
-lower plane altogether. In the first place, the
-older men were unable to stand the arduous
-conditions of field service, coupled with the
-rigours of the Manchurian climate. They suffered
-greatly from sunstroke and heart affections
-when marching among the hills, and during the
-hot weather. At the battles of Ta-shih-chiao,
-Hai-cheng, and Liao-yang, these men fell out
-in such numbers that their units became quite
-immobile, and absolutely useless for any offensive
-operations. Moreover, the 2nd&nbsp;Category reservists
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_73">[Pg 73]</a></span>
-did not know the rifle, and had forgotten
-everything they had once learnt when with the
-colours, and it required real hard work to instruct
-and train them up to the level of the serving
-soldiers. I have mentioned their unsteadiness.
-Units which were almost entirely composed of
-these men—that is to say, those units which had
-been formed by expanding the reserve regiments—were
-very unsatisfactory: it was almost impossible
-to get them into action. The regiments
-of the 4th&nbsp;Siberian Corps, which did so splendidly
-at Ta-shih-chiao, Hai-cheng, and Liao-yang, were
-an exception; they were composed entirely of
-Siberian reservists, who, though surly fellows
-and poor marchers, were men of character and
-very steady in action. The drafts composed of
-young soldiers were magnificent. Most of them
-had only just done their recruits’ course, were
-single men, and possessed both staying power and
-activity, and, being regular soldiers, were accustomed
-to field-service conditions. Unfortunately,
-it was only after the battle of Mukden that
-these drafts began to arrive. But these young
-soldiers who did so well in small actions would
-have done still better in a decisive engagement.</p>
-
-<p>The general feeling of discontent which already
-prevailed in all classes of our population made
-the war so hateful that it aroused no patriotism
-whatever. Many good officers hastened to
-offer their services—which was only natural—though
-all ranks of society remained indifferent.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_74">[Pg 74]</a></span>
-A few hundreds of the common people volunteered,
-but no eagerness to enter the army was
-shown by the sons of our high dignitaries, of our
-merchants, or of our scientific men. Out of the
-tens of thousands of students who were then
-living in idleness,<a id="FNanchor_24"></a><a href="#Footnote_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a> many of them at the expense
-of the Empire, only a handful volunteered,<a id="FNanchor_25"></a><a href="#Footnote_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a>
-while at that very time, in Japan, sons of the
-most distinguished citizens—even boys fourteen
-and fifteen years of age—were striving for places
-in the ranks. Japanese mothers, as I have
-already said, killed themselves through shame
-when their sons were found to be physically
-unfit for military service. The indifference of
-Russia to the bloody struggle which her sons
-were carrying on—for little-understood objects,
-and in a foreign land—could not fail to discourage
-even the best soldiers. Men are not
-inspired to deeds of heroism by such an attitude
-towards them on the part of their country.
-But Russia was not merely indifferent. Leaders
-of the revolutionary party strove, with extraordinary
-energy, to multiply our chances of
-failure, hoping thus to facilitate the attainment
-of their own unworthy ends. There appeared
-a whole literature of clandestine publications,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_75">[Pg 75]</a></span>
-intended to lessen the confidence of officers in
-their superiors, to shake the trust of soldiers in
-their officers, and to undermine the faith of the
-whole army in the Government. In an “Address
-to the Officers of the Russian Army,” published
-and widely circulated by the Social Revolutionists,
-the main idea was expressed as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“The worst and most dangerous enemy of the
-Russian people—in fact, its only enemy—is the
-present Government. It is this Government
-that is carrying on the war with Japan, and you
-are fighting under its banners in an unjust cause.
-Every victory that you win threatens Russia
-with the calamity involved in the maintenance
-of what the Government calls ‘order,’ and every
-defeat that you suffer brings nearer the hour of
-deliverance. Is it surprising, therefore, that
-Russians rejoice when your adversary is victorious?”</p></div>
-
-<p>But persons who had nothing in common with
-the Social Revolutionary party, and who sincerely
-loved their country, aided Russia’s enemies by
-expressing the opinion, in the Press, that the
-war was irrational, and by criticizing the mistakes
-of the Government that had failed to prevent it.
-In a brochure entitled “Thoughts Suggested
-by Recent Military Operations,” M. Gorbatoff
-referred to such persons as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“But it is a still more grievous fact that while
-our heroic soldiers are carrying on a life-and-death
-struggle, these so-called friends of the
-people whisper to them: ‘Gentlemen, you are
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_76">[Pg 76]</a></span>
-heroes, but you are facing death without reason.
-You will die to pay for Russia’s mistaken policy,
-and not to defend Russia’s vital interests.’ What
-can be more terrible than the part played by
-these so-called friends of the people when they
-undermine in this way the intellectual faith of
-heroic men who are going to their death? One
-can easily imagine the state of mind of an officer
-or soldier who goes into battle after reading, in
-newspapers or magazines, articles referring in
-this way to the folly and uselessness of the
-war. It is from these self-styled friends that the
-revolutionary party gets support in its effort to
-break down the discipline of our troops.”</p></div>
-
-<p>Reservists, when called out, were furnished by
-the anti-Government party with proclamations intended
-to prejudice them against their officers,
-and similar proclamations were sent to the army
-in Manchuria. Troops in the field received
-letters apprising them of popular disorders in
-Russia, and men sick in hospitals, as well as men
-on duty in our advanced positions, read in the
-newspapers articles that undermined their faith
-in their commanders and their leaders. The
-work of breaking down the discipline of the army
-was carried on energetically, and, of course, it
-was not altogether fruitless. The ideal at which
-the leaders in the movement aimed was the state
-of affairs brought about by the mutinous sailors
-on the battleship <i>Potemkin</i>. These enemies of
-the army and the country were aided by certain
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_77">[Pg 77]</a></span>
-other persons who were simply foolish and
-unreasonable. One can imagine the indignation
-that the M―s, the K―s, and the
-K―s would feel if they were told that they
-played the same part in the army that was played
-by the persons who incited the insubordination
-on the <i>Potemkin</i>; yet such was the case. Firm
-in spirit though Russians might be, the indifference
-of one class of the population, and the seditious
-incitement of another, could hardly fail to
-have upon many of them an influence that was not
-favourable to the successful prosecution of war.</p>
-
-<p>Commanding officers in the Siberian military
-districts reported, as early as February, that
-detachments of supernumerary troops and reservists
-had plundered several railway-stations,
-and later on regular troops, on their way to the
-front, were guilty of similar bad conduct. The
-drifting to the rear of large numbers of soldiers—especially
-the older reservists—while battles
-were in progress was due not so much to
-cowardice as to the unsettling of the men’s minds,
-and to a disinclination on their part to continue
-the war. I may add that the opening of peace
-negotiations at Portsmouth, at a time when we
-were preparing for decisive operations, unfavourably
-affected the <i>moral</i> of the best in the
-army.</p>
-
-<p>M. E. Martinoff, in an article entitled “Spirit
-and Temper of the Two Armies,” points out that</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“ ... even in time of peace, the Japanese people
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_78">[Pg 78]</a></span>
-were so educated as to develop in them a patriotic
-and martial spirit. The very idea of war with
-Russia was generally popular, and throughout
-the contest the army was supported by the
-sympathy of the nation. In Russia, the reverse
-was true. Patriotism was shaken by the dissemination
-of ideas of universal brotherhood and
-disarmament, and in the midst of a difficult
-campaign the attitude of the country toward the
-army was one of indifference, if not of actual
-hostility.”</p></div>
-
-<p>This judgment is accurate, and it is evident,
-of course, that with such a relation between
-Russian society and the Manchurian army it
-was impossible to expect from the latter any
-patriotic spirit, or any readiness to sacrifice life
-for the sake of the Fatherland. In an admirable
-article, entitled “The Feeling of Duty and the
-Love of Country,” published in the <i>Russki
-Invalid</i> in 1906, M. A. Bilderling expressed
-certain profoundly true ideas as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Our lack of success may have been due, in
-part, to various and complicated causes, to the
-misconduct of particular persons, to bad generalship,
-to lack of preparation in the army and
-the navy, to inadequacy of material resources,
-and to misappropriations in the departments of
-equipment and supply; but the principal reason
-for our defeat lies deeper, and is to be found in
-lack of patriotism, and in the absence of a
-feeling of duty toward and love for the Fatherland.
-In a conflict between two peoples, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_79">[Pg 79]</a></span>
-things of most importance are not material resources,
-but moral strength, exaltation of spirit,
-and patriotism. Victory is most likely to be
-achieved by the nation in which these qualities
-are most highly developed. Japan had long been
-preparing for war with us; all her people
-desired it; and a feeling of lofty patriotism pervaded
-the whole country. In her army and her
-fleet, therefore, every man, from the Commander-in-Chief
-to the last soldier, not only knew what
-he was fighting for, and what he might have to
-die for, but understood clearly that upon success
-in the struggle depended the fate of Japan, her
-political importance, and her future in the history
-of the world. Every soldier knew also that
-the whole nation stood behind him. Japanese
-mothers and wives sent their sons and husbands
-to the war with enthusiasm, and were proud
-when they died for their country. With us, on
-the other hand, the war was unpopular from
-the very beginning. We neither desired it nor
-anticipated it, and consequently we were not
-prepared for it. Soldiers were hastily put into
-railway-trains, and when, after a journey that
-lasted a month, they alighted in Manchuria, they
-did not know in what country they were, nor
-whom they were to fight, nor what the war was
-about. Even our higher commanders went to
-the front unwillingly, and from a mere sense of
-duty. The whole army, moreover, felt that it was
-regarded by the country with indifference; that
-its life was not shared by the people; and that it
-was a mere fragment, cut off from the nation,
-thrown to a distance of 6,000 miles, and there
-abandoned to the caprice of Fate. Before decisive
-fighting began, therefore, one of the contending
-armies advanced with the full expectation
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_80">[Pg 80]</a></span>
-and confident belief that it would be victorious,
-while the other went forward with a demoralizing
-doubt of its own success.”</p></div>
-
-<p>Generally speaking, the man who conquers in
-war is the man who is least afraid of death. We
-were unprepared in previous wars, as well as in
-this, and in previous wars we made mistakes;
-but when the preponderance of moral strength
-was on our side, as in the wars with the Swedes,
-the French, the Turks, the Caucasian mountaineers,
-and the natives of Central Asia, we
-were victorious. In the late war, for reasons that
-are extremely complicated, our moral strength
-was less than that of the Japanese; and it was
-this inferiority, rather than mistakes in generalship,
-that caused our defeats, and that forced us
-to make tremendous efforts in order to succeed
-at all. Our lack of moral strength, as compared
-with the Japanese, affected all ranks of our
-army, from the highest to the lowest, and
-greatly reduced our fighting power. In a war
-waged under different conditions—a war in
-which the army had the confidence and encouragement
-of the country—the same officers and
-the same troops would have accomplished far
-more than they accomplished in Manchuria.
-The lack of martial spirit, of moral exaltation,
-and of heroic impulse, affected particularly our
-stubbornness in battle. In many cases we did
-not have sufficient resolution to conquer such
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_81">[Pg 81]</a></span>
-antagonists as the Japanese. Instead of holding
-with unshakable tenacity the positions assigned
-them, our troops often retreated, and in such
-cases our commanding officers of all ranks, without
-exception, lacked the power or the means
-to set things right. Instead of making renewed
-and extraordinary efforts to wrest victory from
-the enemy, they either permitted the retreat of
-the troops under their command, or themselves
-ordered such retreat. The army, however, never
-lost its strong sense of duty; and it was this
-that enabled many divisions, regiments, and
-battalions to increase their power of resistance
-with every battle. This peculiarity of the late
-war, together with our final acquisition of
-numerical preponderance and a noticeable decline
-of Japanese ardour, gave us reason to regard
-the future with confidence, and left no room for
-doubt as to our ultimate victory.</p>
-
-<p>In both Russian and foreign papers numerous
-articles have appeared in which the Commander-in-Chief
-has been accused of a lack of determination
-in the conduct of various battles.
-Without any real basis for their statements,
-critics have represented that orders to retire
-were for some unknown reason more than once
-given by him at a moment when victory lay in
-our hands. Comments upon his indecision and
-frequent change of orders were so common that
-the idea became universal that it was Kuropatkin,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_82">[Pg 82]</a></span>
-and Kuropatkin alone, who prevented
-the army and corps commanders from defeating
-the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>My first three volumes supply the answer to
-the most serious of these accusations: in them
-are described the tremendous efforts we had to
-make to prevent our operations ending worse
-than they did. I have never been one of those
-who believe that an order once given should not
-be countermanded or modified. In war circumstances
-change so quickly, and information
-received so frequently turns out to be false,
-that it would be fundamentally unsound to
-insist, in spite of changed conditions, on keeping
-exactly to an order once issued. An excellent
-example of this is given by the operations at
-Hei-kou-tai. The order received by the officer
-commanding the 1st&nbsp;Siberians to rest his troops
-on January&nbsp;27, and to occupy the line Hei-kou-tai–Su-ma-pu–Pei-tai-tzu,
-was founded on the
-incorrect supposition of the commander of the
-2nd&nbsp;Manchurian Army that San-de-pu had been
-captured. The former was more than once told
-not to attack. Yet, even though news was
-received that San-de-pu had not been taken,
-he insisted in carrying out the orders given, in
-which, by a mistake, a village held in force by
-the enemy was appointed as our halting-place.
-The result is known: we fought all day, lost
-7,000 men, and at daybreak on January&nbsp;28
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_83">[Pg 83]</a></span>
-were compelled to retire. With regard to the
-accusation that the late Commander-in-Chief<a id="FNanchor_26"></a><a href="#Footnote_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a>
-constantly countermanded his own orders, it is
-interesting to note that General Grippenberg, in
-his article, “The Truth about the Battle of
-Hei-kou-tai,” points out that, although he did
-not agree with him as to the necessity for retiring
-the right flank of the 2nd&nbsp;Army to take
-up a more concentrated position, he did not
-express this opinion to the Commander-in-Chief,
-because he and all his staff knew that
-Kuropatkin would never countermand an order
-once given.</p>
-
-<p>Upon the point as to whether we might have
-defeated the Japanese at Liao-yang or Mukden
-we shall remain unenlightened, in spite of the
-publication of my book, till we know in detail
-the actual movements of the Japanese in these
-actions. As regards Liao-yang, I can only
-express my personal opinion. An important
-decision, such as that leading to an order for
-troops to retire, cannot be given upon the inspiration
-of a moment. All the attendant circumstances
-have to be taken into account—the
-results of the previous engagements; the physical
-and mental condition of the troops; the strength
-and dispositions of the enemy; the results which
-he may attain if the fight is continued; the
-reports from the front, flanks, and rear; the
-extent to which the reserves have been depleted,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_84">[Pg 84]</a></span>
-their readiness for action; the amount of ammunition
-in hand, etc. At the battle of Liao-yang
-Kuroki’s army, in addition to Nodzu’s, might
-easily have been pushed across to the right bank
-of the Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho, just as the Japanese boldly
-threw the greater part of Oku’s army, in addition
-to Nogi’s, across on to the right bank of the
-Hun&nbsp;Ho at Mukden. This was all the more
-possible because our attempt to assume the
-offensive with the troops stationed on the left bank
-on September&nbsp;2 ended disastrously. If there is
-no hope of worsting an enemy by an offensive
-counter-stroke, it is very important for a defending
-force, circumstanced as we were,<a id="FNanchor_27"></a><a href="#Footnote_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a> to
-retire in good time, and not to hold on until
-an orderly retirement becomes impossible to
-carry out. We retired under very difficult conditions
-along roads deep in mud, but not a
-single trophy was left behind, not a prisoner,
-not a gun, not a transport cart.</p>
-
-<p>If we had delayed a single day, our retirement
-might have resembled that of the 2nd and 3rd
-Armies, which were in so awkward a plight at
-Mukden. For the reasons explained in my third
-volume, the 2nd&nbsp;Army was, on March&nbsp;7, almost
-surrounded on flanks and rear. Great efforts
-were necessary in order that we might extricate
-ourselves from the position in which we were
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_85">[Pg 85]</a></span>
-placed without being utterly defeated. But
-these efforts were not made, and the situation of
-our whole force on March&nbsp;7, 8, and 9 became
-worse, and the danger of a considerable part of
-the 2nd&nbsp;Army being surrounded by Nogi’s
-troops still more imminent. Comparing the
-condition of our men with that of the Japanese
-on March&nbsp;7 and 8, as well as the positions occupied
-by the two forces on the 8th, and taking
-into account the moral superiority of the Japanese,
-I should have given up hope of a victorious issue
-from the battle on the 7th and 8th, and have
-arranged for a retirement to Tieh-ling before
-the army became disorganized. The future
-historian will probably accuse me of having held
-on too long. I did not give the order to retire
-till March&nbsp;10, and according to events and the
-opinion of my staff, the order should have been
-given a day earlier. If we had retired on the
-9th, the army would probably have fallen back
-in complete order without losing anything
-(except wounded); indeed, we might have taken
-with us a fairly large number of prisoners and
-captured guns and machine-guns. In my report
-upon the battle of Mukden to His Majesty the
-Tsar, I acknowledged that I was primarily
-responsible for our reverse, and admitted that
-I should have more accurately gauged the
-difference between the men of the two forces
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_86">[Pg 86]</a></span>
-and the qualifications of the commanders, and
-that I should have been more careful in making
-my decisions. Hoping against hope to defeat
-the enemy, despite the disastrous operations of
-the 2nd&nbsp;Army, between March&nbsp;2 and 7, I gave
-the order to retreat too late. I should have
-abandoned all hope of eventual victory at Mukden
-a day sooner than I did, and our withdrawal
-would have been effected in good order. Thus,
-the general conclusion regarding the battles of
-Liao-yang and Mukden could, in my opinion,
-be expressed as follows: If we had retired from
-Liao-yang a day later than we did, the result
-would have been much the same as at Mukden;
-if we had retired from Mukden a day sooner, the
-result would have been much the same as at
-Liao-yang.<a id="FNanchor_28"></a><a href="#Footnote_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a></p>
-
-<p>I might also have been blamed for not holding
-on longer to Tieh-ling and fighting there, and
-for ordering the troops to retire on to the Hsi-ping-kai
-position. My reply is given in detail
-in my third volume. It is sufficient to say here
-that, when it was decided to retire from Tieh-ling
-on March&nbsp;12 and 13, according to the
-officers commanding those units of the 2nd and
-3rd&nbsp;Armies which suffered most in the battle of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_87">[Pg 87]</a></span>
-Mukden, we only had an effective strength of
-16,390 rifles in 114 battalions.<a id="FNanchor_29"></a><a href="#Footnote_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a> If I had accepted
-battle there under such conditions, it would have
-been most dangerous, as we might have completely
-lost the cadres of many units. How
-long it would have taken us to re-form for a
-new battle can be judged from the fact
-that the officer commanding the 3rd&nbsp;Army
-stated before a committee assembled as late as
-May&nbsp;17 [two months after the retreat] that
-he thought the acceptance of a general action
-even then on the Hsi-ping-kai position itself was
-inadvisable.<a id="FNanchor_30"></a><a href="#Footnote_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a></p>
-
-<p>I will bring the present chapter to a close by
-quoting literally my farewell address to the
-officers of the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army. In this
-address, with fresh impressions of all that we
-had gone through and had actually felt during
-the war, I outlined those of our defects which
-prevented us defeating the enemy in the time at
-our disposal. But while indicating our weaknesses,
-I also brought out the strong points of
-the troops which I had commanded—points
-which gave every reason for a belief that we
-should have won in the end.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_88">[Pg 88]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="hitalic">“<i>To the Officers of the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army.</i></p>
-
-<p>“In a few days the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army will
-be broken up, and I must now bid farewell to
-the glorious troops which I have had the great
-honour to command for two years. Upon you
-fell the arduous duty, in the beginning of the
-war, of withstanding the attack of a numerically
-superior enemy, so as to gain time for our
-reinforcements coming from Russia to concentrate.
-You had the good fortune to be present
-at the battles of the Ya-lu, Te-li-ssu, Ta-shih-chiao,
-Yang-tzu Ling, Lang-tzu-shan, and also at
-the long-drawn struggles of Liao-yang, the Sha
-Ho, and Mukden, and by your conduct during
-those fights you earned the praise of the rest
-of the army.</p>
-
-<p>“With a comparatively weak establishment of
-five and a half corps (160 battalions), or an
-average fighting strength of 100,000 rifles and
-2,200 officers, the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army lost up
-to March&nbsp;14, 1905:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="1st Army casualities">
-<tbody>
-<tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td></td><td class="tdc">Officers.</td>
- <td class="tdc"></td>
- <td class="tdc">Rank and<br />File.</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Killed</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&emsp;395</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">10,435</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">Wounded</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;1,773</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">56,350</td>
-</tr>
-</tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p>or a percentage of killed and wounded amongst
-the officers of 91, and amongst the rank and file
-of 67, per cent. of the average war strength. In
-the independent units the losses in killed and
-wounded were:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="unit casualties">
-<tbody>
-<tr>
- <td></td><td class="tdc">Officers.</td>
- <td class="tdc"></td>
- <td class="tdc">Rank and<br />File.</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">34th East Siberian Rifle Regiment</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;89</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">3,243</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">36th East Siberian Rifle Regiment</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;73</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">2,531</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">3rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment</td>
- <td class="tdc">102</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">2,244</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">4th East Siberian Rifle Regiment</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;61</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">2,170</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">23rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;50</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">2,290</td>
-</tr>
-<tr>
- <td class="tdl">1st East Siberian Rifle Regiment</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;71</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">1,920</td>
-</tr>
-</tbody>
-</table>
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_89">[Pg 89]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“The particularly gallant conduct in action of
-the officers is apparent from the fact that the
-percentage of killed and wounded is considerably
-higher than that of the men, while many single
-units proved that it is possible to continue
-fighting after a loss of two-thirds of the fighting
-strength. And yet, despite these sacrifices,
-despite all our efforts, we were unable to beat
-the enemy. Undoubtedly we had to fight
-against a very brave, energetic, and most martial
-foe. So careless were the Japanese of life that
-they piled the bodies of their comrades on our
-obstacles, and endeavoured to reach our positions
-by climbing over these masses of corpses. For
-a long time also they were able to bring superior
-forces against us. But we became tempered by
-misfortune, and gained wisdom by experience,
-and our numbers grew until we finally became
-so strong in mind and spirit last summer that
-victory seemed assured.</p>
-
-<p>“The intervals of comparative peace between
-the great battles were employed in strengthening
-the army, and many positions up to and including
-Mukden were fortified with immense
-trouble. After that battle the defence of the
-left flank of the whole force was entrusted to
-you, and three very strong defensive lines were
-constructed by your labours up to the River
-Sungari. These lines, particularly the first and
-second, were, on account of their fortifications
-and the nature of the ground, in every way suited
-either for a desperate defence or for the attack.
-Although our army was not quite ready to
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_90">[Pg 90]</a></span>
-assume the offensive by last May, it would
-have welcomed orders to advance. The enemy,
-shaken by their losses at Mukden, kept their
-positions for six months, and waited for us to
-move forward. We inaugurated many improvements
-based upon our previous experiences in
-the war, and the tactical training of the troops
-made immense progress. We not only filled
-up our weakened ranks by means of the drafts
-which reached us, but expanded all the rifle
-regiments into four battalions. In the way
-of reinforcements, the 1st&nbsp;Army received the
-53rd&nbsp;Infantry Division, the Cossack Infantry
-Brigade, and the Don Cossack Division.</p>
-
-<p>“The firing-line of the 1st&nbsp;Army was in August
-last stronger than it was at the beginning of the
-war, before the September battles on the Sha&nbsp;Ho,
-and, thanks to the great exertions of those in
-command, and the unselfish work of the medical
-services, the health of the army remained excellent
-throughout. It was, indeed, fortunate,
-for if any great sickness had broken out we
-should, owing to the few drafts then arriving,
-only have had very weak cadres for the field.
-It was absolutely essential, therefore, that no
-expense or efforts should be spared in order to
-keep every man fit for the ranks, and I am
-happy to say that our common efforts met with
-unusual success, for our losses from sickness
-were less than in killed and wounded. In
-the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army we had lost up to
-August&nbsp;14, 1905, 2,218 officers and 66,785 other
-ranks killed and wounded in action, and 2,390
-officers and 58,093 other ranks from sickness.
-I draw your attention to the fact that while the
-percentage of losses from action should naturally
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_91">[Pg 91]</a></span>
-be higher among the officers than the men, they
-ought, on account of their better living, to lose
-less from sickness. The converse was the case
-with us, which shows that our officers were not
-sufficiently hardy, and did not know how to
-preserve their health. To this we must pay
-particular attention.</p>
-
-<p>“In material matters the army was also
-excellently situated in August. Clothing and
-equipment of all sorts were on the spot and
-plentiful, while all technical supplies had accumulated.
-Never have we been such a formidable
-force in every sense as we had become by the
-summer of 1905, when we were suddenly informed
-of the unhappy negotiations at Portsmouth,
-and that peace had been concluded.
-Doubtless this was necessitated by the state of
-the interior of Russia; but it was heart-breaking
-for the army. I remember with what grief the
-news was received by all ranks. Life seemed to
-die out of our bivouacs, and all our minds were
-filled by one sad thought—that the war had
-ended before the enemy had been beaten. Looking
-back on the trials we have recently gone
-through, we can find consolation in the feeling
-that we have done our duty to Tsar and country
-as far as has lain in our power; but for many
-reasons the time given us has turned out to be
-insufficient. These reasons we must fearlessly
-search out, and discover what—beyond mere
-numerical inferiority—prevented our success
-before peace was concluded. Before all others,
-I, your senior commander, am guilty because I
-did not succeed in rectifying our many moral
-and material defects during the war, and in
-making the most of the undoubted strong points
-of our troops. The material defects are known
-to all of us—the small number of rifles in the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_92">[Pg 92]</a></span>
-firing-line per company [partly owing to lack of
-care to put as many men as possible into action],
-the insufficiency [at the beginning] of mountain
-artillery, the lack of high explosive shells, of
-machine-guns, and of technical stores of all sorts.
-By last August the majority of these deficiencies
-had, through the great exertions of the War
-Ministry, been made good. Our moral defects
-I attribute to the different standards of training
-among the troops, their inferior technical preparation,
-and the great numerical weakness of
-units in action. We also suffered much from
-inadequate reconnaissance of the enemy’s position
-before a battle, and the resulting vagueness
-as to how to conduct the action [particularly in
-the attack]; and, most important, from the lack
-of initiative and independent thought in individual
-commanders, the absence of the military
-spirit in officers and men, of dash, of mutual
-co-operation between units, and of a general
-determination to carry out a task to a finish at
-any sacrifice. The tendency to accept defeat
-too soon—after only the advanced troops had
-suffered—and of retiring instead of repeating
-the attack and setting an example, was highly
-detrimental. Such retirement, instead of calling
-forth increased efforts from the neighbours, in
-most cases only served as a signal for their own
-retreat.</p>
-
-<p>“Generally speaking, there was in all ranks a
-great dearth of men of strong military character,
-with nerves tough enough to enable them to
-stand the strain of an almost continual battle
-lasting for several days. It is evident that
-neither our educational system nor our national
-life during the last forty to fifty years has been
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_93">[Pg 93]</a></span>
-of a nature to produce men of strong independent
-characters, or more would have appeared in our
-army when wanted. Now the Tsar has given
-us the blessing of freedom. The nation has been
-released from the leading-strings of a bureaucracy,
-and can now develop freely, and direct its
-energies to the good of the country. Let us
-hope that this blessing of freedom, coupled to
-a well-thought-out system of education, will
-raise the material and moral forces of the Russian
-nation, and produce in every sphere of national
-activity stalwarts who are enterprising, independent,
-possessed of initiative, and strong in
-body and soul. By an infusion of such the
-army will be enriched. But it is not possible
-for the army idly to await results which are the
-work of a generation. Knowing now our strong
-and weak points, we can, and ought to, start on
-self-improvement without delay. The war has
-brought out many men [especially amongst all
-ranks of the 1st&nbsp;Army], from modest company
-officers up to corps commanders, on whose
-energy, zeal, and ability the Russian nation can
-rely; and I notice with pleasure that not a few
-of those amongst the 1st&nbsp;Army have received
-good appointments in the Far East and in Russia.
-This should serve as a fresh proof that the Tsar
-is diligently watching our efforts, and is losing
-no time in employing the most worthy of you
-to the advantage of the whole army.</p>
-
-<p>“You have first-hand knowledge of the difficult
-conditions generally under which war is
-now conducted, and of the moral and physical
-effort that is required to carry on an almost
-continuous battle for several days. You also
-know by experience the exact value in action
-of all kinds of technical equipment. All this
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_94">[Pg 94]</a></span>
-makes it necessary for you to endeavour to
-perfect yourselves. With the exception of the
-cadet corps, our schools take no pains about the
-physical development of children; consequently,
-many of our officers, as was evident in the
-war, are physically feeble. Pay attention to
-gymnastics, to fencing, to singlesticks, and to
-musketry. An officer should not be a mere
-spectator of the physical exercises of the men—a
-thing I have often noticed—but should himself
-set the example to those under him.</p>
-
-<p>“The relations between officers and men have
-always been of the closest. Like fathers to the
-men, our officers have won their affectionate
-respect. Remember that to our soldiers the
-word ‘father-commander’ is not merely an empty
-phrase; they believe in it. Remember, also, that
-a commander only wins the heart of his soldiers
-when he is their father-commander. It is quite
-possible to be strict and at the same time look
-after the men’s welfare, for our soldiers are not
-afraid of severity, but respect it; in the majority
-of cases a just severity is a deterrent against
-crime. But the simple-minded soldier is particularly
-sensitive to injustice, and soon sees
-through any deceit practised on him. You who
-shared with the men all the hardships and
-dangers of field service are very favourably
-situated. The men having seen you in action—always
-in your place, giving an example of
-unselfishness—will forgive much, and will follow
-you through fire and water. These links which
-bind the ranks must be carefully maintained,
-and officers who have been in the field with
-units must not be removed from them unless
-absolutely necessary. Guard the military traditions
-acquired by regiments, and do your best
-to preserve the memory of the gallant deeds
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_95">[Pg 95]</a></span>
-done by companies, squadrons, or batteries collectively,
-or by individual members of them.
-Keep in close touch with the private soldier; try
-to win his full confidence. You will gain it by
-your constant care of and your affection for him;
-by your strict, and at the same time fatherly,
-relations to him; by knowing your work; and
-by your own example. Only by these will you
-be able to take advantage of all his good points,
-to correct his defects, and guard him from the
-harmful influences which will be more numerous
-in the future than ever. The recent cases of
-military mutinies should be constantly in our
-memories. I turn to you officers in command
-of regiments in particular. You know the great
-responsibility which falls upon you in action.
-How often has the issue of the battle depended
-on the way a regiment has been led. It has
-often been enough for an energetic, gallant,
-capable man to get the command of a regiment
-to change its character utterly. The selection
-of men for these appointments must, therefore,
-be carefully made, and those chosen must work
-incessantly to educate all those under them.</p>
-
-<p>“Up to the present our regimental commanders
-have, unfortunately, been too much taken up
-with routine and office work, and have been
-unable to give sufficient time to the practical
-military side of their duties, to that intercourse
-between officers and men which is so valuable.
-Some seem to think that their chief duty
-is to look after such details as the colour
-and the repainting of the transport carts, and not
-the training of the men. The constant strain of
-how to make both ends meet with the money
-granted, how to maintain the clothing and other
-funds, has increased to such an extent, and worries
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_96">[Pg 96]</a></span>
-some commanders so much, that they scarcely
-get to know their own officers, and do positive
-harm to their men by trying to increase funds at
-the expense of their rations, and therefore of
-their health. In the late war the Supply Department
-carried out their difficult duties so well
-that they have proved that they deserve to be
-implicitly trusted in peace-time; we can therefore
-give over to this department much of the work
-of supplying the troops (clothing, equipment,
-transport, food). Then regimental and company
-commanders will stand out as real flesh and
-blood commanders in the true sense, and will
-cease to be “office” automatons and mere
-inspectors of stores and depôts, and the work of
-training and education will progress.</p>
-
-<p>“I would invite the special attention of all commanding
-officers to the necessity for thoroughly
-studying the characters of those under them.
-With us, men of independent character and
-initiative are rare. Search out such men, encourage
-them, promote them, and so encourage
-the growth of the qualities which are essential
-for all soldiers. Men of strong individuality are
-with us, unfortunately, often passed over, instead
-of receiving accelerated promotion. Because
-they are a source of anxiety to some officers in
-peace, they get repressed as being headstrong.
-The result is that they leave the service, while
-others, who possess neither force of character nor
-convictions, but who are subservient, and always
-ready to agree with their superiors, are promoted.
-Remember how much our inattention to the
-opinions and evidence of those under us has
-cost us.</p>
-
-<p>“The greater part of the 1st&nbsp;Army is to remain
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_97">[Pg 97]</a></span>
-in the Far East, and I am convinced that the
-glorious Siberian regiments of the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian
-Army, which have been such a tower of strength
-in action, will now, under the new conditions of
-peace, still be Russia’s bulwark in that quarter.</p>
-
-<p>“In bidding you farewell, my dear comrades in
-the field, I sincerely hope that the war experience
-you have gained will be of great advantage to
-the army and the country. Devoted to Crown
-and country, always ready to maintain law and
-order, and to uphold the authority of the Government,
-holding yourselves aloof from the intrigues
-of political parties, and knowing your own weak
-and strong points as shown up by the struggle
-we have all been through, you will, I believe,
-quickly heal your wounds, and lead the army in
-its struggle towards perfection. Although in the
-future you may be denied the recollection of
-victories won, you can remember—and this
-should be a consolation and an encouragement—that
-you were ready, without fear of sacrifice, to
-continue the struggle with the gallant enemy
-till you had beaten him. You, officers, believed
-that you would win, and you succeeded in
-instilling this belief into our grand soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>“May God assist you in the duties that lie
-before you, which are as important for our dear
-country as any we have already performed, even
-though they be in peace. Farewell. Accept my
-sincere gratitude for all your self-denying service
-in the field, and express to the men my thanks
-for their services, and for the many proofs they
-have given of devotion and loyalty to the Tsar
-and Fatherland.</p>
-
-<p class="sig1">
-“<span class="smcap">Shuan-chen-pu</span>,<br />
-“<i>February</i> 18, 1906.”
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_98">[Pg 98]</a></span></p>
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI" >CHAPTER XI</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="capsub">Suggested measures for the improvement of the senior
-ranks; for the improvement of the regulars and
-reservists; for the reorganization of the reserve troops;
-for increasing the number of combatants in infantry
-regiments—Machine-guns—Reserve troops—Troops on the
-communications—Engineers—Artillery—Cavalry—Infantry—Organi&shy;zation
-generally.</p>
-
-<p class="noindent">Our recent experiences have furnished ample
-material by which we may be guided in our
-efforts to improve the war training and increase
-the efficiency of our forces. The War Ministry,
-assisted by officers who served in Manchuria,
-and by articles which have appeared in the military
-Press, has already embarked upon numerous
-reforms. I shall here merely express my own
-opinion upon the points I consider most important,
-and which should be settled first of all.
-Amongst these are measures for—</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;The improvement of the senior ranks.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp; The improvement of the regular soldiers
-and reservists.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;Reforms in the organization of the reserve
-troops.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_99">[Pg 99]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;Increasing the number of actual combatants
-in our infantry regiments.</p>
-
-<p>5.&ensp;Enlarging the war establishment of regiments,
-brigades, divisions, and corps, and, by
-means of decentralization, making them more
-independent.</p>
-
-<p>As regards the first: Our three wars of the
-last fifty years have disclosed many shortcomings
-in our officers. Most of these have undoubtedly
-been due to the undeveloped state of the nation,
-and to the general conditions of life and labour,
-which have affected the army as an integral part
-of the whole population. Any serious attempt
-to improve our officers as a body, therefore, is
-only likely to be successful if and when a general
-improvement sets in in our social conditions.
-It has pleased the Tsar to inaugurate many
-fundamental reforms for the betterment of the
-civil status of all classes of our population in
-every walk of life, and reforms in the officer class
-should be instituted at the same time.</p>
-
-<p>Why is it that, with so many capable, keen,
-and intelligent men as we possess among our
-junior officers and those in comparatively subordinate
-positions, we have so few original-minded,
-keen, and competent seniors? As I
-have said, the standard of all ranks of the army
-entirely depends on that of the nation. With
-the growth of the moral and mental faculties of
-the people at large there will be a corresponding
-growth in that of the military class; but so long
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_100">[Pg 100]</a></span>
-as the nation suffers from a paucity of well-informed,
-independent, and zealous men, the
-army cannot well be expected to be an exception.
-If the uniform attracted the pick of the population,
-out of a nation of many millions, however
-backward, there would be at least hundreds of
-the very best men—in every sense—quite capable
-of commanding troops in war. It would therefore
-seem necessary—</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;To adopt a military uniform such as will
-attract the flower of our youth.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;To insist that the best of those privileged
-to wear the uniform should serve in the army,
-and there acquire the military knowledge and
-strength of character necessary for war.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" id="grippenberg">
-<img alt="" width="460" height="650" src="images/grippenberg.jpg" />
-<div class="caption">GENERAL GRIPPENBERG</div></div>
-
-<p>In the first of these two particulars we have
-succeeded, for in Russia the military uniform has
-been particularly honoured for years; but we
-have by no means approached near the second
-desideratum. The majority of the best men
-wearing military uniform have not only never
-served in the army, but are absolutely unconnected
-with it. In the eighteenth century a
-custom crept in of dressing the sons of grandees
-in military clothes, and they could get promotion
-at an age when they were riding toy
-horses round drawing-rooms. Then, little by
-little, military uniform, military rank, even that
-of General, ceased to become the absolute
-prerogative of the army, or, indeed, to denote any
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_101">[Pg 101]</a></span>
-connection with war. The members of the
-Church were the only people not arrayed in it.
-Members of the Imperial Council, Ambassadors,
-Senators, Ministers of the different departments
-and their assistants, Governor-Generals, Governors,
-Mayors, Superintendents of Police, officials
-in the various Government departments and in the
-military institutions, all wore military uniform,
-and were graded in different ranks. With few
-exceptions, all that they had to do with the army
-was to be a source of weakness to it. Amongst
-the many names in the long list of generals,
-only a few belong to officers on the active list,
-and, what is worse, those who are serving in the
-army get superseded in rank by, and receive less
-emoluments than, those who are not. Consequently,
-the best elements in the service are
-naturally anxious to leave. The posts of Minister
-of the Interior, of Finance, of Ways and Communications,
-of Education, and of State Control,
-used to be held by generals and admirals, as
-well as the appointments of Ambassador at Constantinople,
-Paris, London, and Berlin. Service
-uniforms were therefore conspicuous at all diplomatic
-and ministerial gatherings. Military clothes
-also had a great attraction for other departments,
-and several of them tried to assimilate their
-uniforms as much as possible to those of army
-officers. The worst offender in this respect was
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_102">[Pg 102]</a></span>
-the Ministry of the Interior, which adopted a
-uniform for police-officers and even for constables
-which could hardly be distinguished
-from that worn by military officers. The private
-soldiers were naturally unable to make anything
-of this multitude of uniforms, and never knew
-whom to salute or obey; indeed, the police-officers’
-great-coats and caps with cockades were
-enough to puzzle the most discriminating. This
-all seems incomprehensible; but the ambition
-to wear military uniform is easily explained. It
-is largely due to the ignorance of the people.
-Not long ago, anyone wearing even a hat
-with a cockade was taken in the country for a
-person in authority; caps were doffed to him,
-and in winter heavily laden sledges would be
-turned into snow-drifts to give him the road,
-while his vulgar abuse would be patiently
-accepted.</p>
-
-<p>Thirty years ago, when a young officer, I spent
-about a year on service with the French in Algiers,
-and travelled a great deal. I was astonished to
-find that it was found convenient, even under
-republican rule, to keep to a system of semi-military
-government for the native population—Arabs
-and Kabyles. It was, in this case, entrusted
-mainly to army officers, and those civilians who
-were also appointed had to adopt a uniform
-similar to that worn by the military. These
-officials told me in all seriousness that their
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_103">[Pg 103]</a></span>
-spurs and the gold braid round their caps assisted
-them in their dealings with the Arabs, in collecting
-taxes, settling land questions, and other matters.
-It was so in our case. Undoubtedly the wearing
-of military clothes did facilitate the difficult
-work which our police-officers have to do; but
-a great change has recently come over the country,
-and a uniform alone is not now enough to command
-obedience. It is sometimes a drawback, if
-not a danger. It is, of course, to be hoped that
-such an unnatural state of affairs will not last;
-but it is very desirable to take advantage of the
-present indifference displayed by the civil population
-to uniform to take it from all who are not
-actually serving in the army. The time has come
-when the prestige appertaining to our uniform
-should be restored, and the status of those serving
-in the army should be raised.</p>
-
-<p>With the same object in view, we must continue
-to try and improve the material position
-and prospects of the corps of officers. An important
-matter, and one to which I have given
-much attention—so far without entire success—is
-that service on the staff, in offices and in branches
-of the War Department, should not pay better
-than service with the troops. Many of the officers
-now so employed in semi-civil duties can well
-be replaced by civilian officials. It is, moreover,
-essential that service in the Frontier Guards, in
-the Customs, police, gendarmerie, on the railway,
-and as tax-collectors, should cease to be financially
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_104">[Pg 104]</a></span>
-preferable to service in the army.</p>
-
-<p>As senior officers get on in the service,
-they must not be allowed to forget what they
-have previously learnt, a thing which is now only
-too common. It is essential that they should be
-practised in peace in commanding troops, and not
-be mere administrators, inspectors, spectators, and
-umpires. They should therefore be in a position
-to spend most of their time with troops in the
-field and in cantonments. With our military
-system the command of troops is at present
-almost entirely in the hands of the regimental,
-brigade, divisional, corps and district
-commanders.<a id="FNanchor_31"></a><a href="#Footnote_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a> Thus our infantry and cavalry
-regiments used to be under five masters. But,
-in the words of the proverb, too many cooks
-spoil the broth, and in war all was not for the
-best in all our regiments. Often while the ingredients
-and the fire left nothing to be desired,
-the cooks did not know what to do. How can
-such a state of things be explained? It will be
-said that the selection of commanders was not
-always happy. That is true; but it must be
-remembered that selections had to be made from
-those men who were qualified according to the
-regulations and the reports drawn up by various
-commanding officers. In some cases seniority
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_105">[Pg 105]</a></span>
-was considered to be by itself a qualification for
-promotion. Efforts of a sort were undoubtedly
-made to get the best men we had, but they were
-insufficient. All the commanders in the five
-degrees of our military hierarchy are so occupied
-with their daily work of routine and correspondence,
-while many are so overburdened with the
-administrative details of their appointments, that
-they have little time to attend to the business of
-actual war. Yet, as they get on in the service,
-more knowledge of war is required of them. The
-short periods of concentration in summer, with
-only a few days of instructional work on both
-sides, give little practice in command, and at
-other times the number of responsible duties
-connected with administration places that art on
-a far higher plane than mere soldiering. And
-what is most important is that the whole of our
-service—of our lives almost—is spent doing things
-which do not go to form character. Of the five
-posts above mentioned, only two—the divisional
-and corps commanders—are in any way independent,
-and their occupants are immersed in
-office work. The relative amount of time spent
-on the different sorts of duties tends to turn the
-regimental commander into an administrator
-rather than a fighter, while a brigade commander
-has absolutely no independence; in fact, his
-absence or presence is scarcely noticed. Finally,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_106">[Pg 106]</a></span>
-the same tendency to produce office men and
-bureaucrats is noticeable even in the work of
-those on the highest rungs of the ladder—the
-general officers in command of military districts.
-Instances might be multiplied of men who, though
-long in charge of military districts, never once
-commanded troops on manœuvres, and for several
-years never even got astride a horse. How can
-this impossible state of affairs be remedied, and
-a body of leaders, constantly practised in the
-execution of those duties in command of troops
-that would be required of them in war, be formed?</p>
-
-<h3>I.</h3>
-
-<p>On active service the rôle of the regimental
-commander is both wide and important. To
-issue successfully from the test of modern war,
-he must have character, experience, and facility
-in manœuvring his unit in the field, must know
-his men well, and therefore have found the time
-both for intercourse with his officers and for perfecting
-himself in his profession. In battle it is
-men he has to deal with, and not files of papers
-and storehouses. But, situated as he is at present,
-he is so overburdened with important administrative
-details that most of his time is passed
-dealing with requisitions and inventories instead
-of with flesh and blood. The penalties he incurs
-by neglect of his administrative duties are far
-heavier and more tangible than those incurred
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_107">[Pg 107]</a></span>
-by neglecting the tactical training of his regiment.
-The greater part of these duties—those
-such as are connected with clothing, transport,
-and rationing—should be removed from his
-shoulders. He should be made the controller
-of these sections of duty, and not the person
-actually responsible. Nor is his position easy
-in respect to the <i>personnel</i>. The great shortage
-of officers, especially in those units quartered in
-inferior barracks, is the cause of many difficulties.
-When mobilization is ordered, some of the already
-too small number of officers are told off for the
-innumerable miscellaneous duties and detachments;
-commanders of battalions and of companies
-are interchanged; many of the men are
-transferred to other units, a mass of reservists
-join, and, if there is not time for the new arrivals
-to settle down with the few old hands, the commander
-has to lead into action a regiment which
-he does not know, and which does not know
-itself. Our mobilization schemes, therefore, require
-revision in this respect, and every regiment
-should have in peace-time a permanent establishment
-of officers and men who would accompany
-the regiment on service. The company commanders
-in particular should not be removed
-from their companies. But to make such an
-arrangement possible, it is essential that one of
-the senior captains (who might be appointed to
-the staff) should run the regimental school. It
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_108">[Pg 108]</a></span>
-is also important to keep the regimental commander
-as a man apart as far as possible; he
-should be made to realize upon all occasions the
-peculiar importance of the duties entrusted to
-him, and the respect due to himself personally
-by reason of these duties.</p>
-
-<h3>II.</h3>
-
-<p>In Manchuria, just as in the wars of the second
-half of last century, the great value of the
-infantry brigade as an independent fighting unit
-came out strongly in all the large battles; as
-also did the great influence of its commander on
-the result of the fight.</p>
-
-<p>The advance and rear guards of army corps
-generally consisted of brigades. A brigade
-commander usually began the attack; a brigade
-commander usually finished it (by commanding
-the rearguard). And yet the post of Brigadier
-is not considered one of importance; his powers
-are insignificant, and his position does not allow
-him sufficient independence to enable him to
-train either himself or his unit. Divisional
-commanders and their chief staff-officers in peace-time
-often ignore the brigadiers as if they were
-not wanted, and were fifth wheels to the coach;
-and their absence for whole years, building
-barracks and roads, etc., is not considered to
-have any adverse effect on the successful training
-of the regiments under them. In such
-circumstances even the zealous ones, and those
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_109">[Pg 109]</a></span>
-anxious to do their duty, become dulled, slack,
-and lose capacity for work. There can be only
-one way out of this unnatural state of things,
-which, from a military point of view, is most
-harmful: <i>brigade commanders must in peace-time
-be given independent command of those
-units which they will have to command independently
-in war</i>. This applies to cavalry as
-well as to infantry. Every brigade should have
-a small staff such as exists in independent
-brigades—namely, two adjutants, one an officer
-of the General Staff for operations, and one for
-administration. Each brigade commander should
-have powers in both these branches of their duty
-equal to that now delegated to divisional commanders,
-while their disciplinary powers should
-remain as at present.</p>
-
-<h3>III.</h3>
-
-<p>Our divisional commanders are independent
-and in direct touch with troops; but they also
-are overburdened with routine correspondence,
-and as they are frequently appointed to command
-the summer camps, it happens that they
-are more often present at the exercises of the
-troops as spectators than actually in command.
-In field operations where there are two sides,
-the divisional general rarely finds it possible to
-take command of one, partly owing to an
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_110">[Pg 110]</a></span>
-exaggerated idea of his own abilities, and partly to
-the scarcity of officers of sufficient seniority to
-be umpires. Consequently, he only gets practice
-in commanding troops in the field during concentrations
-of large bodies of men. This is not
-enough. Commanders of infantry divisions, in
-particular, do not know nearly enough about the
-other arms, owing to the little practice they get
-in commanding mixed forces. So, while giving
-greater powers to brigade commanders, it will
-be also advisable to delegate to divisional generals
-the powers now exercised by corps commanders
-(with the exception of disciplinary powers).
-Divisional commanders should always remember
-that the 16,000 rifles which they command are
-a number that can decide the fate of any action.
-With the inclusion, in divisions, of artillery,
-sapper, and cavalry units, exceedingly instructive
-exercises can be arranged within these units both
-in summer and winter, and the troops and their
-commanders thereby trained for war under
-modern war conditions. The four<a id="FNanchor_32"></a><a href="#Footnote_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a> officers of
-the General Staff who would be with each
-division should be relieved of all routine, except
-that relating to operations, and they should
-devote the whole of their time and energies to
-preparing work for the brigade and divisional commanders
-in the training of the troops for battle.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_111">[Pg 111]</a></span></p>
-
-<h3>IV.</h3>
-
-<p>Army corps commanders are quite independent,
-but, like the divisional commanders, are overburdened
-with routine correspondence, etc., and
-do not get sufficient practice in commanding
-troops in the field. Some, during a tour of duty
-of several years, have never commanded troops
-on manœuvres; and it is impossible for all of
-them to have sufficient acquaintance with cavalry,
-as some corps do not include this arm. They
-and their staff, especially the General Staff
-officers, have no practice at all, or else very
-little, in the use of technical equipment and the
-modern aids to warfare (telegraphs, telephones,
-mines, motors, balloons, etc.). The experience
-of the late war showed up the necessity of increasing
-the establishment of the army corps,
-and the actions of their commanders will have
-such an important, and in many cases deciding,
-influence, that extremely careful selection is
-necessary for these posts; the men appointed
-must be capable of teaching others as well as
-of learning themselves. As with the divisional
-generals, so should the powers of corps commanders
-be extended at the expense of those
-now exercised by officers in command of military
-districts.</p>
-
-<h3>V.</h3>
-
-<p>The commanders of military districts are the
-senior officers actually in charge of troops, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_112">[Pg 112]</a></span>
-have at the same time important duties as administrative
-heads of districts. Here again
-administrative work, together with correspondence
-connected with the troops, occupies the
-greater part of their time, and only in exceptionally
-favourable circumstances (the large
-manœuvres with concentrations of troops from
-different districts) can they get any practice in
-commanding in the field. But as they also have
-to perform the duties of Governor-General, they
-are not able to devote sufficient time to the
-troops, even in inspecting them, or to improving
-themselves. I am absolutely convinced that,
-however much such a combination of two appointments—each
-of which requires a man of
-exceptional ability and character—may be desirable
-from the political point of view, it has
-the gravest disadvantages for the army. There
-is a limit to human power. As our governor-generals
-devote the greater part of their time and
-energies to civil matters, they entrust a large part
-of their military duties to the chief staff-officers
-of the districts. It can easily be understood
-that such an arrangement is not in the interests
-of the army. For instance, the most important
-military district—that of Warsaw—was, as far
-as the army was concerned, neglected in the time
-of several governor-generals. Indeed, at one
-time, much to the subversion of the authority
-of officers in command of districts and corps, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_113">[Pg 113]</a></span>
-troops in this area were controlled by the chief
-of the district staff! Therefore, if we wish that
-the commanders of military districts—our most
-natural selections for the command of armies in
-war—should have time to prepare themselves
-for this important duty, <i>we should free them from
-civil duties</i>; otherwise we shall get no improvement.
-They must also be relieved of the
-numerous and responsible cares with respect to
-all those questions which in war mainly fall
-to the officer in command of the communications.</p>
-
-<p>The inspection of hospitals, of supply depôts,
-engineer and artillery units, of parks, of offices—everything
-that takes too much time from the
-exercises for the actual training of the troops
-and of themselves—should be eliminated from
-their duties. These have become so heavy with
-the complications of modern war, and are fraught
-with such importance to army and country, that
-the men who will have to perform them must
-unceasingly prepare themselves in peace; but,
-for the reasons I have already given, few officers
-have time to follow up the developments in
-their profession. That is why in the recent
-war we were left behind in knowledge of the
-employment of artillery, of the utility of the
-various technical means of intercommunication,
-in appreciating relative value of different attack
-formations, etc. <i>Our senior officers must be given</i>
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_114">[Pg 114]</a></span>
-<i>sufficient leisure, while improving the troops under
-them, at the same time to improve themselves.</i></p>
-
-<h3>Improvement of the Regulars.</h3>
-
-<p>I have more than once pointed out how
-excellent the regulars were as regards military
-qualifications, and how much more reliable in
-the first fights than the reservists, especially the
-older ones. But we must look to the nation
-itself for the cause of the shortcomings of both.
-The lack of education in the peasant is reflected
-in the private soldier, and the non-existence of
-a martial spirit amongst the masses, coupled to
-the dislike for the war, resulted in the absence
-of a military spirit in our troops in Manchuria.
-Their ignorance made the conduct of modern
-war, which demands a much greater spirit of
-combination and initiative from the individual
-than formerly, very difficult for us. Consequently,
-while behaving with the utmost gallantry
-when in close order—in mass—our men,
-when left to themselves without officers, were
-more inclined to retire than to advance. In the
-mass they were formidable; but very few of
-them were fit for individual action, and this is
-a point in which the Japanese had a great
-advantage. Their non-commissioned officers in
-particular were better educated than ours, and
-on many prisoners—private soldiers as well as
-non-commissioned officers—we found diaries
-written not only grammatically, but with a
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_115">[Pg 115]</a></span>
-general knowledge of what was going on and of
-what the Japanese were trying to do. Many
-of them drew well. One prisoner—a private—drew
-on the sand an excellent diagram of our
-position and that of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>It is never easy to turn in a short time an
-ignorant, illiterate recruit into an intelligent and
-keen soldier, capable of individual action; and
-the recent reduction<a id="FNanchor_33"></a><a href="#Footnote_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a> of the term of service has
-made the task still harder. The greatest difficulty,
-however, is to get good non-commissioned
-officers; even with the four to five year period
-with the colours we were not able to do this
-satisfactorily. The mass of our recruits are so
-illiterate, and so much book knowledge is required
-in the schools from our non-commissioned
-officers, that there is a natural tendency to pick
-the men for these posts on account of their
-education and outward sharpness. This is a
-mistake, as these qualities are often superficial.
-The simple recruits of the deepest and strongest
-characters are usually slow and uncouth and do
-not shine externally; consequently many of
-them never become selected for non-commissioned
-rank, and finish their service as private
-soldiers. But a surly man of some character
-often makes a better soldier than his smarter
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_116">[Pg 116]</a></span>
-comrade. With the reduced term of service we
-can do nothing without a considerable number
-of time-expired men. The present conditions
-under which these men are kept on in the ranks
-are sound enough, but the men dislike doing
-time-expired, or what they characterize as
-“mercenary,” service. We must get over this
-dislike, and therefore as much as possible raise
-the position of sergeant-major and other non-commissioned
-officers.</p>
-
-<p>Another burning question, and one with which
-we shall be confronted more and more in the
-future, is how to keep the destructive tenets of
-the revolutionary parties out of our barracks.
-Drastic action will of course be taken, but if we
-do not succeed in crushing these parties among
-the people, we can hardly expect to be able to
-keep the army from infection.</p>
-
-<p>One of the most important requirements with
-our short term of service is that our men should
-not be taken away from their work for police
-duties. The part so frequently taken by the
-troops in putting down civil disorders by force
-of arms is particularly harmful to discipline. To
-turn to another point, owing to the inadequate
-funds allotted, our soldiers have always been
-treated worse than those of other armies. The
-Germans, for instance, spend twice as much per
-head upon the maintenance of their army as we
-do. Some improvement in this direction has
-already been made, especially in the feeding.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_117">[Pg 117]</a></span>
-With a serviceable cadre of time-expired sergeant-majors
-and non-commissioned officers, and with
-the living conditions of the men improved, we
-can face the future calmly even with a three-year
-term of service. But we shall only succeed
-if we relieve the troops of the large amount of
-extra regimental work which falls to them
-(tailoring, shoemaking, and other workshop
-work, care of reserve stores, etc.), and if we
-lighten their guard duties. Our recruits are
-free from this work and from guards only in the
-first year of service.</p>
-
-<h3>Improvement of the Reservists.</h3>
-
-<p>Our infantry in the recent war can be classified
-in four groups, according to the relative number
-of old regular soldiers and reservists:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;The East Siberian Rifle Regiments, which
-were maintained almost on a war footing<a id="FNanchor_34"></a><a href="#Footnote_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a> in
-peace.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;The infantry in the 1st&nbsp;Brigades of the
-31st and 35th&nbsp;Divisions, which were filled up to
-war strength with regulars at the beginning of
-the war.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;The infantry of the regular army corps
-brought up to war strength with reservists.</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;The infantry units formed from reserve
-troops.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_118">[Pg 118]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>According to the opinion of competent officers
-who served in the war (which I fully share),
-other conditions being equal, <i>the more regular
-soldiers there were in a unit, the more it could be
-relied on in battle</i>. The best troops we had were
-the East Siberian Rifle Regiments, and after
-them the brigades of the 31st and 35th&nbsp;Divisions.
-In the case of the army corps, which proceeded
-to the front direct from Russia, sufficient care
-was not taken to regulate the proportion of
-regulars to reservists. Some units—the 10th
-Army Corps, for instance—arrived at the front
-20 per cent. below strength in men, and more in
-officers. In the first fight in which it was
-engaged, several companies of this corps had
-only sixty regular soldiers—thirty trained men
-and thirty recruits—who had not <i>even passed
-their recruit’s musketry course</i>. All the remainder
-were reservists, among whom were a large
-number of 2nd&nbsp;Category men. These regular
-units consequently were, to all intents and
-purposes, nothing but reserve units. Finally,
-our reserve units arrived almost without any
-permanent peace cadres, so swallowed up were
-they in the great mass of reservists. In the early
-fighting these reservists, particularly those of
-the 2nd&nbsp;Category, were vastly inferior to the
-regulars; many of them took advantage of every
-opportunity to leave the ranks with or without
-permission. There is little doubt that if the
-war had been a national one, and if the country
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_119">[Pg 119]</a></span>
-had supported its sons at the front instead
-of doing the opposite, these men would have
-done better in the first fights; but it is also quite
-certain that, other conditions being equal, the
-man with the colours must be better than the
-other as a soldier. He is not torn from his
-family at a time when he has begun to think
-that his military liability is over; he is better
-trained, and possesses <i>esprit de corps</i>. Therefore,
-the best way of improving our infantry is to
-maintain it with a stronger peace establishment
-than at present.</p>
-
-<p>In Manchuria a peace establishment of 100 men
-per company became so weak from the various
-causes incidental to active service that companies
-went into action with one-third regulars to two-thirds
-reservists. Nominally regular forces,
-they were in reality more like reserve troops.
-Regulars should be in the majority in every
-company, but the great difficulties and expense
-of maintaining troops on a strong peace footing
-compel us to pay special attention to the question
-of improving our reserve men. Modern war
-must be fought mainly with men temporarily
-called up from amongst the people.</p>
-
-<p>The only thing that will insure devotion to
-their country among reservists proceeding to the
-front is the existence of a spirit of patriotism in
-the nation. Discontent and feelings of oppression
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_120">[Pg 120]</a></span>
-among the people are naturally reflected in
-the minds of those of them leaving for war.
-But, independent of such all-important general
-considerations, there are certain definite things
-that can be taken to improve the tone of the
-reservists. According to the present system,
-when a man passes from the colours into the
-reserve his connection with his own unit—in
-fact, with the Service generally—almost ceases.
-The practice concentrations are not carried out
-on a large enough scale, and though valuable, are
-often dispensed with altogether on account of
-financial considerations. So it happens that a
-man passing into the reserve takes his uniform
-with him, but, with rare exceptions, never even
-wears his forage-cap; this he generally gives to
-some neighbour or relation—hardly ever a soldier—to
-wear out. The reservist himself only too
-gladly dons peasant’s clothes or other mufti; he is
-glad to feel that he is a peasant again. He starts
-in business, takes up peaceful occupations, and
-raises a family. When he reaches the age of
-forty, he begins to put on flesh. And it is under
-these conditions that he is suddenly torn from
-the bosom of his family, and sent to fight in a
-strange, “hired”<a id="FNanchor_35"></a><a href="#Footnote_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a> land for a cause for which he
-feels no sympathy, and which he does not
-understand. To this are added the general discontent
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_121">[Pg 121]</a></span>
-all around him, and a flood of revolutionary
-proclamations. The separation of the
-reservist from all touch with the army once he
-has left it does not tend to his rapid retransformation
-from “mujik” into trained soldier.
-In the case of Manchuria he certainly became a
-good man after some months in the school of
-war, but so long a period of grace cannot be
-counted on in the future.</p>
-
-<p>Coming here into the heart of the country as
-I did nine months ago, and staying here continuously,
-I have been in a position to observe
-our reservists returning from the war. When
-the return stream first began in March, April,
-and May, there were large numbers. Sometimes
-when I passed they would fall in—in line—and
-receive me after the military fashion. They
-wore fur caps, very often military great-coats,
-and looked, as they were, a fine body of young
-soldiers. Nine months of hard work in the fields
-soon turned them again into peasants, and now,
-when they come to me, on business or otherwise,
-instead of saluting, they take off their caps and
-call me “Barin.”<a id="FNanchor_36"></a><a href="#Footnote_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a></p>
-
-<p>In Japan mothers counted it a dishonour if
-their sons were rejected as medically unfit to go
-to the front. With us how different it was!
-Women often came to thank me heartily for
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_122">[Pg 122]</a></span>
-having “had pity” on their sons and husbands,
-because these latter happened to have been told
-off for duty with transport units or with hospitals,
-etc., instead of being sent into action,<a id="FNanchor_37"></a><a href="#Footnote_37" class="fnanchor">[37]</a> and they
-did the same when their men returned safe and
-sound. In Japan, Germany, and other countries,
-some endeavour is made in education to inculcate
-patriotism into the people. A love of country
-and pride in the Fatherland is created in the
-children. As has been said before, the schools
-in Japan do everything they can to create and
-foster a martial spirit in the youth of the nation,
-and to practise them in military matters. There
-and in other countries the formation of various
-patriotic societies is approved, and all kinds of
-physical sport are encouraged. The authorities
-are not afraid to issue thousands of rifles to the
-people for rifle practice, etc. We do not do this;
-we are afraid for political reasons. Little is
-done to inculcate patriotism by education in our
-schools, and the great gulf between Church,
-rural, and Government schools makes matters
-worse. Students in the highest educational
-establishments have long ago abandoned study
-for politics; it has for long been the fashion to
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_123">[Pg 123]</a></span>
-abuse everything Russian, and military service is
-thought to be dishonourable. Our infantry
-soldier is undersized and overloaded; he is
-usually untidy, often dirty, and wears an ugly
-and ill-fitting uniform. Is it a wonder that, as
-he slouches along, he excites more pity than
-pride in the man in the street? And yet it is
-on this undersized man that the integrity of the
-Empire depends. Money is tight, as we all
-know, but still, we do not keep the soldier clean
-and smart enough when he is serving, and when
-we pass him into the reserve we give him a dress
-which he can display with no pride to his neighbours
-or even his own family. Under such conditions,
-how can we hope that he will then
-suddenly turn into a martial warrior?</p>
-
-<p>Only by the reformation of our schools, and the
-introduction into the life of the lower classes of
-reforms, which, besides increasing their comfort,
-will develop in them a love for, and pride in,
-their country, and a deep sense of the necessity
-for some sacrifice for it, shall we get in the
-reserve a thorough soldier of the right sort. The
-attainment of such a result cannot depend
-entirely on any actions of the War Department,
-which must, after all, be secondary; but the
-things that can be effected by it are nevertheless
-important, and I will enumerate those which
-seem to be the most pressing.</p>
-
-<p>In an army discipline is the foundation of all
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_124">[Pg 124]</a></span>
-efficiency; but to maintain discipline in an army
-is impossible when the mass of the nation have
-no respect for authority, and where the authorities
-actually fear those under them. The term of
-service with the colours is now so short that
-there is no time to overcome in the soldier the disorderliness
-of the people from whom he comes, yet
-to effect improvement in the reservist demands
-an iron military discipline. It must not be
-allowed for a moment that a soldier need not be
-afraid of his officer. The present greatest enemy
-to discipline is the employment of soldiers in the
-political struggle now going on. On the one
-hand, the force is corrupted by propaganda;
-on the other, men are taken away from military
-duties and detailed for almost continual police
-work, in putting down disorder not only of a
-military nature, such as mutiny, where the situation
-can only be saved by the assistance of
-reliable troops, but riots which should be dealt
-with by the police and the gendarmes. Officers
-are taken away to sit on field courts,<a id="FNanchor_38"></a><a href="#Footnote_38" class="fnanchor">[38]</a> to judge,
-shoot, and hang political and other criminals.
-These duties make the populace hate the troops,
-and among the soldiers who suffer in killed and
-wounded it arouses a feeling of hatred not only
-for the civilians who shoot at them, but against
-the officers who order them to kill the civilians.
-The result is demoralizing to a degree. What
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_125">[Pg 125]</a></span>
-impression can the man passing into the reserve
-take home with him if, during the two or three
-years of his colour service, he has been “maintaining
-order” in various ways with the aid of
-his rifle? The army can and must do all that is
-necessary to suppress mutinies, and to break
-down all organized opposition, but it should then
-return at once to its ordinary work. If this sort
-of duty becomes frequent, if the soldier sees that
-the Government is powerless to restore order
-even with the aid of troops, doubts will creep
-into his mind as to the expediency of the
-Government’s policy and as to his own commanders.
-According to what I hear, it seems
-that the heavy task which has recently fallen to
-the lot of the army is now coming to an end,
-and that order is beginning once more to be
-restored in our great country. Please God may
-it soon be the case, as otherwise the force must
-deteriorate instead of improving.</p>
-
-<p>Under ordinary conditions our work should
-tend to make the man passed into the reserve
-arrive in his native village or town well disciplined,
-knowing his work, taking a pride in his
-old corps, and respecting those under whom he
-has served. We must therefore endeavour to
-prevent him from losing touch with the Service
-and quickly forgetting what he has learned in it.
-In some armies to obviate this they have what is
-called the territorial system, by which reservists
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_126">[Pg 126]</a></span>
-maintain touch to the end of their term with
-those units in which they have served. This
-system is not possible for us in its entirety, but
-it might be applied partially and adopted on a
-fairly large scale. One of its great advantages
-would be that reservists would on mobilization
-at once join the units in which they had previously
-served. They would not be strangers, but would
-be known to the cadre of time-expired, but still
-serving, non-commissioned officers and the officers,
-and would soon settle down. Men of the same
-district would be more inclined to hold together
-under fire, and every man would feel that if he
-behaved badly his comrade would send news of
-it to his home. Units territorially connected
-with the people would be more dashing than
-corps collected from anywhere. There would,
-of course, be many difficulties, which would have
-to be overcome before the system could be
-adopted. For instance, men taken from a certain
-locality would, if employed to suppress disorders
-in that place, be more likely to waver than
-men from another unit and district. Cases have
-been known where non-commissioned officers who
-had been strict with their men have requested, on
-being passed into the reserve, not to be sent off
-in the same compartment of a train with their
-late subordinates, who had threatened to “make
-things even” so soon as they both passed into
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_127">[Pg 127]</a></span>
-the reserve together. With us such a settling
-up of old scores might easily be effected under
-a territorial system, by which both officers and
-soldiers would, after their service, come together
-in one district.</p>
-
-<p>It must be more frequently impressed on the
-reservists that they still are soldiers. Local
-concentrations should be organized for them so
-that they may get some training, and these
-should be arranged at such a time of the year as
-to interfere as little as possible with the crops.
-This would vary, of course, according to locality.
-Our recruiting officers are now mainly occupied,
-like everyone else, with office work; they should
-be more in touch with the reservists, who should
-look to them as their commanding officer, adviser,
-and protector. The relationship now is too purely
-official. An important matter also is the division
-of reservists in peace-time. In my opinion it is
-essential to have three classes. For the first two
-years after the man leaves the colours he should
-be considered on furlough; he should be made
-to wear uniform, and always be ready to be
-recalled in case of partial or general mobilization.
-The men of the last two classes should be on
-a different footing, and should be used on mobilization
-to fill up services in rear, hospitals,
-bakeries, parks, transport units, and to guard
-camps on the communications, etc.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_128">[Pg 128]</a></span></p>
-
-<h3>Reforms in the Organization of the Reserve Troops.</h3>
-
-<p>We have already seen (<a
-href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#CHAPTER_VI">Chapter
-VI</a>.) how, when the war began, we found it necessary, in the
-absence of any assurance arranged by diplomacy against other
-contingencies, to be ready for any military eventuality on our Western
-frontier. Consequently, too great a number of reserve units were
-included amongst the troops told off to take the field in the Far
-East. Another reason for this was that we did not really know the
-qualities of different sections of our army. Our crack troops, taking
-both officers and men together, of three Guard and three Grenadier
-divisions, six divisions in all, were left in European Russia, while
-newly formed corps composed of reserve units were sent into the
-field. I have already mentioned how my recommendation to mobilize the
-reinforcements being sent to us immediately after Easter was for
-various reasons rejected, how they were mobilized a month later than
-they should have been, and arrived in Manchuria unsettled, untrained,
-knowing scarcely anything of the new rifle, without having fired a
-course of musketry, and not having done any combined tactical
-operations with the other arms.</p>
-
-<p>The troops of the 6th&nbsp;Siberians, which certainly
-had been in camp for a short time before starting,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_129">[Pg 129]</a></span>
-had not been given a gun or a squadron to enable
-them to practise combined operations. Of the
-4th&nbsp;Siberian Corps, which mobilized under most
-favourable conditions, only the Omsk Regiment
-had been trained in artillery, and this was of an
-old pattern; yet it had to go into action with
-quick-firing guns. Cavalry were hardly seen.
-Indeed, if we consider the haphazard selection of
-commanding officers, the lack of any community
-of thought amongst the officers generally, the
-almost complete absence of proper tactical training,
-the large number of 2nd&nbsp;Category reservists,
-general dislike of the war, and, finally, the absence
-of military spirit, it will be evident why some
-units of the reserve troops failed. In the first
-battles the troops of the 4th&nbsp;Siberian Corps won
-a good reputation in the army. The reasons for
-this were:</p>
-
-<p>1. The splendid character of the men in them.
-Bluff, surly fellows of Siberia, they were strong in
-body and stout of heart, and understood better
-than others the reasons for which we were fighting
-in the Far East.</p>
-
-<p>2. The careful selection of those in command.</p>
-
-<p>3. The bravery of the officers.</p>
-
-<p>4. The long time they had, compared with
-other troops, to train and acquire cohesion.</p>
-
-<p>But, after the reserve troops which came out
-from European Russia had received their baptism
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_130">[Pg 130]</a></span>
-of fire, they also did well. It is sufficient to call to
-mind the behaviour of the regiments of the 54th
-and 71st&nbsp;Divisions at Mukden, as well as those
-of the 55th and 61st&nbsp;Divisions. But this result
-was not reached till late, and cost many lives.
-In a European conflict the fate of a campaign
-will be far more rapidly decided than it was in
-Manchuria, for the first battles fought after the
-declaration of hostilities will have a deciding
-influence. In the recent war, owing to the slow
-concentration possible on a single-track railway,
-the reserve troops might have been collected
-sooner and given several months to settle down,
-and have thus arrived at the front more ready
-for battle. In a European war they will have to
-be transported into the theatre of operations in
-a very short time after mobilization. We made
-a great mistake in forming the reserve troops
-into separate army corps. In my opinion, it
-would have been much better to have put them
-into existing corps—either as third divisions or
-separate brigades. This would have improved
-our corps organization, which is too unwieldy
-and too big for a strength of only twenty-four
-battalions. With strong corps consisting of
-efficient self-contained brigades the confusion
-of units in battle would be minimized.</p>
-
-<p>Before the war no army corps organization
-had been worked out for the reserve troops;
-everything had been arranged for a divisional
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_131">[Pg 131]</a></span>
-organization. In my opinion, neither corps nor
-divisions are necessary. It would be more
-advantageous to form the reserve units into
-independent brigades of eight battalions, and to
-use them as army troops, or possibly as corps
-troops. The mobilization of the reserve artillery,
-sapper, and cavalry, should take place together
-with that of the infantry. Every reserve brigade
-of eight battalions (8,000 rifles) should have, with
-two batteries of twelve guns, one company of
-sappers and one reserve squadron of cavalry or
-a <i>sotnia</i> of Cossacks. This arrangement would
-permit of reserve troops being employed on
-secondary objects without the organization of
-the army being broken up, and it would no longer
-be necessary to find so many divisional and
-corps commanders, with their numerous staffs.</p>
-
-<h3>Steps to augment the Combatant Element
-in our Infantry.</h3>
-
-<p>Amongst the causes of our disasters has been mentioned (<a
-href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#CHAPTER_VI">Chapter
-VI</a>.) the small number of
-rifles per company we had in action as compared
-with the Japanese. We often had more
-battalions than they, but fewer men. The
-various reasons for this I have already enumerated.
-To lessen the number of subsidiary duties which
-take men away from the fighting-line of the
-regular army, we must create cadres for the
-troops of the rear services; we must also arrange
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_132">[Pg 132]</a></span>
-that the casualties are quickly made good from
-the reserve troops, which should be kept up permanently
-and closely connected with the regular
-troops. (Every regular regiment should have
-one reserve or depôt battalion.) To augment
-the numbers fighting compared with the numbers
-fed, and, in particular, to increase the number
-of men in the firing-line, we must bring up the
-combatant establishment of our companies from
-220 to 250 rifles. With 220 rifles on the roll
-of a company, we were never able to put even
-200 in action; and in bringing the strength of
-these units up to 250, we must take steps to see
-that they all really can take the field. According
-to the “War Establishments,” a line infantry
-regiment has an establishment of 3,838 combatants
-and 159<a id="FNanchor_39"></a><a href="#Footnote_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a> non-combatants (total 3,997),
-which gives 235 rifles per company. But in this
-number are included 35 bandsmen, 33 drummers,
-1 bugler, 3 regimental quartermaster-sergeants,
-1 sergeant-major of the non-combatant company,
-5 baggage non-commissioned officers, and, moreover,
-another 240 (15 per company) detailed for
-supply work, etc. Excluding these, 3,520 combatants
-are left, which gives 220 per company;
-but experience has shown that there is much
-leakage from this number.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_133">[Pg 133]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The peculiarities of Manchuria necessitated the
-employment of men on duties that would have
-been quite unnecessary, or less necessary, in
-a European war. Thus, in addition to the
-authorized transport, we had pack transport,
-which swallowed up fifty men per regiment.
-The large herds of cattle with regiments required
-twenty-four men to look after and guard
-them. There were nine regimental butchers.
-Two or three donkeys were told off to each
-company. (Indeed, they were of such great use
-in taking water and ammunition up into the
-firing-line that I consider they should be included
-in the establishments of troops in European
-Russia.) In each company one man was
-told off to these animals. The number of
-officers on the regimental rolls included those
-who had been wounded and were away convalescent,
-and many of these took their orderlies
-with them on leaving the front. The expenditure
-in these orderlies alone amounted to more
-than 100 men. For the special pack transport
-which was formed for the scout sections for
-carriage of ammunition and supplies, thirteen
-men per regiment were required. Judging by
-the experience of the war, I consider the following
-duties ought to be allowed for in every
-regiment in addition to the establishment of
-159 non-combatants:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_134">[Pg 134]</a></span></p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="regimental non-combatants">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Company clerks</td><td class="tdr">16</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Mess caterers</td><td class="tdr">18</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Officers’ mess cooks</td><td class="tdr">4</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Men’s cooks</td>
- <td class="tdr">18</td><td class="tdfn"><a id="FNanchor_40"></a><a href="#Footnote_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Butchers and cattle guard</td><td class="tdr">12</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Officers’ grooms</td><td class="tdr">27</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Transport drivers with scout sections</td>
- <td class="tdr">13</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Instructors</td><td class="tdr">4</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Stretcher-bearers</td><td class="tdr">128</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Baggage guard</td><td class="tdr">48</td>
- <td class="tdfn"><a id="FNanchor_41"></a><a href="#Footnote_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">With water donkeys</td><td class="tdr">16</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Officers’ orderlies</td><td class="tdr">80</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Sergeant-major of non-combatant company</td>
- <td class="tdr">1</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Transport driver non-commissioned officers</td>
- <td class="tdr">5</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Despatch riders</td><td class="tdr">20</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Bandsmen</td><td class="tdr">35</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Drummers</td><td class="tdr">33</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Reserve in case of sickness and wounded</td>
- <td class="tdr">13</td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdc">Total</td><td class="total">491</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p class="noindent">All these must be classed as non-combatants.
-Adding to these the prescribed establishment
-of 159 non-combatants, we shall get a total
-of 650 with each regiment of four battalions.
-They should all be armed, and be ready to fight
-either in the advanced lines or with the baggage.</p>
-
-<p>The value of machine-guns is now so great
-that we cannot afford to be without them. In
-my opinion, each company should have one gun,
-and six men should be detailed to carry it and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_135">[Pg 135]</a></span>
-its ammunition. Thus, there would be 100 men
-with the machine-guns in a regiment (including
-four reserve men). The scout sections also did such
-useful service in the recent war that we ought
-certainly to have dismounted and small mounted
-scout sections in each regiment. This would
-take up 200 more men. Finally, the strength
-of every company, exclusive of all these extras,
-should be fixed at 250 rifles, which would make
-4,000 in the regiment. The strength of a regiment
-would, therefore, total as follows:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="regimental combatants">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Combatants (in sixteen companies)&emsp;</td>
- <td class="tdr">4,000</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Scout sections</td><td class="tdr">200</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Machine-gun sections</td><td class="tdr">150</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Non-combatants</td><td class="tdr">650</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdr"></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdc">Total</td><td class="total">5,000</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-
-<p>The present establishment of a four-battalion
-regiment is 3,838 combatants and 159 non-combatants;
-total, 3,997. Therefore a total
-increase of 1,003 per regiment is desirable.
-Including fifteen men in every company for
-supply duties, the authorized non-combatant
-element works out at:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="revised regimental non-combatants">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Non-combatants</td><td class="tdr">159</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Bandsmen, drummers, buglers</td>
- <td class="tdr">69</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Regimental quartermaster-sergeants&emsp;</td>
- <td class="tdr">3</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Sergeant-majors and baggage</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">&emsp;&emsp;non-commissioned officers</td>
- <td class="tdr">6</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">For supply duties</td><td class="tdr">240</td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdc">Total</td><td class="total">477</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_136">[Pg 136]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Fixing the total number of non-combatants
-required at 650, I thus add to the expenditure
-authorized by existing establishments 173.
-These, including stretcher-bearers, would never
-go into action. Thus, the addition necessary to
-bring the fighting element of a regiment up to
-5,000 comes out as follows:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="additions to regimental strength">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Increase of thirty rifles per company</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">&emsp;&emsp;(so as to have 250 instead of 220)&emsp;</td>
- <td class="tdr">480</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Scout sections</td><td class="tdr">200</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Machine-gun sections</td><td class="tdr">150</td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdc">Total</td><td class="total">830</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-
-<p>This increase would greatly add to its present
-strength.</p>
-
-<h3>Machine-Guns.</h3>
-
-<p>At the beginning of the war the army had
-only a small number of machine-guns. Recognizing
-the value of this weapon, the Japanese
-quickly introduced it, and furnished their field
-troops with a large number. We did the same,
-and several machine-gun companies and sections
-arrived from Russia during the summer of
-1905. But the type of weapon did not satisfy
-tactical requirements—(1) as regards its weight;
-and, (2) adaptability to the ground. A pattern
-must be invented that can be carried even
-into the outpost line. Our high, unwieldy
-weapons, with their shields, more resembled light
-field-guns; and their unsuitable construction,
-combined with the difficulty of adapting them
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_137">[Pg 137]</a></span>
-to the ground, was responsible for the decision
-that these guns should be organized into batteries,
-and be treated and used as artillery. Such
-an opinion is absolutely wrong, for the great
-volume of fire which they can deliver calls
-for their distribution at the most important
-points along the firing-line, and, therefore, a
-capability of advancing with assaulting columns.
-The organization of machine-gun companies did
-not meet the above tactical requirements. Each
-battalion should have four guns.</p>
-
-<h3>Reserve (or Depôt) Troops.</h3>
-
-<p>The reserve or depôt troops should be developed
-and given an organization which will
-permit of the wastage in units, both in officers
-and men, being made good from them immediately
-after a battle or during a long series of
-battles. Each infantry regiment should have
-its reserve (depôt) battalion, which should be
-formed on mobilization at a strength of 40 per
-cent. of the combatant establishment of a regiment—<i>i.e.</i>,
-at 1,600 men.<a id="FNanchor_42"></a><a href="#Footnote_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a> Of these, 400, or
-10 per cent. of the regiment’s strength, should
-be in the theatre of war. This number should
-be formed into one company, and should constitute
-the reserve depôt company of its particular
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_138">[Pg 138]</a></span>
-regiment, and be continually feeding it.
-With every division these companies should be
-organized together into a reserve battalion of
-1,600 men for the immediate replacement of
-casualties in the regiments of the division. All
-wounded and sick who are not sent to the base
-should be attached to this battalion till they are
-passed as fit. After great battles this reserve
-would be depleted, and would require filling up
-from the base depôt. The establishment of the
-other arms should be kept up to strength by a
-parallel arrangement. The casualties amongst
-non-combatants are less, but in their case a reserve
-is necessary, distinct from the combatant reserve,
-to make good their wastage. It should be
-mainly composed of 2nd&nbsp;Category reservists and
-those of the convalescent combatants not considered
-fit enough for the ranks.</p>
-
-<p>The war shows very clearly the immense importance
-of rapidly repairing the wastage in units
-directly after an action. The Japanese succeeded
-in doing this, with the result that they were
-greatly superior to us in numbers. It was more
-important for us to be able to replace casualties
-by drafts than to receive reinforcements, and it
-would have made us stronger. For instance,
-with five troop trains available in the twenty-four
-hours, a complete army corps with its baggage
-and parks took twenty days to reach the front,
-and increased our strength by some 25,000 rifles.
-If drafts had been sent up during those twenty-days
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_139">[Pg 139]</a></span>
-instead of an army corps, we should have
-received 90,000 to 100,000 men. In place of
-cavalry, baggage, artillery, parks, and a small
-number of infantry, we should have got a large
-number of the latter. It was infantry we wanted,
-for in our big battles it was the infantry that
-suffered so heavily. The number of guns per
-1,000 rifles was too large, and the amount of
-transport and baggage was prodigious, with the
-result that the 10,000 to 12,000 rifles left in corps
-resembled an escort to the artillery, parks,
-baggage, etc.,<a id="FNanchor_43"></a><a href="#Footnote_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a> more than anything else.</p>
-
-<h3>Troops in Rear—Communication Troops.</h3>
-
-<p>By troops in rear I mean those at rest camps,
-railway troops, road working parties, telegraph
-sections, motor troops, transport of various kinds,
-all of which should be under the general officer
-commanding communications. There is also a
-large number of men in the departments, institutions,
-and depôts of all the field administrations,
-but as in Manchuria these were mostly fixed by
-the authorized establishment, I will not refer to
-them. The absence of any prepared organization
-of troops for the line of communication, however,
-led to their being formed at the expense of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_140">[Pg 140]</a></span>
-fighting strength of the infantry. While officers
-commanding regiments complained of the great
-wastage of their men on duties in the rear, those in
-rear complained that the numbers they had were
-insufficient. Troops for the duties in rear should
-of course be formed on mobilization. In the
-part of my report upon the 1st&nbsp;Army which
-deals with the organization of the communications
-there is much valuable material which is
-based on war experience, and may be a useful
-guide for the future. By the end of August,
-1905, the strength of the 1st&nbsp;Army alone was
-300,000. Its own communications in rear had
-a depth of 150 miles and a frontage of 330 miles,
-including the detachments guarding the extreme
-left flank and the left flank corps under General
-Rennenkampf, with which we permanently occupied
-a front of about 70 miles. Under the
-general commanding the communications of the
-1st&nbsp;Army, which consisted of six army corps,
-were 650 officers and officials, 12,000 men, and
-25,000 horses, and this number was considered
-inadequate. In my report, I gave as my estimate
-for the numbers required for one army corps per
-day’s march in length of communications—</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="corps communication troops">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td class="tdr">Men.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">1.&ensp;Half company infantry</td>
- <td class="tdr">120</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">2.&ensp;Transport</td><td class="tdr">320</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">3.&ensp;Road troops</td><td class="tdr">25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">4.&ensp;Postal telegraph working parties&emsp;</td>
- <td class="tdr">5</td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdc">Total</td><td class="totalr">470</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_141">[Pg 141]</a></span></p>
-
-<h3>Engineer Troops.</h3>
-
-<p>The great development of science in warfare is
-very marked, but the late war did not display
-the employment of scientific forces that will be
-made in a struggle between two European
-Powers. In this respect the Japanese were
-much better served than we were, but even
-they were not technically equipped in the way
-that will soon be necessary. The speedy construction
-of strong fortifications, the laying of
-railways (especially of field railways) and construction
-of metalled roads, the organization of
-aerial and wireless telegraphy, of signalling by
-heliograph, lamps, and flags, the employment of
-balloons, motors, and bicycles, are all duties for
-which the demand increases every day, while the
-great quantity also of artificial obstacles, wire,
-mines, hand-grenades, explosives, reserves of
-entrenching tools, etc., now required must exist
-ready for use in large quantities. A much larger
-number of engineer troops, including sappers,
-telegraph and railway units, than we had available
-in Manchuria is necessary, in order that all
-this technical equipment may be used to the best
-advantage. Without touching here upon the
-railway troops necessary for the proper service
-of the communications, the number of which
-must depend upon the length of the existing
-lines, and of those proposed to be laid during
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_142">[Pg 142]</a></span>
-operations, let us consider the question of the
-number of sapper and telegraph troops required
-for one army corps of three divisions.</p>
-
-<p>The spade, which had been forgotten since the
-Turkish War, has once more regained its true
-position. With the volume and murderous
-effectiveness of modern fire, neither the attack
-nor the defence can be conducted without enormous
-losses, unless proper and intelligent use is
-made of digging. For a protracted defence strong
-fortified positions with both open and closed
-works and all possible kinds of artificial obstacles
-are absolutely necessary. Consequently, for the
-attack of such positions, special troops are required
-trained in the use of explosives and the destruction
-of obstacles, and in road-making, for heavy
-artillery demands good roads and strong bridges.</p>
-
-<p>While every Japanese division of twelve
-infantry battalions had one strong sapper battalion,
-we had on an average only one company
-of sappers with each division. This proved to
-be too small a proportion. Our sappers worked
-nobly in the construction of earthworks and
-roads, but they did little in actual contact with
-the enemy, and, strange as it may appear, were
-often forgotten when an action began, even when
-we attacked the enemy’s strongly fortified positions.
-In the 2nd&nbsp;Army we had several sapper
-battalions, and yet in the assault on San-de-pu<a id="FNanchor_44"></a><a href="#Footnote_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a>
-not a single company was told off to accompany
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_143">[Pg 143]</a></span>
-the storming columns. As our sappers were so
-scarce, we took the greatest care of them, as
-their small number of casualties as compared
-with those of the infantry proves. To get the
-best results from this arm, it seems to me necessary
-to associate them more with other troops,
-and therefore <i>to attach them to divisions</i>, instead
-of including them in the corps troops. If we
-succeed in getting strong regiments of 4,000 rifles,
-I consider it essential that every regiment should
-have attached to it, for offensive as well as
-defensive operations, one sapper company of
-250 men, which would mean a four-company
-sapper battalion, 1,000 strong, for every division.
-They should be trained to put up obstacles very
-rapidly, and should possess the necessary tools and
-equipment for their destruction. A large supply of
-wire is also very important; it may be taken that
-every division should have a sufficient supply of
-wire for two defensive points, say 1 ton for each.</p>
-
-<p>Moreover, there should be attached to each
-division a field-telegraph company of six sections,
-in order to organize rapid communication between
-each party of troops thrown out in front and
-the divisional staff. Each regiment should have
-with it a section which should be equipped to
-establish communication by telephone,<a id="FNanchor_45"></a><a href="#Footnote_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a> flag,
-cycle or motor. With every three-division army
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_144">[Pg 144]</a></span>
-corps there should be a sapper brigade of three
-battalions, a field-telegraph battalion of five
-companies, a mining company, a balloon section,
-and a railway battalion. Two of the telegraph
-companies should keep up communication from
-the corps to army headquarters, to other corps,
-to its own divisions, to the parks, the baggage,
-and reserves.</p>
-
-<p>One of our principal failings, as I have repeatedly
-mentioned, was lack of information.
-Owing to this, and the consequent loss of touch,
-commanders could not conduct operations intelligently
-or keep corps and army commanders and
-the Commander-in-Chief informed of what was
-happening. Every Japanese regiment laid down
-telephones as it advanced; we used to find their
-dead operators in our <i>trous de loup</i>, which
-showed that they were right up with the firing-line.
-With us touch was not infrequently lost
-even between whole corps and armies! The
-necessity for remedying this grave defect is
-obvious, and we must practise how to do this in
-peace. Not a regiment should be allowed to
-advance at manœuvres without at once being
-connected up by telephone with its brigade commander
-and the divisional staff, and it is essential
-that, as the information comes in by telegraph
-and telephone, the divisional corps and army
-staffs should at once fix on the maps the positions
-of both forces. Formerly commanders could
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_145">[Pg 145]</a></span>
-watch the whole battlefield through a telescope
-from an eminence, could see their own troops,
-and could trace the position of the hostile infantry
-and artillery from the smoke. Now there is
-nothing to be seen. Often the troops are out of
-sight, and all that meets the eye are the puffs of
-smoke from the bursting shrapnel. Therefore
-orders and dispositions have to be worked out
-on the map, and we must learn how to keep
-these maps constantly up to time. In order that
-all intelligence may be at once noted, a “service
-of communication,” by means of motors, cyclists,
-and particularly of telegraph and telephone,
-might be organized, in addition to the ordinary
-reports brought in by mounted men. To attain
-these important results, considerable expense
-must be incurred in the creation of this “service
-of communication” or “service of information”
-of such a nature as to meet in every way the
-requirements of battle, of movement, and of rest.</p>
-
-<p>An adequate number of sapper units with
-regiments will not only help us in the capture
-of fortified positions strengthened by obstacles,
-but will assist us rapidly to adapt them for
-defence when taken. The work of the mining
-company in future wars will be great both in
-attack and defence, especially in defence. It
-should have charge of all explosives required for
-demolitions, including mines, pyroxyline bombs,
-and hand-grenades. The great effect of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_146">[Pg 146]</a></span>
-bombs thrown by revolutionaries and anarchists
-points to their extensive use in war in the future.
-If fanatics can be found who will rush to certain
-death in order to kill peaceful citizens, it should
-certainly be possible to find devoted soldiers
-who will advance ahead of the firing-line and
-throw bombs into the enemy’s obstacles.</p>
-
-<p>Besides supply of field railway material for
-the army, each corps should have enough for
-thirty miles of line (steam or horse draught,
-according to circumstances).</p>
-
-<h3>Artillery</h3>
-
-<p>We have learnt by experience that skill in
-the employment of guns is more important than
-their number. Under modern battle conditions,
-when the position of a battery cannot be seen,
-a great deal of ammunition is fired during the
-artillery duel without any result. Two to four
-well-concealed guns cleverly moved from one
-position to another can hold their own with a
-brigade of artillery, and, if they can only range
-on the enemy’s guns first, rapid fire gives them
-the power of inflicting heavy loss. Our keenest
-and most experienced gunners got on to the
-enemy on many occasions with great effect, but
-as a rule our artillery did little damage. One
-occasion when very ineffective results were
-obtained by us was at Hei-kou-tai, where, in
-our endeavour to get possession of San-de-pu,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_147">[Pg 147]</a></span>
-we fired 70,000 rounds into every square,<a id="FNanchor_46"></a><a href="#Footnote_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a> except
-the one which actually contained the village.
-Our immense expenditure of ammunition also
-emphasized how carefully the question of the
-right proportion of guns in a force must be
-considered. In this war, owing to the great
-delay in sending up drafts to repair wastage, we
-were often actually handicapped by having too
-many guns! We frequently had to fight with
-divisions containing only some 6,000 to 8,000
-men in the four regiments and the full forty-eight
-guns—a proportion of six to eight guns per
-1,000 rifles, which is far too many. And
-our guns were literally an embarrassment, especially
-when they had run out of ammunition.
-Even assuming that we shall be able (as I have
-suggested) to place in the field regiments with
-a strength of 4,000 rifles, I consider it will be
-quite sufficient if we maintain the proportion of
-guns at forty-eight per division, or three guns
-per 1,000 rifles. The fire from quick-firing
-guns is nowadays quite powerful and effective
-enough for four guns to be considered a tactically
-independent fighting unit; but the formation
-of batteries of such a size is expensive,
-and requires too many men. It appears to be
-preferable, therefore, to abandon the artillery
-divisional organization, and return to the former
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_148">[Pg 148]</a></span>
-twelve-gun battery, dividing it into three companies,
-each of which would be in a tactical sense
-independent. The 48 guns—<i>i.e.</i>, four batteries—with
-an infantry division, would then be organized
-into an artillery regiment under the command
-of the divisional general. Each company would
-be commanded by a captain, the battery by a
-lieutenant-colonel, the regiment by a colonel.</p>
-
-<p>We found that for mutual and smooth co-operation
-in battle it is most important that
-batteries should operate as far as possible with
-the same regiments of infantry. Close touch is
-established, and each arm unselfishly supports
-the other. I often heard the expression, “our
-battery,” “our regiment,” and in these simple
-words a deep, underlying sentiment was expressed.
-Each battery should be capable of
-acting independently of the artillery regiment
-to which it belongs. For hill warfare mountain
-artillery should be allotted to infantry in the
-same proportion as I have suggested for field
-artillery.</p>
-
-<p>Our gun proved an excellent weapon; but
-our shrapnel, which was very effective against
-objects and troops in the open, was of no
-use against invisible targets, earthworks, and
-mud walls. Our artillery fire against villages
-held by the enemy, therefore, produced very
-little result. I consider that a new pattern of
-shell should be introduced with thicker walls
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_149">[Pg 149]</a></span>
-and a heavier bursting charge; but even then
-the effect of such light projectiles as our field-guns
-fire will not be great against the earthworks
-which are nowadays so quickly thrown
-up on positions. To prepare the way for the
-assault on such fortifications, and to obtain any
-speedy result in attacking defended localities,
-we must have field howitzers of a modern type.
-They should be organized in regiments of two
-batteries (twenty-four howitzers), and attached
-to a corps as corps artillery. Finally, it is
-essential that every army should have a light
-siege-train to assist in the capture of strongly
-defended posts and heavy works.</p>
-
-<p>The organization of park units was well conceived,
-but the vehicles were unsuited to the
-Manchurian roads. I am afraid to express an
-opinion in favour of a further increase of mobile
-parks, because we were so overburdened with
-baggage of different kinds. I think it is preferable
-to improvise local parks at railway-stations
-and junctions, as we did in Manchuria.</p>
-
-<p>Small-arm ammunition rarely ran short, but
-there was often a great lack of gun ammunition,
-and after the battles of Liao-yang, the Sha&nbsp;Ho,
-and Mukden, our reserves for filling up battery
-and park stocks were exhausted. The average
-expenditure of rifle ammunition worked out as
-follows: For a whole-day battle for one battalion,
-21,000 rounds, with a maximum of 400,000; an
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_150">[Pg 150]</a></span>
-hour’s fighting for one battalion, 1,700, with a
-maximum of 67,000. The total reserve taken
-with a four-battalion infantry regiment was
-800,000. The average expenditure per quick-firing
-field-gun in a one-day battle worked out
-at 55 rounds, with a maximum of 522; an hour’s
-fighting, 10 rounds, with a maximum of 210.</p>
-
-<p>In the earlier fights the work of the artillery
-varied a good deal, and was not very successful;
-but as they gained experience, many batteries
-fought splendidly, not only against guns, but
-against rifle-fire. Compared with the work of
-our artillery in 1877–78 (in the European theatre
-of operations), we have made considerable progress
-in skill, and the very heavy losses in killed
-and wounded in many batteries prove that our
-gunners know how to die. The horse artillery
-work depended entirely on the commanders of
-the cavalry units to which the batteries were
-attached, and when these commanders really
-meant fighting the batteries did good work.
-As a proof of this, it is enough to recall the
-gallant conduct of the 1st&nbsp;Trans-Baikal Cossack
-Horse Artillery Battery attached to Mischenko’s
-Trans-Baikal Cossack Brigade. This battery
-and its young commander were known to the
-whole army; more than once it successfully
-fought several of the enemy’s batteries, and yet
-its losses were insignificant. Sometimes our
-cavalry leaders were unnecessarily anxious to
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_151">[Pg 151]</a></span>
-retire, as was the case in the cavalry of the
-2nd&nbsp;Army at the battle of Mukden, when the
-two batteries which were with it lost <i>only two men
-wounded and one missing in eleven days’ fighting</i>.
-One six-gun battery was sufficient for four
-mounted regiments of such strength as we had.
-As said above, there should be one artillery
-regiment of four batteries (48 guns) with each
-infantry division, or a total of 144 guns for the
-three divisions. These three regiments would be
-organized in a brigade. There should also be one
-regiment of 24 howitzers with each corps.</p>
-
-<h3>Cavalry.</h3>
-
-<p>Though our cavalry was numerous, its work
-hardly came up to our expectations, but where it
-was properly commanded it did well enough. In
-my opinion, the main reform that is necessary
-in the cavalry is to improve their training. Till
-it is educated to feel that it should fight as
-<i>obstinately as infantry</i>, the money expended on
-our mounted Arm will be thrown away. If
-infantry can still continue fighting after losing
-50 per cent. of their strength, cavalry should be
-able to do the same. In action we nursed the
-cavalry too much; out of action we did not take
-sufficient care of it. Though they had not lost
-a man, whole regiments were moved to the rear
-as soon as the first shrapnel began bursting near
-them. The four regiments of cavalry—two
-dragoon and two Cossack—on whom fell the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_152">[Pg 152]</a></span>
-most difficult but the most honourable duty of
-obtaining information and opposing the leading
-units of Nogi’s enveloping forces at the battle
-of Mukden, lost in killed and wounded:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="cavalry losses">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td></td><td></td><td></td>
- <td class="tdc"><span class="small">Men.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">February 25</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;2</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">March 2</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;1</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">March 4</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;1</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">March 5</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;7</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">March 6</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;2</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">March 7</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;6</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">March 8</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;1</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">March 9</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;1</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">March 10</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&ensp;1</td>
- </tr>
- <tr><td></td></tr>
- <tr>
- <td></td>
- <td class="tdc">Total</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="total">22</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p>Which works out at less than one man per
-squadron and <i>sotnia</i>. The casualties in almost
-every company of infantry were more than in
-these twenty-four squadrons and <i>sotnias</i>. It is
-quite plain that these units did not fight, but
-merely avoided the enemy; and it is equally
-plain that, by avoiding battle, the cavalry neither
-checked the enemy’s movement nor got any
-information about him. The material of which
-our cavalry was composed was excellent, but
-everything depended on those in command. In
-the battle of Te-li-ssu the infantry of the
-1st&nbsp;Siberian Corps lost 2,500 men; the Primorsk
-Dragoon Regiment, belonging to the same corps,
-lost one!</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_153">[Pg 153]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>But I repeat that where their leaders meant
-fighting the cavalry did their duty and suffered
-heavily. Take, for example, the Trans-Baikal
-Cossacks, which did so well under Mischenko,
-and the Caucasian Brigade. The Siberian
-Cossacks, under Samsonoff, fought at Liao-yang
-and the Yen-tai Mines with greater bravery
-than was displayed by some of Orloff’s infantry,
-while the independent <i>sotnias</i> of the Don and
-Orenburg Voiskos, and the dragoons under
-Stakhovitch, were no whit behind them. Indeed,
-the men of the Primorsk Dragoon Regiment
-were good enough; it was the officers who failed
-in not getting the best out of them. The independent
-units of all the Cossacks did well, but
-it was out of the question to expect martial
-ardour or a keen desire to perform feats of
-gallantry in old men such as formed the
-3rd&nbsp;Category Cossack regiments. But even
-these 3rd&nbsp;Category regiments could do good
-work when skilfully handled. The Cossack
-horses generally, and the Trans-Baikal horses in
-particular, were too small; while those of the
-Don regiments were sturdy, but rather soft.
-The Trans-Baikal Cossacks on their shaggy little
-ponies reminded one more of mounted infantry
-than cavalry. On the whole, however, our
-cavalry worked far better than in the Russo-Turkish
-War under Generals Kuiloff and Loshkareff
-at Plevna. The great difficulty now is
-to find and train cavalry leaders; in Manchuria,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_154">[Pg 154]</a></span>
-according to most accounts, the juniors were
-good, the field officers moderate, and the general
-officers, with few exceptions, bad.</p>
-
-<p>The personality of the officer in command of
-a regiment of cavalry is a very important factor,
-as his merits and weak points are very quickly
-known, and as soon as a man in such a post shows
-himself unsuitable he should be removed. (This
-also applies to the general officers.) But I rarely
-found a divisional or corps commander who would
-report on the unsuitability of senior commanders
-under them; they even concealed cases of
-cowardice. It was only at the conclusion of
-hostilities that it transpired that several had not
-only shown a lack of keenness, but even of
-personal courage. Some of the regimental commanders
-were very old; at fifty-five a man is too
-old for the command of a regiment. As in the
-infantry, the post of cavalry brigadier should be improved,
-and made a more important appointment.
-To it should be given the executive and administrative
-powers now wielded by divisional generals.</p>
-
-<p>Three brigades should be formed into a division,
-the divisional general being given the powers of
-an army corps commander. There is no necessity
-for a higher organization. To the division of
-three brigades should be allotted a twelve-gun
-battery of horse artillery (three companies of four
-guns each). To every three-division army corps
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_155">[Pg 155]</a></span>
-should be added one cavalry or Cossack brigade.
-One of the regiments of this brigade should act
-as divisional cavalry, two squadrons or <i>sotnias</i>
-with each division. If it is thought desirable
-that commanders of infantry divisions become
-acquainted with cavalry in peace-time, then two
-squadrons should be stationed in the area of the
-divisions under them.</p>
-
-<h3>Infantry.</h3>
-
-<p>As in former wars, so in Manchuria was the
-heat and burden of the day borne by our infantry,
-and there is no doubt that, in the future, infantry
-will retain its name as the principal Arm. The
-importance of other Arms depends entirely on
-the extent to which they assist infantry to defeat
-the enemy, for the latter is the final arbiter of
-victory or defeat. But infantry cannot work
-alone, and nowadays, if it is not assisted in action
-by artillery, cavalry, and sappers, if every resource
-of modern science is not brought into play to
-lighten its heavy task, it will either fail or will
-buy victory at too high a price. It is to infantry,
-as the principal Arm, that we must pay our chief
-attention. <i>And yet with us service in the Line is
-not considered so honourable as service in the other
-branches!</i> From the moment of the selection
-of its recruits we do everything to weaken it.
-Even the pattern of uniform worn by our Line
-infantryman is particularly ugly. In his
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_156">[Pg 156]</a></span>
-old-fashioned, badly fitting tunic, overburdened with
-haversacks and equipment of all sorts, he is anything
-but a martial sight. This is an aspect of
-the case which cannot be ignored, and it is almost
-as important that a man’s uniform should be
-comfortable and attractive as that it should meet
-all the purely military requirements. All ranks
-should be enabled to admire their own dress and
-be proud of it. Up to the present, the majority
-of Line officers have not been given a good
-enough general or military education. Officers
-of all arms should receive a general education
-not lower than the intermediate standard of
-the national educational establishments, and a
-military education not lower than that of the
-military schools. We should teach the line
-officer to have a love and respect for the Arm in
-which he serves, as well as a knowledge of its
-particular rôle in battle, and must therefore raise
-his social position so that he may be a welcome
-guest in any society. We must provide him
-with a comfortable, inexpensive, and smart
-uniform. We must protect him from being
-abused by his seniors in the presence of his
-juniors, and in every possible manner encourage
-the development in him of an independent spirit.
-Bravery alone is not sufficient nowadays to
-attain victory; knowledge, initiative, and willingness
-to accept responsibility are also required.
-Infantry have always had a hard part in action,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_157">[Pg 157]</a></span>
-and have always suffered great loss, but the
-modern battle which lasts for days makes greater
-demands upon their mental and physical endurance
-than ever before. With a large proportion
-of reservists and short-service men, we cannot
-rely on perfection in the soldier; it is therefore
-all the more necessary that we should take steps
-to obtain it in our officers, and for this purpose
-we are lucky in having excellent and responsive
-material. Under all the arduous conditions
-under which the majority of our regiments had
-to fight, the greatest trials fell to the infantry
-officer, and right well he did his duty. It is
-quite enough to compare the casualties amongst
-those officers with those of their brothers in the
-cavalry, artillery, and sappers to see on whom
-fell the chief hardships and dangers. In some
-regiments the whole set of officers was changed
-several times. The following figures serve as an
-illustration of how they suffered:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="Siberian infantry casualties">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td class="tdc">Killed and<br />Wounded.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">The 3rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">102</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">The 34th East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&ensp;89</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">The 36th East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&ensp;73</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">The 1st East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&ensp;71</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">The 4th East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&ensp;61</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">The 23rd East Siberian Rifle Regiment lost</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdc">&ensp;50</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-
-<p>It is impossible to recall the gallant war services
-of these and of the officers of many other regiments
-without profound respect and emotion.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_158">[Pg 158]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It must always be borne in mind that the
-infantry of the Line is the backbone of our
-Service in peace as well as in war. Consequently,
-we should make much more of those who serve
-in it than we do, and give them a better chance.
-At present the list of regimental commanding
-officers includes far too many Guardsmen or
-officers of the General Staff. I am convinced
-that if the importance of service in the Line is
-to be maintained, we must put an end to the
-present unfair acceleration of promotion amongst
-Guards and General Staff officers as compared
-with that of their brothers. The latter produce
-a great many men capable of being good regimental
-commanders; all that is wanted is to
-know how to select them. Since the last Turkish
-War they have undoubtedly made considerable
-progress, and it is for us to arrange that this
-improvement is continued by fostering it in
-every way.</p>
-
-<p>Owing to casualties, the company commanders
-were changed too often for efficiency, but they
-generally performed good service, lack of initiative
-being, as usual, their chief fault. It is most
-important for the good of the Service that captains
-(of all arms) displaying distinguished military
-qualifications should be quickly promoted to
-field rank. Yet recommendations sent to St.
-Petersburg were not acted on for a very long
-time, if ever. In such a matter some discretion
-should be allowed the Commander-in-Chief, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_159">[Pg 159]</a></span>
-he should be empowered to promote junior
-officers to the rank of Lieutenant-Colonel for
-distinguished service in the field. Special men
-would thus arrive at the command of independent
-units and regiments, posts where the personality
-of the man in command is so important. It
-often happened that a regiment which had done
-badly absolutely changed its character with a
-change of commanding officers. Seniority should
-not be the only guide for promotion, and the
-establishment of field-officers in Manchuria constituted
-a quite adequate number from which
-good regimental commanders could have been
-liberally selected. During the period when we
-were occupying the Hsi-ping-kai positions, many
-of the regimental commanders in all the armies
-were good men, and the 1st&nbsp;Army was particularly
-lucky in this respect. Though many of
-the infantry brigadiers who came out to the war
-proved failures, amongst the regimental commanders
-were many capable field-officers, whose
-advancement to the rank of General gave us
-some first-class brigade commanders. In the
-1st&nbsp;Army alone were Major-Generals Lechitski,
-Stelnitski, Dushkevitch, Lesha, Riedko, Dobotin,
-etc. Thus, even under the unfavourable conditions
-under which they served, we found enough
-good material amongst our infantry officers to
-give us some confidence for the future. Had
-the war been continued, many of the colonels
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_160">[Pg 160]</a></span>
-promoted to generals for distinguished service
-would have commanded divisions. This is as
-it should be, for it ought to be possible for a
-regimental commander to rise within a year to
-the command even of an army corps, if he be
-sufficiently brilliant.</p>
-
-<p>I repeat that the tasks which fall upon infantry
-in battle nowadays are of such exceptional
-difficulty that the promotion of its officers for
-distinguished field service should be made exceptionally
-rapid. I am aware that even a good
-regimental commander may make a bad divisional
-general; but I also maintain that a regimental
-commander who has successfully commanded in
-several fights, has shown a knowledge of his
-work, keenness, enterprise, and personal bravery,
-and has won the confidence of his men, should
-be promoted as quickly as possible. He may
-find it difficult at first to get his bearings under
-the new and more complicated conditions of a
-high command, where he has to rely upon maps
-and the reports of others instead of upon the
-direct evidence of his own eyes and ears, but still
-he will grapple with the situation, even of an army
-corps commander, far better than some general
-whose experience has been confined to office-work
-and peace manœuvres.</p>
-
-<p>Finally, in order to give due importance to the
-principal Arm—infantry (infantry of the Line in
-particular)—I consider the following measures
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_161">[Pg 161]</a></span>
-necessary:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;To give a better education to the officers
-entering it.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;To improve their material and social position.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;To provide officers and men with a smarter
-uniform.</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;To accelerate their promotion and put an
-end to the system by which Guardsmen and
-officers of the General Staff get more rapid
-advancement, and so block the way of their
-unfortunate brothers to regimental and divisional
-commands.</p>
-
-<p>5.&ensp;To facilitate as much as possible the special
-promotion in war of distinguished company
-officers to field rank.</p>
-
-<p>6.&ensp;To award regimental commanders who
-display particular merit on service rapid advancement
-to the rank of General, without regard to
-their seniority or the speed of their promotion.</p>
-
-<p>The two last of these recommendations also
-obviously apply to officers of the other Arms.</p>
-
-<h3>Organization.</h3>
-
-<p>In my opinion, our experiences in the recent
-war have shown the necessity for such an organization
-in our army as I will now describe:</p>
-
-<p><i>Infantry Regiment</i>: To consist of 4 battalions,
-each of 4 companies. Each company
-to have a strength of 250 combatants. In
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_162">[Pg 162]</a></span>
-addition to the 16 combatant companies per
-regiment, there should be scout sections (mounted
-and dismounted), and machine-gun sections
-with 16 portable guns. Strength of regiment,
-5,000 men.</p>
-
-<p><i>Cavalry and Cossack Regiments</i>: As at present.</p>
-
-<p><i>Infantry Brigade</i>: 2 regiments, 8 battalions.</p>
-
-<p><i>Cavalry Brigade</i>: 2 regiments, 12 squadrons
-or <i>sotnias</i>.</p>
-
-<p>All brigades should be capable of acting
-independently.</p>
-
-<p><i>Infantry Division</i>: To consist of 2 infantry
-brigades, 1 regiment of artillery,<a id="FNanchor_47"></a><a href="#Footnote_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a> 1 sapper battalion,
-1 telegraph company, 2 squadrons or
-<i>sotnias</i> of cavalry, transport company, parks,
-bakeries, hospitals. Total, 17 battalions, 48 guns,
-and 2 squadrons or <i>sotnias</i>.</p>
-
-<p><i>Cavalry Division</i>: To consist of 3 separate
-brigades, 1 horse artillery battery. Total,
-36 squadrons or <i>sotnias</i>, and 12 guns.</p>
-
-<p><i>Army Corps</i>: To consist of 3 infantry divisions,
-1 artillery brigade, including a regiment of
-howitzers, 1 cavalry brigade,<a id="FNanchor_48"></a><a href="#Footnote_48" class="fnanchor">[48]</a> 1 sapper brigade,<a id="FNanchor_49"></a><a href="#Footnote_49" class="fnanchor">[49]</a>
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_163">[Pg 163]</a></span>
-1 transport battalion, 1 battalion for camps on
-the line of communication. Total, 48 battalions,
-169 guns, 12 squadrons or <i>sotnias</i>, and 3 sapper
-battalions.</p>
-
-<p><i>Reserve Troops</i>: To be formed into independent
-brigades, to which the reserve units of
-artillery, cavalry, and sappers should be attached.
-Each brigade to consist of 8 battalions, 2 batteries
-(24 guns), 1 squadron or <i>sotnia</i>, 2 sapper
-companies, half a company of telegraphists, transport,
-hospitals, and bakeries. These brigades,
-being organized on an independent footing, would
-be attached to the armies; they would be detailed
-either as part of the army reserve or for independent
-work in guarding the flanks and rear,
-or be joined to corps, according to circumstances.</p>
-
-<p>This, I think, will give great independence
-to all units, and the creation of independent
-reserve brigades, outside of the divisional and
-corps organization, would often prevent the
-breaking up of this organization when a battle
-was in progress. To organize reserve field troops
-beforehand in field formations, such as divisions
-of three brigades, or corps, is not a convenient or
-suitable arrangement, as they will not be ready to
-take part in the fighting as soon as the regulars.</p>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>Amongst steps which will raise the status of
-regimental service, and so attract the best men
-to it, I consider it necessary, in addition to
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_164">[Pg 164]</a></span>
-providing an attractive uniform, to establish
-ranks distinct from those borne by officers on
-the staff, in administrative offices, and in departments.
-According to the scale of our
-military hierarchy, the various commands (exclusive
-of the Cossack troops) carry ranks as
-follows:</p>
-
-<p>Sub-Lieutenant, Cornet, Lieutenant, and Staff-Captain
-in the different Arms are the ranks
-given to the junior officers in companies,
-squadrons, and batteries.</p>
-
-<p>A Captain commands a company or a squadron.</p>
-
-<p>A Lieutenant-Colonel commands a battalion,
-a battery, and a cavalry division.<a id="FNanchor_50"></a><a href="#Footnote_50" class="fnanchor">[50]</a></p>
-
-<p>A Colonel commands a regiment and a division
-of artillery.</p>
-
-<p>A Major-General commands a brigade.</p>
-
-<p>A Lieutenant-General commands a division.</p>
-
-<p>A Lieutenant-General or a full General commands
-an army corps or a military district.</p>
-
-<p>All these ranks are also conferred on officers
-serving on the staff and in departments. Thus,
-the rank of Colonel, which ought only to be
-given to men in command of regiments, is also
-borne by those on the administrative and police
-staffs, while generals of all grades, who have
-never held command of troops or even of small
-units, fill up our Generals list. At the time
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_165">[Pg 165]</a></span>
-I framed the regulation to limit the number of
-promotions to General’s rank of men not actually
-in the army I was much bothered by numerous
-officers who feared that their further promotion
-might be blocked. The present large number
-of ranks amongst the officer class is not required.
-It is quite possible to reduce them,
-and to give to these their old Russian names
-(to which the Cossack<a id="FNanchor_51"></a><a href="#Footnote_51" class="fnanchor">[51]</a> troops still adhere), for
-officers of all Arms doing regimental service—namely,
-<i>Khorunji</i>, <i>Sotnik</i>, and <i>Esaoul</i>. The
-rank of <i>Pod-esaoul</i>, which was adopted later,
-might be excluded. <i>Esaouls</i> would command
-companies, squadrons, <i>sotnias</i>, and companies
-(of artillery); <i>Sotniks</i> would command half-companies,
-half-squadrons; and <i>Khorunjis</i> would
-command sections. The normal establishment
-of a company would be one <i>Esaoul</i>, two <i>Sotniks</i>,
-and four <i>Khorunjis</i>. The same should be done
-in the cavalry. For those not serving regimentally
-the ranks of Ensign, Lieutenant, and
-Captain might be maintained, those of Sub-Lieutenant
-and Staff-Captain being abolished.
-The present ranks of field-officers might be
-conferred on those officers not doing regimental
-service, and the titles of <i>Voiskovoi Starshina</i> and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_166">[Pg 166]</a></span>
-Colonel on those with regiments. The first would
-command a battalion, a division of cavalry or
-artillery; the second, regiments of all Arms.
-The rank of Lieutenant-Colonel to be kept for
-staff and departmental officers, and the rank of
-Major should be introduced instead of that of
-Colonel. The names of the ranks of those
-serving with troops to correspond generally to
-the nature of the appointment; thus, officers
-commanding brigades should be called Brigadiers,
-those in charge of divisions, Divisional Generals,
-of an army corps, Corps Generals. The latter
-rank should also be given to commanders of
-military districts and their assistants. The only
-officers not actually serving with troops who
-should be allowed to have the title of Corps
-General should be three: the War Minister
-and the chiefs of the General and Headquarter
-Staffs. For service away from troops only two
-ranks of General should be maintained—Major-General
-and Lieutenant-General. The titles
-Generals of Infantry and Cavalry, etc., should
-be abolished. The grading would then be as
-follows:</p>
-
-<p class="rservice">A.—FOR REGIMENTAL SERVICE.</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="gradings for regimental service">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Commander of section</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdl">Khorunji.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Commander of half-company, half-squadron,</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">&emsp;&emsp;half-<i>sotnia</i></td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdl">Sotnik.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Commander of company, squadron, <i>sotnia</i>,</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">&emsp;&emsp;artillery company</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdl">Esaoul.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Commanding battalion, battery,</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">&emsp;&emsp;division of cavalry</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdl">Voiskovoi Starshina.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Commanding regiment</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdl">Colonel.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Commander of brigade</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdl">Brigadier.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Commander of division</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdl">Divisional General.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Commander of corps</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td class="tdl">Corps General.</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_167">[Pg 167]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="xrservice">B.—FOR EXTRA REGIMENTAL SERVICE.</p>
-
-<p class="center reduced skip1">Ensign, Lieutenant, Captain,
-Lieutenant-Colonel, Major,<br />
-Major-General, and Lieutenant-General.</p>
-
-<p>Except in the case of the chief staff-officers
-of districts, the transfer of general officers not
-with troops to service with troops should be forbidden.
-The appointments of Corps Chief Staff-officers
-and Quartermaster-Generals on the staffs
-of districts should carry the rank of Major. Officers
-going into other departments should take purely
-civil rank, and promotion on retirement should
-be abolished. To accelerate the advancement
-of specially distinguished colonels, it should be
-possible to appoint them to brigades with the
-rank of Brigadier. There is at present great confusion
-in this matter of accelerated promotion in
-deserving cases, for colonels can be given the
-command of independent brigades, and yet not
-of non-independent ones.</p>
-
-<p>As war is a greater strain on the officers than
-on the men, it is important, when granting
-special privileges for regimental service to the
-latter, that great care should be taken to insure
-their physical fitness. A particularly bad form
-of unfitness is that caused by corpulence, and,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_168">[Pg 168]</a></span>
-unfortunately, many even of our company officers
-suffered from this in Manchuria. One of our
-regimental commanders was so stout that he
-was practically helpless, and was taken prisoner
-at Te-li-ssu, though unwounded! As to the
-rank and file, hill-climbing with an 80-pound
-equipment makes campaigning very arduous for
-those of forty years of age or over. Company
-and field officers can well serve up to fifty, but
-commanding officers of cavalry should not be
-over fifty, and of infantry regiments over fifty-five.
-The age-limit for generals in command
-of brigades and divisions should be sixty, and
-of corps sixty-three. The necessity for the age
-regulations we now have became apparent during
-the war, for as a result of them our field-officers
-were relatively young; but our experience proves
-that the limit should be still further lowered in
-the direction I have mentioned.</p>
-
-<p>The proposals set forth above, which it is
-thought would tend to increase our fighting
-efficiency, are, after all, only details of organization
-and of preparation. The main factors
-contributing to insure victory are the same as
-they always have been—a high <i>moral</i> and the
-power of rapid concentration in superior strength.
-Diplomacy must prepare for the struggle so as
-to enable all the armed forces of the Empire to
-be put into the field if necessary, and we must
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_169">[Pg 169]</a></span>
-have numerous efficient railways to facilitate the
-rapid massing of superior numbers. On these
-two most important factors will depend the plan
-of campaign. The ability to assume the offensive
-bestows an immense superiority, for it gives the
-initiative to the side which undertakes it. The
-defender’s leading troops are compelled to fall
-back, his less prepared troops are perhaps
-crushed, while his reinforcements are destroyed
-piecemeal. The result is that the <i>moral</i> of the
-attacker increases, while that of the enemy inevitably
-diminishes. To re-establish a balance
-under such conditions is not only a matter of
-time, but is extremely difficult. With a defensive
-plan of operations, unshakeable belief in
-eventual success and immense patience are
-necessary in order to overcome all difficulties,
-and to defeat the foe with a final assumption
-of the offensive.</p>
-
-<p>From the short sketch I have given of what
-was accomplished by the Russian armed forces
-in the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries, it is
-seen that we took the offensive in the majority
-of the wars we were engaged in. Without
-railways, but with a large peace standing army
-(period of service twenty-five years with the
-colours), with equality and often a superiority<a id="FNanchor_52"></a><a href="#Footnote_52" class="fnanchor">[52]</a>
-in armament and training, Russia was able to
-commence operations, and to force her will
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_170">[Pg 170]</a></span>
-upon the enemy—<i>i.e.</i>, to assume the offensive.
-Nowadays we have been left behind by our
-Western neighbours in readiness for hostilities,
-and the recent war disclosed the fact that we
-had been outdistanced by our Eastern neighbour
-also. Russia will, no doubt, in time find the
-strength and means once more to take her
-former place amongst other Powers as regards
-fighting efficiency; but it will take years of
-unceasing effort, for rapid concentration and an
-offensive strategy are impossible without great
-developments in our railway system. No one
-can say whether we shall be allowed to wait for
-everything to be perfected, or whether we shall
-again be drawn into war before we are ready.
-It is therefore absolutely necessary to prepare
-without loss of time to make war under conditions
-as unfavourable as those of the recent
-conflict.</p>
-
-<p>Without referring here to the necessity for
-diplomatic preparation for hostilities, and the
-proper attitude of all grades of Russian society
-during war, I will comment in the most general
-lines on those measures which should, in my
-opinion, be taken for the more useful employment
-of resources already at our disposal. The principle
-which is of such importance in field operations,
-that troops once engaged will not be
-relieved, must be finally accepted. Therefore,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_171">[Pg 171]</a></span>
-every unit going into action should know that
-it will be supported, but not replaced. The
-principle in its broadest sense applies without
-distinction to all ranks who join the field army,
-and till victory has been attained not a soul
-should be able to return home or receive another
-appointment outside the theatre of operations.
-Those who prove themselves unfit for their
-appointments at the actual front should be given
-other employments for which their bodily and
-mental qualifications are fitted. In such a
-serious business as war in defence of country
-no personal ambition should or can have place,
-and the removal of a person from the field army
-should be considered the greatest possible disgrace—a
-stain which the service of a lifetime
-cannot efface. Officers thus removed should be
-deprived of their military rank, dismissed the
-Service, and should forfeit all rights and privileges
-gained in the Service, and officers and men
-so removed should be deprived of the right to
-hold any Government post whatever, whether
-under the War Department or not.</p>
-
-<p>The punishment for cowardice should be death.</p>
-
-<p>I have touched upon the question of accelerated
-promotion for good service in the field, and the
-converse applies. Senior commanders who show
-themselves unfit for their appointments ought to
-be at once removed from their commands and
-given posts corresponding to their capabilities.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_172">[Pg 172]</a></span>
-Commanders of corps and divisions considered
-unfit may, in order to guard their military
-honour, request to be allowed to remain in the
-army in command of divisions or brigades.
-Only one kind of seniority can be acknowledged
-in war—namely, the ability to gain the
-victory. General officers incompetent for field
-service can do very useful work on the lines of
-communications, in the direction and training of
-the reserve troops, the management of hospitals,
-the administration of the inhabitants of the
-country, etc. If we ever mean to be capable of
-defeating a powerful enemy, we must not allow
-an army corps commander who is struck off
-from the command of his corps, and who does
-not even display personal courage, to become a
-member of the Committee of Imperial Defence;
-nor must we allow junior commanders who fail
-when tested by war to receive appointments in
-non-mobilized units, nor permit hundreds of
-officers who leave the front on account of ill-health,
-and under various pretexts, to remain
-away and not return. I say nothing of the case
-where an army commander leaves his army
-during active hostilities without even reporting
-his departure to the Commander-in-Chief.</p>
-
-<p>If courts of honour are found to be a necessity
-in peace-time, how much more are they necessary
-in war? In addition to being formed in regiments,
-they should be formed in corps and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_173">[Pg 173]</a></span>
-armies to adjudicate upon the conduct in action
-of senior commanders up to the rank of Divisional
-General. It is vital that the existing immunity
-of men who show cowardice in action, or who are
-guilty of disgraceful conduct out of action, should
-at once cease. For this purpose I consider we
-should form soldiers’ courts of honour in every
-company and independent unit, as a means for
-suppressing the worst elements found in the
-ranks. For, with the lack of moral development
-of the modern man in the street, it is absolutely
-necessary to have some such tribunals upon
-whose verdict corporal punishment can be
-awarded to private soldiers. To leave the field
-under the pretext of assisting or carrying away
-the wounded—except for the men specially
-detailed for this duty—should be punished with
-the utmost rigour. And to fight an action to a
-finish, officers must not hesitate to sacrifice their
-last reserves, if necessary, and also themselves.
-It is necessary to draw attention to this, as
-instances occurred in the war where officers,
-having given orders for a retirement, were themselves
-the first to go. Such an example is always
-infectious, and leads to disorganization of units
-and loss of confidence in the commander. Commanders
-of forces who do not in battle support
-neighbouring units when able to do so should be
-deprived of their appointments, tried, and, if
-necessary, punished by death. Commanders of
-all ranks should be thoroughly alive to the value
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_174">[Pg 174]</a></span>
-of every man in the ranks. Therefore, every
-endeavour should be made to keep units as strong
-as possible during an action.</p>
-
-<p>Finally, I will touch briefly on several points.
-I will permit myself to express the opinion that
-the existing regulations as to rewards in war
-require revision and considerable alteration. At
-present far too many honours are bestowed.
-Another point that demands attention is that of
-malingering. As we have seen, sickness was
-more prevalent amongst the officers, in spite of
-their better living, than among the men. Unfortunately,
-also, the medical officers more than
-once called my attention, when I was inspecting
-hospitals, to cases of malingering amongst officers
-as well as men. The great majority of patients,
-of course, were really ill, but much of the sickness
-was due to the individual not taking proper care
-of himself. Officers must realize that, however
-honourable a thing it is to be wounded, it is as
-dishonourable to remain in hospital when their
-comrades are fighting. It should be ruled for
-all ranks that in such cases the period of sickness
-should not count as service, and that during it
-pay should be forfeited. All officers and officials
-absenting themselves for more than two months
-should be removed from their appointments,
-and appointed to the reserve or depôt troops.
-Amongst the many regrettable things to be
-noted in the late war was the disgraceful conditions
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_175">[Pg 175]</a></span>
-under which both men and officers were
-often taken prisoner. The existing regulations,
-which lay down that all the circumstances of a
-case of capture should be investigated, were not
-complied with. Officers who returned straight
-to Russia from being prisoners in Japan were
-appointed by the War Department even to the
-command of divisions. There is only one thing
-which justifies capture—the fact of being
-wounded. All those who surrender when they
-have not been wounded should be tried by court-martial
-for not fighting to the last.</p>
-
-<p>The regulations regarding fortresses should be
-revised, and the occasions upon which a fortress
-is allowed to surrender should be absolutely cut
-out, for fortresses may be taken, but should
-never, under any circumstances, surrender. Commandants
-of fortresses who surrender them, captains
-who surrender their ships, officers in command
-of units that lay down their arms, should
-be considered as forfeiting all rights, and should
-be condemned to be shot without trial, and
-all those not in command who surrender unwounded
-should be deprived of their military
-rank from the day of their surrender. During
-the war the Press did much to undermine the
-authority of officers in command, and to lower
-the <i>moral</i> of the men, by indiscriminate revelations.
-In the next war only such events should
-be allowed to appear in the newspapers as may
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_176">[Pg 176]</a></span>
-help to encourage the men. When active operations
-are over, the circumstances are changed,
-and it is then essential for the good of the Service
-to have a thorough investigation into all shortcomings.</p>
-
-<p>But it is not sufficient that all ranks of the
-army should be imbued with the spirit of fighting
-on till victory is won; it is necessary that the
-whole nation should have the same feeling, and
-to the best of their ability assist towards a happy
-issue of the struggle being carried on by the
-army. In our state of backwardness (especially
-as regards railways) we are doomed in our next
-war to a slow concentration, and therefore to a
-protracted campaign. Being unable at once to
-put large forces into the field, and to seize the initiative,
-we may again be compelled to bear the consequences
-of our unreadiness—frequent reverses,
-and retirement; but we must, without wavering,
-firmly believe in eventual success, however unfavourable
-the conditions at the start. The
-moral and material resources of Russia are
-immense, and the fixed determination on the
-part of the army and the whole nation to win is
-our principal guarantee of victory.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_177">[Pg 177]</a></span></p>
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII<br />
-<span class="capsub1">SUMMARY OF THE WAR</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>I have already reviewed<a
-id="FNanchor_53"></a><a href="#Footnote_53" class="fnanchor">[53]</a>
-(in Chapters <a
-href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#CHAPTER_VIII">VIII.</a>,
-<a href="#CHAPTER_IX">IX.</a>, <a href="#CHAPTER_X">X.</a>, and <a
-href="#CHAPTER_XI">XI.</a>) the causes of our failure. They can be
-summarized in three groups:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;Those causes independent of the War
-Ministry.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;Those dependent on the War Ministry,
-for which officers in the field had no responsibility.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;Those for which officers in the field were
-alone responsible.</p>
-
-<p>The first group comprises—</p>
-
-<p>(<i>a</i>)&ensp;The absence of any diplomatic arrangement
-which would have enabled us to despatch
-and distribute our whole army freely as circumstances
-dictated (similar to that which
-in 1870–71 made it possible for the Prussians
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_178">[Pg 178]</a></span>
-to move the whole of their armed forces against
-France).</p>
-
-<p>(<i>b</i>)&ensp;The subordinate part played by the fleet
-during the war.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>c</i>)&ensp;The inferiority of the Siberian and Eastern
-Chinese Railways.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>d</i>)&ensp;The internal disorders in Russia, which
-affected the spirit of the army.</p>
-
-<p>The second group comprises—</p>
-
-<p>(<i>a</i>)&ensp;The delay in mobilizing the reinforcements
-for the Far East.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>b</i>)&ensp;The transfer into the reserve during the
-war of well-trained soldiers—men who were
-still liable for colour service—from the military
-districts in European Russia, while untrained
-elderly reservists were being sent to the front.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>c</i>)&ensp;The belated despatch of drafts to the
-front. (The reason of this was also the inefficiency
-of the railways.)</p>
-
-<p>(<i>d</i>)&ensp;The delay in promoting those who particularly
-distinguished themselves in the field.
-(Many recommendations were ignored.)</p>
-
-<p>(<i>e</i>)&ensp;The deficiencies in our technical equipment.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>f</i>)&ensp;The faults of organization (absence of
-troops for protecting communications, dearth
-of transport, unwieldiness of the army and corps
-organizations).</p>
-
-<p>(<i>g</i>)&ensp;Deficiencies in the <i>personnel</i> both of
-officers and men.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_179">[Pg 179]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The third group comprises—</p>
-
-<p>(<i>a</i>)&ensp;The absence of a true military feeling
-among the troops.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>b</i>)&ensp;The poor spirit in action shown by some
-of them.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>c</i>)&ensp;The lack of determination on the part of
-commanders of all degrees to carry out the tasks
-entrusted to them.</p>
-
-<p>(<i>d</i>)&ensp;The breakdown of the organization under
-the stress of war.</p>
-
-<p>The weak points of our forces, which were so
-noticeable in the wars waged in the second half
-of the last century, had not been entirely eliminated
-during the fifty years which intervened
-since the Crimea, and were again evident in the
-recent struggle—namely:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;We were inferior to our enemy in technical
-troops and equipment.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;The “command” was unsatisfactory.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;The army was insufficiently trained tactically.</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;We did not insure victory by having considerable
-superiority in numbers.</p>
-
-<p>We did not have before us any clear idea of
-our object, and consequently did not show
-sufficient determination in its prosecution.</p>
-
-<p>So many different reasons have been advanced
-for our failure that the question naturally arises
-as to what foundation there really is for my
-opinion—shared by the greater part of the army
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_180">[Pg 180]</a></span>
-in the field—that if we had not concluded peace
-so hastily victory would have crowned our
-arms.</p>
-
-<p>My belief that we could, and ought to, have
-issued victorious from the struggle is based
-upon—</p>
-<ol class="growth">
- <li>The steady growth of our material forces.</li>
- <li>The growth of our moral forces.</li>
- <li>The gradual deterioration of the enemy in both respects.</li>
-</ol>
-
-<h3>I.</h3>
-
-<p>We have already seen how fatal the inefficiency
-of our railways was for us. Yet, though six
-months before the outbreak of war only two
-pairs of short trains were available for military
-purposes, when peace was concluded we had ten
-and even twelve pairs of full trains running in
-the twenty-four hours. Thus, during hostilities
-the carrying capacity of the railway grew sixfold,
-and was capable of still further increase. Notwithstanding
-all our reverses, the army continued
-to grow in numbers, and was 1,000,000 strong
-when peace was concluded, and more than
-two-thirds of this number (including the newly
-arrived drafts, the new corps, and the Pri-Amur
-troops) had not been under fire. Moreover,
-owing to improved rail transport and the proper
-exploitation of all local resources, the whole
-number was assured of everything necessary,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_181">[Pg 181]</a></span>
-both for fighting and subsistence, to an extent
-that had never previously been the case. We
-had received a proper proportion of artillery of
-every nature, reserves of light railway material,
-telegraph and wireless telegraph stores, and
-entrenching and technical tools and equipment
-of all sorts. We had constructed three strong
-lines of defence at Hsi-ping-kai, Kung-chu-ling,
-and Kwang-cheng-tzu; our communications in
-rear were safe; almost every army corps was
-in possession of its own line of rails; and the
-Sungari and other rivers were crossed by many
-bridges. The war strength of all units had been
-considerably augmented. Russia’s resources for
-continuing the struggle were greater than those of
-Japan, for not only had our Guards and Grenadiers
-not been drawn upon, but the greater part of
-the army was still at home.</p>
-
-<h3>II.</h3>
-
-<p>Though an improvement of <i>moral</i> is by no
-means as easy to bring about in an army as
-that of its material condition, the officers who
-were most in touch with our men were convinced
-that it was done in our case. It may
-possibly be a peculiarity of the Russian soldier
-that he possesses latent moral strength of the
-kind which is developed slowly, and not destroyed
-by any trials to which the individual
-is subjected; but to those who made a study
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_182">[Pg 182]</a></span>
-of the war it appeared perfectly clear that our
-men showed an increasing spirit of stubborn
-determination as the campaign progressed. In
-the early fights before the battle of Liao-yang—at
-Te-li-ssu and Ta-shih-chiao—we withdrew
-after comparatively small losses. At the latter
-fight two army corps, and at Yang-tzu-ling one
-corps, retired, though they together did not
-collectively lose as many men as the 1st&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Regiment alone lost in the battle
-of Mukden. At Liao-yang our men fought
-better than in the previous fights; on the Sha&nbsp;Ho
-they showed a better spirit than at Liao-yang;
-while at Mukden many units showed a still
-further improvement. We were all convinced,
-therefore, that in a defence of, or an offensive
-advance from, the Hsi-ping-kai position, the men
-would fight even better than at Mukden, for the
-improvement in spirit shown by our troops had
-been progressive and steady. They had learned
-much, particularly during their long stay in
-direct touch with the enemy on the Sha&nbsp;Ho.
-Even the reserve units, which failed in the early
-fights, fought with great bravery and steadiness
-at Mukden. To prove this, it is only necessary
-to recall the exploits of the 71st and
-54th&nbsp;Divisions, the later arrived reserve units
-of the 55th and 61st&nbsp;Divisions at Mukden,
-and of many regiments of the 10th, 17th,
-and 1st&nbsp;Army Corps. The regiments of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_183">[Pg 183]</a></span>
-4th&nbsp;Siberian Corps and the East Siberian
-Rifles, indeed, were an example throughout the
-war.</p>
-
-<p>The Tsar, in his Order to the army and fleet
-of January&nbsp;14, 1905, predicted this improvement
-in the <i>moral</i> of the troops, notwithstanding their
-reverses, with great foresight. His belief in the
-spirit of the army was expressed in the following
-memorable words:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Though we may be sore at heart on account
-of the disasters and losses that have befallen us,
-do not let us be discouraged. By them Russia’s
-strength is renewed, and her power increased.”</p></div>
-
-<p>As operations continued we made corresponding
-progress in our tactics. We learned how to
-attack and make use of the ground, and how
-to employ artillery, and learned by heart the
-lesson of keeping strong reserves in hand [at
-the Hsi-ping-kai position the reserve of the
-1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army alone consisted of eighty
-battalions]. We also learned how to obtain
-intelligence of hostile forces. At the close of
-the war our knowledge of the Japanese dispositions
-was more complete than it had ever been;
-indeed, we had accurate information of the exact
-whereabouts, not only of their main bodies, but
-also of many individual units. (This was chiefly
-obtained from prisoners.)</p>
-
-<p>We received as reinforcements 300,000 regular
-soldiers then with the colours, most of whom
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_184">[Pg 184]</a></span>
-had volunteered for the front, and the 1905
-recruits. These young soldiers were ready to
-face any danger; they arrived in the highest
-spirits, and their cheerfulness and evident keenness
-to see some fighting did one’s heart good.
-The older reservists were mostly employed on
-duties in the rear. As a result, volunteers were
-always forthcoming for the numerous raids and
-reconnaissances made by the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian
-Army from the Hsi-ping-kai position, or for any
-other adventurous work. The mainspring of the
-improvement in our spirit, however, was the
-more careful selection made of the officers
-appointed to command units. Many of these
-now began to display military qualifications of
-a high order. The fighting round Mukden had
-produced generals of a calibre upon which we
-could have fully relied in any subsequent battles.
-As regards the general question of the readiness
-of the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army for renewed
-fighting after the Mukden battle, I concluded
-my report on this force as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“With the occupation of the Hsi-ping-kai
-position the army found itself confronted with
-a great work.</p>
-
-<p>“No map of the neighbouring country existed,
-and the little information we had of the enemy
-was chiefly remarkable for its absolute vagueness.
-There were no roads to the rear, no local
-depôts for the supply of the army, and no fords
-over the Sungari River, which was a standing
-menace, as the usual Spring floods were still
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_185">[Pg 185]</a></span>
-ahead of us.</p>
-
-<p>“The co-ordinated and willing efforts of all
-ranks, however, soon changed all this. The fortified
-line of works from Hsi-ping-kai Station to
-the village of Kung-chu-ling became practically
-invincible, and the order was given to use it as
-a <i>place d’armes</i> and accumulate strong reserves
-there. In May there were eighty battalions in
-reserve behind the left flank; practically one-half
-of the five army corps was located here.</p>
-
-<p>“A two-verst<a id="FNanchor_54"></a><a href="#Footnote_54" class="fnanchor">[54]</a> map was made, showing not only
-the country in our rear, but the strip of ground
-right up to the enemy’s positions.</p>
-
-<p>“By means of reconnaissances and the employment
-of spies, we gradually sifted our inaccurate
-intelligence till our information was correct. We
-were able first to locate the disposition of the
-enemy’s armies, then of his divisions, and, finally,
-of small units.</p>
-
-<p>“The services to the rear were carried out with
-similar energy; roads were laid out, the Sungari
-was bridged, and storehouses were built.</p>
-
-<p>“At the beginning of July the army was
-almost ready to advance; the only thing lacking
-was the equipment for light railways for horse
-traction. Without this it was impossible to
-advance in any great strength.</p>
-
-<p>“During the last few months a horse railway
-was laid to Ya-mu-tzu, and the carriage of supplies
-for a forward movement was thus assured.</p>
-
-<p>“A connected series of reconnaissances were
-carried out in order to gain knowledge of the
-ground in front.</p>
-
-<p>“The army was brought almost up to full
-strength by the drafts and new units which had
-joined.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_186">[Pg 186]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“In August it was quite ready for battle, and
-its now recuperated and reinforced veteran corps
-waited the order for a forward movement in
-complete confidence.”</p></div>
-
-<p>General Bilderling, who commanded the 2nd
-Manchurian Army (which suffered the most
-heavily at Mukden), finishes his report on this
-army as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“The army occupied the Hsi-ping-kai position,
-shattered and disorganized by the battle of
-Mukden; but it has recovered with extraordinary
-rapidity. With the arrival of the young soldiers
-and reservists, all the units have been brought up
-to full war strength, and it is only in the officers
-that there is still a great deficiency. The mounted
-units have been reinforced by fresh squadrons and
-by horses from the artillery reserve; the guns and
-waggons which were lost or had become unserviceable
-have been replaced. Every division has
-been strengthened by mounted and dismounted
-machine-gun sections, and howitzer batteries have
-been formed; a light railway for horse-draught
-has been laid along the whole length of the position
-and in rear of it; and, profiting by recent
-experience, the troops are now thoroughly proficient
-in all exercises and manœuvres. Thus
-the army, by reason of its numbers, material
-composition, and training, has become really
-better prepared for hostilities at the close of the
-war than it was at the beginning, and again
-constitutes a menace to the enemy.”</p></div>
-
-<p>The 3rd&nbsp;Manchurian Army, which, under the
-command of General Batianoff, formed a reserve
-for the 1st and 2nd&nbsp;Armies, and contained corps
-which had arrived latest and had not been in
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_187">[Pg 187]</a></span>
-action, was also a large and reliable body of men.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, there is a skeleton in every cupboard,
-and naturally in such a large force as the three
-armies constituted there were weak spots. Thus,
-there were to be found amongst the men, and
-even the officers, a certain number of poor-spirited
-creatures who disbelieved in the possibility of
-victory. But even such characters would have
-plucked up their spirits and done good service at
-the first success.</p>
-
-<p>From the moment I joined the army in Manchuria,
-I invariably told every unit that I met or
-reviewed that the war could only end after we
-had been victorious; that till then none of us
-would be allowed to return home; and that
-victory was certain when sufficient reinforcements
-reached us. And belief in these facts
-sank into the hearts of officers and private
-soldiers. Both before and after Mukden, I more
-than once heard the men themselves—particularly
-those in hospital—say that they could not
-return home till the enemy had been defeated.
-“The women will laugh at us,” were their words.
-Another important factor, and one which the
-Russian especially values, is constant and affectionate
-care for his bodily needs and his health.
-For anyone who has not been on active service
-it is difficult to appreciate how troops who have
-been disorganized and badly shaken by hard
-fighting can regain heart if they suddenly find
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_188">[Pg 188]</a></span>
-hot food ready for them. A night’s rest, a full
-stomach, ammunition replenished, a quiet calling
-of the roll, and the calm demeanour of their
-officers—all assisted to make our splendid soldiers
-once more ready for the fray. As regards the
-army’s <i>moral</i> generally, I should mention that
-the nearer our men were to the enemy, the
-better were their spirits and the fewer the carping
-comments and criticisms which always do
-so much harm; there was no time to read the
-papers. When I visited the advanced units of
-the 1st&nbsp;Army (those of the 2nd, 3rd, and 4th
-Siberians, and of the 1st&nbsp;Army Corps commanded
-by Colonels Prince Trubetski, Tikhomiroff, Redkin,
-and General Kashtalinski), I found universal
-keenness to advance. The men were well looked
-after, discipline was strict, and the attitude of
-both men and officers was one of quiet and
-steady determination. But in proportion as the
-distance from the advanced lines increased, and
-direct touch with the enemy was lost, there was
-time for talk and gossip. It was on the lines of communication
-(particularly at Harbin) that drunkenness
-and gambling took place, besides other forms
-of dissipation that disgraced the army. It was
-here that the white-livered brigade collected,
-leaving the front under any excuse even when
-fighting was in progress, and, indeed, what else
-could be expected of them? It is much to be
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_189">[Pg 189]</a></span>
-regretted that some of our pressmen judged the
-army by what they saw at Harbin, and that we
-were judged by this standard even in Russia.
-Many officers and others in authority who had
-failed to pass the “ordeal by fire” lived on in
-Russia, and from them a correct opinion as to
-the self-sacrifice and devotion of the army and
-its readiness to continue the war could hardly
-have been expected. Unfortunately for us, also
-there happened to be on the Committee of
-Imperial Defence two general officers who had
-been at the front. One had left it; the other
-had been deprived of his command of an army
-corps. Clearly, such men as these could not have
-much assisted this new and important body to
-insist on the necessity of continuing the struggle.</p>
-
-<p>A step taken by me to raise and to maintain
-the spirit of the army was the rapid promotion
-of those officers who had most distinguished
-themselves in the field. We obtained a number
-of our best senior regimental officers by promoting
-captains, and, what is more important,
-we appointed many distinguished officers to the
-command of regiments without regard to their
-lack of seniority, or to the fact that some of them
-were only lieutenant-colonels. In a very short
-time these commanding officers improved their
-regiments almost beyond recognition, and fully
-proved how important a careful selection is in
-war. By promoting to Major-General those
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_190">[Pg 190]</a></span>
-colonels who had most distinguished themselves
-on service, we began to get at the head of
-brigades leaders who were worthy of every confidence,
-and offered a splendid selection from
-which to choose divisional and corps commanders.</p>
-
-<p>A further step which I took to woo victory
-was to enforce the humane treatment of the
-Chinese population of Manchuria. I, and those
-immediately under me, insisted on their being
-protected (as far as war conditions permitted)
-from unnecessary hardships, and on their property
-being guarded, and I made a point of their
-being promptly paid in cash for everything they
-brought in. This assisted us considerably in
-getting supplies, and, notwithstanding the great
-hardships we ourselves occasionally suffered, I
-invariably insisted on these relations being maintained.
-Consequently, not once was I forced
-to have recourse to requisitioning supplies or
-transport, nor had I to use force to get local
-labour. The results surpassed all my expectations,
-for, in spite of the great efforts made by
-the enemy to raise the Chinese population against
-us, and in spite of the unfriendly feeling towards
-us of many of the Chinese authorities themselves,
-the mass of the people appreciated our
-attitude, remained quiet, and, by freely bringing
-in their products, saved us from hunger.
-Although they might have easily kept us in a
-perpetual state of alarm by killing isolated
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_191">[Pg 191]</a></span>
-officials, attacking small detachments, destroying
-the telegraphs and the roads, they—with very
-few exceptions—lived on peacefully in the theatre
-of war, in some instances even joining with us
-in fighting the Hun-huses.</p>
-
-<p>Thus, besides the plan of campaign for carrying
-on the war—in which the possibility of
-retiring even behind Harbin was foreseen—the
-principal means taken by me to secure victory
-were:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;To instil in all ranks a firm belief that the
-war could only be brought to a close with
-victory, and that till victory had crowned our
-efforts not one of us would return home.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;To foster a constant fatherly endeavour on
-the part of all in authority to attend, as far as
-the exigencies of the Service permitted, to the
-comfort and preserve the health of the troops.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;To assist in all ways the readiness and
-preparation of the troops, particularly by accelerating,
-irrespective of mere seniority, the promotion
-of the most distinguished of the officers.</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;To maintain a uniformly humane attitude
-towards the Chinese population of Manchuria.</p>
-
-<h3>III.</h3>
-
-<p>The enemy’s army began to weaken in the
-moral as well as the material sense.</p>
-
-<p>To drive back our army northwards to Hsi-ping-kai
-called for immense efforts and many
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_192">[Pg 192]</a></span>
-sacrifices on the part of the Japanese. I have
-stated (in <a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#CHAPTER_VII">Chapter VII.</a>) that our Headquarter
-Staff estimated the total peace establishment of
-their army at 110,000 men [of which 13,000
-were always absent on furlough and leave], and
-the reserve and territorial forces at only 315,000,
-so that the total number available for service
-was, as we thought, not more than 425,000.
-But, according to the figures of the Japanese
-army medical authorities, more than 1,000,000
-men were called up to the colours, which must
-have demanded a great effort on the part of the
-nation. It was found necessary also, during the
-war, to alter the existing laws so as to catch
-those men who had already completed their time
-in the reserve for a further period of service in
-the regular army, and to draft into the ranks
-in 1904 and 1905 the recruit contingent of 1906
-as well as that of 1905. (Towards the end we
-began to find old men and boys amongst our
-prisoners.) Their casualties were very high; in
-the Cemetery of Honour in Tokio alone
-60,600 men killed in battle were buried, and to
-these must be added more than 50,000 who died
-of wounds. Thus it appears from these two
-sources alone that they lost 110,000—a figure
-equal to the whole peace establishment of the
-army. Taking into account our standing peace
-army of 1,000,000 men, our losses were comparatively
-far lighter than those of the Japanese.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_193">[Pg 193]</a></span>
-In all some 554,000 men passed through their
-hospitals during the war, of whom 220,000<a id="FNanchor_55"></a><a href="#Footnote_55" class="fnanchor">[55]</a> were
-wound cases. Altogether they lost 135,000 men
-killed and died of wounds and sickness. Their
-losses in officers were particularly heavy, and
-the men fought with such stubborn bravery that
-whole regiments, and even brigades, were on
-certain occasions almost wiped out of existence.
-This happened, for instance, in the fight for
-Putiloff Hill,<a id="FNanchor_56"></a><a href="#Footnote_56" class="fnanchor">[56]</a> on October&nbsp;15; also during the
-February fighting for the position held by the
-3rd&nbsp;Siberians on the Kiao-tu Ling [Pass]; in the
-battle of March&nbsp;7, at Tu-hung-tun<a id="FNanchor_57"></a><a href="#Footnote_57" class="fnanchor">[57]</a> and other
-points. At Liao-yang and Mukden the majority
-of the enemy’s troops suffered very heavily in
-their frontal attack of our positions, and failed
-to take them. The fate of these battles was
-decided by turning movements. In the fighting
-on the Sha&nbsp;Ho they tried hard to force us back
-towards Mukden, and many of their units were
-again and again driven off our positions, and
-only occupied them after we had abandoned
-them of our own accord. The spirit of these
-Japanese troops who had thus seen no success
-attend their individual efforts could not but be
-shaken. Again, the ever-increasing determination
-displayed by our men must have affected
-their spirit. Their regulars had been placed
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_194">[Pg 194]</a></span>
-<i>hors de combat</i> in considerable numbers, and
-however quickly the recruits might be called up
-and trained, it was not to be expected that they
-would be able to develop the same stubbornness
-in defence, and the same dash in attack, that
-their comrades had possessed in the first campaign.
-This was noticeable in the fighting in
-front of Mukden, but especially near Hsi-ping-kai.
-While our scouting parties, and the
-troops of the advanced posts, were pressing the
-enemy more and more boldly, we began to
-notice a comparative lack of enterprise on their
-part, coupled with a want of their former daring,
-and even their watchfulness. Perhaps the strain
-of war was beginning to tell on the Southern
-temperament. Indeed, for six whole months
-they gave us time to strengthen ourselves and
-fortify, without once attempting to attack and
-press us back on the Sungari, and so inflict a
-crushing defeat. While we remained at Hsi-ping-kai
-the number of prisoners taken by us
-began to increase, and they ceased to display the
-fanaticism shown by those captured in 1904.
-Many openly acknowledged that they were
-weary of the war, and from the nature of
-numerous letters from Japan found on the killed
-and prisoners, it was evident that this weariness
-was general. These letters also told of the
-heavy increase in taxation during the war, of
-the increased cost of the necessities of life, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_195">[Pg 195]</a></span>
-of the dearth of employment. Once an entire
-company surrendered in front of the positions
-held by the 1st&nbsp;Siberians, a thing that had never
-happened before. Nor were the enemy well
-situated as regards material. Money became
-more and more scarce, while the requirements
-of the growing army increased. Particular
-difficulty was found in quickly replenishing
-artillery ammunition. This was very noticeable
-on the Sha&nbsp;Ho.</p>
-
-<p>But what must have been the most serious
-source of anxiety to Japan was the indifference
-which Europe and America were beginning to
-show to her successes. At first it had seemed
-profitable to Great Britain and Germany that
-Russia and Japan should be drawn into war, for
-when they were exhausted the hands of both
-would be tied—ours in Europe, and Japan’s in
-Asia. Nevertheless, it was not to the interest of
-Europe generally to allow the triumph of the
-Japanese in the battlefields of Manchuria to become
-absolute. A victorious Japan might join
-with China, and raise the standard of “Asia for
-the Asiatics.” The extinction of all European
-and American enterprises in Asia would be the
-first object of this new great Power, and the
-expulsion of Europeans from Asia would be the
-end. There is already little enough room on
-the Continent of Europe. Without the markets
-of the wide world she could not exist, and the
-cries of “America for the Americans,” “Asia
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_196">[Pg 196]</a></span>
-for the Asiatics,” “Africa for the Africans,” are
-of serious import for her. But the danger is
-approaching, and is so imminent that the Powers
-of Europe will be forced to sink their differences
-and unite in order to withstand the attempt of
-the young nations<a id="FNanchor_58"></a><a href="#Footnote_58" class="fnanchor">[58]</a> to drive old Europe home
-into the narrow shell which she has long since
-outgrown. We might have taken advantage of
-this change in international feeling, and have
-tried to close the money markets of the world
-to Japan. Only one decisive victory on our
-part was wanted to bring about a very serious
-reaction both in Japan and in the army in the
-field. If we had exhausted her financial resources,
-and had continued the war, we might
-soon have compelled her to seek an honourable
-peace, which would have been advantageous
-to us.</p>
-
-<p>At Mukden we fought with a shortage in
-establishment of 300,000 men; we began the
-war with inconsiderable forces; we conducted it
-under the most unfavourable conditions, and
-without the support of the country; we were,
-moreover, weakened by disturbances in the
-interior, and were connected with Russia only
-by a single-track weak line. In these impossible
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_197">[Pg 197]</a></span>
-conditions we put 300,000 of the enemy <i>hors de
-combat</i>, and had 600,000 rifles ready at Hsi-ping-kai
-at a time when they were beginning to
-flag. If we attained such results, can it be said
-that our army accomplished but little? Is it
-fair to continue applying the epithet “Disgraceful”
-to the war? It cannot be denied that both
-the troops and their leaders did less in the time
-at their disposal than they might have done if
-properly supported by the country; but by the
-summer of 1905 conditions had begun to change
-in our favour. The conquered are always judged
-severely, and the leaders should naturally be
-the first to bear the responsibility for disaster
-to the troops under them. We can only be
-judged as acquitted because of our readiness
-to continue the struggle—a readiness which was
-created, and grew stronger in the army in spite
-of disaster. We believed in the possibility and
-certainty of victory, and if it had not been for
-the serious internal disturbances in Russia, we
-should have undoubtedly been able to prove the
-truth of our belief in battle.</p>
-
-<p>Even the inhabitants of Moscow, where, in all
-the difficult times the nation has passed through,
-a manly and determined voice has always been
-raised in support of the honour and dignity of
-Russia, showed that their spirits had on this
-occasion fallen. It was with amazement and
-sorrow that we read of a certain action of the
-Moscow Town Council on June&nbsp;7, 1905. The
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_198">[Pg 198]</a></span>
-news had immense effect on the army, and on
-hearing of it I sent the following letter<a id="FNanchor_59"></a><a href="#Footnote_59" class="fnanchor">[59]</a> to Prince
-Trubetski, the President of the Moscow nobility:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“An overwhelming impression has been produced
-throughout the army by the news which
-has reached us from home that many poor-spirited
-people are trying to bring about an
-early peace. It is forgotten that a peace made
-before victory has been won cannot be honourable,
-and will not therefore be permanent. Never
-has our army been so strong and so ready for
-serious battle as now. Victory is nearer than
-seems likely to those at a distance. The troops
-have great belief in the new Commander-in-Chief;<a id="FNanchor_60"></a><a href="#Footnote_60" class="fnanchor">[60]</a>
-they are assured of everything necessary
-to their wants, and their health is excellent.
-We would welcome news of the enemy’s advance,
-and are ready to move against them, when
-ordered to, with full faith in our strength. The
-troops have become war-seasoned. Even those
-units which were for various reasons not as
-steady as they should have been in the early
-fights are now thoroughly reliable. Numbers
-of wounded officers and men are hastening
-to rejoin, though not completely convalescent.
-Though we have lost the fleet, the army remains
-to us, and, I repeat, it is more powerful than it
-ever was before. Our position is altogether
-stronger and, tactically, better placed than those
-we held at Liao-yang or Mukden, for the
-Japanese do not envelop us in the same way.
-Though their forces have also been growing in
-numbers, there are many indications that their
-strength is on the wane: their ranks are being
-filled with men who formerly would not have
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_199">[Pg 199]</a></span>
-been accepted, and the whole spirit of the army
-has undergone a change. More men allow themselves
-to be taken prisoners than before; their
-artillery and cavalry are weaker than ours, and
-they are short of gun ammunition. Letters
-from Japan, which we have found on the men,
-show that a general feeling of dissatisfaction with
-the war is growing among the people, for prices
-have gone up, and they are enduring great
-privations. These are the conditions under
-which I to-day read in letters from Moscow
-that on June&nbsp;7 the Town Council discussed the
-advisability of inviting the representatives of
-the people to consider the question of putting
-an end to the war. Last February, on my
-departure for the front, you, in the name of all
-the representatives of Moscow, bade me farewell
-with words full of courage and of faith in the
-might of Russia. I therefore consider it my
-duty to send this letter to you. If the Muscovites
-do not feel as able as before to send their
-worthiest sons to us to help us overcome the
-foe, let them at least not prevent us from doing
-our duty in Manchuria.</p>
-
-<p>“Although there is nothing of a secret nature
-in this letter, its publication in the Press over
-my signature is very undesirable.”</p></div>
-
-<p>In reply, Prince Trubetski wrote to me on
-June&nbsp;14 as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“I have handed over your telegram, which
-greatly touched me, to the Mayor and Zemstvo;
-I will communicate its contents to as many
-as I can, and I will do everything that is possible
-to get action taken on it. If it may be considered
-necessary by the Tsar to end the war, I do not
-think it should be discussed beforehand in committees.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_200">[Pg 200]</a></span>
-May God help you! My whole heart
-is with you.”</p></div>
-
-<p>But the efforts of individuals were powerless
-to check the march of events. The serious state
-of Russia’s internal affairs and the hostile—to
-put the best construction on it—indifference of
-the people resulted in peace being prematurely
-concluded. The consequences of making such a
-peace, by which Japan was recognized as Russia’s
-conqueror in Asia, will have serious results not
-only for us, but for all the Powers who have
-possessions or interests on that continent. The
-“Yellow peril,” the appearance of which has
-only recently been foreseen, is now a reality.
-Notwithstanding her victorious issue from the
-war, Japan is hurriedly increasing her forces,
-while China is forming a large army under the
-guidance of Japanese officers and on the Japanese
-model. In a very short space of time she and
-Japan will be able to pour an army of more than
-1,500,000 into Manchuria, which, if directed
-against us, could proceed to take a great deal
-of Siberia from Russia, and reduce her to a
-second-rate Power.</p>
-
-<p>We have seen above how the absence of any
-previous diplomatic arrangements forced us to
-keep the greater part of our armed forces in
-European Russia during the war, which fact
-constituted one of the reasons of our reverses
-(the Guards and Grenadiers Corps remained in
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_201">[Pg 201]</a></span>
-Russia, while the reserve troops fought in Manchuria).
-We have one consolation in that we
-now know that our Western neighbours are not
-pursuing any policy of aggression against us, for
-they had an excellent opportunity in the years
-1905 and 1906<a id="FNanchor_61"></a><a href="#Footnote_61" class="fnanchor">[61]</a> to alter the existing frontier
-had they wished to do so. We may hope, therefore,
-to be able to come to some understanding
-with the Powers of Europe by which, should we
-be again attacked in the Far East, we shall be
-able to throw the whole of our armed forces into
-a struggle with either Japan or Japan and China
-combined. Another reason for our failure is the
-fact that we were unable rapidly to make full
-use of such forces as were available, because of
-the weakness of railway communication between
-Russia and Manchuria. It is clear that, as matters
-now stand in the Far East, the laying of a second
-track over the Siberian line and the construction
-of a railway along the bank of the Amur are so
-vital for us that no time should be lost in doing
-these things. The mere construction of a line
-along the Amur can help us but little, while
-a double-track line, even with forty-eight trains
-in the twenty-four hours, cannot, of course, satisfy
-all the requirements of the great army we should
-have to put in the field in the event of a fresh
-war. In future we shall only be able to rely to
-a small extent upon the vast supplies of food in
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_202">[Pg 202]</a></span>
-Manchuria, and shall be obliged to convey the
-greater portion not only of our munitions of war,
-but of our food-supplies, from European Russia
-and Siberia. It will therefore be necessary to
-make use of our water communications, for the
-failure of the attempt to transport supplies in
-1905 by the Arctic Ocean and the River Yenissei
-cannot be considered final. Particular assistance
-also could be afforded to the army by increasing
-the population of Siberia, and so at the same
-time augmenting the local resources necessary
-for an army. The rich reserves of metals, coals,
-and timber in that part will assist us in bringing
-nearer to the Far East not only our food-supply
-base, but also our war base (for ordnance, ammunition,
-explosives, etc.).</p>
-
-<p>Among the main reasons for our disasters must
-be mentioned the indifferent, even hostile attitude
-of the people to the late war; but the menace to
-our nation from the Far East is now so clear that
-all grades of society ought to prepare—in case of
-a fresh attack on Russia by Japan or China—to
-rise like one man to defend the integrity and the
-greatness of our Fatherland.</p>
-
-<p>Thus, to attain success in any such future
-war, which is by no means an improbable contingency,
-we should strive—</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;To be in a position to make use of all our
-troops;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_203">[Pg 203]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;To have thorough railway communication
-between the Pri-Amur and Russia;</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp; To prepare the waterways of Siberia for
-the carriage of heavy goods in bulk from west
-to east;</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;To move the army’s base as far as possible
-from Russia into Siberia; and, what is most
-important—</p>
-
-<p>5.&ensp;To make ready to carry on a new war not
-only with the army, but with the whole of a
-patriotic nation.</p>
-
-<p>History had apparently destined Russia to
-undergo a bitter trial from 1904 to 1906, both on
-the field of battle and at home. Our great nation
-has issued renewed and strengthened from still
-heavier trials, and let us not doubt now but that
-Russia, summoned by the Tsar to a new life, will
-quickly recover from the temporary blows which
-she has sustained, and will not fall from her high
-place among the other nations of the world. As
-regards the army, its bitter experiences should not
-on this occasion fail to bear fruit, and the most
-detailed, thorough, and fearless study of all its
-defects can only bring about a renewal and increase
-of strength. We must remember one
-point—and it is the main point: our officers
-and many of the men conducted themselves
-most unselfishly in most difficult circumstances.
-Given this, all our other faults can be comparatively
-quickly mended; but before all else,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_204">[Pg 204]</a></span>
-we must not be afraid of openly acknowledging
-them.</p>
-
-<p>Strength lies—in the truth.</p>
-
-<p>In this important work of rejuvenation which
-is now beginning in Russia for the good of the
-people and the army, we must remember the
-great words of the Tsar to the Army and Fleet
-almost two years ago:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Russia is mighty. During the thousand
-years of her existence there have been years of
-still greater suffering—years when greater danger
-menaced. Yet she has every time issued from
-the struggle with fresh glory, with added might.</p>
-
-<p>“Though we may be sore at heart on account
-of the disasters and losses that have befallen us,
-do not let us be discouraged. By them Russia’s
-strength is renewed and her power increased.</p>
-
-<p class="right skip2">“A. N. KUROPATKIN,
- <span class="smcap">General</span>.&emsp;</p>
-
-<p class="sig1">“<span class="smcap">Sheshurino</span>,<a
-id="FNanchor_62"></a><a href="#Footnote_62" class="fnanchor">[62]</a><br />
-
-“<i>November&nbsp;30, 1906</i>.”
-</p></div>
-
-<hr class="page" />
-
-<p class="center small">END OF VOLUME IV. OF THE ORIGINAL</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_205">[Pg 205]</a></span></p>
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII<br />
-<span class="capsub1">INTRODUCTION AND CONCLUSION TO VOLUME III.<a id="FNanchor_63"></a><a href="#Footnote_63" class="fnanchor">[63]</a></span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="noindent">When war seemed likely,
-the following scheme for the strategical distribution of the troops in
-the Far East in the event of hostilities was agreed to by the Viceroy,
-Alexeieff:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;The major portion of the troops, consisting
-of 60 infantry battalions, 65 squadrons, 2 sapper
-battalions, and 160 guns (total, 65,000 rifles and
-sabres), were to be sent into Southern Manchuria.
-The main body was to be concentrated in the
-area Hai-cheng–Liao-yang, and the advance
-guard<a id="FNanchor_64"></a><a href="#Footnote_64" class="fnanchor">[64]</a> moved forward to the Ya-lu.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;The garrison of Port Arthur was to consist
-of the 7th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division (12 battalions),
-2 battalions of fortress artillery, and
-1 company of sappers. The 5th&nbsp;East Siberian
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_206">[Pg 206]</a></span>
-Rifle Regiment, consisting of 4 battalions with
-6 guns, was also detailed for the defence of the
-Kuan-tung district, to augment the strength of
-the garrison if necessary.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;The garrison of Vladivostok was to consist of
-the 8th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division (8 battalions
-of infantry), with 2 battalions of fortress artillery,
-2 sapper companies, and 1 mining company.</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;That of Nikolaievsk was to be 1 fortress
-infantry battalion, 1 fortress artillery company,
-and 1 mining company.</p>
-
-<p>This scheme, by which the force detailed for
-the defence of Port Arthur and the whole Kuan-tung
-Peninsula was limited to sixteen battalions,
-was due to our exaggerated idea of the strength
-and invincibility of our Pacific Ocean Fleet. According
-to the Viceroy, it was founded on the
-following opinion, expressed by Admiral Witgeft,
-Chief of Alexeieff’s temporary naval staff:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“According to the present relative strengths
-of the two fleets, the possibility of ours being
-defeated is a contingency that need not be considered,
-and until it has been destroyed it is
-inconceivable that the Japanese can land at Newchuang
-or any other spot on the Gulf of Korea.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="figcenter" id="oyama">
-<img alt="" width="472" height="650" src="images/oyama.jpg" />
-<div class="caption">FIELD-MARSHAL MARQUIS IWAO OYAMA.</div></div>
-
-<p>But such an attenuation of our force in this
-quarter was contrary to the opinion of a committee—attended
-by me in my capacity of War
-Minister—which sat in Port Arthur in June,
-1903. The Viceroy and senior commanders of
-the garrison were present at the meeting when it
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_207">[Pg 207]</a></span>
-was resolved and recorded as “essential” that
-the 3rd&nbsp;Siberian Corps should be formed for the
-defence of Kuan-tung, in addition to the 7th&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Division, its permanent garrison,
-and that this corps should be composed of the
-3rd and 4th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Divisions, each
-of twelve battalions. In fact, it was considered
-necessary to have thirty-six battalions of infantry,
-exclusive of reserve battalions, for the defence of
-Port Arthur and the Peninsula. This formation
-of a special army corps for Kuan-tung was thought
-to be necessitated by the existence so close to
-Port Arthur of Dalny, a magnificently equipped
-port, connected by railway to the fortress, and
-a most convenient base for operations against it.</p>
-
-<p>Feeling that the force allotted to the defence
-of the Peninsula was inadequate, on February&nbsp;11
-I telegraphed as War Minister to Alexeieff that
-I considered it imperative that the 9th&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Division—then under formation—should
-be sent there in place of the 3rd&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Division, ordered to the Ya-lu.
-The Viceroy did not concur in this view, but
-he temporarily retained the 13th and 14th&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Regiments.</p>
-
-<p>On February&nbsp;20, 1904, I was appointed to
-the command of the Manchurian Army. In my
-first communication to the Viceroy (No. 1 of
-February&nbsp;24) I again expressed the opinion
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_208">[Pg 208]</a></span>
-that, in view of the possibility of it being besieged
-by four or five Japanese divisions, our first efforts
-should be directed to strengthening Port Arthur.
-And I further stated:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“If Port Arthur is weakly garrisoned, and
-should be besieged, I might be tempted by that
-fact to assume the offensive before there has been
-sufficient time to concentrate our forces. It is
-for this reason that I have already advised the
-concentration of the 9th&nbsp;Division in Kuan-tung
-to replace the 3rd.”</p></div>
-
-<p>However, the Viceroy again disagreed with
-me, and wrote in a despatch of March&nbsp;1:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Separate operations against the fortress would
-only be really worth undertaking if the enemy
-could make certain of seizing it by a <i>coup de
-main</i>, and the moment for this has passed. The
-land front is becoming more formidable every
-day, and, though not complete, the works are
-now well advanced; 200 additional guns have
-been mounted in Port Arthur itself, and more
-than forty at Chin-chou; the strength of the
-garrison is being brought up by the reservists
-arriving from Trans-Baikalia, and the stocks of
-supplies are being increased. All the bays nearest
-the fortress, as well as the port of Dalny, have
-been mined, and for the rest—the oft-proved
-stubbornness of the Russian soldier in defence
-can be relied on.”</p></div>
-
-<p>He had already reported to the Tsar that—</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Although separate operations against Port
-Arthur would threaten the fortress itself with all
-the hardships of a siege or blockade, they would
-be rather advantageous to our arms as a whole, for
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_209">[Pg 209]</a></span>
-they would entail a division of the enemy’s forces.”</p></div>
-
-<p>As regards my own recommendations upon the
-plan of operations to be followed against Japan,
-I drew up two memoranda, which I submitted to
-the Tsar on February&nbsp;15 and March&nbsp;4. In the
-former I stated:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“In the first phase of the campaign our main
-object should be to prevent the destruction of
-our forces in detail. The apparent importance
-of any single locality or position (fortresses excepted)
-should not lead us into the great error of
-holding it in insufficient force, which would bring
-about the very result we are so anxious to prevent.
-While gradually growing in numbers and preparing
-to take the offensive, we should only move
-forward when sufficiently strong, and when supplied
-with everything necessary for an uninterrupted
-advance lasting over a fairly long period.”</p></div>
-
-<p>Against this the Tsar was pleased to note in his
-own handwriting the words “Quite so.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" id="battlefields">
- <a href="images/battlefields_large.jpg">
- <img src="images/battlefields.jpg" alt="" width="612" height="680" /></a>
-<div class="caption">SKETCH MAP OF AREA CONTAINING THE BATTLE
- FELDS<br />&emsp; OF LIAO-YANG, THE SHA HO,
- HEI-KOU-TAI, AND MUKDEN<br />&emsp;SHOWING SOME OF THE MORE
- IMPORTANT PLACES MENTIONED</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>I left St.&nbsp;Petersburg on March&nbsp;12, and arrived
-at Liao-yang on the 28th. On this date there were
-collected in the concentration area in Southern
-Manchuria 59 battalions,<a id="FNanchor_65"></a><a href="#Footnote_65" class="fnanchor">[65]</a> 39 squadrons and
-<i>sotnias</i>, and 140 guns. The distribution was as
-follows:</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Southern Force</i> (under General Sakharoff)
-of the 1st&nbsp;and 9th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Divisions—20
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_210">[Pg 210]</a></span>
-battalions, 6 squadrons, and 54 guns—was in
-the area Hai-cheng—Ta-shih-chiao—Newchuang—Kai-ping.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Eastern (Advance) Force</i> (under General
-Kashtalinski) of the 3rd&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division—8
-battalions, 24 guns, 8 mountain and
-8 machine-guns—was moved to the Ya-lu.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Mounted Force</i> (under General Mischenko)
-of 18 squadrons and 6 guns was operating in
-Northern Korea.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Main Body</i> was divided into two groups:</p>
-
-<p class="groups">
-At An-shan-chan: 5th&nbsp;East Siberian
-Rifle Division of 8 battalions and
-24 guns.</p>
-
-<p class="groups">
-At Liao-yang: 2nd&nbsp;Brigades of the
-31st and 35th&nbsp;Infantry Divisions, 22nd
-and 24th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Regiments—21
-battalions, 10 squadrons,
-and 24 guns.
-</p>
-
-<p>In addition to these, the 23rd&nbsp;East Siberian
-Rifle Regiment—3 battalions and 4 guns—was
-allotted to the protection of the Viceroy’s Headquarters.</p>
-
-<p>In <i>Port Arthur</i> were the 7th&nbsp;East Siberian
-Rifle Division—12 battalions, 2 reserve battalions,
-3&frac12; battalions of fortress artillery, and
-a sapper and mining company.</p>
-
-<p>In <i>Kuan-tung</i> were the 5th, 13th, 14th, and
-15th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Regiments, 1 battalion
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_211">[Pg 211]</a></span>
-of the 16th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Regiment, 2 battalions
-of the 18th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Regiment,
-and 1 reserve battalion—12 battalions, 20 guns,
-and 1 <i>sotnia</i> of Cossacks.</p>
-
-<p>On my arrival I approved the following scheme
-of engineering works: The fortification of the
-positions on the Fen-shui Ling (Passes), and at
-Liao-yang, Mukden, and Tieh-ling; the construction
-of roads across the passes to the Ya-lu, and
-of three parallel roads from Kai-ping to Mukden;
-the construction of crossings over the Liao River,
-and the hutting of three army corps. I at once
-took steps also to strengthen our advance guard
-on the Ya-lu, which was some 133 miles distant.
-Two regiments of the 6th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle
-Division were sent there, in addition to the third
-battalions for the regiments of the 3rd&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Division. By the time, therefore,
-that the enemy began crossing the Ya-lu, the
-Eastern (Advance) Force had been increased to
-eighteen battalions, besides which the 21st&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Regiment had been moved towards
-Ta-shih-chiao. The advance guard was under
-General Zasulitch. Meanwhile the units of the
-1st&nbsp;Siberian Division were detained by Alexeieff
-in Harbin, so that, from the middle of March to
-the middle of April, the Manchurian Army did
-not receive a single battalion from the rear.</p>
-
-<p>Notwithstanding the orders Zasulitch had
-received to avoid a decisive engagement with
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_212">[Pg 212]</a></span>
-the enemy, who had the superiority in numbers,
-on May&nbsp;1 part of his force became hotly engaged
-in what developed into a serious fight at the
-Ya-lu, and after a disastrous finish his eastern
-force was withdrawn to the passes of the greater
-Fen-shui-ling range, which they reached on
-May&nbsp;7. In this action only nine of our eighteen
-battalions took any active part, those of the
-11th and 12th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Regiments
-showing great gallantry and determination.
-When asked why he had disobeyed the orders
-repeatedly given to him not to become entangled
-in a serious engagement, but to fall back on
-Feng-huang-cheng, Zasulitch gave as his reason
-that he had hoped to defeat the enemy. On
-May&nbsp;5 the Japanese began debarking at Pi-tzu-wo,
-and a small force of all arms under General
-Zikoff was detached from the southern force in
-order to reconnoitre and ascertain the importance
-of this landing. The advance of this column
-incidentally enabled us to repair temporarily
-the portion of the line which the enemy had
-destroyed, and so to run a train-load of mélinite
-shells, machine-guns, and ammunition through
-to Port Arthur. The Emperor was fully alive
-to the danger of the situation caused by the
-dispersion of the Manchurian Army, and on
-May&nbsp;11 telegraphed his orders for an immediate
-concentration. This was completed by the 14th,
-and the force was grouped on two points—Hai-cheng
-and Liao-yang. The former group
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_213">[Pg 213]</a></span>
-consisted of twenty-seven battalions, twelve
-squadrons and <i>sotnias</i>, and eighty guns; the
-latter of twenty-eight battalions, six <i>sotnias</i>, and
-eighty-eight guns. The passes over the Fen-shui-ling
-range were guarded by small columns
-of infantry with guns, and advance and flank
-guards were thrown out. The independent
-cavalry, operating on our flanks east of the
-passes, was divided in two bodies, under Mischenko
-and Rennenkampf. West of Liao-yang was a
-small force under General Kossagovski, while
-five and a half battalions of the 1st&nbsp;Siberian
-Division lay at Mukden. At this time also,
-when the Viceroy returned to Port Arthur
-(after Admiral Makharoff’s death of April&nbsp;13),
-the weakness of the place began to be shown up,
-and Alexeieff’s apprehensions as to its safety
-became acute. In a despatch of May&nbsp;16 he
-questioned whether the place “would be able
-to hold out for more than two or three months,
-in spite of all the steps taken to strengthen
-its defences.” On April&nbsp;25 the Chief of the
-Viceroy’s Staff telegraphed to me that, owing
-to the inadequacy of the garrison, Alexeieff
-considered it essential that if the fortress were
-attacked, the field army should support it as
-energetically and rapidly as possible. Alexeieff
-was not singular in his pessimistic views, for
-Stössel also gave up hope of a successful defence
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_214">[Pg 214]</a></span>
-of Port Arthur directly after he had so unnecessarily
-abandoned the Chin-chou position on
-May&nbsp;27. On the 28th I received a telegram
-from him urging me to support him speedily and
-in strength. This opinion was again endorsed
-by Alexeieff, who telegraphed on June&nbsp;5 that
-“Port Arthur cannot strictly be called a storm-proof
-fortress, and it is a question whether it can
-even stand a siege of the length indicated in my
-telegram of May&nbsp;16.”</p>
-
-<p>The result of this <i>volte-face</i> on the part of
-Alexeieff as to the powers of resistance of the
-place was that he pressed me to send part of
-the army at once to assist it, though we were
-by no means ready for such an enterprise. On
-May&nbsp;21 he wrote that he considered the moment
-in every way favourable for the army to assume
-the offensive in one of two directions—either
-towards the Ya-lu, with the object of defeating
-and throwing Kuroki back across the river,
-detaching a force to contain him there, and then
-moving on to relieve Port Arthur, or else direct
-on that place.</p>
-
-<p>It should be borne in mind that these instructions
-were given at a time when the position
-of only two of the hostile armies had been fixed.
-Of these, one—of three divisions and three
-reserve brigades—had forced the crossing of the
-Ya-lu, and the other—of three divisions—had
-landed near Pi-tzu-wo. Moreover, a landing,
-of the extent of which we had no information,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_215">[Pg 215]</a></span>
-was then being carried out at Ta-ku-shan.
-Consequently we did not know the destination
-of one-half of the enemy’s army, and were thus
-not in possession of two important pieces of
-knowledge which were necessary before any
-operations of a decisive character could be undertaken—namely,
-the position of the enemy’s main
-forces and their probable plan of operations.
-It was incumbent on us, therefore, to exercise
-great caution, and to keep our forces as far as
-possible concentrated, so as to be ready to meet
-the attack of two or even three armies. Concerning
-the two directions in which the Viceroy
-advocated an advance, the following few points
-suggest themselves. For any operations towards
-the Ya-lu—bearing in mind the necessity for
-guarding our flank and rear against one hostile
-force landing at Pi-tzu-wo, and possibly others
-landing near Kai-ping or Newchuang—not more
-than sixty to seventy battalions were available
-of the ninety-four which in the middle of May
-constituted the army; the whole of the food for
-these troops had to be brought up by rail, owing
-to the exhaustion of the local resources—never
-very plentiful—in the hilly country between
-Liao-yang and Feng-huang-cheng: we had not
-got the transport to do this, for our ten transport
-trains could only have carried a three or four
-days’ supply for a force of this size; the usual
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_216">[Pg 216]</a></span>
-May and June rains would have made the
-movement of our guns and baggage at first
-difficult, and then impossible, and we had at
-that time no mountain artillery or pack transport;
-we were by no means well placed in the
-matter of artillery parks: the horses for those of
-the 5th, 6th, and 9th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Artillery
-Divisions were still <i>en route</i> to Harbin, while
-the 1st and 2nd&nbsp;Siberian Divisions had arrived
-without any. Finally, if Kuroki should fall back
-behind the Ya-lu without accepting battle, we
-should have been obliged to retire and leave
-at least an army corps to contain him. When
-the rainy season came on, this corps itself would
-have been obliged to withdraw, as with interrupted
-communications it would have been
-seriously threatened by Kuroki’s far larger force,
-well provided with both mountain artillery and
-pack transport. For these reasons an offensive
-towards the Ya-lu was impracticable.</p>
-
-<p>Under the conditions laid down by the Viceroy
-as to keeping screens on the Fen-shui Ling
-(Passes), and leaving a reserve at Hai-cheng<a id="FNanchor_66"></a><a href="#Footnote_66" class="fnanchor">[66]</a>
-until such time as fresh reinforcements had been
-received, a direct advance on Port Arthur could
-only be made with one corps of twenty-four
-battalions. In view of the possibility of Kuroki
-taking the offensive in superior force (after
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_217">[Pg 217]</a></span>
-reinforcement by the troops already beginning
-to land at Ta-ku-shan) against our cordon, which
-extended along the Fen-shui-ling range for
-more than sixty-six miles, and in view of the
-possibility of the Japanese cutting off any
-detachment moving on Port Arthur by landing
-somewhere in its rear, the despatch of this corps
-130 miles to the south could not but be considered
-a most risky and difficult operation.</p>
-
-<p>As our numerical weakness absolutely precluded
-a general assumption of the offensive on
-our part, I pointed out that by such a movement
-for the relief of Port Arthur we risked
-disorganizing the whole army. I also drew
-attention to the fact that, according to the
-report of Captain Gurko, who had just arrived
-from the fortress, its combatant strength
-amounted to at least 45,000 men (including
-sailors), and that the enemy could not therefore
-have any very overwhelming superiority. My
-views upon the inexpediency of any movement
-towards Port Arthur were communicated to the
-War Minister in my telegrams (Nos. 692 and
-701) of May&nbsp;28 and 30. But in a telegram of
-the 31st the Viceroy urgently requested me to
-advance to the relief of the fortress, and expressed
-the wish that four divisions should be
-detailed for the operation; while on June&nbsp;6 he
-quoted to me a message from St.&nbsp;Petersburg
-in which it was stated that the time was “ripe for
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_218">[Pg 218]</a></span>
-the Manchurian Army to assume the offensive.”</p>
-
-<p>At the end of May the first reinforcements—the
-3rd&nbsp;Siberian Division—began to arrive in
-the concentration area. This enabled me to
-increase the force detailed for the advance into
-Kuan-tung up to 32 battalions,<a id="FNanchor_67"></a><a href="#Footnote_67" class="fnanchor">[67]</a> 22 squadrons
-and <i>sotnias</i>, and 100 guns. As a reserve to this
-force, the 2nd&nbsp;Brigade of the 31st&nbsp;Division was
-placed in the area Kai-ping—Hsiung-yao-cheng,
-and to a brigade of the 3rd&nbsp;Siberians was allotted
-the duty of watching the coast from Newchuang
-to the latter place. To hold Kuroki and the
-troops under Nodzu that had landed at Ta-ku-shan
-in check, 40 battalions, 52 <i>sotnias</i>, and
-94 guns were left on the Fen-shui Ling (Passes),
-distributed over a length of more than sixty-six
-miles. The general reserve consisted of the
-5th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division at Liao-yang,
-and a brigade of the 3rd&nbsp;Siberian Division at
-Hai-cheng. Early in June the force detailed
-under General Shtakelberg for the operations
-towards Port Arthur began to concentrate at
-Te-li-ssu, with its advance guard at Wa-fang-tien.
-On the 13th the Japanese themselves began to
-advance from Pu-lan-tien, and by the evening of
-that day we had been able to rail two regiments
-of the 9th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division into
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_219">[Pg 219]</a></span>
-Te-li-ssu. On the 14th the enemy’s attack of
-our position there was repulsed, and on the
-following day Shtakelberg proposed to make a
-counter attack, having been reinforced at noon
-by the Tobolsk Regiment. However, the battle
-ended in our defeat, and we were forced to fall
-back. General Gerngross, who was in command
-of the 1st&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division, was
-wounded, but remained in action. Shtakelberg’s
-orders gave him freedom of action, but he was
-instructed not to accept decisive battle if the
-enemy were in superior numbers. Simultaneously
-with the enemy’s advance from the south,
-Kuroki moved forward on the 14th to the
-Ta Ling<a id="FNanchor_68"></a><a href="#Footnote_68" class="fnanchor">[68]</a> (Pass) from Hsiu-yen, where three
-(according to some reports four) Japanese divisions
-were concentrated. Their 12th&nbsp;Division
-and three reserve brigades were left to watch
-our eastern force, and a further movement on Kai-ping,
-Ta-shih-chiao, or Hai-cheng was quite likely.</p>
-
-<p>In order to be in a position to check the combined
-advance of the two Japanese groups, I
-thought it advisable to strengthen our southern
-force, and therefore so rearranged our dispositions
-that 87 out of 110 battalions were massed on the
-southern front, in the area Kai-ping—Hai-cheng,
-against Oku and Nogi. Fortunately for us, the
-critical position of our eastern front during the
-operations at Te-li-ssu was not appreciated by
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_220">[Pg 220]</a></span>
-Kuroki, which fact favoured Count Keller’s
-demonstration towards Feng-huang-cheng in the
-middle of June. Otherwise Kuroki might have
-seized Liao-yang. On the 25th the enemy’s
-advance against our eastern force was commenced.
-On the 27th Keller withdrew some of his troops
-from the Fen-shui Ling (Passes) without opposition,
-and by July&nbsp;1 the main body was concentrated
-seven miles east of Lang-tzu-shan and
-twenty-seven from Liao-yang. On June&nbsp;27,
-without any serious engagement, but under
-pressure from the enemy, we abandoned the
-Fen-shui Ling (Passes), which they at once
-occupied. A few days previously—on June&nbsp;23—about
-a division of the enemy had been located
-by Rennenkampf to the east of Sai-ma-chi.
-Believing that Hai-cheng constituted our greatest
-danger, as the enemy might, if they gained a
-success there, cut off Shtakelberg’s force close by,
-on the 29th I concentrated forty-one battalions
-and eighteen <i>sotnias</i> under Zasulitch at Hsi-mu-cheng,
-intending with them to hurl back the
-enemy on to their Hai-cheng line of advance.
-However, on the same day we discovered that
-those of the enemy who had moved at first from
-the Ta Ling (Pass) along the Hsi-mu-cheng road
-had again retired to it.</p>
-
-<p>This danger being temporarily averted, I
-ordered the 31st&nbsp;Infantry Division back to
-Hai-cheng. As the defence of Liao-yang from
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_221">[Pg 221]</a></span>
-the east was the next most urgent matter, a
-brigade of the 9th&nbsp;Division, which had just
-arrived from Russia, was moved to Lang-tzu-shan
-to act as a reserve to the eastern force, which had
-been previously augmented by the return to it
-of two regiments of the 3rd&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle
-Division. The other brigade was sent, under
-General Hershelman, who commanded the
-division, to Hsi-kei-an village [at the junction of
-the Liao-yang and Mukden roads], so as to cover
-the left flank of the eastern force and guard the
-road to Mukden. Taking into consideration the
-considerable increase of the eastern force, I
-ordered Count Keller to take the offensive, so as
-again to get possession of the passes. He did so,
-but although he had forty battalions under his
-command, he advanced with only twenty-four.
-Though our troops were successful in the early
-hours of July&nbsp;17, thanks to the gallant conduct
-of the 24th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifles under Colonel
-Lechitski, the result of the day’s action was not
-favourable. Keller stopped the advance before
-even bringing into action his strong reserves, with
-the result that at nightfall the eastern force was
-once more on its former positions on the Yang-tzu
-Ling (Pass). On the 19th the brigade of the
-9th&nbsp;Division was driven from its position at
-Chiao-tou, and fell back towards Hu-chia-tzu.<a id="FNanchor_69"></a><a href="#Footnote_69" class="fnanchor">[69]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_222">[Pg 222]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>By the middle of July&nbsp;the disposition of the
-enemy’s forces was approximately as follows:
-Kuroki, with three field divisions and reserves,
-had captured the three Fen-shui Ling and
-Mo-Tien Ling (Passes), and, with his outposts
-thrown out on the roads to Liao-yang, had
-reached the valley of the Tang&nbsp;Ho, a tributary
-of the Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho. Nodzu, with an army of
-approximately the same strength, had captured
-the passes on the Kai-ping, Ta-shih-chiao, and
-Hai-cheng roads, and had two divisions and
-a brigade in reserve on the Hai-cheng line of
-advance and one on the Ta-shih-chiao line. Oku,
-having moved up from Kuan-tung with his army
-of some four divisions, had driven back our
-outposts and occupied Kai-ping. Two brigades
-were left in reserve on the line Feng-huang-cheng—Kuan-tien-chang.
-Thus, according to our
-information, two armies of about 90 to 100
-battalions had advanced against us from the east,
-and one of about 50 to 60 battalions from the
-south, whilst Nogi’s army of 3 divisions and
-2 reserve brigades had been left to operate
-against Port Arthur. Our dispositions were
-briefly: 44 battalions against Kuroki’s army;
-28 battalions on the line Fen-shui-ling—Hai-cheng
-against 2 divisions and 1 reserve brigade
-of Nodzu’s army; 48 battalions against Oku’s
-army, and 1 division of Nodzu’s; 16 battalions
-were in the general reserve at Hai-cheng, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_223">[Pg 223]</a></span>
-four in garrison at Liao-yang. It must, however,
-be borne in mind that the effective strength of
-our battalions was very far short of the prescribed
-establishment.<a id="FNanchor_70"></a><a href="#Footnote_70" class="fnanchor">[70]</a> From the beginning of the war
-up to July only 3,600 men were received in the
-way of drafts.</p>
-
-<p>With the above dispositions of the opposing
-forces, we should, according to the theory of the
-art of war, have been able to operate on “interior
-lines.” But for us this was extremely difficult,
-as, in the first place, we had not enough men to
-attain the necessary superiority over any one of
-the hostile groups without laying ourselves open
-to defeat by the other two; and, in the second,
-the rains had so seriously damaged the roads as
-to prevent the rapid movement (as we had heavy
-guns and baggage) necessary for successful action
-even on interior lines. Finally, as their bases
-(Korea, Ta-ku-shan, Pi-tzu-wo) were enveloping
-it was possible for each of their groups to refuse
-an unequal battle, and fall back without exposing
-its communications. Still, notwithstanding these
-unfavourable conditions, it was proposed to attack
-Kuroki, who menaced our communications most,
-at the earliest favourable moment. The troops
-which could be employed to strike him were
-distributed in two directions: twenty-four battalions
-of the eastern force on the main road from
-Liao-yang to Lang-tzu-shan, with its outposts on
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_224">[Pg 224]</a></span>
-the Yang-tzu-ling heights; and twenty-four
-battalions of the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps on the line
-Liao-yang—Sai-ma-chi, with its outposts five
-miles short of Chiao-tou. Twenty-four battalions
-of the 17th&nbsp;Corps were told off to remain as
-a reserve to these two groups at Liao-yang, while
-to prevent our left flank being turned, and to
-cover the Mukden road, the 11th&nbsp;Pskoff and
-2nd&nbsp;Dagestan Regiments, which had just arrived
-from Russia, were ordered to Pen-hsi-hu. But
-on July&nbsp;23, when I inspected the 10th&nbsp;Corps,
-I found that it was absolutely incapable of
-operating in the hills, as it had no pack-animals.
-In fact, those companies on outpost duty on
-steep or high ground had actually to remain all
-day without food or water. As the units of the
-17th&nbsp;Corps were in a similar condition, it was
-impossible even to think of at once assuming the
-offensive.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, on the 23rd and 24th, the enemy
-themselves took the initiative by attacking the
-1st and 4th&nbsp;Siberian Corps south of Ta-shih-chiao.
-In spite of the fact that the position held by these
-corps was very extended (eleven miles), and was
-divided in the centre by a rocky ridge, and that
-its left flank could have been easily turned, all
-the enemy’s efforts were repulsed. The regiments
-of the 4th&nbsp;Siberians, who bore the heat and
-burden of the day, behaved splendidly, but “in
-view of the great superiority of the enemy and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_225">[Pg 225]</a></span>
-the development of an attack from the direction
-of Ta-ling,” Zarubaeff, who was given general
-instructions but allowed freedom of action,
-decided early on the morning of the 25th to
-withdraw his force towards Hai-cheng. On
-learning of this, I ordered General Sluchevski
-to make immediate preparations for offensive
-operations, and, if Kuroki should cross the
-Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho and move towards Mukden, at once
-to advance, whether his troops were prepared
-for operating in the hills or not, and endeavour
-to strike Kuroki’s communications. However
-painful the abandonment of the port of Newchuang
-was for us after our tactical success at
-Ta-shih-chiao—for the enemy could now make use
-of it as a new base—the strategical position of our
-army was improved. With the departure of the
-southern force towards Hai-cheng, our greatly
-extended front was diminished by twenty miles.</p>
-
-<p>On July&nbsp;31 the enemy advanced all along the
-line. As far as our southern group was concerned,
-their blow was directed against Zasulitch,
-who was holding a position west of Hsi-mu-cheng,
-especially against his right flank, which was
-driven back in spite of the devoted efforts of the
-Voronej and Kozloff Regiments. As any further
-success on their part threatened to cut off the
-2nd&nbsp;Siberians from the main body of the southern
-group, I withdrew Zasulitch’s force to Hai-cheng.
-On the same day, the enemy’s operations on the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_226">[Pg 226]</a></span>
-eastern front were directed against both our
-groups. In the action on the Yang-tzu Ling
-(Pass) General Count Keller was killed, and the
-unexpected death of this gallant commander,
-together with the abandonment without orders
-by the 23rd&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Regiment<a id="FNanchor_71"></a><a href="#Footnote_71" class="fnanchor">[71]</a> of
-the position which protected his left flank, greatly
-influenced Kashtalinski (Keller’s successor) in
-coming to his too hasty decision to withdraw the
-force to Lang-tzu-shan. At the same time the
-10th&nbsp;Corps was taken partly by surprise,<a id="FNanchor_72"></a><a href="#Footnote_72" class="fnanchor">[72]</a> and
-driven from its advanced posts towards Hu-chia-tzu.
-Sluchevski, learning of the retirement of
-the eastern force towards Lang-tzu-shan, and
-fearing for his right flank, then withdrew his
-corps to An-ping. In these operations the corps
-commander displayed a lack of energy, and several
-regiments showed great unsteadiness, especially
-the reservists, many of whom actually left the
-ranks during the progress of the fight.</p>
-
-<p>The complicated nature of the situation now
-necessitated extreme caution on our part, lest
-anything should prevent our concentration in
-strength at Liao-yang, and there fighting a
-decisive battle against all three Japanese armies
-with some hope of success. From Liao-yang to
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_227">[Pg 227]</a></span>
-our position on the eastern front, An-ping–Lang-tzu-shan,
-was twenty miles, and to Hai-cheng forty
-miles. In order to insure the movement of the
-troops on the southern front to their positions at
-Liao-yang in good time, it was necessary to move
-them from Hai-cheng to the position at An-shan-chan—fifteen
-miles from Liao-yang—which was
-fortified at the beginning of the war. The retirement
-began early on August&nbsp;2, and on the
-following day the troops were concentrated on
-the position. In my report to the Tsar of
-August&nbsp;4, I gave the following general reasons
-for withdrawing to the line An-shan-chan–Lang-tzu-shan–An-ping
-after the July fighting:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;The Japanese superiority in numbers.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;They were accustomed to hills and hot
-weather; they were younger, carried lighter
-loads, and had numerous mountain artillery and
-pack transport.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;Their energetic and intelligent leadership.</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;The extraordinary patriotism and military
-spirit of their troops; and</p>
-
-<p>5.&ensp;The lack of such a spirit on our side (caused
-by general ignorance of what we were fighting
-for).</p>
-
-<p>Every moment gained at the beginning of
-August was of great importance to us, as the
-units of the 5th&nbsp;Siberians, which the Viceroy
-agreed to send to the front—instead of into the
-Pri-Amur district, as was proposed earlier—should
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_228">[Pg 228]</a></span>
-have been beginning to arrive in Liao-yang.
-Orders were therefore issued to fortify
-an advanced position half a march from Liao-yang
-in addition to the main position at that
-place, and for this time was required. Still, in
-spite of the obvious and immense importance of
-every day we gained by delaying the enemy’s
-advance, General Bilderling, who had taken
-over the command of our eastern front from
-July&nbsp;31, wrote that it was necessary to withdraw
-his troops immediately without fighting to
-Liao-yang itself, while Sluchevski urged that the
-army should be concentrated still further north—in
-the area Liao-yang–Mukden. These officers
-reiterated the same opinions still more forcibly
-early in August, when the difficulty of moving
-their troops towards Liao-yang became greatly
-increased by the heavy rains. The Viceroy, who
-was much perturbed about the fate of Port
-Arthur by the news of the unfortunate result of
-the naval operations on August&nbsp;10, and whose
-fears were increased by Stössel’s highly alarmist
-reports, was at the same time urging me
-(August&nbsp;15) to assist the fortress and make an
-advance of some sort—though it were only a
-demonstration—towards Hai-cheng.</p>
-
-<p>On August&nbsp;25 the enemy again advanced, and
-on the 26th attacked us on the eastern front, but
-their onslaught on the 3rd&nbsp;Siberians at Lang-tzu-shan
-and the attempt made to turn our right
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_229">[Pg 229]</a></span>
-flank failed. Ivanoff (who was in command of
-the corps) handled his artillery most skilfully,
-and all units of this corps behaved well. The
-reserves sent up by Bilderling arrived in good
-time, but the enemy obtained a position on the
-left of the 10th&nbsp;Corps which enabled them to
-menace the retirement of this corps along the
-Tang&nbsp;Ho. In the hot fight on the 26th again
-several units of the 10th&nbsp;Corps did splendidly.
-At this time a strong turning movement was
-discovered being developed against the left flank
-of our An-shan-chan position; but by delaying
-and inflicting heavy loss on the enemy on the
-Lang-tzu-shan and An-ping positions, all the
-corps were able to fall back on the advanced
-positions at Liao-yang, where the army was concentrated
-on August&nbsp;29. At the beginning of
-the action there the army was short of its prescribed
-strength by 350 officers and 14,800 men.
-Excluding the men detailed for extra duty (on
-the communications, etc.), the average strength
-of our companies was only 140 to 150 rifles, and
-those companies that lost most heavily in the
-previous fights could muster less than 100.</p>
-
-<p>The detailed account of the battle of Liao-yang
-has long ago been submitted to Headquarters.
-The following is a general description
-of it: On August&nbsp;30 and 31 the enemy attacked
-our advanced positions with great determination,
-especially that of the 1st and 3rd&nbsp;Siberians, but
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_230">[Pg 230]</a></span>
-were repulsed everywhere with heavy loss. In
-this fight the regiments of the 1st, 9th, 3rd, 6th,
-and 5th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Divisions rivalled
-each other in steadiness and gallantry, while the
-dispositions made by Shtakelberg and Ivanoff
-were good. Our success, however, was by no
-means lightly gained. Our artillery expended as
-much as 100,000 rounds of ammunition, leaving
-us with only 10,000 rounds in the army reserve.
-Moreover, excluding eight battalions furnishing
-guards and holding the works of the main Liao-yang
-position, on September&nbsp;1 only sixteen battalions
-were left in the general reserve. During
-the 31st we observed that large bodies of Kuroki’s
-army were crossing on to the right bank of the
-Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho. And, as the position held by the
-10th&nbsp;Corps (against which Kuroki should have
-been operating in full strength) had not for two
-days been subjected to any such determined
-attacks as that held by the 1st and 3rd&nbsp;Siberians,
-there was every reason to suppose that Kuroki’s
-main body was moving round to operate against
-our communications. Accordingly a decision had
-to be made of one of two alternatives: either—</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;To contain Kuroki with a small force and
-advance to the south against Oku and Nodzu; or—</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;To fall back on the main Liao-yang position,
-leave as few troops as possible to defend it, and
-then attack in force that portion of Kuroki’s
-army which was moving round our left, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_231">[Pg 231]</a></span>
-endeavour to crush it by driving it back on the
-Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho, which at that time of the year was
-unfordable except at a few points.</p>
-
-<p>As regards the first, even if we were successful
-against Oku and Nodzu, they could always fall
-back on their communications if in difficulties,
-and so draw us away from Liao-yang, while any
-success by Kuroki which might lead to an attack
-by him on our communications would threaten
-us with catastrophe.<a id="FNanchor_73"></a><a href="#Footnote_73" class="fnanchor">[73]</a> In order to collect sufficient
-force to move against the two armies, it would
-have been necessary to have contained Kuroki
-with only such troops as were on the right bank
-of the river—namely, the 17th&nbsp;Corps and two
-regiments of the 54th&nbsp;Division (total, forty battalions)
-under Bilderling. But as these troops
-were not yet seasoned, it was impossible to rely
-on their performing such an extremely difficult
-task as that of holding in check Kuroki’s superior
-numbers on the necessarily extended position
-they would have to occupy [this fear was justified
-by subsequent events]. These considerations led
-to the adoption of the second alternative.</p>
-
-<p>On the 31st, under cover of darkness and
-without being pressed, we began the evacuation
-of the advanced positions, which had already been
-of value to us, inasmuch as the enemy had been
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_232">[Pg 232]</a></span>
-weakened by the losses incurred in attacking
-them. By the following morning as many as
-100 battalions, with artillery and cavalry, had
-crossed on to the right bank of the river. The
-Japanese did not occupy our abandoned positions
-till the evening of that date, when they began to
-shell Liao-yang. The general disposition of the
-army was as follows: 56 battalions, 10 <i>sotnias</i>,
-and 144 guns (under Zarubaeff) were still on the
-left bank; 30 battalions, 5 <i>sotnias</i>, and 84 guns
-were on the right for the defence of Liao-yang
-itself. In addition to the small columns detailed
-to guard our flanks and rear, the remainder of
-the army, totalling 93 battalions, 73 squadrons
-and <i>sotnias</i>, and 352 guns, were told off to attack
-Kuroki. But in making this calculation as to
-the number of battalions available, it is essential
-to explain a very important factor. During the
-whole period of the war from its commencement
-till August only 6,000 men had been received at
-the front as drafts to repair wastage, and, as I
-have said, we began the fighting round Liao-yang
-with a shortage of 15,000 men. The result of
-this, taken in connection with the great number
-of men that had to be detached for various non-combatant
-duties, and also our losses in the
-fighting that had already taken place in the
-neighbourhood, was that the actual strength of the
-ninety-three battalions was, on September&nbsp;1, only
-from 50,000 to 55,000 rifles. For instance, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_233">[Pg 233]</a></span>
-twenty-one battalions comprising the 10th&nbsp;Corps
-(which took part in the affair of September&nbsp;2) only
-numbered 12,000 rifles, and the total of the twenty-four
-battalions of the 1st&nbsp;Siberians only amounted
-to 10,000. Kuroki’s army, on the other hand,
-was calculated to number approximately from
-65,000 to 70,000 men. The plan of operations
-for the troops crossing on to the right bank was
-as follows: The force was to deploy between the
-position held by the 17th&nbsp;Corps near the village
-of Hsi-kuan-tun and the heights near the Yen-tai
-mines, which were to have been held by Orloff’s
-force of thirteen battalions. Using the Hsi-kuan-tun
-position as a pivot, the army was to throw its
-left forward so as to strike the Japanese in flank.
-The position for the 17th&nbsp;Corps near this village
-was chosen by Bilderling in preference to that
-which had been prepared for defence beforehand
-on the right bank on the line San-chia-tzu–Ta-tzu-pu,
-and sufficient attention was not paid
-to its fortification. All that was done was to dig
-a few trenches, and no field of fire had even been
-cleared in the <i>kao-liang</i> crops. The consequence
-was that, in the early morning of September&nbsp;2,
-the enemy drove the 137th&nbsp;Niejinsk Regiment
-from the peak north-east of this place, which
-constituted the left flank position of the 17th
-Corps, and to regain this hill became the first
-thing we had to do. For this Bilderling was
-given forty-four battalions, with the 3rd&nbsp;Siberians
-in reserve, while the 1st&nbsp;Siberians and Orloff’s
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_234">[Pg 234]</a></span>
-column were to assist by threatening the Japanese
-right. Both Bilderling and Shtakelberg had been
-instructed as to what was expected of them, but
-they were given an absolutely free hand as to
-their dispositions. Notwithstanding the large
-force under Bilderling’s command, the operations
-failed in their object. Although the peak was
-recaptured on the evening of the 2nd, we were
-again driven off during the night, and had to fall
-back some two miles, only halting on the Erh-ta-ho
-heights.</p>
-
-<p>Orloff, on the other hand, moved from his
-position on the heights south of the Yen-tai mines
-before he ought to have done, without waiting
-for the arrival of the 1st&nbsp;Siberians. His troops
-became at once immersed in a perfect sea of <i>kao-liang</i>,
-and were fired on from front and flank;
-parts of the column were seized with panic, and
-the whole force retreated in disorder towards
-Yen-tai station. A large portion even went as
-far as the station itself. This sudden and unexpected
-departure from the field of 12,000 men
-had a disastrous result on this flank. We lost
-an excellent position, which should have served
-as the support for our advance from the left, and
-the enemy, spreading away to the north, had by
-5 p.m., in spite of the gallant efforts of Samsonoff
-and his Siberian Cossacks, occupied the whole
-range of heights and the Yen-tai mines. With
-the occupation of these heights the whole of our
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_235">[Pg 235]</a></span>
-left was endangered. At midnight Shtakelberg
-reported that, owing to his heavy losses in the
-preceding battles, he would not be able to take
-the offensive, or even to accept battle on the
-following day.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the armies of Oku and Nodzu had
-advanced in force against Liao-yang, but had
-been driven back by Zarubaeff. Here the main
-burden of the fighting fell on the 5th&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Division, which behaved extremely
-well, as did the regiments of the 4th&nbsp;Siberians.
-On the night of the 3rd, however, Zarubaeff
-reported that, though the enemy had been repulsed,
-he had only three battalions left in
-reserve, and needed reinforcements and gun
-ammunition. At the same time a message came
-in from Lubavin, who was covering the Pen-hsi-hu–Mukden
-line, informing me of his retirement
-to the Tung-chia-fen Ling (Pass), sixteen
-miles from Mukden. From this it is evident
-that if, choosing the first alternative, we had
-marched against Oku and Nodzu, Kuroki could
-most certainly have driven back the 17th&nbsp;Corps
-and 54th&nbsp;Division, and have seized the railway
-in rear of our troops moving southwards. As
-we knew, however, that Kuroki was not operating
-against us with his main body during the battle
-of the 2nd, we realized it might have been sent
-to turn our left. Such being the situation, we
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_236">[Pg 236]</a></span>
-had to decide whether to maintain our hold on
-the river, or to abandon Liao-yang and retire to
-the position on the left bank of the Hun&nbsp;Ho in
-front of Mukden, which had been already fortified.</p>
-
-<p>As regards the first alternative, it seemed
-possible that we might, by an immense effort and
-skilful manœuvring, be able to hold on to
-Liao-yang and throw Kuroki behind the Tai-tzu
-Ho. But for this it was essential to draw in the
-force that had crossed to the right bank, and to
-deploy it on a fresh line farther to the north, so
-that we might be able to attack the enemy’s
-position on the heights near the Yen-tai mines
-from the north as well as from the west. Such
-a movement would have exposed our right, and
-would have isolated the position still held by the
-17th&nbsp;Corps on the right bank of the river. The
-Japanese might drive it in and issue in rear of
-the troops at Liao-yang, for that place was only
-eleven miles distant from the position to which
-the 17th&nbsp;Corps would have had to retire if it were
-driven back. The defenders of Liao-yang, being
-then attacked by Oku and Nodzu combined,
-would be in a critical situation. As regards the
-second alternative, a retirement on Mukden
-presented great disadvantages and dangers. It
-increased the distance to Port Arthur; it would
-have to be carried out under pressure from the
-enemy in front and on the left, and the roads
-had been so much damaged by rain that it was
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_237">[Pg 237]</a></span>
-doubtful whether we should succeed in getting
-our transport or even artillery to Mukden. The
-abandonment of Liao-yang could not fail both
-to depress the troops who had so gallantly
-defended it and encourage the enemy. But, on
-the other hand, we should be extricated by such
-a retirement from a situation in which we were
-threatened in front and flank. A successful
-withdrawal would also give time for the 1st&nbsp;Army
-Corps to come up, and, what was not less important,
-for us to replenish artillery ammunition,
-of which we were very short. Besides this, the
-banks of the Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho were specially unsuited
-for our troops, as they were almost entirely
-covered with <i>kao-liang</i>. Our men were unused
-to this, lost their heads whenever they got into
-it, and were very liable to panic.</p>
-
-<p>On the whole, our past experiences of the
-offensive did not inspire any confidence that we
-should be able to cope with the difficult situation
-implied by a retention of Liao-yang. I decided,
-therefore, on the retirement towards Mukden,
-which was carried out by September&nbsp;7. The
-most difficult work, especially on the early
-morning of the 5th, fell to the lot of the
-1st&nbsp;Siberians, who had to beat off Kuroki’s force
-attacking from the east; this they did with
-success, and without losing a single trophy, in
-spite of the difficulties in which we were placed.</p>
-
-<p>A general account of the operations round
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_238">[Pg 238]</a></span>
-Liao-yang, and a statement of all the considerations
-which led to our retirement, were telegraphed
-to the Emperor on September&nbsp;11. On
-the 14th the army was made happy by the
-following gracious message, which I received
-from His Majesty:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“From your reports of the fighting at Liao-yang,
-I appreciate that it was impossible for you
-to have held that position longer without risk
-of being completely cut off from your communications.
-Under such conditions, and in face of
-the existing difficulties, the retirement of the
-whole force across country without the loss of
-guns or baggage was a brilliant feat of arms.
-I thank you and the gallant troops under your
-command for their heroic conduct and enduring
-self-sacrifice. May God help you all!”</p></div>
-
-<p>Upon retirement, our troops were grouped in
-two principal bodies—</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;The defence of the main position on the left
-bank of the Hun&nbsp;Ho was entrusted to the 10th
-and 17th&nbsp;Corps under Bilderling, to whom was
-subordinated Dembovski’s force of 10 battalions
-of the 5th&nbsp;Siberians, which was guarding the near
-right flank of the main position. Altogether,
-the troops under Bilderling’s command amounted
-to 75 battalions, 53 squadrons and <i>sotnias</i>,
-190 guns, 24 mortars, and 3 sapper battalions.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;The protection of the left flank from Fu-shun
-to the west was entrusted to Ivanoff’s force,
-consisting of the 2nd and 3rd&nbsp;Brigades of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_239">[Pg 239]</a></span>
-4th and some units of the 5th&nbsp;Siberians (total,
-62 battalions, 26 <i>sotnias</i>, 128 guns, and 2 sapper
-battalions).</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;To keep touch between these two main
-groups were the 1st&nbsp;Siberians under Shtakelberg
-(total, 24 battalions, 10 squadrons and <i>sotnias</i>,
-56 guns, and 1 sapper battalion). To his force
-was entrusted the defence of the portion of the
-Hun&nbsp;Ho from Chiu-tien to Pu-ling.</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;The general reserve was disposed in two
-groups—</p>
-
-<p>(<i>a</i>)&ensp;4th&nbsp;Siberians (24 battalions, 6 squadrons,
-96 guns, 12 mortars, and 1 sapper battalion) on
-the line Erh-tai-tzu–Khou-kha.<a id="FNanchor_74"></a><a href="#Footnote_74" class="fnanchor">[74]</a></p>
-
-<p>(<i>b</i>)&ensp;1st&nbsp;Army Corps, which concentrated in
-Mukden early in September<a id="FNanchor_75"></a><a href="#Footnote_75" class="fnanchor">[75]</a> (32 battalions,
-6 squadrons, 96 guns, 1 sapper battalion), along
-the Mandarin road on the line Pu-ho–Ta-wa.</p>
-
-<p>5.&ensp;The protection of the extreme right was entrusted
-to Kossagovski (6&frac12; battalions, 9 squadrons,
-14 guns), the main body of which was at Kao-li-tun
-on the Liao.</p>
-
-<p>6.&ensp;A brigade of the 6th&nbsp;Siberians (8 battalions
-and 1&frac12; <i>sotnias</i>) was concentrated at Tieh-ling to
-protect our communications.</p>
-
-<p>7.&ensp;The Trans-Baikal and Ural Cossack Brigades
-which did not belong to any corps were joined
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_240">[Pg 240]</a></span>
-together under the command of Mischenko
-(21 <i>sotnias</i> and 8 guns).</p>
-
-<p>Besides putting the finishing touches to the
-main position at Mukden, which had already
-been fortified, the defensive work consisted of
-strengthening the Fu-liang and Fu-shun positions,
-and throwing up some works on the right bank
-of the Hun&nbsp;Ho between Mukden and Fu-liang.
-The object of these was to check the enemy
-crossing until our reserves could come up. In
-addition to this, much was done to improve the
-communications towards Tieh-ling. On September&nbsp;20
-I learned by telegram from the Viceroy
-of the formation of the 2nd&nbsp;Manchurian Army.
-This was to comprise the 6th&nbsp;Siberians and
-8th&nbsp;Army Corps, five Rifle brigades from Russia,
-a Cossack infantry brigade, the 4th&nbsp;Don and
-2nd&nbsp;Caucasian Cossack Divisions, and three
-dragoon regiments of the 10th&nbsp;Cavalry Division.
-General Grippenberg was appointed to the command
-of this force on September&nbsp;24.</p>
-
-<p>Our position at Mukden had some very grave
-defects.</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;Its left flank (Fu-liang–Fu-shun) was,
-owing to the bend in the Hun&nbsp;Ho to the north-east
-of Mukden, thrown much too far back. If
-the enemy were successful on this flank, and
-came out on to our communications, we should
-be compelled to abandon the main position
-prematurely.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_241">[Pg 241]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;Almost immediately in rear of the position
-was the River Hun, which was at the time
-unfordable, and could only be crossed by bridges.
-Behind the river was the town itself.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;The Fu-shun coal-mines, which were most
-necessary to us (for railway fuel), were right in
-front of the position.</p>
-
-<p>These drawbacks, as well as our great desire
-to prevent any of the enemy’s forces being
-detached for the reinforcement of Nogi’s besieging
-army, drove us to try and take the offensive as
-soon as possible.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the drafts whereby to replace our
-losses were still arriving at the front very slowly;
-during July and August only 4,200 men were
-received. On September&nbsp;29 the eight corps
-composing the Manchurian Army could only
-muster 151,000 rifles, the deficit in officers being
-670. Besides these corps, the Viceroy put the
-6th&nbsp;Siberian Corps<a id="FNanchor_76"></a><a href="#Footnote_76" class="fnanchor">[76]</a> under my command, with
-the proviso that it should not be included in the
-army, and should not be split up.<a id="FNanchor_77"></a><a href="#Footnote_77" class="fnanchor">[77]</a> It was
-concentrated at Mukden on October&nbsp;8. My
-requests that the units of the 1st&nbsp;Siberian
-Division—some ten battalions—which were not
-included in the army, might be made over to me
-were not acceded to. But although we were
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_242">[Pg 242]</a></span>
-really too weak, an advance seemed more advantageous
-than waiting for the enemy to attack,
-for there seemed little chance of our being able
-to hold our ground on the Mukden positions.</p>
-
-<p>According to our information, the Japanese
-main forces had crossed on to the right bank
-of the Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho, between Liao-yang and
-Pen-hsi-hu, and were disposed approximately as
-follows: In the centre, behind the line Yen-tai
-station–Yen-tai mines, six divisions with brigades
-in reserve; on the right, écheloned along the
-line Pan-chia-pu-tzu–Pen-hsi-hu, two divisions
-with brigades in reserve; on the left, more or
-less along the line San-de-pu–Sha-tai-tzu, two
-divisions with their reserves. The enemy had
-fortified their positions on the Yen-tai heights
-and at Pan-chia-pu-tzu. It was decided, therefore,
-that the first object of our advance was to
-hurl the Japanese back on to the left bank of
-the Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho. To do this we were to deliver
-a frontal attack, and at the same time endeavour
-to turn their right, so that, if successful, we
-should dislodge them from the hills. Orders
-were issued for the forward movement to commence
-on October&nbsp;5. The following was the
-plan of advance decided upon by me:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;<i>Western Force.</i>—This force, under Bilderling,
-consisting of the 10th and 17th&nbsp;Corps
-(total, 64 battalions, 40 squadrons and <i>sotnias</i>,
-196 guns, and 2 sapper battalions), was to make
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_243">[Pg 243]</a></span>
-a demonstration in front against the enemy’s
-main force.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;<i>Eastern Force.</i>—This force, under Shtakelberg,
-consisting of the 1st, 2nd, and 3rd&nbsp;Siberians
-(total, 73 battalions, 29 squadrons and <i>sotnias</i>,
-142 guns, 6 mortars, 32 machine-guns, and
-3 sapper battalions), was to attack the right
-flank of the enemy, moving round it from the
-east. The first objective of this force was the
-enemy’s positions at Pan-chia-pu-tzu.<a id="FNanchor_78"></a><a href="#Footnote_78" class="fnanchor">[78]</a></p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;<i>The General Reserve.</i>—This, consisting of
-the 1st&nbsp;Army Corps and 4th&nbsp;Siberians, with
-Mischenko’s brigade (total, 56 battalions, 20 <i>sotnias</i>,
-208 guns, 30 mortars, and 2 sapper battalions),
-was to move up in rear of the interval
-between the western and eastern forces.</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;<i>The 6th&nbsp;Siberians</i> (32 battalions, 6 <i>sotnias</i>,
-96 guns, and 1 sapper battalion) was to remain
-temporarily in Mukden (with a brigade at Tieh-ling),
-so that it might either be moved to a
-flank or added to the reserve, according as the
-operations developed.</p>
-
-<p>5.&ensp;<i>Flank Guards.</i>—A force of 30&frac12; battalions,
-39 <i>sotnias</i>, 82 guns, and 1 sapper battalion was
-told off to protect the flanks. Of this, 19&frac12; battalions,
-25 <i>sotnias</i>, 64 guns, and the sapper
-battalion were to take part in the attack of
-the enemy’s position while keeping touch with
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_244">[Pg 244]</a></span>
-Dembovski’s and Rennenkampf’s columns of the
-eastern and western forces respectively.</p>
-
-<p>6.&ensp;Should the enemy concentrate towards
-their right, an endeavour was to be made to
-break through their centre in the direction of
-the Yen-tai mines by the 6th&nbsp;Siberians, with
-Bilderling’s force and the general reserve.</p>
-
-<p>The advance began on October&nbsp;5, and meeting
-with no determined opposition, we on the 9th
-occupied the following positions:</p>
-
-<p><i>Western Force.</i>—The line Shih-li-ho–Ta-pu.</p>
-
-<p><i>Eastern Force.</i>—The line San-chia-tzu–Shang-shan-tzu–Ununin.</p>
-
-<p><i>In the Centre.</i>—By the range of hills south of
-Khaamatan (with the assistance of a portion
-of the general reserve).</p>
-
-<p>The 4th&nbsp;Siberians, especially the Tomsk,
-Barnaul, and Irkutsk Regiments, did excellent
-work, as did Mischenko’s mounted force, reinforced
-by the 4th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Regiment.
-Rennenkampf’s column moved out into the
-Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho Valley, and worked along both
-banks of the river towards Pen-hsi-hu. Though
-the independent regiments of the 1st and 3rd
-Siberians suffered heavily, overcame the difficulties
-of the locality, and made altogether a
-gallant bid for success, they failed in their object,
-mainly owing to the lack of co-ordination in
-the plan of operations, and of cohesion in its
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_245">[Pg 245]</a></span>
-execution. On the evening of the 10th the
-Japanese themselves took the offensive, having
-concentrated their main forces opposite our right
-and centre. Bilderling’s western force, after
-fighting desperately against heavy odds and
-losing forty-six guns, fell back on the 12th on
-to the main position on the Sha&nbsp;Ho. Our
-centre, augmented by the 1st&nbsp;Corps, found itself,
-in consequence, too far forward, and was obliged
-on the evening of the 13th to commence a
-retirement on to the high ground near the
-position of the western force, and occupied the
-heights south of Erh-ta-ho. From the 10th to
-the 12th Shtakelberg’s eastern force made a
-gallant but vain endeavour to get possession of
-the almost inaccessible ridges to the north of the
-road from Pen-hsi-hu to the Yen-tai mines.
-His dangerous position, thirteen miles in advance,
-and the necessity for collecting enough
-troops in our centre to repulse the further
-attacks of the enemy’s main body, compelled
-me on the 12th to order him to withdraw to the
-high ground of the position occupied by the
-rest of the army, and to move a portion of his
-force in support of our centre. The enemy’s
-further attempts to drive us from the ground
-we were holding were unsuccessful, though we
-were hard pressed on the Sha&nbsp;Ho, and the
-general desire to retire on our Mukden positions
-became very great. In a night attack on the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_246">[Pg 246]</a></span>
-15th the enemy succeeded in dislodging two
-regiments of the 22nd&nbsp;Division from the “One
-Tree Peak,” which they were holding on the
-left bank of the Sha&nbsp;Ho between the villages
-of Sha-ho-pu and Sha-ho-tung. The loss of this
-height, which commanded us on the right bank
-of the river, and constituted, so to speak, the
-key of our position, by no means improved the
-situation. On the evening of the 16th, therefore,
-I concentrated a force of twenty-five
-battalions under Putiloff, whom I ordered to
-attack the enemy in front and flank. After
-desperate hand-to-hand fighting, he succeeded
-on the morning of the 17th in driving them off
-the heights, and captured eleven guns, one
-machine-gun, many limbers and waggons. This
-episode put the finishing touch to the major
-operations of both sides, and we now proceeded
-to pass the winter in our respective positions in
-close touch with one another.</p>
-
-<p>The reasons of the indecisive issue to the
-battle were:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;Shtakelberg’s unskilful disposition of the
-large force put under his command, which was
-(as we discovered later) almost three times the
-size of that opposed to him.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;The absence of proper control and generalship
-among senior commanders of the western
-force.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;The abortive operations of, and lack of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_247">[Pg 247]</a></span>
-energy displayed by the officer commanding the
-10th&nbsp;Corps. (Among other things, he not only
-retired quite unnecessarily on October&nbsp;12 from
-his position on the left bank of the Sha&nbsp;Ho, but
-also neglected to warn his neighbour in command
-of the 1st&nbsp;Corps, who was in consequence
-placed in a critical position.)</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;The useless manœuvres of the officer commanding
-the 31st&nbsp;Division, who several times
-ordered one of his brigades to retire without due
-cause.</p>
-
-<p>5.&ensp;The unsteadiness of many units.<a id="FNanchor_79"></a><a href="#Footnote_79" class="fnanchor">[79]</a></p>
-
-<p>6.&ensp;The lack of cohesion in the operations of
-the 6th&nbsp;Siberians (on the right of the western
-force).</p>
-
-<p>During this battle of the Sha&nbsp;Ho the senior
-commanders—Generals Bilderling and Shtakelberg—were
-given instructions as to what was
-required of them generally, but were left to
-make their dispositions independently.</p>
-
-<p>As will be seen from the above brief sketch
-of events, the September fighting had no decisive
-results. The two sides suffered equally,
-and lost about 50,000 men each. Still, our
-assumption of the offensive, even with inadequate
-numbers, greatly improved our strategical
-position by moving our general front thirteen
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_248">[Pg 248]</a></span>
-miles forward in front of Mukden, and afforded
-us a matter of four and a half months of time.
-As soon as we occupied the positions on the
-Sha&nbsp;Ho from Shou-lin-tzu on the right flank to
-Kao-tu-ling on the left, we set to work fortifying
-them. Besides ten battalions of the
-1st&nbsp;Corps, the whole of the 1st&nbsp;Siberians and
-twenty-four battalions of the 6th&nbsp;Corps were
-moved into the general reserve in rear of the
-centre, and we were confident that we would be
-able to hold our ground. We still had, however,
-a very small number of men—indeed, in
-some units the shortage was alarming. The
-total strength of the 252 battalions comprising
-our army on October&nbsp;25 was only 140,000 rifles,
-which works out at an average strength of
-550 per battalion, while many battalions could
-not even muster 400 men. Not less disquieting
-was the lack of officers, which now amounted
-in the infantry alone to over 2,700, or an average
-deficiency per battalion of eleven. Meanwhile
-the drafts to repair wastage were still coming up
-in driblets. In October and November we only
-received some 13,000 men. It was not till
-December&nbsp;8 that they began to reach us in any
-quantity; during that month and the first half
-of January 72,000 arrived. I reported upon this
-vital question in my letters to the Tsar of
-October&nbsp;26 and November&nbsp;5.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_249">[Pg 249]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In his despatches of October&nbsp;23 and 26 His
-Majesty was pleased to inform me that I had
-been appointed to the supreme command of all
-the forces in the Far East, that General Linievitch
-was appointed to the command of the 1st,
-and General Baron Kaulbars to the command
-of the 3rd&nbsp;Army.<a id="FNanchor_80"></a><a href="#Footnote_80" class="fnanchor">[80]</a> My first act was to augment
-the army by adding to it the whole of the
-1st&nbsp;Siberian and 61st&nbsp;Divisions, the latter of
-which was intended by Alexeieff for the Pri-Amur
-district. This at once added 20,000 rifles
-to the field army; the leading units also of the
-8th&nbsp;Corps began to arrive at the beginning of
-November, and at the end of the month were
-concentrated at Mukden. But the main thing
-which still remained to be done was the improvement
-of our railway communication with Russia,
-which became more than ever necessary on
-account of the increased army to be supplied.</p>
-
-<p>On November&nbsp;28 the effective strength of all
-three armies, including the 8th&nbsp;Corps, amounted
-to 210,000 men. Our information as to the
-enemy put their strength at this date at about
-200,000. Although we were rather superior in
-numbers, our superiority was too slight to insure
-a successful offensive under the particularly
-difficult conditions offered by the intense cold
-weather, and the fact that the enemy’s positions
-were strongly fortified. The low temperature
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_250">[Pg 250]</a></span>
-rendered the lightest trench work practically
-impossible, and made the provision of a large
-amount of warm clothing an absolute necessity.
-Our preparations for the offensive, as regards
-making Mukden an intermediate base and our
-engineering work, began in November. In
-addition to the branch railway to the Fu-shun
-mines, which was completed that month, a
-branch was laid to the right flank of our dispositions,<a id="FNanchor_81"></a><a href="#Footnote_81" class="fnanchor">[81]</a>
-and a field line to Rennenkampf’s
-force on the left.<a id="FNanchor_82"></a><a href="#Footnote_82" class="fnanchor">[82]</a> But still, when December
-came we were not ready to advance, mainly
-owing to the delay in railway construction,
-largely caused by the weather. Although I was
-informed by the War Minister, in a communication
-dated November&nbsp;8, that the running
-capacity of the Siberian and Trans-Baikal lines
-would from October&nbsp;28 be brought up to twelve
-pairs of military trains, we never received as
-many right up to the end of the war. The
-result of this was that the expected drafts, as
-well as the three Rifle brigades, arrived about
-ten days later than we had calculated on receiving
-them, and there was great delay in the
-distribution of warm clothing to the men, particularly
-felt boots. Very great difficulty also
-was experienced in collecting the food-supplies
-necessary for the forward movement, and in
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_251">[Pg 251]</a></span>
-organizing new transport units.</p>
-
-<p>When, in the middle of December, I summoned
-a meeting of the three army commanders
-and consulted them as to the possible date of an
-advance, in view of the critical state of affairs at
-Port Arthur, they unanimously stated that it was
-essential to await the arrival of the whole of the
-16th&nbsp;Corps. On receiving the news of the surrender
-of the fortress, I again asked their opinions
-as to whether—in view of Oyama’s armies being
-probably augmented by that of Nogi—they did
-not consider it desirable to commence an advance
-at an earlier date. But they still adhered to
-their former opinion, modifying it only to the
-extent that we should begin our advance while
-this corps was arriving, and not wait until its
-concentration was completed. As regards the
-actual plan of the offensive operations, the
-opinions of the three army commanders were
-the same—namely, that we should deliver the
-main blow with as large a force as possible at the
-enemy’s left, and envelop it. The only difference
-of opinion was as to the depth of this envelopment.
-The boldest and most original plan was
-that proposed by Grippenberg—namely, that he
-should undertake, with the 2nd&nbsp;Army, a wide
-turning movement—almost an envelopment—of
-the enemy’s left in the direction of Yen-tai station,
-and cut himself free from the 3rd&nbsp;Army. He
-considered it necessary to have seven corps under
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_252">[Pg 252]</a></span>
-his command for this operation. This, however,
-was impracticable, as, even without leaving any
-troops as a general reserve, besides the 16th
-Corps then arriving, only four corps could be
-given him—namely, the 8th, 10th, 1st&nbsp;Siberian,
-and the Composite Rifle Corps. General Linievitch,
-who was apprehensive that the enemy
-might attack the 1st&nbsp;Army, thought it dangerous
-to give Grippenberg the 1st&nbsp;Siberians. Kaulbars,
-in his turn, thought it impossible, without grave
-risk of the 3rd&nbsp;Army being driven from its positions,
-to detach any portion of it to the 2nd&nbsp;Army.
-Finally, Grippenberg’s plan, though it promised
-great advantages in the event of success, seemed
-very risky, for it extended our already long front
-still more, and made it so attenuated that it
-would be liable to be broken by a determined
-attack at any point. Moreover, no general
-reserve would be left at my disposal with which
-to deal with any unforeseen emergency.</p>
-
-<p>After proposing the above bold plan, Grippenberg
-suddenly went to the other extreme, and
-became pessimistic. For instance, on January&nbsp;13,
-he informed me that the campaign was as good
-as lost, that we ought to retire to Harbin, hold
-on to that point and Vladivostok, and from
-thence move with two armies “in other directions.”
-On my asking him which were the
-directions in which we should move, he gave no
-clear explanation. The same idea was expressed
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_253">[Pg 253]</a></span>
-also in a report received on the same day (dated
-January&nbsp;2) from General Ruzski, the Chief of
-the Staff of the 2nd&nbsp;Army. In it was contained
-Grippenberg’s opinion that it was impossible for
-us to dream of being successful after Nogi’s
-arrival, and that—</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“The officer commanding the Army accordingly
-inclines to the conclusion that, under the
-circumstances, the best solution of the question
-would be to fall back to Mukden, or further if
-necessary, and there to await a favourable opportunity
-to take the offensive.”</p></div>
-
-<p>However, it was finally decided, in accordance
-with the opinions of Linievitch and Kaulbars,
-and with the consent of Grippenberg, to take the
-offensive in January, on the condition that complete
-and direct touch was maintained between
-all three armies.</p>
-
-<p>According to our information, the strength of
-the Japanese armies was approximately as follows:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="Japanese strength">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdlt">Kuroki’s Army</td><td class="tdct">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdlt">68 battalions, 21 squadrons,</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td class="tdlt">&emsp;and 204 guns</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdlt">Nodzu’s Army</td><td class="tdct">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdlt">50 battalions, 11 squadrons,</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td class="tdlt">&emsp;and 168 guns</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdlt">Oku’s Army</td><td class="tdct">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdlt">60 battalions, 29 squadrons,</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td class="tdlt">&emsp;and 234 guns</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p class="noindent">or a total in all three armies under Oyama of
-178 battalions, 61 squadrons, and 606 guns. It
-was calculated that they could put 200,000 rifles
-in the field against us on January&nbsp;14, 1905. As
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_254">[Pg 254]</a></span>
-a matter of fact, we underestimated the number.
-From the prisoners we took we knew accurately
-what was going on in their 1st&nbsp;Army, but we
-were unable to ascertain with sufficient accuracy
-and in good time what was happening in the
-rear, or what reinforcements were being received.
-Their fortified positions were as follows: The
-left flank up to the village of Hsiao-tung-kou
-was held by Oku. In the centre was Nodzu’s
-army. On the right was Kuroki. Opposite
-Rennenkampf, on our extreme left, was a force
-under Kavamura amounting to about 15,000 to
-20,000 men. Nogi’s army was estimated at
-72 battalions, 5 squadrons, and 156 guns; but
-which units had reached Oyama, and how they
-were grouped, we did not know.</p>
-
-<p>In order to induce the enemy to detach as
-many men as possible for their line of communications,
-and so weaken their front, to handicap
-their supply arrangements, and to stop the
-rail transport of Nogi’s units to the front, a raid
-by a mounted force<a id="FNanchor_83"></a><a href="#Footnote_83" class="fnanchor">[83]</a> was organized against their
-line of communications. The objects of this raid,
-which was under Mischenko, were:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;To seize Newchuang station, and destroy
-the large stocks of food-supplies collected there;
-and—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_255">[Pg 255]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;To blow up the railway-bridges and destroy
-the track on the portion of the line from Ta-shih-chiao
-to Kai-ping.</p>
-
-<p>Neither object was fully attained, chiefly owing
-to the slowness with which the force moved.
-Individual episodes that occurred are, however,
-very instructive, and show that our cavalry is
-quite fitted to perform the most self-sacrificing
-duties.</p>
-
-<p>The plan agreed upon for the main advance
-was explained in my orders of January&nbsp;19. Just
-as it had been in September, our primary object
-was to drive the enemy behind the Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho,
-and to inflict on him as much damage as possible.
-The force selected for our first attentions was
-Oku’s left-flank army, the left wing of which was
-to be enveloped. The advance of the 1st and
-3rd&nbsp;Armies against the positions held by Nodzu
-and Kuroki were to be started and developed in
-accordance with, and depending upon, the measure
-of success attending the efforts of the 2nd and 3rd
-Armies to capture the enemy’s left-flank positions
-on the Sha&nbsp;Ho. The armies were given the
-following tasks:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;The 2nd&nbsp;Army was to gain possession of the line
-of Japanese works San-de-pu–Lita-jen-tun–Ta-tai–San-chia-tzu,
-and then the line
-Tsun-lun-ian-tun–Ta-ta-san-pu along the Sha
-Ho. And, conformably to the enemy’s action
-and the success attained by the 3rd&nbsp;Army, it
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_256">[Pg 256]</a></span>
-was, while throwing a strong containing force
-to the south, to develop its operations towards
-the line San-tia-tzu–Shih-li-ho, and on the
-heights south of the last village.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;The 3rd&nbsp;Army was to capture the line of
-works Chang-ling-pu–Ling-shen-pu, and then
-the line along the Sha&nbsp;Ho from the latter point
-to Hun-ling-pu inclusive. And, conformably
-to the enemy’s action and the successes attained
-by the 2nd&nbsp;Army, it was to develop its operations
-towards the line Hei-te-kai Peak–Hung-pao
-Shan Peak.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;The 1st&nbsp;Army was to co-operate in the
-capture of Hou-te-kai Peak, and seize the heights
-near the villages of Cheng-san-lin-tzu and Shih-shan-tzu.
-And according to the action of the
-enemy and the successes attained by the 2nd and
-3rd&nbsp;Armies, it was, with the assistance of the
-3rd&nbsp;Army, to develop its operations towards the
-positions near the villages Ta-pu, San-chia-tzu,
-Shan-lu-ho-tzu, which we had occupied on the
-10th to 12th October.</p>
-
-<p>In my orders of January&nbsp;21 it was clearly
-defined that the above scheme would require
-modification dependent on the line of action
-adopted by the Japanese.</p>
-
-<p>If, contrary to our calculations, the enemy
-preferred to contain our 2nd and 3rd&nbsp;Armies, and
-to fall with the rest of their forces on the 1st, or
-on the interval between the 1st and 3rd&nbsp;Armies,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_257">[Pg 257]</a></span>
-the position would call for a very energetic
-advance against their flank by the 2nd and 3rd
-Armies.</p>
-
-<p>If they should at once fall back on their second
-line of positions without holding on to their first
-line, we should endeavour to turn their retirement
-into a disordered retreat.</p>
-
-<p>January&nbsp;25 was the day fixed for the commencement
-of our advance, but, owing to the
-action of Grippenberg, who should have started
-the movement, the arrangements had to be
-altered. Almost a fortnight before our operations
-began our chances of success had been
-unfortunately reduced by certain dispositions
-made by him. The corps to be attached to his
-army were disposed as follows:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="Grippenberg's dispositions">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdlt">8th Corps</td><td class="tdct">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdlt">South of the River Hun on</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td class="tdlt">&emsp;both sides of the railway.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdlt">10th Corps</td><td class="tdct">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdlt">At Bai-ta-pu village on the</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td class="tdlt">&emsp;Mandarin road.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdlt">1st Siberians</td><td class="tdct">&hellip;</td>
- <td class="tdlt">Behind the right flank of the</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td class="tdlt">&emsp;1st Army.</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p>The right of the 2nd&nbsp;Army between the
-5th&nbsp;Siberians and the River Hun was only protected
-by cavalry, while a separate column of
-five battalions and two cavalry regiments under
-Kossagovski was on the right bank of the river.
-Notwithstanding the instructions issued that
-these dispositions were to hold good as long as
-possible, in order that we might conceal our
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_258">[Pg 258]</a></span>
-intentions from the enemy, and also that the
-10th&nbsp;Corps—intended to act as a reserve in the
-event of their striking at our centre—was not to
-be moved from its place without my knowledge,
-on January&nbsp;14 Grippenberg transferred the
-14th&nbsp;Division over on to the left bank of the Hun,
-and on the 16th, without letting me know, moved
-the 10th&nbsp;Corps closer to the right of the 3rd&nbsp;Army.
-These movements, of course, at once disclosed
-our intentions, and information soon came in that
-the enemy had, in their turn, commenced moving
-their troops westwards and fortifying opposite
-our new dispositions.</p>
-
-<p>The strength of the army was:</p>
-
-<table class="boxed" summary="Strength of Russian army">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdbc"></td>
- <td class="tdbc">Bat-<br />talions</td>
- <td class="tdbc">Squad-<br />rons<br />and<br />Sotnias</td>
- <td class="tdbc">Field-<br />Guns</td>
- <td class="tdbc">Mortars</td>
- <td class="tdbc">Siege-<br />Guns</td>
- <td class="tdbc">Mac-<br />hine-<br />Guns</td>
- <td class="tdbc">Sapper<br />Bat-<br />talions</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdbll">2nd Army</td>
- <td class="tdblc">120</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;92</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;412</td>
- <td class="tdblc">24</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;4</td>
- <td class="tdblc">20</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;3</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdbll">3rd Army</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;72</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;18</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;294</td>
- <td class="tdblc">54</td>
- <td class="tdblc">56</td>
- <td class="tdblc">12</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;3</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdbll">1st Army</td>
- <td class="tdblc">127</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;43</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;360</td>
- <td class="tdblc">12</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&mdash;</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;8</td>
- <td class="tdblc">&ensp;5</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdbll">General<br />&emsp;Reserve</td>
- <td class="tdblcb">&ensp;42</td>
- <td class="tdblcb">&mdash;</td>
- <td class="tdblcb">&ensp;120</td>
- <td class="tdblcb">&mdash;</td>
- <td class="tdblcb">&mdash;</td>
- <td class="tdblcb">&ensp;4</td>
- <td class="tdblcb">&mdash;</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdblr">Total</td>
- <td class="tdbc">&ensp;36</td>
- <td class="tdbc">153</td>
- <td class="tdbc">1,186</td>
- <td class="tdbc">&emsp;90<a id="FNanchor_84"></a><a
- href="#Footnote_84" class="fnanchor">[84]</a></td>
- <td class="tdbc">60</td>
- <td class="tdbc">44</td>
- <td class="tdbc">11</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p class="noindent">By the middle of January our numbers were,
-as regards rank and file, almost up to the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_259">[Pg 259]</a></span>
-authorized war strength, except in the Composite
-Rifle, 8th and 16th&nbsp;Corps, which had
-arrived short, so that the total of our forces was
-about 300,000 rifles. Although the establishment
-in officers was not fully complete, we now
-had some 5,600 in the infantry, which gave us
-on the average 15 per battalion.</p>
-
-<p>The advance began on January&nbsp;25, as ordered,
-the 1st&nbsp;Siberians first seizing the village of
-Huan-lo-to-tzu, and later, after a hot fight
-lasting all day, the village of Hei-kou-tai;<a id="FNanchor_85"></a><a href="#Footnote_85" class="fnanchor">[85]</a>
-Kossagovski’s column gained possession of Chi-tai-tzu
-and Ma-ma-kai without much difficulty.
-San-de-pu was not attacked that day. Of the
-14th&nbsp;Division, which was intended for this
-attack, three regiments were sent on the 22nd
-to join Mischenko’s force, in order to strike a
-separate blow at a small Japanese force of all
-arms, which, according to spies, was in occupation
-of A-shih-niu. Mischenko moved against
-this place with his infantry, but found no enemy
-there, and so the 14th&nbsp;Division was marched
-forty miles on a fool’s errand, and only arrived
-at Chang-tan on the morning of the 26th,
-thoroughly exhausted. The action of the 25th
-for the village of Hei-kou-tai, which we only
-seized with great difficulty and after heavy loss,
-in spite of our overwhelming superiority, indicated
-that such strongly fortified points as
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_260">[Pg 260]</a></span>
-San-de-pu and Lita-jen-tun could not be attacked
-without proper previous preparation, for we
-could not afford to waste men. I particularly
-underlined the necessity for this in my directions—“For
-the operations of the 2nd&nbsp;Army in capturing
-the enemy’s fortified line San-de-pu–Lita-jen-tun–Ta-tai,”
-dated January&nbsp;15, and also
-in my instructions with regard to the 2nd&nbsp;Army’s
-operations against the Lita-jen-tun portion,
-dated January&nbsp;16. Notwithstanding this, in the
-orders for the dispositions of the 2nd&nbsp;Army
-on January&nbsp;26, it was to operate on the line
-from Hou-leng-tai to the Hun—over a distance
-of ten miles against a fortified position—and to
-capture the two strongly defended points, San-de-pu
-and Lita-jen-tun. Grippenberg, moreover,
-came to no understanding with Kaulbars
-as to co-operation, and it was only upon a request
-made by the commander of the 10th&nbsp;Corps
-that the commander of the 3rd&nbsp;Army arranged
-to co-operate with his artillery, and so prepare
-the assault of the 5th&nbsp;Siberians. Being by
-chance in Hsui-tun just at the time when the
-10th&nbsp;Corps was making ready to carry out its
-allotted task, I was able to avert a dispersed
-attack (over a stretch of thirteen miles), and to
-prevent the employment of troops in an unprepared
-assault on strongly fortified positions.
-The attack to be made by the left flank of the
-2nd&nbsp;Army on the morning of January&nbsp;26 was
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_261">[Pg 261]</a></span>
-countermanded by Grippenberg himself, but the
-order was delayed in transmission, and if I had
-not been in Hsui-tun it would have taken place.</p>
-
-<p>The attack of the village of San-de-pu by the
-14th&nbsp;Division alone failed, and it could hardly
-have done otherwise in the absence of any
-artillery preparation. Neither the ground round
-it nor the fortifications of the place itself had
-been studied, and no sketch-plan of it had been
-made or issued to the troops. The result was
-that our guns shelled a village called Pei-tai-tzu,
-north-east of San-de-pu, all day instead of the
-place itself, which they did not touch, while the
-14th&nbsp;Division attacked and captured Pao-tai-tzu
-(to the west of San-de-pu), and reported to me
-they had taken San-de-pu. The outer enclosure
-of San-de-pu village was mistaken by this division
-for that of a <i>reduit</i> inside the village, and acting
-upon the assumption that they were not strong
-enough to seize this <i>reduit</i>, they were ordered
-back to their former positions, and abandoned
-Pao-tai-tzu. Meanwhile, having received the
-report that San-de-pu had been taken, Grippenberg
-gave orders for the heavy guns and mortars
-with the 8th&nbsp;Corps to be sent at once to the
-10th&nbsp;Corps, in order to prepare the assault of
-Lita-jen-tun next day. At the same time, as
-his men, who had had no sleep for three nights,
-were utterly exhausted, he asked permission to
-rest his army on the 27th. Accordingly, the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_262">[Pg 262]</a></span>
-1st&nbsp;Siberians were ordered to halt in the area
-south-east of Hei-kou-tai; but as we had not
-yet taken this area, the order led to this corps
-having to fight a separate action on the 27th
-for the possession of Su-ma-pu and Piao-tsao.
-When it became known on the morning of
-the 27th that San-de-pu had not been taken,
-Grippenberg was obliged to give up all idea of
-repeating the attack on the 27th, as he had sent
-his heavy guns to the 10th&nbsp;Corps. The decision
-was also necessitated by the fact that the
-Japanese had sent up strong reinforcements.
-When Shtakelberg was informed that San-de-pu
-had not been taken, he did not consider it
-possible to carry out Grippenberg’s twice repeated
-order to cease his attack, and late in the
-evening, after a hot fight, he seized the greater
-part of Su-ma-pu by a disconnected attack with
-four regiments. But being counter-attacked at
-dawn on the 28th by superior numbers both in
-front and on the left, he was forced to fall back
-with great loss (6,000 men). By that evening
-the 1st&nbsp;Siberians were holding a position on the
-line Tou-pao–Chu-san-ho-tzu, which the Japanese
-continued to assault with great fury till the
-early morning. The despatch of troops towards
-Su-ma-pu in no way met the circumstances:
-it led to a needless digression from the main
-objective of the whole operations—<i>i.e.</i>, San-de-pu—and
-generally to a still greater extension of the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_263">[Pg 263]</a></span>
-already too long front occupied by the 2nd&nbsp;Army.
-In order to divert the enemy’s attention from
-our right flank by a demonstration, the villages
-of Hsia-tai-tzu and La-pa-tai were attacked and
-seized on January&nbsp;27 by part of the 10th&nbsp;Corps
-under Tserpitski; but as we were not ready to
-storm San-de-pu, these places were abandoned.</p>
-
-<p>The cavalry of the 2nd&nbsp;Army, under Mischenko,
-made a bold dash at the enemy’s rear,
-and succeeded in killing and capturing a good
-many; but their success would have been far
-greater had the Don regiments under Teleshoff
-not been late in arriving. Mischenko, who was
-at the head of the advanced <i>sotnias</i>, was severely
-wounded, and Teleshoff, who succeeded in the
-command, failed to carry out the task entrusted
-to him. He neither sent word that the Japanese
-were receiving reinforcements, nor helped the
-Siberians when they were fighting for Su-ma-pu.</p>
-
-<p>By evening on the 28th the situation in the
-2nd&nbsp;Army was roughly as follows: The positions
-north of San-de-pu, along a front of eight miles—from
-the positions occupied by the 3rd&nbsp;Army
-up to the River Hun—were held by the 10th
-Corps and 15th&nbsp;Division; sixteen battalions
-of the former had been brought closer to the
-river, and behind them was the reserve of the
-3rd&nbsp;Army, a brigade of the 17th&nbsp;Corps. The
-Composite Rifle Corps and 1st&nbsp;Siberians were
-distributed along a front west of San-de-pu, on
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_264">[Pg 264]</a></span>
-the line Chan-chua-tzu–Tou-pao. Kossagovski’s
-force was at San-chia-tzu. The reserve of the
-2nd&nbsp;Army consisted of only one regiment of
-the 14th&nbsp;Division,<a id="FNanchor_86"></a><a href="#Footnote_86" class="fnanchor">[86]</a> and Grippenberg had (26th
-to 28th) three times asked for reinforcements to
-be sent him from the general reserve. The front
-of the 2nd&nbsp;Army was spread over twenty miles.
-Thus, by the evening of the 28th the greater
-part of that army was separated from the
-3rd&nbsp;Army by San-de-pu village, which was
-still in the enemy’s hands, and was dispersed
-over a long line fronting south-east. Whilst so
-distributed, not only was it difficult to assist it
-with troops from the 3rd&nbsp;Army in the event of
-its being attacked, but there was the danger,
-if the enemy reinforced heavily, of their being
-in a position to employ San-de-pu as a pivot,
-force back the Rifle Corps, and break through
-on to the communications of the 1st&nbsp;Siberians.
-Meanwhile reports came in which showed that
-only a portion of the enemy’s available forces
-were operating against Grippenberg, while the
-movement of Kuroki’s and Nodzu’s troops to
-the west showed that the enemy could still
-throw another six divisions into the fight. They
-might be moved against the weakened and
-extended front of the 3rd&nbsp;Army, thrust into the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_265">[Pg 265]</a></span>
-interval between the 3rd&nbsp;Army and the Hun&nbsp;Ho,
-or used as reinforcements to the troops operating
-against our positions west of San-de-pu.</p>
-
-<p>About 7 p.m. Kaulbars reported to me that
-the enemy had at 4 p.m. begun a movement in
-great strength towards their advanced positions.
-At the same time this movement became disclosed,
-and we opened artillery and rifle fire. As
-the reserve of the 3rd&nbsp;Army had already been
-given to the 2nd, I was obliged, as a temporary
-measure, to give Kaulbars the 72nd&nbsp;Division
-from my reserve. This left me with only thirty
-battalions of the 16th&nbsp;Corps, which had just
-arrived. Although the positions held by the
-Composite Rifle Corps and 1st&nbsp;Siberians had
-behind them an ice-covered river with steep
-frozen banks that hindered the crossing of all
-three arms, and were therefore inconvenient, yet
-the situation of the 2nd&nbsp;Army—enveloping
-San-de-pu, as it did—offered us certain advantages
-if we could only drive back the troops
-attacking the 1st&nbsp;Siberians and succeed in
-storming that place on the 29th. When, therefore,
-the above report came in from Kaulbars,
-the Chief of Staff of the 2nd&nbsp;Army was asked
-on the telephone when it was proposed to start
-the assault on San-de-pu. To this Ruzski replied
-that it certainly could not take place next
-day, as it had not been properly prepared by
-artillery, and that it was impossible then to fix
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_266">[Pg 266]</a></span>
-a time for it. On account of the vagueness
-of this reply, he was instructed to report to
-Grippenberg the information sent in by Kaulbars,
-and also the orders in which the 2nd&nbsp;Army was
-instructed to take up a more concentrated position
-in the early hours of the 29th, assuming as
-their first task the defence of the line
-Ssu-fang-tai—Chang-tan—Ta-man-ta-pu.
-Grippenberg, who
-was in a neighbouring apartment with a telephone,
-did not say a single word to this message,<a id="FNanchor_87"></a><a href="#Footnote_87" class="fnanchor">[87]</a>
-and these orders were carried out. All the
-enemy’s attacks on the positions Tou-pao–Chu-san-ho-tzu
-were repulsed by the 1st&nbsp;Siberians
-before retiring.</p>
-
-<p>Thus ended our first attempt at the offensive,
-and it cost us 10,000 men. The chief cause of
-our failure was, of course, our neglect to prepare
-properly the assault on San-de-pu, which again
-was a sign that we did not yet sufficiently respect
-our foe. Though a contempt of the enemy was
-all through the war evinced by the senior officers
-when they first arrived at the front, yet after our
-first actions it was generally, and perhaps unfortunately,
-replaced by an exaggerated idea of their
-merits. The absence of proper touch between
-Grippenberg and the corps under him was also
-responsible for much, as, owing to it, the transmission
-of orders and of information was greatly
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_267">[Pg 267]</a></span>
-delayed. The whole of the 8th and Composite
-Rifle Corps, again, did not shine in action. For
-instance, on the 28th, certain units of the
-15th&nbsp;Division, though not at all pressed, began
-to retire without permission. By doing so they
-exposed the siege battery they were covering,
-which was preparing to destroy its guns and
-blow up its ammunition preparatory to retiring
-itself.</p>
-
-<p>On January&nbsp;30 Grippenberg reported himself
-sick by letter, and by the Tsar’s permission left
-on February&nbsp;3 for St.&nbsp;Petersburg. This action
-of his set a fatal example both to those under him
-and to the rest of the army, and was most harmful
-to all discipline. The opinions, also, that he
-had expressed, to the effect that the campaign
-was virtually over, and that we should retire to
-Mukden and Harbin, had a dangerously disturbing
-effect on our weaker members. It was in
-the long-run more harmful than any single
-defeat of a portion of our force would have been.</p>
-
-<p>When the right flank of the 2nd&nbsp;Army fell
-back, the army held a line from Fu-cha-chuang-tzu
-to Ssu-fang-tai. The enemy made several
-unsuccessful attempts to drive us from those of
-their advanced positions that we had captured,
-their main efforts being directed towards the
-recapture of Pei-tai-tzu and Chang-tan-ho-nan.
-We, on our side, made energetic preparation to
-continue the advance we had begun so unluckily.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_268">[Pg 268]</a></span>
-Fresh siege batteries were brought up, the
-approaches to the enemy’s defended posts were
-carefully reconnoitred, and detailed plans were
-made. On February&nbsp;16 we received some drafts,
-which were used to make good the casualties in
-the 1st&nbsp;Siberians and the Composite Rifle Corps,
-both of which had suffered so heavily at
-Hei-kou-tai.</p>
-
-<p>On February&nbsp;10 General Kaulbars assumed
-command of the 2nd&nbsp;Army, and Bilderling
-temporarily took over command of the 3rd.
-Meanwhile, early in this month, information kept
-coming in that large bodies of Japanese cavalry
-with guns, together with bands of Hun-huses,
-were collecting in Mongolia, especially near the
-portion of the railway between Kung-chu-ling
-and Kuang-cheng-tzu, and early on the morning
-of the 12th the enemy raided the line north of
-the station of the former name and blew up a
-railway-bridge. The same day a reconnoitring
-party of the Frontier Guards suddenly came on
-a Japanese force of two cavalry regiments, a
-battalion, and some 2,000 Hun-huses near the
-Mongolian frontier. In the ensuing action we
-lost a number of men and one gun. General
-Chichagoff continued to report with great insistence
-that large bodies of the enemy—over
-10,000 strong—were collecting in Mongolia for
-the purpose of cutting our communications.
-Believing these reports, I detailed a brigade of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_269">[Pg 269]</a></span>
-the 41st&nbsp;Division and the whole of the Don
-Cossack Division to reinforce our protective
-troops on the railway itself, upon which, of
-course, we were dependent for supplies, drafts,
-and reinforcements. In addition to this, I also
-put some 15,000 reservists<a id="FNanchor_88"></a><a href="#Footnote_88" class="fnanchor">[88]</a> under the command
-of General Nadaroff, to strengthen the Frontier
-Guards and the line-of-communication troops
-generally.</p>
-
-<p>The rumours that we heard at this same time
-also of the landing of a large Japanese force in
-Northern Korea (assumed to be in connection
-with the liberation of Nogi’s army by the
-surrender of Port Arthur), part of which might
-be detailed for operations against Vladivostok,
-compelled me to take in hand the strengthening
-of our forces in the Primorsk district, and of the
-Vladivostok garrison in particular. With this
-end in view, a mixed brigade of six battalions,
-formed from men of the 1st&nbsp;Army, was sent to
-the fortress. In order to enable this brigade to
-be expanded into a division, and each of the Rifle
-regiments in the Primorsk district into regiments
-of four battalions, it was necessary, first of all,
-to divide the drafts which had come up for the
-army between the field army and the troops in
-the Primorsk district. Although forced to
-reduce the strength of the field army to the
-above extent, I made a mistake in not insisting
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_270">[Pg 270]</a></span>
-upon a sufficiently strong general reserve being
-formed. To do this I should have taken the
-whole of the 17th&nbsp;Corps into my reserve, though
-such a course would have been against the
-opinion of General Bilderling (who considered
-it dangerous to weaken the 3rd&nbsp;Army, as he had
-no reliance in the steadiness of the reserve troops
-of that army, the 5th and 6th&nbsp;Siberians). Instead
-of the thirty-two battalions, which would have
-been thus obtained, only one division, the
-6th&nbsp;Siberians,<a id="FNanchor_89"></a><a href="#Footnote_89" class="fnanchor">[89]</a> was added to the general reserve.</p>
-
-<p>In my orders issued after our disastrous action
-at Hei-kou-tai, it was laid down that as many
-units as possible should be taken out of the
-firing-line, so that strong army reserves might
-be formed. In order to render this possible, it
-was pointed out that defensive positions should
-not be held in equal strength along the whole
-front; that it was sufficient to prepare and hold
-the most important portions of a line as strongly
-as possible; and that, by holding on to these at
-all costs, time would be gained in which reserves
-could be pushed up to any threatened section.
-Unfortunately, I left too much to the experience
-and discretion of the army commanders, and did
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_271">[Pg 271]</a></span>
-not sufficiently insist on exact compliance with
-my instructions.</p>
-
-<p>Adhering to the original plan of offensive
-operations decided upon in accordance with the
-opinions of all the army commanders, I requested
-Kaulbars to fix the first day for the advance.
-He first chose February&nbsp;23, but owing to the
-troops of the 2nd&nbsp;Army being worn out with the
-very heavy work they had done in connection
-with the fortification of the positions, the advance
-was, at his own request, postponed till the 25th.
-On the 24th, however, Kaulbars heard that the
-date for the assault of San-de-pu was known to
-the enemy. He therefore lost hope of success,
-and asked that the assault might be indefinitely
-postponed. Meanwhile, on the 23rd, the enemy
-advanced in force against the Ching-ho-cheng
-column, and this body fell back from its fortified
-position next day after fighting an unsuccessful
-engagement.</p>
-
-<p>At the commencement of the Japanese advance
-our armies were distributed as follows:</p>
-
-<p><i>Right Flank.</i>—2nd&nbsp;Army, consisting of the
-1st&nbsp;Siberians, Composite Rifle, 8th and 10th&nbsp;Corps,
-a brigade of the 3rd and a mixed brigade
-of the 5th&nbsp;Siberians (total, 126 battalions),
-occupying the line Ssu-fang-tai–Chang-tan–Hou-lien-tai,
-a length of sixteen miles.</p>
-
-<p><i>Centre.</i>—3rd&nbsp;Army, consisting of the 5th
-Siberians (less two regiments), 17th&nbsp;Corps, and
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_272">[Pg 272]</a></span>
-one division of the 6th&nbsp;Siberians (total, 72 battalions),
-occupying the line Hou-lien-tai–Ling-shen-pu–Sha-ho-pu–Shan-lan-tzu,
-a length of
-eleven miles.</p>
-
-<p><i>Left Flank.</i>—Here were the 1st&nbsp;Army (less one regiment), 4th, 2nd,
-and 3rd&nbsp;Siberians (the latter less one brigade), 71st&nbsp;Division,
-Independent Siberian Reserve Brigade, and two Trans-Baikal
-infantry battalions (total, 128 battalions), occupying the line
-Shan-lan-tzu–Lu-chiang-tun–Erh-ta-kou–Lia-cheng-wu-tun, and further
-along the right bank of the Sha&nbsp;Ho, having its left flank three miles
-east of the Kao-tai Ling (Pass), a length of thirty miles. The 1st&nbsp;Army
-also had independent columns at Ching-ho-cheng and Hsin-tsin-tin.</p>
-
-<p><i>The General Reserve</i> consisted of forty-four
-battalions—namely, the 16th&nbsp;Corps (less one
-brigade) on the railway six miles south of Mukden
-station, 72nd&nbsp;Division, and 146th&nbsp;Tsaritsin Regiment,
-behind the right flank of the 1st&nbsp;Army at
-Huang-shan.</p>
-
-<p>On February&nbsp;23 the shortage in the infantry
-(rank and file) of all three armies was 49,000.</p>
-
-<p>A “Short Account of the Operations round
-Mukden in February, 1905,” was submitted to
-His Majesty the Tsar with a letter from me
-dated May&nbsp;13, 1905. A detailed description of
-these operations has been completed, and has
-now also been submitted to His Majesty. The
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_273">[Pg 273]</a></span>
-whole of the Mukden operations can be divided
-into three phases:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;From February&nbsp;23 to 28, till the turning
-movement against our right flank developed.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;From February&nbsp;28 to March&nbsp;9—the period
-of our concentration on the right bank of the
-Hun&nbsp;Ho, and our attempts to drive back the
-enemy who were enveloping us.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;From March&nbsp;9 to 16—our final attempt to
-hold on to Mukden, and our forced abandonment
-of it.</p>
-
-<h3>First Phase.</h3>
-
-<p>During this the enemy directed their attention
-exclusively to the left flank of the 1st&nbsp;Army—to
-Rennenkampf’s force, the 3rd, and (partly) the
-2nd&nbsp;Siberians. Amongst the troops operating
-against Rennenkampf was the 11th&nbsp;Japanese
-Division from Port Arthur, and from this it was
-surmised that other portions of Nogi’s army were
-also acting on that flank. The widely extended
-position of the 1st&nbsp;Army, bearing in mind the
-absence of an adequate army reserve; the concentration
-of large bodies of the enemy against
-the 2nd and 3rd&nbsp;Siberians, disclosed on February&nbsp;24;
-the retirement of the Ching-ho-cheng
-force; the possibility of a turning movement
-against it; and, finally, the decision of the officer
-commanding the 2nd&nbsp;Army to postpone the
-attack indefinitely—all these made me decide to
-reinforce the 1st&nbsp;Army quickly from my general
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_274">[Pg 274]</a></span>
-reserve, not only in order to check the enemy,
-but also in order to operate actively ourselves.
-The first reinforcements despatched were: a
-brigade of the 6th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division
-on February&nbsp;24 to protect the left flank of the
-Ching-ho-cheng force, and the 146th&nbsp;Regiment
-and 2nd&nbsp;Brigade of the 72nd&nbsp;Division on February&nbsp;25
-to reinforce the left flank of the
-1st&nbsp;Army. Finally, when it was discovered that
-the enemy were operating in great strength
-against the left flank of the Kao-tai Ling position,
-the 1st&nbsp;Siberians and 1st&nbsp;Brigade of the 72nd
-Division were sent on February&nbsp;27 to assist the
-1st&nbsp;Army in its projected advance. On this day,
-also, the 85th&nbsp;Viborg Regiment was sent to
-reinforce Daniloff’s force. When the 1st&nbsp;Army
-received these additions, amounting in all to
-fifty-four battalions, the advance of Kuroki’s
-army and of the right flank force of Kavamura
-was checked; but still our intended advance did
-not take place (owing to the exaggerated reports
-as to the enemy’s strength), and the 1st&nbsp;Siberians
-were sent back to the right flank to rejoin the
-general reserve.</p>
-
-<h3>Second Phase.</h3>
-
-<p>The first report of large bodies of Japanese
-infantry appearing near Ka-liao-ma, on the left
-bank of the Liao, was received on February&nbsp;28.
-News came in also of the enemy moving along
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_275">[Pg 275]</a></span>
-the right bank, and of the appearance of their
-columns at Hsin-min-tun. It was essential to
-take immediate steps to meet them on the way
-to Mukden in their turning movement. I
-thought it was possible, by using the positions
-of the 3rd&nbsp;Army as a pivot of manœuvre, and
-withdrawing its right flank on to the line Ling-shen-pu–Shua-lin-tzu–Lan-shan-pu,
-to leave<a id="FNanchor_90"></a><a href="#Footnote_90" class="fnanchor">[90]</a> for
-the defence of the section between the 3rd&nbsp;Army
-and the Hun&nbsp;Ho, and of that on the right
-bank, a total of forty-eight battalions, and to
-transfer on to the right bank the remainder of
-the 2nd&nbsp;Army (forty-eight battalions), and, after
-reinforcing them with twenty-four battalions of
-the 16th&nbsp;Corps and thirty-two battalions collected
-from the 3rd and 1st&nbsp;Armies, to detail
-them for operations against Nogi. The command
-of the troops collected on the right bank of the
-Hun was entrusted to Kaulbars, and I pointed
-out to him several times the particular importance
-of rapid and energetic action against the
-turning movement which threatened Mukden
-and our communications.</p>
-
-<p>The first units sent from the main reserve at
-Mukden to the west were:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;Towards Kao-li-tun, on the river, to operate
-against the wide turning movement along the River
-Liao, a brigade of the 41st&nbsp;Division under Birger.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_276">[Pg 276]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;To Sha-ling-pu, the 25th&nbsp;Division, under
-General Topornin, commanding the 16th&nbsp;Corps.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;Simultaneously the 2nd&nbsp;Brigades of the
-9th and 31st&nbsp;Divisions were concentrated under
-the command of Topornin, south of the 25th
-Division, on March&nbsp;2.</p>
-
-<p>The successive arrangements made by Kaulbars,
-in view of the enemy’s advance—already
-commenced on the right of the 2nd&nbsp;Army; the
-abandonment of Ssu-fang-tai; the withdrawal of
-troops from the right bank; the relief of corps
-that had been engaged, and the retention of
-troops which had already started towards
-Mukden, not only disclosed to the Japanese
-the possibility of free movement along the right
-bank of the river, but delayed the arrival on
-the western front of reinforcements from the
-2nd&nbsp;Army. General Topornin therefore received
-no support either on March&nbsp;2 or 3; still, he
-successfully continued on March&nbsp;3 the attack
-commenced the day before on the village of
-Sha-ling-pu. However, in view of the turning
-movement that had now become quite clear
-against our right flank, Kaulbars ordered a retirement—though
-the enemy were in no way
-pressing us—to the western Mukden fortifications.
-The troops took up a line fronting on
-Ma-tuan-tzu–Wu-kuan-tun, and, in spite of the
-orders given, did not occupy either the old
-railway embankment or the fortified position
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_277">[Pg 277]</a></span>
-west of Lin-min-shan-tzu. This direct withdrawal
-towards Mukden placed our troops in a
-very disadvantageous position, and enabled the
-enemy both to continue their turning movement,
-and make it wider and more dangerous.
-Immediately after our retirement from Sha-ling-pu,
-they moved forward quickly and enveloped
-our western front, and, moving on March&nbsp;3
-across on to the main Hsin-min-tun road, began
-to threaten Mukden from the north. Birger’s
-brigade, which had now returned from Kao-li-tun,
-fell back on Hu-shih-tai station.</p>
-
-<p>The protection of Mukden on the west and
-north was placed under Kaulbars, and was undertaken
-by units joining the general reserve.</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;The composite divisions of three regiments of
-the 17th&nbsp;Corps under De Witte took up the fortified
-position at Khou-kha<a id="FNanchor_91"></a><a href="#Footnote_91" class="fnanchor">[91]</a> on the morning of March&nbsp;3.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;A force of seven battalions under Colonel
-Zapolski was sent to Hu-shih-tai station.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;The 10th&nbsp;Rifle Regiment was concentrated
-at siding No. 97.</p>
-
-<p>4.&ensp;Eighteen battalions of the 1st&nbsp;Siberians
-came up as a reserve to these on March&nbsp;3.</p>
-
-<p>The concentration which I had ordered of the
-units of the 2nd&nbsp;Army on the right bank of the
-Hun was taking place extremely slowly. Indeed,
-some regiments which had already assembled
-had been sent back to the left bank. When I
-reached Mukden on the 3rd, I impressed on
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_278">[Pg 278]</a></span>
-Kaulbars the necessity of not losing any time,
-and told him to attack the following day, but
-gave him a free hand as to the direction of attack.
-He did not carry out the order, owing to the
-concentration of his army on the right bank not
-having been completed. Meanwhile, in the early
-hours of March&nbsp;4, the important hamlet of Ssu-hu-chia-pu
-was evacuated by the 2nd&nbsp;Army,
-and at the same time Ivanoff withdrew the
-15th&nbsp;Division from the position behind the Hun
-and the right flank of the 3rd&nbsp;Army, which he
-had been told to defend, without fighting. The
-latter thus became exposed. A brigade of the
-5th&nbsp;Siberians and nine <i>sotnias</i> of cavalry, which
-had remained on the right bank near Tung-chen-tzu,
-were moved across to the left.</p>
-
-<p>During March&nbsp;4, which was thus lost to us for
-offensive operations, Nogi continued his turning
-movement, which was now becoming enveloping
-and dangerous. Accordingly, after discussing
-the matter with Kaulbars, I ordered him on the
-5th to concentrate sufficient troops for the purpose,
-and to attack the enemy’s left, and I again
-emphasized the fact that our main chance of
-success lay in the rapidity and energy with which
-he struck. In an order of the 2nd&nbsp;Army of
-March&nbsp;5, a force of forty-nine battalions was
-organized to make the attack under the command
-of Gerngross. Here again the concentration
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_279">[Pg 279]</a></span>
-was too slow, and the right column only
-moved out from the line Sha-ho-tzu–Khou-kha
-about 2 p.m. Its right flank might have been
-strengthened by a brigade of the 41st&nbsp;Division with
-Zapolski’s column, and the left flank by sixteen
-battalions of the 25th&nbsp;Division. We therefore
-might have contained the enemy on the Yang-hsin-tun–Hsiao-sha-ho-tzu
-line with a force under
-Tserpitski, and have attacked with a mass of
-seventy-seven battalions.</p>
-
-<p>Kaulbars, alarmed at Tserpitski’s exaggerated
-reports as to the nature of the attacks made on
-his left by some three divisions, moved a brigade
-from Gerngross’s force behind the left flank, sent
-another on to the left bank of the river, and
-stopped Gerngross’s attack till such time as the
-result of Tserpitski’s action should be known.
-The net result of these proceedings, of the late
-commencement of the operations, and of their
-half-hearted nature, was that, although we met
-with no opposition, on the 5th we moved our
-right only on to the line Pao-ta-tun–Fang-hsin-tun–San-chia-fen;
-and so another day was lost.
-In accordance with my orders for energetic
-action, the advance of the right was continued
-on the 6th, but it was carried out with less men
-than on the previous day (thirty-three battalions),
-without energy or cohesion, and met with determined
-opposition at the village of Liu-chia-kan.
-Then, before the whole of Gerngross’s force had
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_280">[Pg 280]</a></span>
-become engaged, Kaulbars stopped the advance,
-and gave orders to take up the defensive. That
-day we got possession only of Tsuang-fang-chih.
-In short, notwithstanding the great strength of
-the 2nd&nbsp;Army, with its reinforcements of more
-than fifty battalions, on March&nbsp;4, 5, and 6—the
-three most important days—we moved our right
-only a few miles forward, and took to defensive
-measures even on the western front.</p>
-
-<p>Owing to the ill success of the operations of
-the 2nd&nbsp;Army on March&nbsp;5, I issued orders to all
-the armies to send back their divisional baggage
-along their respective lines of communication
-towards the north of Mukden. On the 5th the
-Japanese began a series of attacks on our northern
-and western fronts. On the left flank of our west
-front they were everywhere repulsed by Tserpitski
-and Hershelman, whose forces amounted to forty-nine
-battalions. In the centre of the western
-front they won a partial success, on March&nbsp;7
-compelling units of the 25th&nbsp;Division to retire
-temporarily from Wu-kuan-tun. But on the
-northern front, which was the most dangerous
-for us, they won great successes, on the 7th and
-8th getting possession of several villages. From
-there they repeatedly attacked our northern force
-of twenty-five battalions under Launits, which
-was holding the line Ta-heng-tun–San-tai-tzu–Kung-chia-tun.
-At the same time their columns
-moved still farther to the north, and threatened
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_281">[Pg 281]</a></span>
-Hu-shih-tai station. To protect this, I despatched
-a force of six battalions of the 4th&nbsp;Siberians to
-Tsu-erh-tun under Colonel Borisoff. To secure
-our retirement to Tieh-ling, in case we should
-not succeed in beating off Nogi’s army, on the
-evening of March&nbsp;7 I gave orders to the 1st and
-3rd&nbsp;Armies, who were too far forward, to retire
-early on the 8th to our fortified positions south
-of Mukden—at Fu-liang and Fu-shun. With
-their retirement and the concentration of the
-whole of the 2nd&nbsp;Army on the right bank it
-became possible to allot forty-eight battalions
-from the 1st and 3rd&nbsp;Armies to operate against
-Nogi, and to collect seventeen battalions into the
-reserve of the 2nd&nbsp;Army. Of these reinforcements,
-General Artamonoff’s force of ten battalions
-alone arrived under my command on
-the 8th.</p>
-
-<h3>Third Phase.</h3>
-
-<p>Having failed in our attempts to stop Nogi’s
-army, which was moving round our right flank,
-first on the line from Sha-ling-pu to the old
-railway embankment, and then on the line of
-the Hsin-min-tun main road, I decided to try
-once more to block it on the line Ku-san-tun–Tsu-erh-tun,
-and, if a favourable opportunity
-occurred, to assume the offensive from this line.
-On the 9th we had the following troops available
-for the purpose:</p>
-
-<p>1.&ensp;Borisoff’s column of 6 battalions holding
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_282">[Pg 282]</a></span>
-the villages of Tung-chan-tzu, Ku-san-tun, and
-Hsia-hsin-tun.</p>
-
-<p>2.&ensp;Artamonoff’s column of 9 battalions<a id="FNanchor_92"></a><a href="#Footnote_92" class="fnanchor">[92]</a> at
-Tsu-erh-tun.</p>
-
-<p>3.&ensp;Hershelman’s column of 14 battalions, sent
-from the reserve of the 2nd&nbsp;Army to that place.
-Total, 29 battalions.</p>
-
-<p>On March&nbsp;9 I ordered Lieutenant-General
-Muiloff, to whom was given the command of
-these troops, to co-operate with Launits’ force
-in an attack on the village of Hei-ni-tun. The
-operation was carried out in a disjointed manner,
-without careful reconnaissance, and without any
-arrangement for co-operation having been made
-with Launits; a bad storm and clouds of sand
-also impeded us, and the attack failed. The
-Japanese continued their advance to the north-west.
-Thus, by the 9th, the enemy was still
-not driven back on the side where they were
-most dangerous; part of the village of San-tai-tzu,
-taken from us in the early hours of that day,
-remained in their hands. The situation, indeed,
-appeared critical, for we received news on the
-same evening of the Japanese advance to the
-Hun&nbsp;Ho against the section Fu-liang–Hsiao-fang-shen,
-which was held by weak units of the
-1st&nbsp;Army, 4th and 2nd&nbsp;Siberians. Indeed, if we
-delayed the withdrawal on Tieh-ling longer there
-was great danger that some of our most advanced
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_283">[Pg 283]</a></span>
-forces in the south and south-west might be cut
-off. Therefore orders were given that same
-evening for a retirement to Tieh-ling early on
-the 10th, and for this operation roads were
-allotted as follows: The 2nd&nbsp;Army was to proceed
-along both sides of the railway and west of
-the Mandarin road; the 3rd&nbsp;Army along the
-Mandarin road and others to the east of it, as
-far as the Fu-liang–Hsi-chui-chen–Hui-san–Shu-lin-tzu
-road; the 1st&nbsp;Army along the latter,
-and the roads to the east of it.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the enemy had on the 9th broken
-through the 1st&nbsp;Army near Chiu-tien, driving
-back part of the 4th&nbsp;Siberians from this point
-to Leng-hua-chi. The officer commanding the
-2nd&nbsp;Siberians (next to them) did nothing but
-merely hold his position on the River Hun at
-Hsiao-fang-chen, and the enemy spread out along
-the valley Hsiao-hsi-chua–Hu-shan-pu. The
-attempt made to drive them back at night by
-the Tsaritsin Regiment failed.</p>
-
-<p>During the early morning of the 10th our
-position became yet worse; on the right flank
-the Japanese drove back Borisoff’s force to Hsiao-kou-tzu
-and opposite San-tai-tzu, and penetrated
-as far as the grove of the Imperial tombs. On
-the east large bodies of them appeared in sight
-of the Mandarin road. One was opposite Levestam’s
-force, while another began shelling the
-Mandarin road near Ta-wa from the heights near
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_284">[Pg 284]</a></span>
-Hsin-chia-kou. The orders given on March&nbsp;5
-for the baggage to be sent back in good time
-had not been carried out, and part of the impedimenta
-of the 2nd and 3rd&nbsp;Armies, which was
-stretching along the road near Mukden early
-on the 10th, blocked the passage of the 5th and
-6th&nbsp;Siberians and 17th&nbsp;Corps. On this morning
-also the Japanese, who had broken through
-near Chiu-tien on the 9th, began to press our
-left flank under Meyendorff. The troops sent
-as reinforcements did not act together, and were
-driven back north-west. By 10 a.m. Meyendorff
-was in full retreat—not north-east, but north-west
-towards the Mandarin road, which he
-crossed between Ta-wa and Pu-ho. The 6th
-Siberians now began to retire prematurely, and
-by so doing exposed the right of the 1st&nbsp;Corps
-and the left of the 17th. This unnecessarily
-sudden retirement of more than forty battalions
-under Meyendorff and Soboleff placed the 17th
-Corps and the 5th&nbsp;Siberians in a difficult position.
-Instead of fronting south, they had to
-front south-east. After a hot fight this force,
-consisting of thirty battalions, was also obliged
-to move to the rear prematurely. They did not
-go to Ta-wa, but west and south of the Mandarin
-road. This opened out a way for the enemy to
-that road, and also to the railway north—further
-on the portion between Mukden and Wen-ken-tun.
-By seizing this section about 2 p.m., before
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_285">[Pg 285]</a></span>
-the rearguards or even the tail of the main body
-had passed Wa-tzu, they took our troops in flank.
-We had evacuated the village of San-tai-tzu prematurely,
-and it was quickly occupied by the
-Japanese. Between Wa-tzu and this village
-there is a defile, less than three miles long, through
-which a large part of the 2nd&nbsp;Army had to force
-its way under attack from both sides. Portions
-of the rearguards under Hanenfeld and Sollogub,
-which tried to get round to the east of it, were
-captured or destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>I instructed General Dembovski to organize
-the defence of the Mandarin road at Ta-wa, and
-for that purpose to utilize the troops retiring along
-it. By 10 a.m. the distance between the portions
-of the enemy on the west and east of the railway
-was only seven miles. It was vital to stop any
-further contraction of the area of retirement of
-the 2nd&nbsp;Army. This might be done by blocking
-the Japanese advance to the railway from the
-west and north-west. As I was more anxious
-about the latter direction than any other, I moved
-out the eighteen battalions under Zarubaeff, which
-had joined my reserve from the 1st&nbsp;Army, on to
-the line Ma-kou-chia-tzu–Yang-tzu-tun, and ten
-battalions of the 72nd&nbsp;Division on the front
-Tung-shan-tzu–Hsiao-hsin-tun. The first force
-covered the railway between Hu-shih-tai and
-San-tai-tzu, and the second barred the enemy’s
-advance and supported the right flank of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_286">[Pg 286]</a></span>
-Artamonoff’s column. As a reserve to these troops,
-in case of pressure from the east, a brigade of the
-1st&nbsp;Siberian Division was left near Hu-shih-tai
-station. By 4 p.m. the state of affairs on the
-Mandarin road became worse, as, immediately
-after General Levestam’s force had retired behind
-Pu-ho, Dembovski also abandoned his positions
-near Ta-wa, and moved off to the west. The
-fighting ceased as darkness came on. The last
-of the 2nd&nbsp;Army to fall back were portions of
-the 1st, 2nd, and 3rd&nbsp;Rifle Regiments under
-Lieutenant-Colonel Korniloff; they broke through
-near Wa-tzu in the pitch dark, though hemmed in
-by the enemy on three sides.</p>
-
-<p>We continued to retire during the night, covered
-by the rearguard under Muiloff and that of Zarubaeff’s
-column. On the 11th several units of the
-1st and 3rd&nbsp;Armies collected at the village of
-Yi-lu; but the greater part of the 3rd&nbsp;Army fell
-back direct on Tieh-ling. Bilderling was unable
-to carry out his proposal of remaining on the
-River Yi-lu till the 12th, and, having taken
-command of Shileiko’s force, after slight opposition
-retired northwards from Yi-lu village. By
-doing this he placed the rearguards of the 2nd
-Army that were still south of this point in a
-very precarious position. The main bodies of
-all the armies began on the 11th to occupy a
-position eight miles south of Tieh-ling on the
-Fan&nbsp;Ho. The 2nd&nbsp;Army took up a line to the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_287">[Pg 287]</a></span>
-west and the first one to the east of the Mandarin
-road, the 3rd remaining in reserve. Everything
-possible was done to restore order amongst the
-troops, transport, and parks. On the 13th the
-enemy’s advanced troops reached our positions,
-and on the 14th they attacked, directing their
-main effort on the line between the sections held
-by the 2nd&nbsp;Siberians and 72nd&nbsp;Division. All
-their attacks were repulsed with great loss, and
-many hundreds of dead were left in front of our
-position. Our losses were 900.</p>
-
-<p>The two-weeks battle had badly disorganized
-several units, especially those of the 2nd and 3rd
-Armies. The men who had got separated from
-their own units and attached to others had to be
-sorted out and restored, baggage, transport, and
-parks had to be separated, and ammunition replenished.
-To carry this out made it essential
-that we should not be in direct touch with the
-enemy—that there should be some space between
-us. For this reason, and on account of the turning
-movement against our right flank along the
-River Liao, discovered by the cavalry, I decided
-not to accept battle at Tieh-ling, but to order
-a general retirement of all the armies on the 14th
-to the Hsi-ping-kai position, which was the best
-one between Tieh-ling and the River Sungari.
-The 1st and 2nd&nbsp;Armies began to move out of
-Tieh-ling on March&nbsp;16, and by the 22nd were on
-the heights of Hsi-ping-kai.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_288">[Pg 288]</a></span></p>
-
-<h3>CONCLUSIONS UPON THE BATTLE OF MUKDEN<a
-id="FNanchor_93"></a><a href="#Footnote_93"
-class="fnanchor">[93]</a></h3>
-
-<p>Both the nearness of the events related above
-and our ignorance about the enemy make it impossible
-for any detailed and absolutely impartial
-judgment to be formed upon the reasons for our
-defeat in this great battle. The records that have
-been collected so far, however, are sufficient to
-throw light upon a few facts—upon certain of our
-dispositions that did not correspond to the requirements
-of the case. Those made by the commander
-of the 2nd&nbsp;Army, to which force was entrusted
-the duty of stopping Nogi’s turning movement
-towards our rear, are of particular interest, and
-certain of them which had a very important bearing
-on the issue of the operations are now described.</p>
-
-<p>General Kaulbars made neither a sufficient
-nor a clever use of his cavalry. This fact,
-coupled with the unfortunate selection of its
-leaders, was the reason why the mounted branch
-did such bad work,<a id="FNanchor_94"></a><a href="#Footnote_94" class="fnanchor">[94]</a> and behaved in a manner
-that can hardly be called “devoted” during the
-Mukden operations. In the instructions given
-on March&nbsp;1 to Grekoff’s cavalry to operate
-against Nogi, the object to be attained was
-plainly set forth, but how it was to be attained
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_289">[Pg 289]</a></span>
-was not clearly defined. The execution of its
-most important task was also made the more
-difficult by the fact that Grekoff’s force was, on
-the same day as the orders were issued, split up
-into two almost equal groups, of which the
-eastern was found to be fighting Oku instead of
-Nogi. To rectify this, the cavalry under Pavloff
-was ordered on the same day by Kaulbars to
-undertake a special task against the turning
-columns, but on the 2nd the order was changed,
-and eight of Pavloff’s <i>sotnias</i> were put under
-the command of Launits, who was operating
-against Oku. No touch was maintained between
-their different groups, and the greater
-part of the mounted forces clung to the infantry,
-and did practically no fighting (the losses
-suffered by this Arm during the twenty-three
-days’ operations in February and March were
-quite insignificant). Yet most of our regiments
-were quite capable of performing the most difficult
-tasks of war. The action of the infantry of
-the 2nd&nbsp;Army on the positions which they had
-taken up was completely passive. They did not
-try to get into touch with the enemy to ascertain
-their strength and dispositions (by taking
-prisoners), or to occupy advanced posts where
-these would be advantageous. The reconnoitring
-patrols of this army also did but little work.
-The consequence of such unsatisfactory performance
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_290">[Pg 290]</a></span>
-of their duties by the cavalry and advanced
-infantry units of the 2nd&nbsp;Army was that information
-of the enemy was so meagre that the
-appearance of a great mass of Nogi’s army on
-and to the east of the Hsin-min-tun road came
-as a complete surprise to Kaulbars.</p>
-
-<p>Owing to the appearance of large hostile
-bodies near Ka-liao-ma, I had on February&nbsp;28
-already ordered him<a id="FNanchor_95"></a><a href="#Footnote_95" class="fnanchor">[95]</a> to take immediate steps to
-ascertain their exact strength, the direction in
-which they were moving, and their intentions.
-I repeated this order<a id="FNanchor_96"></a><a href="#Footnote_96" class="fnanchor">[96]</a> on March&nbsp;2, instructing
-him to find out their strength and dispositions
-more accurately if possible, and to frame some
-plan of action. I pointed out the necessity for
-energetic steps to ascertain the whereabouts of
-Nogi’s main body—whether it was opposite Sha-ling-pu,
-or whether it was executing a wider
-turning movement. On the morning of March&nbsp;5
-I for the third time<a id="FNanchor_97"></a><a href="#Footnote_97" class="fnanchor">[97]</a> asked Kaulbars to find out
-where Nogi’s left flank was. Not one of these
-orders was carried out, with the result that I had
-inadequate and incorrect information upon which
-to form a decision as to the strength and whereabouts
-of the enemy operating on the right bank
-of the Hun. Tserpitski’s alarmist reports to the
-effect that more than three divisions were opposed
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_291">[Pg 291]</a></span>
-to him made the fog worse. Kaulbars, who had
-been ordered to stop Nogi’s flanking movement,
-on the strength of incorrect information, all the
-time turned his chief attention towards the
-western front to Oku, whom he took for Nogi.
-The latter, owing to the 2nd&nbsp;Army’s inaction on
-March&nbsp;3, 4, 5 and 6, was made a present of four
-days in which to complete his sweeping movement
-to the north-east,<a id="FNanchor_98"></a><a href="#Footnote_98" class="fnanchor">[98]</a> and Kaulbars continued
-to see danger only on the west, paying insufficient
-attention to what was happening on the Hsin-min-tun
-road, north-west of Mukden. On
-March&nbsp;1 he conceived a most complicated
-“castling” manœuvre, which he endeavoured to
-carry out when in direct touch with the enemy.
-The Composite Rifle Corps was ordered to cross
-from the right bank of the Hun on to the left,
-and the 8th&nbsp;Corps from the left to the right.
-The Rifle regiments crossed over the river, and
-by so doing evacuated the most important section
-near Chang-tan, but the 8th&nbsp;Corps was unable to
-get across. The enemy at once took advantage
-of this, and, rapidly throwing their 8th&nbsp;Division
-forward along the right bank of the river, drove
-back the relatively weak force of ours still on
-that side. Kaulbars, moreover, stopped the
-movement on Sha-ling-pu (of the Composite
-Division under Golembatovski), which had
-already been started, and by so doing deprived
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_292">[Pg 292]</a></span>
-us of the possibility of checking the heads of
-the enemy’s columns on March&nbsp;2. Finally, the
-5th&nbsp;Rifle Brigade under Churin—which was
-moving by my orders to operate against Nogi—was
-stopped on March&nbsp;3 by Kaulbars in the
-valley on the right bank of the Hun, and found
-itself among the troops opposing Oku.</p>
-
-<p>After weakening Topornin by sixteen battalions,
-Kaulbars, on reaching his force, countermanded
-the advance on Sha-ling-pu, which had
-been begun on the morning of the 3rd, and
-suddenly withdrew thirty-two battalions to
-Mukden without fighting. This made our
-position distinctly worse. He took no steps
-to establish and maintain touch with Birger’s
-brigade on the Hsin-min-tun road, and never
-informed the latter of the order to retire he
-had given to Topornin on the 3rd. In telling
-Launits on the morning of March&nbsp;3 of his
-decision (to withdraw Topornin’s force to
-Mukden), he stated that “Grekoff’s column
-and Birger’s brigade are probably cut off from
-Mukden,” but he made no attempt to help
-Birger. And yet up to 2 p.m. on the 3rd
-Birger’s brigade was not even engaged. Our
-attempt to retake Ssu-hu-chia-pu on March&nbsp;4
-was stopped by Launits, owing to the receipt of
-orders from Kaulbars not to attack if it was
-likely to be a costly operation. Kaulbars did
-nothing that day, although he had under his
-command 119&nbsp;battalions<a id="FNanchor_99"></a><a href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">[99]</a> on the right bank of
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_293">[Pg 293]</a></span>
-the Hun, and although I had ordered him to
-assume the offensive. Moreover, he did not
-even know the whereabouts of the troops under
-him. Although he had 113 battalions under his
-command on the right bank on March&nbsp;5, he again
-did nothing. He did not carry out my orders
-to attack the enemy’s left energetically, and permitted
-these troops, which were at Khou-kha—next
-to Gerngross’s force—to deploy very slowly,
-and stopped their advance before they had got
-in touch with the enemy. Moreover, yielding
-to the preconceived idea of the main danger
-lying in the west, he moved sixteen splendid
-battalions of the 10th&nbsp;Corps from Gerngross’s
-force, operating towards Hsin-min-tun, on to the
-left flank of the army. Yet again on the 6th,
-although he had 116 battalions on the right
-bank, he effected scarcely anything, for our active
-operations towards Hsin-min-tun were conducted
-with an insufficient force, and therefore failed.</p>
-
-<p>The result of his dispositions from March&nbsp;2
-to 5 was that on the 6th we did not have a
-single battalion of the 2nd&nbsp;Army operating
-against Nogi, whereas we should have had
-forty.<a id="FNanchor_100"></a><a href="#Footnote_100" class="fnanchor">[100]</a> All ninety-six battalions of the 2nd
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_294">[Pg 294]</a></span>
-Army were on that day distributed on the
-defensive against Oku. This distribution of
-troops, which in no way met either the general
-requirements or the definite task given to
-Kaulbars—to stop Nogi’s army—constituted one
-of the main reasons of the failure of our operations
-at Mukden.</p>
-
-<p>On the 2nd and 3rd the following troops were
-given to Kaulbars from my reserve for his
-operations against Nogi:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="troops given to Kaulbars">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td></td>
- <td class="tdc"><span class="reduced">Battalions.</span></td><td></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">16th Corps</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td></td>
- <td class="tdc">24</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">1st Siberians</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td>
- <td></td><td class="tdc">18</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">De Witte’s column (3rd&nbsp;Army)</td><td
- class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td></td><td class="tdc">15</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Zapolski’s column</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td></td><td class="tdc">&ensp;4</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td></td><td class="tdc">&mdash;</td>
- </tr> <tr>
- <td class="tdc">Total</td><td
- class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td></td><td class="tdc">61</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p class="noindent">Moreover, sixteen battalions of the 10th&nbsp;Corps
-(2nd&nbsp;Army) were by my orders concentrated
-opposite Sha-ling-pu on the 2nd, and on the
-7th the 10th&nbsp;Rifle Regiment and two battalions
-of the 4th&nbsp;Siberians were sent from my reserve
-to join Kaulbars’ army—<i>i.e.</i>, he was given in
-all eighty-one battalions, of which sixty-five
-had not previously belonged to the 2nd&nbsp;Army.
-Of these, as transpired later, as many as thirty-five
-battalions did not take part, or only
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_295">[Pg 295]</a></span>
-took very little part, in any fighting up to the
-10th—<i>i.e.</i>:</p>
-
-<table class="nobox" summary="under-used battalions">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td></td>
- <td class="tdc"><span class="reduced">Battalions.</span></td><td></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">1st Siberians</td><td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td></td>
- <td class="tdc">13</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">De Witte’s column</td><td
- class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td></td><td class="tdc">13</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">2nd Brigade, 9th Division</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td></td><td class="tdc">&ensp;8</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">10th Rifle Brigade</td>
- <td class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td></td><td class="tdc">&ensp;2</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td></td><td></td><td></td><td class="tdc">&mdash;</td>
- </tr> <tr>
- <td class="tdc">Total</td><td
- class="tdc">&hellip;</td><td></td><td class="tdc">35</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p class="noindent">These units either occupied defensive positions,
-and merely watched the Japanese making a
-flank march past them,<a id="FNanchor_101"></a><a href="#Footnote_101" class="fnanchor">[101]</a> or were moved for no
-reason from one place to another (2nd&nbsp;Brigade
-of the 9th&nbsp;Division). Their losses from the 3rd
-to 9th were trifling.</p>
-
-<p>On the 4th, when I ordered Kaulbars to
-“move every available man on to the right flank
-near the Hsin-min-tun road,” the reverse was
-done. Two regiments (Tambov and Zamost)
-were moved from the right bank of the river on
-to the left; the 2nd&nbsp;Brigade of the 9th&nbsp;Division
-was ordered to move away from the Hsin-min-tun
-road, and crossed from Huang-ku-tun to
-Liu-kou-tun, and the Primorsk Dragoons from
-an important position on this road were sent to
-the rear to Hu-shih-tai.<a id="FNanchor_102"></a><a href="#Footnote_102" class="fnanchor">[102]</a> On March&nbsp;5 we were
-able to collect more than 100 battalions for
-operations against Nogi, 70 being concentrated
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_296">[Pg 296]</a></span>
-by my instructions. But although Kaulbars
-had received orders to send an army corps on
-to the right bank of the Hun to engage Nogi,
-he not only did not carry out the order, but
-lost five days (March&nbsp;2 to 6), and thus allowed
-the turning movement to develop so far that
-part of the force I had collected (25th&nbsp;Division)
-was on the 7th operating, not against Nogi, but
-against Oku’s left flank. Moreover, as he had
-on the 5th also weakened the force collected by
-me to act against Nogi by sending 16 battalions
-to the left flank of the 2nd&nbsp;Army, the result
-of these dispositions and our inaction during
-these five days was that on the 7th only 37
-battalions operated against Nogi instead of 100.
-The loss of time, and the weakness of the force
-that actually opposed Nogi, were largely contributory
-to our failure.</p>
-
-<p>Having so far employed only a very small part
-of the troops entrusted to him for offensive
-operations, on the 7th Kaulbars definitely and
-finally assumed the defensive. He did not even
-seize the opportunity of the repulses suffered
-by the enemy at Wu-kuan-tun and against
-Tserpitski’s force to attack. On the 7th, 8th,
-and 9th, with 140 battalions at his disposal, he
-assumed a passive rôle everywhere. While
-allowing a great confusion of units, he did not
-take proper steps, which he was quite able to do,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_297">[Pg 297]</a></span>
-to re-establish the corps, divisional and brigade
-organization, and on the 8th he did not take
-advantage of the possibility of forming a reserve
-from the entire 10th&nbsp;Corps, which would have
-enabled him to re-establish the organization of
-the other corps. On the 4th he removed Generals
-Muiloff, Topornin, and Kutnevich from the command
-of their corps for no reason, and as he did
-not replace them by other officers, the staffs of
-these corps were headless. The employment
-of the reserves in the 2nd&nbsp;Army was neither
-carried out by arrangement, nor in accordance
-with the actual necessities of the situation, so
-that there were instances of reserves being sent
-up when not required (Gerngross on March&nbsp;8).
-In spite of my order, which he received on the
-5th, to send back the baggage and transport to
-the north, Kaulbars only obeyed this instruction
-in regard to Tserpitski’s and Gerngross’s columns
-on the 9th, and thus made our retirement,
-especially that of our rearguards, most difficult.
-He failed to observe the appearance or concentration
-of the enemy on the northern front, and took
-no steps to avert this danger. The concentration
-of our forces on this side was carried out under
-my own orders. Had it not been for this, the
-enemy would have seized the village of San-tai-tzu
-and the grove of the Imperial tombs on
-the 7th.</p>
-
-<p>One occasion when Kaulbars did issue orders
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_298">[Pg 298]</a></span>
-that met the case was when he ordered Launits
-to attack the enemy on March&nbsp;10 at Hei-ni-tun
-so as to assist the retirement, and he got together
-a strong force for this purpose. But then, when
-these troops were on the point of commencing
-the attack, he went to Launits and countermanded
-it, without even informing me of this
-most important change in his previous dispositions.
-Yet, had this attack been only partially
-successful, it would have greatly relieved the
-situation. Right up to March&nbsp;13 not one of the
-arrangements made by him was fully carried out,
-and it is clear that he did not even then in the
-least appreciate the conditions. In addition to
-wasting time, extending his front, and acting
-only on the defensive, he did not realize the
-danger of Nogi’s appearance at such a moment
-north of Mukden, nor of his movement round our
-flank. In a letter to me of August&nbsp;11, he wrote
-that on March&nbsp;8 and 9, “although we had been
-retiring for a week, circumstances were going
-very well for us, as, the further the enemy moved
-northwards, the nearer they were getting to their
-Poltava.”</p>
-
-<p>From the above it can be seen that Kaulbars’
-dispositions, his inaction, and his misunderstanding
-of the whole situation, could not lead the
-2nd&nbsp;Army to Poltava. On the contrary, on
-March&nbsp;8 and 9, 1905, it was nearly a case of
-Tsushima.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_299">[Pg 299]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It only remains for me to conclude with a few
-pages out of the short report on the war which I
-submitted to His Majesty the Emperor.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Of the many causes contributing to the
-disastrous issue to the Battle of Mukden, I will
-only mention the following:</p>
-
-<p>“1.&ensp;The fall of Port Arthur liberated Nogi’s
-army, the whole of which took part in the
-battle. The formation of the new divisions in
-Japan was completed at the same time, and,
-judging by the prisoners we captured, two of these
-also took part in the battle. The immediate
-making good of wastage in their ranks presented
-no particular difficulty to the enemy, owing to
-the relative proximity of Japan to the theatre of
-war, and the resultant ease with which she was
-able to transport her troops by sea. Judging by
-the muster rolls found on the dead and wounded,
-the effective strength of their companies was
-between 200 and 250 rifles, and all casualties
-were at once replaced.</p>
-
-<p>“The liberation of Nogi’s army and the landing
-of troops in Northern Korea compelled us
-to increase the force detailed for the defence of
-the Primorsk district and Vladivostok, and the
-appearance of bodies of Japanese cavalry, together
-with artillery and numerous bands of Hun-huses
-in Mongolia, coupled with the raids on the
-railway, which were becoming more frequent,
-necessitated steps being taken to increase the
-railway guard along its 1,350 miles’ length in
-Manchuria.</p>
-
-<p>“These two measures took fourteen battalions
-and twenty-four <i>sotnias</i> from the field army, and
-also a large number of the 80,000 reservists then
-being sent to the front as drafts.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_300">[Pg 300]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“All these things combined enabled the
-Japanese at the battle of Mukden to be as strong
-as, if not stronger than, we were in the number
-of rifles.</p>
-
-<p>“2.&ensp;The tardy discovery by our cavalry of the
-enemy’s movement round our right flank, when
-‘strong columns of Japanese infantry’ had
-already appeared at Ka-liao-ma.</p>
-
-<p>“3.&ensp;The complete lack of energy displayed by
-the officer in command of the 2nd&nbsp;Army in repulsing
-Nogi’s force which was moving round us,
-with the result that we lost seven most important
-days (March&nbsp;1 to 8).</p>
-
-<p>“4.&ensp;His complete ignorance of the strength
-and whereabouts of the enemy moving round
-his right. The lack of information and the inaccuracy
-of what was received rendered some of
-my own dispositions not only unnecessary, but
-wrong. As a particular instance, I may mention
-that I only knew for certain when it was too
-late that the enemy were not making (as had
-been reported) a wider turning movement on
-both banks of the Liao towards Tieh-ling.</p>
-
-<p>“5.&ensp;The lack of energy displayed by senior
-officers of the 3rd&nbsp;Army on March&nbsp;10 in overcoming
-the difficulties of the retirement. Their
-passive attitude with regard to the enemy’s
-movements towards the Mandarin road—illustrated
-by the diversion of the various columns
-(on encountering the enemy) towards the west
-on to the line of retirement of the 2nd&nbsp;Army,
-instead of forcing back the enemy away from the
-Mandarin road.</p>
-
-<p>“The inaction of the 55th&nbsp;Division of the
-6th&nbsp;Siberians was remarkable. The commander
-of this unit, who only had this one division under
-his command, decided to place it directly under
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_301">[Pg 301]</a></span>
-the officer in command of the 1st&nbsp;Corps. Having
-done so, he rode away from his division to Ta-wa
-village. When he reached the railway on the
-morning of the 11th, he was unable to inform
-me where his division<a id="FNanchor_103"></a><a href="#Footnote_103" class="fnanchor">[103]</a> was!</p>
-
-<p>“6.&ensp;The failure of the commanders of the 2nd
-and 3rd&nbsp;Armies to carry out the orders I had
-given some days before the retirement began to
-send back the baggage and transport northwards.
-It was the disorder and panic which occurred
-amongst these auxiliary services on the retirement
-that caused the loss of so many guns and
-limbers, and ammunition and baggage waggons.</p>
-
-<p>“7.&ensp;The inertia displayed by the officers
-commanding the 2nd&nbsp;Siberian Division and the
-2nd&nbsp;Siberians, when an attempt was made to
-prevent the enemy breaking through near Chiu-tien,
-and when later they spread north of the
-Mandarin road. Besides the twenty-four battalions
-of the 1st&nbsp;Corps and the 4th&nbsp;Siberians,
-which did remain on the right flank of the
-1st&nbsp;Army, the 55th&nbsp;Division might have been
-used in this operation. But the officer commanding
-the 2nd&nbsp;Siberians received the enemy’s
-advance passively, merely throwing back his
-right flank, and thus presenting the enemy with
-an opening for their advance on to the Mandarin
-road.</p>
-
-<p>“8.&ensp;Nevertheless, I consider that I myself am
-the person principally responsible for our defeat,
-for the following reasons:</p>
-
-<p>“(<i>a</i>)&ensp;I did not sufficiently insist on the concentration
-of as large a general reserve as possible
-before the operations commenced.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_302">[Pg 302]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“(<i>b</i>)&ensp;I weakened myself just before an important
-battle by a brigade of infantry and a
-Cossack division (believing General Chichagoff’s
-reports). If I had not sent one brigade of
-the 16th&nbsp;Corps for duty on the communications,
-and had insisted on the 1st&nbsp;Siberians
-being sent back from the 1st&nbsp;Army at full
-strength, I should have had two full corps
-available for operations against Nogi’s turning
-movement.</p>
-
-<p>“(<i>c</i>)&ensp;I did not take adequate measures to prevent
-the confusion of units. Indeed, during the
-battle I was myself compelled to contribute to
-the disintegration of corps.</p>
-
-<p>“(<i>d</i>)&ensp;I should have made a better appreciation
-of the respective spirit of both sides, as well as
-of the characteristics and qualifications of the
-commanders, and I should have exercised more
-caution in my decisions. Although the operations
-of the 2nd&nbsp;Army from March&nbsp;2 to 7 failed
-in their object, my firm belief in ultimate victory
-resulted in my ordering a general retirement
-later than I ought to have done. I should have
-abandoned all hope of the 2nd&nbsp;Army defeating
-the enemy a day sooner than I did; the retirement
-would then have been effected in complete
-order.</p>
-
-<p>“(<i>e</i>)&ensp;When convinced of Kaulbars’ inertia and
-passive tactics, I should have taken command
-of the troops on the right bank of the Hun
-personally. On March&nbsp;9 I should similarly have
-taken command of Muiloff’s force, and acted as
-a corps commander.”</p></div>
-
-<p class="tbreak">&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p>In my letters of March&nbsp;31 and May&nbsp;13, 1905,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_303">[Pg 303]</a></span>
-to His Majesty the Emperor, I reviewed generally
-the factors which made the war extraordinarily
-difficult for us.<a id="FNanchor_104"></a><a href="#Footnote_104" class="fnanchor">[104]</a></p>
-
-<p>Has the army survived its Tsushima? No;
-it went through nothing nearly so bad as that.
-We fought hard everywhere, and we inflicted
-greater losses on the enemy than they on us.
-We were weaker in numbers than they were,
-and we retired. Even the Mukden reverse owes
-its reputation as a decisive Japanese victory to
-the impressions of our own correspondents, who
-were with the baggage and in rear. Can one
-say that the Russian land forces were defeated,
-when in the first important battles (at Liao-yang
-and on the Sha&nbsp;Ho) we only put into action
-a fourteenth part of our armed forces, and at
-Mukden, at a time when the Japanese had
-already put forth their greatest efforts, we had
-less than a sixth of our force? Nor must it be
-forgotten that we fought against a nation of
-50,000,000 martial and ardent souls, who, hand
-in hand with their Emperor, were able to grasp
-victory by fearing no sacrifice. To defeat such a
-foe in such a distant theatre of war, great and continued
-efforts were required of the whole of our
-country as well as of the army. In the beginning
-of the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries
-we waged great wars with such leaders as
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_304">[Pg 304]</a></span>
-Charles XII. and Napoleon. In these we also
-experienced defeat, but in the end we issued
-absolute victors. In the eighteenth century,
-between defeat at Narva and victory at Poltava
-nine years elapsed; in the nineteenth, between
-defeat at Austerlitz and our entry into Paris
-there was also nine years’ interval.</p>
-
-<p>The events which happened in the Far East
-in 1904–05 can, owing to their historical importance
-and their significance for Russia and the
-whole world, be placed alongside those through
-which Russia passed in the early years of the
-eighteenth and nineteenth centuries. In the
-struggle with Charles XII. and Napoleon the
-Russian people was at one with the Tsar, and
-bravely bore all trials and sacrifices, strengthening
-and improving the army, treating it with
-kindness, believing in it, wishing it well, and
-profoundly respecting it for its gallant deeds.
-The people realized the necessity for success,
-hesitated at no sacrifice, and were not troubled
-by the time required to gain it, and the harmonious
-efforts of Tsar and people gave us
-complete victory. The way to victory is in the
-present day by the same road which our ancestors
-followed in the early years of the last two
-centuries.</p>
-
-<p>If mighty Russia, headed by the Tsar, had
-been permeated by a brave and single-minded
-desire to defeat the Japanese, and had not
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_305">[Pg 305]</a></span>
-stinted the sacrifices and time necessary to preserve
-Russia’s integrity and dignity, our glorious
-army, supported by the trust of its ruler and
-a united people, would have fought until the
-enemy had been vanquished.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_306">[Pg 306]</a></span></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="appendices">
-
-<p class="apptitle">APPENDICES</p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="APPENDIX_I">APPENDIX I<br />
-<span class="capsub1">THE ROYAL TIMBER COMPANY<a id="FNanchor_105"></a><a href="#Footnote_105" class="fnanchor">[105]</a></span></h2>
-
-<p>Among the first questions suggested by General
-Kuropatkin’s narrative and the editorials, reports,
-and official proceedings that he quotes, are: Who
-was State Councillor Bezobrazoff? How did he
-acquire the extraordinary power that he evidently
-exercised in the Far East? Why was “everybody”—including
-the Minister of War—“afraid
-of him”? Why did even the Viceroy respond to
-his calls for troops? and why was his Korean
-timber company allowed to drag Russia into a
-war with Japan, apparently against the opposition
-and resistance of the Tsar, the Viceroy, the
-Minister of War, the Minister of Finance, the
-Minister of Foreign Affairs, the Port Arthur
-Council, and the diplomatic representatives of
-Russia in Peking, Tokio, and Seoul?</p>
-
-<p>No replies to these questions can be found in
-General Kuropatkin’s record of the events that
-preceded the rupture with Japan, but convincing
-answers are furnished by certain confidential
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_307">[Pg 307]</a></span>
-documents found in the archives of Port Arthur,
-and published at Stuttgart,<a id="FNanchor_106"></a><a href="#Footnote_106" class="fnanchor">[106]</a> just after the close
-of the war, in the Liberal Russian review <i>Osvobojdenie</i>.
-Whether General Kuropatkin was
-aware of the existence of these documents or not
-I am unable to say; but as they throw a strong
-sidelight on his narrative, I shall append them
-thereto, and tell briefly, in connection with them,
-the story of the Ya-lu timber enterprise as it is
-related in St.&nbsp;Petersburg.</p>
-
-<p>In the year 1898, a Vladivostok merchant
-named Briner obtained from the Korean Government,
-upon extremely favourable terms, a concession
-for a timber company that should have
-authority to exploit the great forest wealth of
-the upper Ya-lu River.<a id="FNanchor_107"></a><a href="#Footnote_107" class="fnanchor">[107]</a> As Briner was a promoter
-and speculator who had little means and
-less influence, he was unable to organize a company,
-and in 1902 he sold his concession to
-Alexander Mikhailovich Bezobrazoff, another
-Russian promoter and speculator, who had held
-the rank of State Councillor in the Tsar’s Civil
-Service, and who was high in the favour of some
-of the Grand Dukes in St.&nbsp;Petersburg.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_308">[Pg 308]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Bezobrazoff, who seems to have been a most
-fluent and persuasive talker, as well as a man of
-fine presence, soon interested his Grand Ducal
-friends in the fabulous wealth of the Far East
-generally, and in the extraordinary value of the
-Korean timber concession especially. They all
-took shares in his enterprise, and one of them,
-with a view to getting the strongest possible
-support for it, presented him to the Tsar. Bezobrazoff
-made an extraordinarily favourable
-impression upon Nicholas II., and in the course
-of a few months acquired an influence over him
-that nothing afterward seemed able to shake.
-That the Tsar became financially interested in
-Bezobrazoff’s timber company is certain; and it
-is currently reported in St.&nbsp;Petersburg that the
-Emperor and the Empress Dowager together
-put into the enterprise several million roubles.
-This report may, or may not, be trustworthy;
-but the appended telegram (No. 5), sent by Rear-Admiral
-Abaza, of the Tsar’s suite, to Bezobrazoff
-in November, 1903, indicates that the Emperor
-was interested in the Ya-lu enterprise to the
-extent, at least, of the two million roubles mentioned.
-Bezobrazoff’s “Company,” in fact, seems
-to have consisted of the Tsar, the Grand Dukes,
-certain favoured noblemen of the Court, Viceroy
-Alexeieff probably, and the Empress Dowager
-possibly. Bezobrazoff had made them all see
-golden visions of wealth to be amassed, power to
-be attained, and glory to be won, in the Far East,
-for themselves and the Fatherland. It was this
-known influence of Bezobrazoff with the Tsar
-that made “everybody” in the Far East “afraid
-of him”; that enabled him to enlist in the service
-of the timber company even officers of the
-Russian General Staff; that caused Alexeieff to
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_309">[Pg 309]</a></span>
-respond to his call for troops to garrison Feng-huang-cheng
-and Sha-ho-tzu; and that finally
-changed Russia’s policy in the Far East, and
-stopped the withdrawal of troops from Southern
-Manchuria.</p>
-
-<p>General Kuropatkin says that the Russian
-evacuation of the province of Mukden “was
-suddenly stopped by an order of Admiral
-Alexeieff, whose reasons for taking such action
-have not to this day been sufficiently cleared up.”
-The following telegram from Lieutenant-Colonel
-Madridoff, of the Russian General Staff, to Rear-Admiral
-Abaza, the Tsar’s personal representative
-in St.&nbsp;Petersburg, may throw some light on the
-subject:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="corrno">(No. 1.)</p>
-
-<p class="sal1">To Admiral Abaza,</p>
-<p class="sal2">House No. 50, Fifth Line,</p>
-<p class="sal3">Vassili Ostroff, St.&nbsp;Petersburg.
-</p>
-
-<p class="skip3">Our enterprises in East constantly meet with opposition
-from Dzan-Dzun of Mukden and Taotai of Feng-huang-cheng.
-Russian officer merchants have been sent East to
-make reconnaissances and examine places on Ya-lu. They
-are accompanied by Hun-huses, whom I have hired. The
-Dzan-Dzun, feeling that he is soon to be freed from
-guardianship of Russians, has become awfully impudent,
-and has even gone so far as to order Yuan to begin
-hostile operations against Russian merchants and Chinese
-accompanying them, and to put latter under arrest.
-Thanks to timely measures taken by Admiral, this order
-has not been carried out; but very fact shows that
-Chinese rulers of Manchuria are giving themselves free
-rein, and, of course, after we evacuate Manchuria their
-impudence and their opposition to Russian interests will
-have no limit. <i>Admiral (Alexeieff) took it upon himself
-to order that Mukden and Yinkow (Newchuang) be not
-evacuated.</i><a id="FNanchor_108"></a><a href="#Footnote_108" class="fnanchor">[108]</a> To-day it has been decided to hold Yinkow,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_310">[Pg 310]</a></span>
-but, unfortunately, to move the troops out of Mukden.
-<i>After evacuation of Mukden, state of affairs, so far as our
-enterprises are concerned, will be very, very much worse,<a href="#Footnote_108" class="fnanchor"><span class="norm">[108]</span></a>
-which, of course, is not desirable.</i> To-morrow I go to the
-Ya-lu myself.</p>
-
-<p class="right skip3">
-(Signed)&emsp;&emsp;<span class="smcap">Madridoff</span>.<br />
-</p></div>
-
-<p>Shortly before Lieutenant-Colonel Madridoff
-sent this telegram to Admiral Abaza, Bezobrazoff,
-who had been several months in the
-Far East, started for St.&nbsp;Petersburg with the
-evident intention of seeing the Tsar and persuading
-him to order, definitely, a suspension
-of the evacuation of the province of Mukden,
-for the reason that “it would inevitably result
-in the liquidation of the affairs of the timber
-company.” From a point on the road he sent
-back to Madridoff the following telegram, which
-bears date of April&nbsp;8, 1903, the very day when
-the evacuation of the province of Mukden
-should have been completed, in accordance with
-the Russo-Chinese agreement of April&nbsp;8, 1902:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="corrno">(No. 2.)</p>
-
-<p class="sal1">To Madridoff,</p>
-
-<p class="sal2">Port Arthur.</p>
-
-<p class="skip3">There will be an understanding attitude toward the
-affair after I make my first report. I am only afraid of
-being too late, as I shall not get there until April&nbsp;16,
-and the Chief leaves for Moscow on April&nbsp;17. I will do
-all that is possible, and shall insist on manifestation of
-energy in one form or another. Keep me advised, and
-don’t get discouraged. There will soon be an end of the
-misunderstanding.</p>
-
-<p class="right skip3">(Signed)&emsp;&emsp;<span class="smcap">Bezobrazoff</span>.
-</p></div>
-
-<p>On April&nbsp;24, 1903, Bezobrazoff sent Madridoff
-from St.&nbsp;Petersburg a telegram written,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_311">[Pg 311]</a></span>
-evidently, after he had made his first “report” to
-“the Chief.” It was as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="corrno">(No. 3.)</p>
-
-<p class="sal1">To Madridoff,</p>
-<p class="sal2">Port Arthur.</p>
-
-<p class="skip3">Everything is all right with me. I hope to get my
-views adopted in full as conditions imposed by existing
-situation and force of circumstances. I hope that if they
-ask the opinion of the Admiral (Alexeieff), he, I am
-convinced (<i>sic</i>), will give me his support. That will
-enable me to put many things into his hands.</p>
-
-<p class="right skip3">(Signed)&emsp;&emsp; <span class="smcap">Bezobrazoff</span>.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>General Kuropatkin says that Admiral Alexeieff
-gave him “repeated assurances that he was
-wholly opposed to Bezobrazoff’s schemes, and
-that he was holding them back with all his
-strength”; but the Admiral was evidently playing
-a double part. While pretending to be in
-full sympathy with Kuropatkin’s hostility to the
-Ya-lu enterprise, he was supporting Bezobrazoff’s
-efforts to promote that enterprise. Bezobrazoff
-rewarded him, and fulfilled his promise to “put
-many things into his hands” by getting him
-appointed Viceroy. Kuropatkin says that this
-appointment was a “complete surprise to him”;
-and it naturally would be, because the Tsar
-acted on the advice of Bezobrazoff, Von Plehve,
-Alexeieff, and Abaza, and not on the advice of
-Kuropatkin, Witte, and Lamsdorff. It will be
-noticed that Von Plehve—the powerful Minister
-of the Interior—is never once mentioned by
-name in Kuropatkin’s narrative. Everything
-seems to indicate that Von Plehve formed an
-alliance with Bezobrazoff, and that together they
-brought about the dismissal of Witte, who
-ceased to be Minister of Finance on August&nbsp;29,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_312">[Pg 312]</a></span>
-1903. Anticipating this result of his efforts, and
-filled with triumph at the prospect opening
-before him, Bezobrazoff wrote to Lieutenant-Colonel
-Madridoff on August&nbsp;25, 1903, as
-follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="corrno">(No. 4.)</p>
-
-<p>“The great saw-mill and the principal trade in timber
-will be transferred to Dalny, and this in co-partnership
-with the Ministry of Finance. The Manchurian Steamship
-Line will have all our ocean freight, amounting to
-25,000,000 feet of timber, and the business will become
-international. From this you will understand how I
-selected my base and my lines of operation.”</p></div>
-
-<p>In view of the complete defeat of such clear-sighted
-statesmen and sane counsellors as Kuropatkin,
-Witte, and Lamsdorff, there can be no
-doubt that Bezobrazoff’s “base and lines of
-operation” were well “selected.”</p>
-
-<p>The document that most clearly shows the
-interest of the Tsar in the Ya-lu timber enterprise
-is a telegram sent to Bezobrazoff at Port Arthur
-in November, 1903, by Rear-Admiral Abaza,
-who was then Director of the Special Committee
-on Far Eastern Affairs, over which the Tsar
-presided, and who acted as the latter’s personal
-representative in all dealings with Bezobrazoff
-and the timber company. In the original of
-this telegram significant words, such as “Witte,”
-“Emperor,” “millions,” “garrison,” “reinforcement,”
-etc., were in cipher; but when Bezobrazoff
-read it he (or possibly his private secretary)
-interlined the equivalents of the cipher
-words, and also, in one place, a query as to the
-significance of <i>artels</i>—did it mean mounted
-riflemen or artillery? The following copy was
-made from the interlined original:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_313">[Pg 313]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="corrno">(No. 5.)</p>
-
-<p class="adr1">From Petersburg</p>
-
-<p class="right"><i>November 14–27, 1903</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="sal1">To Bezobrazoff,</p>
-
-<p class="sal2">Port Arthur.</p>
-
-<p class="skip3">Witte has told the Emperor that you have already
-spent the whole of the two millions. Your telegram
-with regard to expenditure has made it possible for me
-to report on this disgusting slander, and at the same time
-contradict it. Remember that the Chief counts on your
-not touching a rouble more than the three hundred without
-permission in every case. Yesterday I reported again
-your ideas with regard to the reinforcement of the garrison,
-and also with regard to the <i>artels</i> (mounted Rifles or
-artillery?) in the basin. The Emperor directed me to
-reply that he takes all that you say into consideration,
-and that in principle he approves. In connection with
-this the Emperor again confirmed his order that the
-Admiral telegraph directly to him. He expects a telegram
-soon, and immediately upon the receipt of the
-Admiral’s statement arrangements will be made with
-regard to the reinforcement of the garrison, and at the
-same time with regard to the mounted Rifles in the basin.
-In the course of the conversation the Emperor expressed
-the fullest confidence in you.</p>
-
-<p class="right skip3">
-(Signed)&emsp;&emsp;<span class="smcap">Abaza</span>.</p></div>
-
-<p>General Kuropatkin refers again and again to
-the Tsar’s “clearly expressed desire that war
-should be avoided,” and he regrets that His
-Imperial Majesty’s subordinates “were unable
-to execute his will.” It is more than likely that
-Nicholas II. did wish to avoid war—if he could
-do so without impairing the value of the family
-investment in the Korean timber company—but
-from the above telegram it appears that as
-late as November&nbsp;27, 1903, only seventy days
-before the rupture with Japan, he was still
-disregarding the sane and judicious advice of
-Kuropatkin, was still expressing “the fullest
-confidence” in Bezobrazoff, and was still ordering
-troops to the valley of the Ya-lu.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_314">[Pg 314]</a></span>
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="APPENDIX_II">APPENDIX II<br />
-<span class="capsub1">BREAKDOWN OF THE UNIT ORGANIZATION<br />
-AND DISTRIBUTION<a id="FNanchor_109"></a><a href="#Footnote_109"
-class="fnanchor">[109]</a></span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="noindent">Amongst the causes which added to our difficulties
-must be mentioned the frequent breakdown
-in action of the normal organization of the
-troops. It began when war was declared, and
-though efforts were made to rectify things as far
-as possible, it was not till after the battle of the
-Sha&nbsp;Ho that we were really able to re-establish
-our formations. But both the corps and divisional
-organization again disappeared during the
-battle of Mukden, and the resulting confusion
-to a certain extent contributed to our defeat.</p>
-
-<p>When war began the corps organization of the
-troops stationed in the Far East was not complete,
-and one corps was formed of the independent
-Rifle brigades. When the Rifle regiments
-were brought up to a strength of twelve battalions,
-the normal composition of the 1st and 3rd&nbsp;Siberian
-Divisions was twenty-four battalions. The 2nd
-Siberian Corps was supposed to consist of one
-Rifle division and one reserve division formed in
-the Trans-Baikal district. Before hostilities commenced,
-a division of the 3rd&nbsp;Siberian Corps (the
-3rd&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division) was moved by
-the Viceroy to the Ya-lu; the 4th&nbsp;East Siberian
-Rifle Division, with the corps staff, remained in
-Kuan-tung. The 1st&nbsp;Reserve Division, which
-constituted part of the 2nd&nbsp;Siberian Corps, I
-kept at Harbin, and this corps remained with
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_315">[Pg 315]</a></span>
-only one division till I was appointed Commander-in-Chief.
-When the operations began,
-I endeavoured to reform the dislocated corps
-organization. I therefore collected on the line
-Liao-yang–Feng-huang-cheng the 3rd and 6th
-Siberian Rifle Divisions, and formed with them
-a corps which I called the 3rd&nbsp;Siberians. At
-first I did not succeed in sending to this corps
-the 23rd&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Regiment—it being
-stationed in Mukden as a guard on the Viceroy’s
-Headquarters—and my subsequent request that
-it might be sent to the Ya-lu to join the corps
-there was refused; it was only sent forward after
-the battle of the Ya-lu. The line Liao-yang–Ta-shih-chiao–Port
-Arthur was guarded by the
-1st&nbsp;Siberian Corps, at full strength. The 2nd
-Siberian Corps, in which was included the 2nd
-Brigades of the 31st and 35th&nbsp;Divisions, which
-had arrived in the Far East in 1903, composed
-my reserve, and was divided between Liao-yang
-and Hai-cheng.</p>
-
-<p>At first, owing to our paucity of numbers, the
-3rd&nbsp;Siberians had to defend a large tract of
-country. Six regiments of this corps were on
-the line River Ya-lu–Feng-huang-cheng–Fen-shui-ling–Liao-yang;
-one regiment was on the
-line Ta-ku-shan (sea and mouth of Ya-lu)–Hsui-yen–Ta
-Ling–Hai-cheng. One regiment was
-on the line Kuan-tien-cheng–Sai-ma-chi–An-ping–Liao-yang.
-When the 4th&nbsp;Siberians
-arrived, the line Ta-ku-shan–Ta Ling–Hai-cheng
-was occupied by one of its brigades, because a
-considerable number of Japanese had made their
-appearance in this direction. The remaining
-three brigades were concentrated near the station
-of Ta-shih-chiao,<a id="FNanchor_110"></a><a href="#Footnote_110" class="fnanchor">[110]</a> as a reserve either for the
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_316">[Pg 316]</a></span>
-1st&nbsp;Siberians to the south or the brigade of the
-4th&nbsp;Siberians on the Ta Ling (Pass). All the
-units of the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps which arrived
-from Russia were collected on the line Sai-ma-chi–An-ping–Liao-yang,
-where Kuroki’s army was in force. As soon as the units of the 4th
-Siberians and 10th&nbsp;Army Corps occupied the
-above-mentioned lines, the regiments<a id="FNanchor_111"></a><a href="#Footnote_111" class="fnanchor">[111]</a> belonging
-to the 3rd&nbsp;Siberians were moved off to join their
-own corps. On arriving from European Russia,
-the units of the 17th&nbsp;Army Corps were concentrated
-near Liao-yang, and formed my main
-reserve.</p>
-
-<p>The two brigades of the 10th and 17th&nbsp;Army
-Corps, which arrived in the Far East in 1903,
-were organized as independent brigades, and, till
-the troops concentrated at Liao-yang, operated
-with the advanced forces. The brigade of the
-35th&nbsp;Division fought with the 1st&nbsp;Siberians, to
-which it was sent up as a reinforcement in the
-battle of Te-li-ssu. The brigade of the 31st
-Division sent to reinforce the troops operating
-on the line Ta-ku-shan–Ta-Ling–Hai-cheng,
-together with the 5th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division,
-became part of the 2nd&nbsp;Siberians. When
-the Japanese advanced with all their three armies
-on July&nbsp;31, the general disposition of our troops
-was as follows:</p>
-
-<p>1. To the south, opposite Oku’s army, were the
-1st and 4th&nbsp;Siberian Corps, total forty-eight
-battalions (the 1st&nbsp;Siberians at full strength, the
-4th&nbsp;Siberians consisting of three brigades), under
-the command of General Zarubaeff.</p>
-
-<p>2. On the line Ta-ku-shan–Ta Ling–Hai-cheng,
-opposite Nodzu’s army, were the 2nd
-Siberians and a brigade of the 4th&nbsp;Siberians,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_317">[Pg 317]</a></span>
-total twenty-eight battalions, under the command
-of Lieutenant-General Zasulitch.</p>
-
-<p>3. On the line Ya-lu–Fen-shui-ling–Liao-yang,
-opposite Kuroki’s army, were the 3rd
-Siberians, and the 10th and 17th&nbsp;Army Corps,
-total eighty battalions, under the command of
-General Bilderling. At this time the 5th&nbsp;Siberians
-were, by the Viceroy’s orders, detrained at Mukden,
-and told off to protect the rear and the line Pen-hsi-hu–Mukden,
-and to act at the same time as
-a reserve for the advanced corps. When we
-moved towards Hai-cheng the brigade of the
-4th&nbsp;Siberians operating on the line Hai-cheng–Ta
-Ling–Ta-ku-shan, returned to its own corps.
-In retiring towards Liao-yang, the two brigades
-of the 10th and 17th&nbsp;Army Corps, which had
-been sent out to the Far East in 1903, joined
-these corps.</p>
-
-<p>During the first days of the battle of Liao-yang
-the 1st, 3rd, and 4th&nbsp;Siberians and 10th
-Army Corps took part at their full strength of
-units. The 2nd&nbsp;Siberians had only one division,
-and the 17th&nbsp;Army Corps concentrated on the
-right bank of the Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho, and was not
-at first engaged. When we crossed on to the
-right bank of the river, in order to operate
-against Kuroki, the corps organization became
-in several instances quite dissolved. In addition
-to the 2nd and 4th&nbsp;Siberians, we had to leave
-a brigade from both the 3rd&nbsp;Siberians and the
-10th&nbsp;Army Corps for the defence of the immense
-fortified camp at Liao-yang itself. At the time
-of our advance at the beginning of October, I did
-everything possible to keep the corps organization
-intact. The 1st and 3rd&nbsp;Siberians and the 1st,
-10th, and 17th&nbsp;Army Corps operated at full
-strength, while the 4th and 6th&nbsp;Siberians had
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_318">[Pg 318]</a></span>
-three brigades each, one brigade of the 4th
-Siberians being sent to strengthen the 3rd, which
-had a particularly difficult task allotted to it, and
-one brigade of the 6th&nbsp;Siberians (which was under
-me) being left by the Viceroy’s orders to protect
-our rear. The 2nd&nbsp;Siberians, which consisted
-of the 5th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division, was
-strengthened by five reserve battalions. The
-5th&nbsp;Siberians was alone (for good reasons) split
-up into two groups, one operating under the
-command of the corps commander on the extreme
-right flank, the other on the extreme left under
-General Rennenkampf. The account of the September
-operations of the Eastern and Western
-Forces, given in <a href="#CHAPTER_IX">Chapter IX.</a>, shows to what an
-extent the units became mixed by the mere
-course of the fighting. As soon as I was appointed
-Commander-in-Chief, I did my best to
-prevent this in the future. The 61st&nbsp;Reserve
-Division, which did not belong to an army corps,
-and had been detailed by the Viceroy to strengthen
-the Vladivostok District, was sent by me to the
-field army and incorporated in the 5th&nbsp;Siberians,
-in place of the 71st&nbsp;Division, which was concentrated
-on the extreme left flank under the command
-of General Rennenkampf. All the regiments
-of the 1st&nbsp;Siberian Division were sent to
-join the 2nd&nbsp;Siberian Corps, and the 1st&nbsp;Siberian
-and 10th&nbsp;Army Corps were moved at full strength
-from the first line to my main reserve. The
-3rd, 4th, and 6th&nbsp;Siberian and the 1st and 17th
-Army Corps were at full strength—distributed
-along the first lines and in reserve. The 2nd and
-5th&nbsp;Siberian Corps had each only three brigades,
-one brigade of the latter having been left on the
-right bank of the Hun&nbsp;Ho to protect our extreme
-right. A brigade of the 5th&nbsp;Division holding
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_319">[Pg 319]</a></span>
-Putiloff Hill was left, at the special request of the
-officer commanding the 1st&nbsp;Manchurian Army, on
-the positions which had been captured by the
-splendid regiments of this brigade (19th and
-20th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Regiments). As soon
-as the 8th and 16th&nbsp;Army Corps arrived they
-were posted to my main reserve; the three Rifle
-Brigades were formed into a Composite Rifle
-Corps.</p>
-
-<p>Early in January, 1905, I concentrated all
-three corps of the 2nd&nbsp;Army—<i>i.e.</i>, the 8th, 10th,
-and Mixed Rifle Corps in reserve, and I had in
-my main reserve the 1st&nbsp;Siberians with a division
-of the 16th&nbsp;Army Corps (the other was still on
-the railway). We had altogether 128 battalions
-in reserve, and our position was most favourable.
-It might, however, have been still better if I had
-insisted on strong army reserves being formed in
-the 1st and 3rd&nbsp;Armies. My proposal to move
-the 17th&nbsp;Army Corps back from the advanced
-lines met with a strongly worded request that
-the distribution of the 3rd&nbsp;Army might be left as
-it was. In the 1st&nbsp;Army I might have insisted
-on the whole of the 4th&nbsp;Siberian Corps being
-sent to join the reserve after the transfer of the
-Rifle Brigade from Putiloff Hill to the strong
-Erh-ta-ho position. I made a mistake also in
-forming three Rifle Brigades together into one
-corps. If I had kept them as independent
-brigades, it would have been unnecessary to take
-brigades from army corps whenever independent
-brigades were required. Although the Japanese
-had fewer battalions than we had, these were
-much stronger than ours; they also had more
-independent units than we had. Their divisions
-were not organized in corps, their small armies
-being made up of divisions and independent
-brigades, and our corps organization was not
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_320">[Pg 320]</a></span>
-sufficiently flexible to meet the thirteen to fifteen
-Japanese divisions, and a similar number of
-independent brigades. The enemy were able to
-take divisions and brigades from the advanced
-positions and transfer them, without upsetting
-their existing organization, and with far greater
-ease than we could move our corps. When an
-independent brigade operated against us—as, for
-instance, on the line Sai-ma-chi–An-ping—we
-were obliged to break up our corps organization
-in order to meet it with one of our brigades; this
-happened in the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps.</p>
-
-<p>Again, owing to the general course of events
-and other reasons over which I had no control,
-our corps organization had to be broken up
-before the operations at Hei-kou-tai, but was
-restored as soon as possible. It also occurred
-during the February fighting round Mukden,
-where the circumstances, indeed, did not in every
-case warrant it. After General Grippenberg’s
-disastrous operations at Hei-kou-tai our strategical
-position was altered much for the worse. Four
-army corps, which had until then been standing
-in reserve, were sent up into the fighting-line,
-and three of them became hopelessly mixed up
-in the process. At the time I thought it only
-possible to keep one corps (the 1st&nbsp;Siberians) in
-reserve, but the 16th&nbsp;Army corps, the 72nd&nbsp;Division,
-a brigade of the 6th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle
-Division, and the Tsaritsin Regiment were available,
-as it turned out. This made a total reserve
-of eighty-two battalions. With such a strong
-main reserve I hoped to be able to meet the
-enemy successfully, if, on being reinforced by
-Nogi’s army from Port Arthur, they took the
-offensive.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_321">[Pg 321]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>According to our estimates, the fall of Port
-Arthur might reinforce the Japanese field army
-by some fifty battalions altogether, but we
-thought that the greater portion of Nogi’s army
-would be sent to operate against Vladivostok, or
-via Possiet towards Kirin, so as to take us in the
-rear. The possibility of this made us extremely
-sensitive, both as to our rear and as regards
-Vladivostok. The first thing we did, therefore,
-on Nogi’s army being set free, was to strengthen
-the garrison of the latter place, which was very
-weakly held for the extent of the defences. I
-sent there from all three armies cadres of a
-strength of six battalions, which were to expand
-into four regiments so as to form the 10th&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Division. It was thought that,
-upon a general assumption of the offensive, the
-Japanese would simultaneously try to bring about
-a rising of the local native population, and to
-destroy the railway bridges behind us. To give
-colour to our fears, a whole series of reports, each
-more alarming than the last, were received from
-General Chichagoff. In these he described the
-large numbers of the enemy that had appeared
-behind us with the intention of seizing Harbin
-as well as of destroying the railway. I mentioned
-(Vol. III.) how this officer calculated the
-strength of the enemy in our rear at tens of
-thousands, and how persistent he was in his
-demands that the troops guarding the line might
-be strengthened. As a proof of the urgency of
-the circumstances, he reported the defeat, with a
-loss of guns, of some Frontier Guards sent out by
-him to reconnoitre east of the Kuan-cheng-tzu
-station. Later information corroborated these
-reports in so far that parties of the enemy, accompanied
-by bands of Hun-huses, had penetrated
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_322">[Pg 322]</a></span>
-far in rear, broken through our line of posts
-between Kuan-cheng-tzu and Bei-tu-ne, and were
-threatening the latter point, which, being our
-central corn-supply depôt, was of immense importance
-to us. Large bodies of Japanese and
-Hun-huses were also reported as moving in the
-direction of Tsit-si-har with the intention of
-blowing up the important railway-bridge across
-the River Nonni, and thus cutting our railway
-communication. One of the large bridges near
-the station of Kung-chu-ling was, after a skirmish
-with our guards, destroyed. In the face of such
-“circumstantial evidence” as the loss of guns
-and the destruction of bridges, it was impossible
-not to credit General Chichagoff’s reports (the
-extent of their exaggeration we did not find out
-till later), and to refuse him assistance. The
-security of our communications was literally
-vital, for even their temporary disorganization
-meant catastrophe. Not only the flow of reinforcements
-to the front, but the collection and
-distribution of local supplies would have ceased.
-As we were over 5,300 miles away from our
-base (Russia), we had been forced to form a local
-supply base, and the loss of this would have
-threatened the army with starvation. As, therefore,
-the actual numbers guarding the railway
-were small, I increased them by one brigade of
-the 16th&nbsp;Army Corps and four Cossack regiments.
-My staff inclined to the opinion, indeed, that six
-Cossack regiments should have been sent.</p>
-
-<p>In February the Japanese moved forward in
-strength, carrying out a frontal attack combined
-with simultaneous turning movements against
-both our flanks. To carry out such an operation
-successfully implies great numerical superiority
-on the side of the attackers, or else great attenuation
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_323">[Pg 323]</a></span>
-along their front; and relying, apparently, on
-the strength of their positions, the Japanese did
-weaken their front to a very great extent. Our
-best plan would accordingly have been to have
-attacked them in the centre in the hope of breaking
-through there, and then operating afterwards
-against the outflanking movements. But this
-might have been disastrous, for if they succeeded
-in holding their frontal positions with comparatively
-small numbers stiffened by extra artillery
-and machine guns and well reinforced by reserves
-[which were in their case splendidly organized],
-we might still have been outflanked by the
-turning movements.</p>
-
-<p>The special difficulty of frontal attacks was
-amply confirmed during the Mukden battles,
-for, although our troops there held very extended
-positions, they repulsed the Japanese whenever
-the latter made only a frontal attack. When,
-therefore, the Japanese assumed the offensive,
-and Kavamura’s movement round our left flank
-developed, I determined to check it by attacking
-Kuroki in front and flank. The situation on
-our left had become very alarming, for by losing
-the strong Ching-ho-cheng position and retiring
-towards Ma-chun-tan we had exposed the left
-flank of the 3rd&nbsp;Siberian Corps on the Kao-tai
-Ling (Pass). A still wider turning movement
-threatened to throw the 71st&nbsp;Division back on
-Fu-shun, but the reinforcements rapidly sent to
-the 1st&nbsp;Army from the main reserve were able
-to arrest Kavamura’s movement, largely owing
-to the behaviour of General Rennenkampf’s and
-Daniloff’s 71st and 6th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle
-Divisions, which fought with great gallantry and
-stubbornness. If the 1st&nbsp;Army, which had a
-strength of 175 battalions, had made a successful
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_324">[Pg 324]</a></span>
-advance, it ought to have influenced the operation
-then under way against our right. Being
-anxious to take the offensive, I gave Linievitch,
-commanding the 1st&nbsp;Army, the chance of
-selecting the main point of attack, and he
-decided to strike the point where Kuroki’s and
-Kavamura’s armies joined. The orders had been
-issued, and the movement had actually begun,
-when certain unconfirmed reports as to the
-movement of some Japanese divisions round
-the left flank of the 3rd&nbsp;Siberians unfortunately
-led him to stop the attack and send back such
-units of the 1st&nbsp;Siberian Corps as had been lent
-to the 1st&nbsp;Army for the operation. We had
-lost several days in collecting troops for this
-offensive movement, and large bodies of the
-enemy had meanwhile been moving round our
-right. I have described in detail (Vol. III.) the
-steps taken to avert this danger, and the results
-achieved. Here I will only mention them
-briefly. Against the 2nd&nbsp;Army, which consisted
-of ninety-six battalions, and which was mostly
-located on the left bank of the Hun&nbsp;Ho, Oku
-was operating with the greater part of his army.
-His right flank was, according to our information,
-operating against the 5th&nbsp;Siberians, and
-part, probably, against the 17th&nbsp;Army Corps
-of the 3rd&nbsp;Army. Thus, opposed to the troops
-under General Kaulbars’ command at the time
-when Nogi’s advance developed, there were,
-according to our calculations, not more than
-thirty-six to forty Japanese battalions. As the
-2nd&nbsp;Army was reinforced by twenty-four battalions
-of the 16th&nbsp;Army Corps from the main
-reserve, theoretically we should have driven
-Oku’s army south by an energetic offensive, and,
-having thus cut it off from Nogi’s force, should
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_325">[Pg 325]</a></span>
-have fallen on the latter. To do this we should
-have had to seize the fortified positions with
-strong defensive points near the village of San-de-pu
-by frontal attack. Practically, in the
-much more favourable conditions of a month
-previous, 120 battalions of the 2nd&nbsp;Army had
-been unable to drive the enemy southwards and
-get possession of this village after six days’
-continuous fighting. There was every reason
-to fear, therefore, that even if we gained possession
-of these points, and succeeded in forcing
-back Oku’s army, so many men would have
-been expended in the effort that we should
-have been in no condition to oppose Nogi, who
-could then have captured Mukden, and cut off
-the 2nd and 3rd&nbsp;Armies from their communications.</p>
-
-<p>Whatever course was decided upon, our weakness
-in power of manœuvre, the strength of the
-Japanese divisions, and their great powers of
-defence, had to be borne in mind. On the
-whole, a consideration of these points rather led
-to the conclusion that it was probably a distinct
-advantage to them to engage as many of us as
-possible in a frontal attack on their positions,
-so that they might be the more certain of success
-in their turning movement. After looking at
-the question from all sides, I decided to stand
-on the defensive in the front of the 2nd and
-3rd&nbsp;Armies, and to move as quickly as possible
-sufficient troops to the right bank of the Hun&nbsp;Ho
-to check and then drive back Nogi’s army, which
-was executing the turning movement. The first
-troops to be used for this were those of the
-2nd&nbsp;Army, whose duty it was to protect the
-right flank of our whole force. For this purpose
-I first took one corps from this army, calculating
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_326">[Pg 326]</a></span>
-that the sixty-four remaining battalions could
-without difficulty withstand any onset by Oku
-(of from thirty to forty battalions). General
-Baron Kaulbars was ordered to move this corps
-as quickly as possible towards the village of
-Sha-ling-pu, where I proposed to concentrate the
-units to oppose Nogi. To operate against him
-I then moved up twenty-four battalions of the
-16th&nbsp;Corps together, putting them also under
-the command of General Kaulbars, while as a
-reserve to these advanced troops I took twelve
-battalions from the 3rd and the 1st&nbsp;Siberian
-Corps, which I ordered to move towards Mukden
-and rejoin my reserve as soon as news was
-received of the attack being stopped, and of the
-departure of the 1st&nbsp;Army to Chi-hui-cheng.
-Thus, arrangements were made for the concentration
-of ninety-two battalions, which by March&nbsp;3
-should easily have been able to cover our right
-flank, check Nogi’s army, and drive it back.
-Unfortunately, our hopes of what was going to
-be effected on this flank were not fulfilled. In
-order to move this army corps against Nogi,
-Kaulbars essayed a most complicated manœuvre—namely,
-to move the Composite Rifle Corps
-from the right bank of the Hun&nbsp;Ho on to the
-left, and to replace it on to the right bank by
-the 8th&nbsp;Army Corps, which was to move on
-Sha-ling-pu. The first part of this plan was
-carried out—the Rifle Corps crossed on to the
-left bank, but, owing to the Japanese pressure,
-the 8th&nbsp;Army Corps remained on that side.
-Thus the units of the two Corps became mixed
-up. Of the 2nd&nbsp;Army, only two brigades (of
-the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps), which had been sent
-there under my orders, together with the
-25th&nbsp;Infantry Division, arrived at Sha-ling-pu.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_327">[Pg 327]</a></span>
-Meanwhile the whole of the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps,
-or at least twenty-four battalions of it, might
-have been moved there, for it was opposed by
-very few of the enemy. The transfer from the
-right—the threatened—flank of the Rifles had,
-as is now known, very serious consequences, for
-by it the right flank of the 2nd&nbsp;Army was uncovered
-too soon, and the units there, being
-attacked in front and flank, began to retreat,
-which caused the adjacent troops to do the
-same.</p>
-
-<p>From the information I received as to the
-enemy’s movements, I decided to move the
-16th&nbsp;Army Corps in two directions—one portion
-direct on Hsin-min-tun, and the 25th&nbsp;Division
-on Sha-ling-pu. When it became apparent that
-the enemy were not advancing behind the
-Liao&nbsp;Ho, but between it and the Hun&nbsp;Ho,
-Kaulbars very properly gave orders for a brigade
-of the 41st&nbsp;Division to be sent up towards the
-25th&nbsp;Division at Sha-ling-pu. We should have
-thus had the 16th&nbsp;Corps, consisting of twenty-four
-battalions, all together; and to this it was
-General Kaulbars’ intention to add the 8th&nbsp;Army
-Corps at full strength. As this force would have
-been reinforced by me by another Siberian corps,
-we should have had three army corps against
-Nogi. Unfortunately, however, Kaulbars countermanded
-the orders already issued to General
-Birger (to join the 25th&nbsp;Division), and this
-brigade continued to act independently, and
-added to the existing confusion of troops, especially
-when it split up and retired in two
-directions—towards Mukden and Hu-shih-tai
-station. Instead of the 8th&nbsp;Army Corps arriving
-to reinforce the 25th&nbsp;Division, two brigades of
-the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps turned up. Finally,
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_328">[Pg 328]</a></span>
-Linievitch did not consider it possible to carry
-out his orders (to send the 1st&nbsp;Siberian Corps
-to Mukden at full strength), and asked permission
-to detain two regiments of it, and so
-the divisions of the 1st&nbsp;Siberian Corps arrived
-in Mukden with only three regiments each.
-Fully recognizing the danger of our position on
-the right flank, the commander of the 3rd&nbsp;Army
-sent his army reserve of three regiments of the
-17th&nbsp;Army Corps to Mukden, and on his own
-initiative added to them the Samara Regiment
-(three battalions), which had been sent to him
-the day before with a view to strengthening
-his left. Meanwhile the different orders given
-during the fighting between February&nbsp;23 and
-March&nbsp;4 by the commanders of the 1st and
-2nd&nbsp;Armies resulted in an inextricable confusion
-of lesser units, which added to that caused by
-the breakdown of the corps organization. As
-there were insufficient army reserves, Linievitch
-reinforced the troops that were being attacked
-from the corps reserves of those corps which
-had not been attacked. For instance, when the
-enemy’s advance against the left flank of the
-1st&nbsp;Army began, certain units of the 3rd&nbsp;Siberian
-Corps, by moving eastwards along the front, were
-able to strengthen Rennenkampf’s force. When
-the Kao-tai Ling position—defended by the
-3rd&nbsp;Siberians—was attacked, this corps was supported
-by portions of the 2nd and 4th&nbsp;Siberian
-Corps to the west of them; when the 2nd
-Siberians were attacked they were reinforced by
-units of the 4th.</p>
-
-<p>Thus the reinforcements sent up by me only
-served to heighten the general confusion of units
-caused by the orders of the officer commanding
-the 1st&nbsp;Army and of the corps commanders.
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_329">[Pg 329]</a></span>
-Against Kavamura on March&nbsp;1 and 2 there were
-in the 1st&nbsp;Army the 71st&nbsp;Division, consisting
-of three regiments, the whole of the 6th&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Division, one regiment of the
-3rd&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division, and one regiment
-of the 1st&nbsp;Army Corps—total twenty-nine
-battalions.<a id="FNanchor_112"></a><a href="#Footnote_112" class="fnanchor">[112]</a> Against Kuroki were the 3rd&nbsp;East
-Siberian Rifle Division, consisting of three regiments,
-one regiment of the 71st&nbsp;Division, two of
-the 4th&nbsp;Siberians, and one of the 2nd&nbsp;Siberians—total
-twenty-five battalions. On the assumption
-that we should attack, I sent to these troops the
-72nd&nbsp;Division and the 1st&nbsp;Siberians at full
-strength, as well as one regiment of the 1st&nbsp;Army
-Corps—total forty-four battalions. Thus sixty-nine
-battalions were concentrated on and behind
-the positions of the 3rd&nbsp;Siberian Corps. Farther
-west, on the positions of the 2nd&nbsp;Siberian Corps,
-there remained of this corps fourteen battalions,
-which, reinforced by a regiment of the
-4th&nbsp;Siberians, successfully repulsed all attacks,
-including an assault made by the Japanese
-Guards. Still farther west, on the positions of
-the 4th&nbsp;Siberians, which were not attacked,
-there were twenty to twenty-four battalions of
-this same corps. Finally, against Nodzu’s right
-twenty-four battalions of the 1st&nbsp;Army Corps
-not only completely repulsed all attacks, but
-pressed forward very successfully. Generally
-speaking, although the units of the 1st&nbsp;Army
-were considerably mixed up, the corps organization
-of the 1st, 2nd, and 4th&nbsp;Siberians and the
-1st&nbsp;Army Corps was not very much disturbed.</p>
-
-<p>In the 2nd&nbsp;Army matters were worse. The
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_330">[Pg 330]</a></span>
-unsuccessful attempt to “castle” two corps (the
-Composite Rifle and 8th&nbsp;Army Corps) was the
-start of the break-up of the army corps organization,
-and in beating off the enemy these two
-corps, together with the 10th, became still more
-involved. Throughout the fighting of the night
-of March&nbsp;4 no touch was kept between the
-different units of the 8th&nbsp;Army Corps. The
-14th&nbsp;Division (three regiments) and one regiment
-of the 15th&nbsp;Division crossed on to the right bank
-of the Hun&nbsp;Ho and moved westwards, while the
-15th&nbsp;Division (three regiments) arrived behind
-the left flank of the 3rd&nbsp;Army after a night
-march to the north-east. On the morning of the
-4th&nbsp;mingled portions of all these corps took up
-fresh positions on both banks of the Hun&nbsp;Ho.</p>
-
-<p>Sufficient efforts were not made to readjust
-matters either in the divisions or corps. The
-commander of the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps maintained
-under his command only two brigades of the 9th
-and 31st&nbsp;Divisions (consisting of sixteen battalions),
-which had been moved by my order
-towards Sha-ling-pu; the commander of the
-16th&nbsp;Army Corps was with the 25th&nbsp;Infantry
-Division, which had sixteen battalions; while
-neither the commanders of the 8th or Composite
-Rifle Corps had got so many troops directly
-under them. By General Kaulbars’ orders,
-Tserpitski was appointed to command the left
-wing of the troops moved on to the right bank
-of the Hun&nbsp;Ho; among these was only one
-regiment of the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps, the remainder
-belonging to the 8th&nbsp;Army, Composite Rifle,
-and 5th&nbsp;Siberian Corps. At the same time as
-Kaulbars appointed Tserpitski, he removed the
-commanders of the 8th, Composite Rifle, and
-16th&nbsp;Corps from the direct command of troops.
-This gave the <i>coup de grâce</i> to the corps organization
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_331">[Pg 331]</a></span>
-of this army. It was now completely
-destroyed. As I have mentioned (Vol. III.), there
-was an opportunity on March&nbsp;6 of withdrawing
-the whole of the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps from the first
-line, and so reorganizing the 8th&nbsp;Corps and the
-Composite Rifles properly, but the commander
-of the 2nd&nbsp;Army did not seize it.</p>
-
-<p>The inaction of the 2nd&nbsp;Army on March&nbsp;4, its
-passive and disastrous operations on the 5th and
-6th, placed our right flank in a very difficult
-position. Nogi was moving not only along the
-flank, but to the rear of the 2nd&nbsp;Army. The
-commander of this army, continuing to see
-danger where there was none, paid particular
-attention to Oku’s operations, and left Nogi to
-move round to our rear without hindrance.
-Indeed, had I not interfered on March&nbsp;7,
-Nogi’s force would have seized Shan-tai-tzu, the
-Imperial Tombs, and Mukden, and moved in
-rear of the 2nd&nbsp;Army. By my orders the
-defence of the positions near Shan-tai-tzu,
-Ta-heng-tun, and Wen-ken-tun was organized
-so as to face to the north and west. The movement
-of the 3rd&nbsp;Army towards the Hun&nbsp;Ho
-contracted our position, and enabled me to withdraw
-to my main reserve portions of the 9th,
-15th, and 54th&nbsp;Divisions, and by means of this
-concentration the danger of Nogi’s movement to
-our rear was temporarily averted, but in the
-section held by the 2nd&nbsp;Army we were fighting
-on three fronts—west, south, and north. Under
-such conditions I naturally sent into action those
-units which were nearest. Still, the defence of
-the northern front was entrusted to a brigade of
-the 41st&nbsp;Division, the Volinsk Regiment, and to
-the 9th&nbsp;Rifle Regiment. Near Tsu-erh-tun were
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_332">[Pg 332]</a></span>
-concentrated three regiments of the 9th and
-three of the 54th&nbsp;Divisions.</p>
-
-<p>On the 6th and 7th I made a final attempt to
-wrest victory from the Japanese. Hoping that
-Kuroki had suffered heavily on the preceding
-days, and relying on the splendid material in the
-1st&nbsp;Army, I made up my mind, after considerable
-discussion of the matter with its commander on
-the telephone, to weaken that army considerably,
-so as to make certain of having sufficient men at
-Tsu-erh-tun. I augmented my main reserve
-by the whole of the 72nd&nbsp;Division, a brigade of
-the 2nd&nbsp;Siberian, and eighteen battalions from the
-1st&nbsp;Army and 4th&nbsp;Siberian Corps. The commander
-of the 1st&nbsp;Army was of opinion that if
-we did not soon have a success on the right this
-weakening of the 1st&nbsp;Army might be a danger,
-but though fully realizing the force of his contention,
-I considered it necessary to take the risk
-for the following reasons:</p>
-
-<p>1. One hundred and five splendid battalions
-were still left under the command of General
-Linievitch.</p>
-
-<p>2. The enemy in front of the 1st&nbsp;Army must,
-according to the reports sent in by its commander,
-have lost very heavily.</p>
-
-<p>3. The Japanese had transferred almost the
-whole of Oku’s army to the right bank of the
-Hun&nbsp;Ho, immediately after Nogi’s, and we had
-either to break through this disposition or
-strengthen those of our forces on the right bank
-of the Hun&nbsp;Ho by a lateral movement. As I
-have described already (Vol. III.), our hopes were
-not realized. The movement of the reserves to
-Tsu-erh-tun was effected very much more slowly
-than we had counted upon, and, taking advantage
-of our reduction in strength on the front held by
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_333">[Pg 333]</a></span>
-the 1st&nbsp;Army, the enemy broke through there.
-At the point of our position (Chiu-tien) where
-the enemy broke through, <i>there should have been,
-according to the arrangements of the officer
-commanding the 1st&nbsp;Army, four regiments of the
-troops under his command, but as a matter of fact
-there were only ten companies of the Barnaul
-Regiment</i>.<a id="FNanchor_113"></a><a href="#Footnote_113" class="fnanchor">[113]</a>
-Taking all the circumstances into
-consideration, our retirement was, in my opinion,
-a day too late, and instead of throwing all the
-reinforcements which arrived at Tsu-erh-tun into
-the fight, some of them (General Zarubaeff’s
-force) had to be kept as a last reserve in case the
-enemy attempted to close us in with a ring
-of fire.</p>
-
-<p>In the last fights at Mukden, the 4th&nbsp;Siberian
-Corps was scattered along the whole front, but
-the enemy being at that spot in inconsiderable
-strength, did not attack its strong position at
-Erh-ta-ho. Thirty-two splendid battalions of
-this corps might have been used by the commander
-of the 1st&nbsp;Army for a local counter-attack,
-or, together with the troops of the
-1st&nbsp;Army Corps or those of the 2nd&nbsp;Siberians,
-for a greater effort at the counter-offensive,
-for which a very favourable opportunity presented
-itself when the enemy attacked the
-2nd&nbsp;Siberians. By advancing we could have
-taken the attacking forces in flank and rear,
-and the Japanese Imperial Guards would have
-been threatened with disaster. But the opportunity
-was not seized. Hence the 4th&nbsp;Siberian
-Corps, having no force opposed to it, only
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_334">[Pg 334]</a></span>
-formed, so to speak, a reserve to the 1st and
-2nd&nbsp;Armies.</p>
-
-<p>On the whole, the confusion was at its greatest
-between March&nbsp;8 and 10 on the northern front
-of the 2nd&nbsp;Army, but the energetic and gallant
-General Launits was in command, and he not
-only beat back all attacks, but rescued the inert
-units of the 2nd&nbsp;Army, whose rear Nogi was
-threatening. On March&nbsp;10 General Muiloff, in
-command of the rearguard (composed only of
-the Lublin Regiment), gallantly and successfully
-carried out the difficult duty of covering the
-retirement of the 2nd and 3rd&nbsp;Armies.</p>
-
-<p>It must be remembered that, though the corps
-organization mostly broke down, the regimental
-organization was preserved, and this gave a
-cohesion in action which, when taken advantage
-of, served us right well. The preservation of the
-regimental organization was also important on
-account of the rationing of the troops. The first
-line transport (with field kitchens and two-wheeled
-ammunition carts) were kept with regiments,
-and so ammunition and food were in many cases
-most opportunely forthcoming in spite of the
-mixing up of units. The nearness of our supplies
-also at Mukden enabled us easily to refill regimental
-reserves. Against the 1st&nbsp;Siberian Corps
-at the bloody action at Su-no-pu (near San-de-pu)
-on January&nbsp;27—a fight that was more or less
-unpremeditated on both sides—units of five
-different Japanese divisions were engaged, though
-the enemy had a comparatively small force in
-the field. The enemy, therefore, must also have
-suffered from confusion.</p>
-
-<p>I have endeavoured to give some explanation
-of how it was that units got mixed up; but I
-consider that it was in many cases quite
-<span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_335">[Pg 335]</a></span>
-unnecessary. Consequently, when I reported to
-the Tsar that I was mainly responsible for our
-disaster at Mukden, I pointed out that one of my
-mistakes was that I did not sufficiently legislate
-to prevent this confusion, and that, as a matter of
-fact, I was forced by circumstances to add to it.</p>
-</div> <!-- End of appendices -->
-
-<div class="figcenter" id="theatre">
- <a href="images/theatre_large.jpg">
- <img src="images/theatre.jpg" alt=""
- width="680" height="549" /></a>
-<div class="caption">MAP OF THEATRE OF OPERATIONS
-SOUTH OF MUKDEN</div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="page" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="INDEX">INDEX</h2>
-</div>
-
-<ul class="idxnone">
-<!-- A section -->
-<li class="idx0">
-<span class="smcap">Abaza</span>, Admiral, his connection with the Royal Timber Company, ii. <a href="#Page_309">309</a>–313</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Abdur Rahman, and Afghanistan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_84">84</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_85">85</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Adabash, Colonel, his information on Japanese reserve forces, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_206">206</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Afghanistan:</li>
-<li class="idx1">her frontier, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_62">62</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Britain’s advance, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_63">63</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_84">84</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">and Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_64">64</a>–66, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_87">87</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">a buffer State, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Boundary Commission, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_86">86</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Alexander I., Emperor of Russia:</li>
-<li class="idx1">more freedom for the army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_14">14</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his example, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_20">20</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Alexander II., Emperor of Russia:</li>
-<li class="idx1">the clamour for peace, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_22">22</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the emancipation of the serfs, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_23">23</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">military economy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_87">87</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Siberian Railway, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_149">149</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Alexander III., Emperor of Russia, military economy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_87">87</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Alexeieff, Admiral:</li>
-<li class="idx1">stops work at Port Arthur, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_128">128</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Boxer rebellion, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_154">154</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">stops the evacuation of Mukden, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_169">169</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his connection with Bezobrazoff and the Royal Timber Company, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_173">173</a>–185, ii. <a href="#Page_306">306</a>–313;</li>
-<li class="idx1">becomes Viceroy of the Far East, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_187">187</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his negotiations with Japan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_188">188</a>–198;</li>
-<li class="idx1">disperses his troops and fleet, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_225">225</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his opinion of the fleet, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_237">237</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_238">238</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">report on the Eastern Chinese Railway, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_246">246</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">presses for relief, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_257">257</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">strategical distribution of troops, ii. <a href="#Page_205">205</a>–211;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the weakness of Port Arthur, ii. <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Alien population, dangers of an, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_102">102</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Alma, battle of the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_17">17</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-America, Russia hands over her possessions in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Ammunition:</li>
-<li class="idx1">defects in gun, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_137">137</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">average expenditure of rifle, ii. <a href="#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Amur district, Russia’s annexation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Armament (see Army):</li>
-<li class="idx1">inferior, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_15">15</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">moral effect of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_108">108</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">artillery, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_135">135</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">for Port Arthur, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_129">129</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">test of a new field-gun, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_136">136</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">defects in gun ammunition, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_137">137</a></li>
-<li class="idx0" id="Army">
-Army, Russian:</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Great Northern War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_6">6</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">reductions in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_8">8</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">distribution of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_9">9</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">struggle with France, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_10">10</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">annexation of Finland, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_12">12</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">in the Crimean War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_13">13</a>–21;</li>
-<li class="idx1">in the Turkish wars, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_24">24</a>–34;</li>
-<li class="idx1">casualties in the two main struggles, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_36">36</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">peace and war establishments, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_38">38</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">relative speed of mobilization, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_88">88</a>–90, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_272">272</a>–284;</li>
-<li class="idx1">losses in the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_99">99</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">incapacity of generals, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_101">101</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">improvement of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_119">119</a>–124;</li>
-<li class="idx1">value of the Siberian Corps, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_125">125</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">want of railway transport, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_131">131</a>–134, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_242">242</a>–268;</li>
-<li class="idx1">re-armament of the artillery, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_135">135</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_136">136</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">defects in gun ammunition, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_137">137</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">numbers in the Pri-Amur district, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_144">144</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">its distribution, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_225">225</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_209">209</a>, <a href="#Page_210">210</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">its favourable state when peace declared, i. <a href="#Page_230">230</a>–234;</li>
-<li class="idx1">defeats at Yalu, Chin-chou, and Te-li-ssu, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_257">257</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_258">258</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">loss at Sha&nbsp;Ho, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_259">259</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the reservists, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_278">278</a>–290;</li>
-<li class="idx1">shortage and capabilities of officers, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_290">290</a>–294, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_300">300</a>–305;</li>
-<li class="idx1">discipline, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_295">295</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_296">296</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">corporal punishment, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_297">297</a>–299;</li>
-<li class="idx1">want of sappers, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_305">305</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">machine-guns, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_306">306</a>–309;</li>
-<li class="idx1">criticism of staff work, ii. <a href="#Page_2">2</a>, <a href="#Page_3">3</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">cavalry at manœuvres, ii. <a href="#Page_4">4</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">attack and defence, ii. <a href="#Page_5">5</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">column formation, ii. <a href="#Page_6">6</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">work of the artillery, ii. <a href="#Page_7">7</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">work of the sappers, ii. <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">criticism by commanders, ii. <a href="#Page_9">9</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">tactical instruction, ii. <a href="#Page_10">10</a>–25;</li>
-<li class="idx1">relative positions of, ii. <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_37">37</a>–40;</li>
-<li class="idx1">absence of military spirit and patriotism, ii. <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_183">183</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">adverse conditions, ii. <a href="#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">effect of the rainy season and dysentery, ii. <a href="#Page_41">41</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">difficulties in organization, ii. <a href="#Page_44">44</a>–60;</li>
-<li class="idx1">defects in the command, ii. <a href="#Page_60">60</a>–72;</li>
-<li class="idx1">in the rank and file, ii. <a href="#Page_72">72</a>–80;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Kuropatkin’s final address to, ii. <a href="#Page_88">88</a>–97;</li>
-<li class="idx1">suggestions for the improvement of:</li>
-<li class="idx2">(1) the senior rank, ii. <a href="#Page_98">98</a>–114;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(2) the regulars and reservists, ii. <a href="#Page_114">114</a>–127;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(3) reserve organization, ii. <a href="#Page_128">128</a>–131;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(4) augmenting the combatant infantry, ii. <a href="#Page_131">131</a>–136;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(5) machine-guns, ii. <a href="#Page_136">136</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(6) depôt troops, ii. <a href="#Page_137">137</a>–139;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(7) communication troops, ii. <a href="#Page_139">139</a>, <a href="#Page_140">140</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(8) engineer troops, ii. <a href="#Page_141">141</a>–146;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(9) artillery, ii. <a href="#Page_146">146</a>–151;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(10) cavalry, ii. <a href="#Page_151">151</a>–155;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(11) infantry, ii. <a href="#Page_155">155</a>–161;</li>
-<li class="idx2">(12) organization, ii. <a href="#Page_161">161</a>–176;</li>
-<li class="idx1">summary of the war, ii. <a href="#Page_177">177</a>–204;</li>
-<li class="idx1">gradual improvement in spirit, ii. <a href="#Page_183">183</a>, <a href="#Page_188">188</a>, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">strategical distribution of, ii. <a href="#Page_205">205</a>, <a href="#Page_271">271</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Kuropatkin’s narrative of the war, ii. <a href="#Page_205">205</a>–305;</li>
-<li class="idx1">strength of, ii. <a href="#Page_258">258</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">breakdown of the unit organization and distribution, ii. <a href="#Page_314">314</a>–335</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Artamonoff, General, ii. <a href="#Page_281">281</a>, <a href="#Page_282">282</a></li>
-<li class="idx0" id="Artillery">
-Artillery:</li>
-<li class="idx1">rearmament of the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_135">135</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">machine, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_306">306</a>–309, ii. <a href="#Page_136">136</a>, <a href="#Page_137">137</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">suggested improvements, ii. <a href="#Page_146">146</a>–155, <a href="#Page_162">162</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Asia:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russia’s war with Turkey, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russia’s position in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_34">34</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russia’s frontiers, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_40">40</a>–46;</li>
-<li class="idx1">opposition to Russia’s expansion in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_147">147</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Asia for the Asiatics</i>, ii. <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Austerlitz, Russia’s heavy loss at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_98">98</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Austria:</li>
-<li class="idx1">war with Napoleon, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_10">10</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Crimean War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her frontier with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_51">51</a>–54;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her strategic railways, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_55">55</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her speed of mobilization, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_90">90</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her perfected organization, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_103">103</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Austro-Hungary:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian frontiers, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_44">44</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_50">50</a>–52;</li>
-<li class="idx1">trade with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_52">52</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">possibility of war with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_54">54</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Azov, surrender of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_6">6</a></li>
-<!-- B section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Baikal, Lake, great obstacle to the Siberian Railway, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_248">248</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_254">254</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Balasheff, Acting State Councillor:</li>
-<li class="idx1">his warlike despatch, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_178">178</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">investigation of the Royal Timber Company, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_181">181</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Baltic Sea: Russian aims, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_9">9</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">defence of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_114">114</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Batianoff, General, Commander of the 3rd&nbsp;Manchurian Army, ii. <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Batoum, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_32">32</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Bayazet, the defence of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Berlin:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Congress, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_32">32</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Treaty of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_82">82</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Bessarabia, Russian annexation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_24">24</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Bezobrazoff, State Councillor:</li>
-<li class="idx1">his connection with the Royal Timber Company, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_169">169</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_306">306</a>–313;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his propositions, i <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_172">172</a>–174;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Kuropatkin’s report on, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_177">177</a>–179;</li>
-<li class="idx1">investigation of the Royal Timber Company, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_180">180</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_184">184</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Bilderling, General, Commander of the 2nd&nbsp;Manchurian Army:</li>
-<li class="idx1">his report, ii. <a href="#Page_186">186</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">criticism on, ii. <a href="#Page_228">228</a>, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his force, ii. <a href="#Page_242">242</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">withdraws to position on the Sha&nbsp;Ho, ii. <a href="#Page_245">245</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Black Sea, the:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian progress towards, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_6">6</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_13">13</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russia deprived of a war fleet in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_33">33</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">coast defence on, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_114">114</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Blume, M., theorist in strategy, ii. <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Borisoff, Colonel, at Mukden, ii. <a href="#Page_281">281</a>, <a href="#Page_283">283</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Borodino, Russian loss at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_98">98</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Boskey, General, surprises the Russians at the battle of the Alma, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_17">17</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Bothnia, Gulf of, Russian aims, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_9">9</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_41">41</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_42">42</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Boxer Rebellion, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_136">136</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Bulgaria:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Turko-Servian War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_25">25</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian behaviour in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_29">29</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_30">30</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Burun, M., on the Russian fleet, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_237">237</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_240">240</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_241">241</a></li>
-<!-- C section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Caucasus, the:</li>
-<li class="idx1">her Russian frontier, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_8">8</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_58">58</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her troops, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_114">114</a></li>
-<li class="idx0" id="Cavalry">
-Cavalry:</li>
-<li class="idx1">not sufficiently used, ii. <a href="#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">failure of the officers, ii. <a href="#Page_153">153</a>–155, <a href="#Page_288">288</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">details of units, ii. <a href="#Page_162">162</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Censorship, necessity for press, ii. <a href="#Page_176">176</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Charles XII., King of Sweden, war with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Cherniaeff, General, Geok Tepe, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_32">32</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Chichagoff, General, his alarmist reports, ii. <a href="#Page_302">302</a>, <a href="#Page_321">321</a>, <a href="#Page_322">322</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-China:</li>
-<li class="idx1">peaceful attitude of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Peking Treaty, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian frontier and trade, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_67">67</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_68">68</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">war with Japan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_201">201</a>–204;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian policy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_157">157</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the awakening of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_91">91</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Boxer Rebellion and treaty with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_154">154</a>–162;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her alarm at Russia’s policy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_170">170</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian treatment of the Chinese, ii. <a href="#Page_190">190</a>, <a href="#Page_191">191</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Chin-chou, battle of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_257">257</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Civil disorder, repression of, ii. <a href="#Page_125">125</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Constantinople, Russian advance to walls of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_82">82</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Cossacks. See <a href="#Cavalry">Cavalry</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Crimean War:</li>
-<li class="idx1">strength of Russian army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_13">13</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russia’s unpreparedness, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_101">101</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_109">109</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Inkerman, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">siege of Sevastopol, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_19">19</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">a premature peace, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_20">20</a>–22</li>
-<!-- D section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Dalny:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian annexation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_69">69</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Japanese use of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_127">127</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">its fortifications, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_172">172</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_207">207</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">commerce, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_190">190</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">coal storage at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_246">246</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Danube, the, Russian acquisition and loss of the mouths of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_24">24</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_32">32</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Defence schemes, ii. <a href="#Page_26">26</a>–30</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Dembovski, General, at Mukden, ii. <a href="#Page_285">285</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Demchinski, M., <i>Were we Ready for War?</i> i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_111">111</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Djam, Russian force at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_84">84</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Dragomiroff, General, and quick-firing artillery, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_136">136</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his theories, ii. <a href="#Page_8">8</a>, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="#Page_11">11</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Dubniak Hill, capture of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_25">25</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Dukhovski, General, Governor-General and Commander in the Pri-Amur district,</li>
-<li class="idx3">and the Siberian Railway, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_171">171</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Dushkevitch, Colonel, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_302">302</a></li>
-<!-- E section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Eastern Chinese Railway:</li>
-<li class="idx1">the bad condition of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_182">182</a>–242;</li>
-<li class="idx1">a parallel in Persia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_193">193</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">suggested sale to China, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_221">221</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">capacity of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_243">243</a>–256</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Emmanuel, Major, his appreciation of the Japanese army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_222">222</a></li>
-<li class="idx0" id="Engineers">
-Engineers, ii. <a href="#Page_141">141</a>–146;</li>
-<li class="idx1">details of units, ii. <a href="#Page_162">162</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Essen, Admiral, his daring sally from Vladivostok, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_239">239</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Esthonia, Russian annexation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Eupatoria, the Allies’ disembarkation at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_17">17</a></li>
-<!-- F section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Feng-huang-cheng, Russian occupation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_170">170</a>–174, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_184">184</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Finance Minister, dual capacity of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_139">139</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Finland, Russian annexation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_41">41</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian frontier, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Footnote_11"><i>n.</i> 11</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_9">9</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her aims for autonomy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_42">42</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Fortresses, work on the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_126">126</a>–130</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-France:</li>
-<li class="idx1">her struggles with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_10">10</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">strength of her army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_15">15</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">cause of Franco-Russian <i>entente</i>, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_46">46</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">lessons from the Franco-German War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_78">78</a>–81</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Friederichsham, Treaty of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_41">41</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Frontiers (see <a href="#Russia">Russia</a>), Russian, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Footnote_11"><i>n.</i> 11</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_40">40</a>–77</li>
-<!-- G section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Galicia, strategic value of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_54">54</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_55">55</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Geok Tepe, Russian attack on, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Georgia, Russian annexation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_8">8</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Germany:</li>
-<li class="idx1">war with Napoleon, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_10">10</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her Russian frontier, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_44">44</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_45">45</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her Russian trade, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_59">59</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her strategic preparations, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_46">46</a>–49;</li>
-<li class="idx1">possibilities of war, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_50">50</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">trade in Persia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_59">59</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_60">60</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">lessons from the Franco-German War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_80">80</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her relative speed of mobilization, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_90">90</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her perfect organization, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_103">103</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_113">113</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her military expenditure, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_113">113</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Gerngros, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Boxer Rebellion, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">wounded at Te-li-ssu, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_219">219</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the battle near Mukden, ii. <a href="#Page_278">278</a>, <a href="#Page_279">279</a>, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="#Page_297">297</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Giers, M., Russian Minister for Foreign Affairs, on the cession of Kuldja, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_93">93</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Glinski, M., <i>The Resurrected Dead</i>, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_292">292</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Godunoff, Boris, and the Caspian Sea, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_4">4</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Goltz, Von der, a distinguished German writer, his dictum on war, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_88">88</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Gorbatoff, M., <i>Thoughts Suggested by Recent Military Operations</i>, ii. <a href="#Page_75">75</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Great Britain:</li>
-<li class="idx1">strength of her army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_15">15</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Crimean War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>–20;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her trade with Persia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_59">59</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_60">60</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russia and Afghanistan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_62">62</a>–67, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_84">84</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Afghan Boundary Commission, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_86">86</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">treaty with Japan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_269">269</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Grieg, Admiral, Russian Minister of Finance, on the cession of Kuldja, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_93">93</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Grippenberg, General, Commander of the 2nd&nbsp;Army:</li>
-<li class="idx1">his peculiar theories and behaviour, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_299">299</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_11">11</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>–25, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>–60, <a href="#Page_251">251</a>–253,</li>
-<li class="idx2"><a href="#Page_257">257</a>, <a href="#Page_260">260</a>, <a href="#Page_261">261</a>, <a href="#Page_264">264</a>–267, <a href="#Page_320">320</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1"><i>The Truth about the Battle of Hei-kou-tai</i>, ii. <a href="#Page_83">83</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Grodekovi, General, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Guber, General, ii. <a href="#Page_52">52</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Gulistan, Treaty of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_60">60</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Guns. See <a href="#Artillery">Artillery</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Gurieff, M., <i>The Outbreak of the Russo-Japanese War</i>, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_146">146</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Gurko, General, siege of Plevna, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>; criticisms by, ii. <a href="#Page_9">9</a></li>
-<!-- H section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Hamilton, General Sir Ian, an appreciation of the Japanese army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_223">223</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Harbin:</li>
-<li class="idx1">concentration at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_160">160</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">railway difficulties, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_245">245</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_254">254</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_261">261</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_268">268</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">drunkenness at, ii. <a href="#Page_188">188</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Hei-kou-tai, operations at, ii. <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_271">271</a>, <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Hei-ni-tun, Russian attack on, ii. <a href="#Page_282">282</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Herat, proposed railway, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_67">67</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">and Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_86">86</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Hershelman, General, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_279">279</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Hsi-mu-cheng, concentration at, ii. <a href="#Page_42">42</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Hsi-ping-kai positions:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian occupation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_229">229</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_32">32</a>, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>, <a href="#Page_287">287</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">handed over to Japan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_232">232</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">preparations near, ii. <a href="#Page_184">184</a>, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="#Page_194">194</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Hun-huses, raids by, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_158">158</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_159">159</a></li>
-<!-- I section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Imeretinski, General, at Plevna, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_28">28</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-India and Russia’s policy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_64">64</a>–67</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Infantry (see <a href="#Army">Army</a>):</li>
-<li class="idx1">the chief arm, ii. <a href="#Page_155">155</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">improvement in, ii. <a href="#Page_156">156</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">officers’ casualties, ii. <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_158">158</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">promotion in the field, ii. <a href="#Page_159">159</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1"><i>field</i> v. <i>office</i> training, ii. <a href="#Page_160">160</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">organization and details of units, ii. <a href="#Page_161">161</a>–170;</li>
-<li class="idx1">penalties on active service, ii. <a href="#Page_171">171</a>–175</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Istomin, Admiral, his heroic death, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_21">21</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Ivanovitch, Tsar Theodore, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_4">4</a></li>
-<!-- J section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Japan:</li>
-<li class="idx1">peaceful attitude of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russia and Saghalien, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Peking Treaty, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">war with China, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_202">202</a>–204;</li>
-<li class="idx1">events leading up to the war with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_123">123</a>–130, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_157">157</a>–166, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_170">170</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_177">177</a>–179;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Royal Timber Company, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_172">172</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Kuropatkin’s visit to, and impressions of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_174">174</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_217">217</a>–223;</li>
-<li class="idx1">progress of negotiations, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_188">188</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_193">193</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russia’s bluff, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_193">193</a>–198;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her early history, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_199">199</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">birth of her army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_200">200</a>–202;</li>
-<li class="idx1">expedition to China, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_203">203</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her estimated strength, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_203">203</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_208">208</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_192">192</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">expansion for war, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_204">204</a>–206;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her loss in the war with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_207">207</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_192">192</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her sea-transport, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_209">209</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian criticisms on the army of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_210">210</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her officers in Russian employ, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_212">212</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her reserve troops, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_213">213</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the <i>samurai</i> spirit, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_214">214</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her resentment with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_215">215</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her system of education, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_217">217</a>–219;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Korea a vital question, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_219">219</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">German and English appreciations of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_222">222</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_223">223</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her disembarkations on Liao-tung Peninsula and Kuan-tung unhindered, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_225">225</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her advantages, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_226">226</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">their moral tone, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_227">227</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the nation with the army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_228">228</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">partial exhaustion, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_230">230</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_235">235</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_194">194</a>, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">strength of the fleets in the Far East, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_237">237</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the naval battles near Port Arthur and Vladivostok, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_238">238</a>–241;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her victories at the Yalu, Chin-chou and Te-li-ssu, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_257">257</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_258">258</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her treaty with Great Britain, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_269">269</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">relative positions after fifteen months’ war, ii. <a href="#Page_31">31</a>–35, <a href="#Page_39">39</a>–44;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her losses, ii. <a href="#Page_192">192</a>, <a href="#Page_193">193</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Kuropatkin’s summary of the war, ii. <a href="#Page_217">217</a>–287, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>–335</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Jassy, Treaty of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_6">6</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Jilinski, General, Headquarter Staff, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_206">206</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_256">256</a></li>
-<li class="idxs">
-Ka-liao-ma, ii. <a href="#Page_274">274</a>, <a href="#Page_290">290</a></li>
-<!-- K section -->
-<li class="idx0">
-Kamchatka, Russian annexation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kao-li-tun, ii. <a href="#Page_275">275</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kars, the capture of the fortress of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_32">32</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_14">14</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kashgaria, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_70">70</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Chinese take possession of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_92">92</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kaufmann, General, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_32">32</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">and Afghanistan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the cession of Kuldja, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_92">92</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_93">93</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Bokhara Khanate, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_147">147</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kaulbars, General, ii. <a href="#Page_58">58</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">in command of the 3rd&nbsp;Army, ii. <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">in command of the 2nd&nbsp;Army, ii. <a href="#Page_268">268</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the assault of San-de-pu, ii. <a href="#Page_271">271</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">battles near Mukden, ii. <a href="#Page_272">272</a>–287;</li>
-<li class="idx1">criticisms on, ii. <a href="#Page_288">288</a>–305, <a href="#Page_324">324</a>–335</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Keller, General Count, ii. <a href="#Page_42">42</a>, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his death, ii. <a href="#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="#Page_226">226</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Khanates, the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Khilkoff, Prince, Minister of Ways and Communications, and the Siberian Railway,</li>
-<li class="idx2">i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_246">246</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_248">248</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_254">254</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Khiva, Russian failure to gain possession of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kipke, Surgeon-General, list of Japanese casualties, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_208">208</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kirghiz tribes and Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Footnote_9"><i>n.</i> 9</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>,
-<a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Footnote_11"><i>n.</i> 11</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kirin, capture of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kondratenko, General, the hero of Port Arthur, i, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_300">300</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_71">71</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Korea:</li>
-<li class="idx1">independence of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_69">69</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">necessity for quiet in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_72">72</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_73">73</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian activity in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_153">153</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_178">178</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">timber concession, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_170">170</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">council at Port Arthur on, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_180">180</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_181">181</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Treaty of Peking, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_199">199</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">a vital question, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_219">219</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Korniloff, Admiral, siege of Sevastopol, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">heroic death, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_21">21</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Korniloff, Lieutenant-Colonel, ii. <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kronstadt, fortifications of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_126">126</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kruimoff, Captain, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_303">303</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kuan-tung Peninsula: Russian annexation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_69">69</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Japanese land and fortify, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_257">257</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian defence force, ii. <a href="#Page_206">206</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kuang-cheng-tzu, seizure by rebels, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kuldja, province of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_70">70</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the cession to China of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_92">92</a>–95, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_149">149</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kuprin, M., <i>The Duel</i>, ii. <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kuroki, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">in command of the 1st&nbsp;Japanese Army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_257">257</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_258">258</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his opinion of the Russian shells, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_306">306</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his victory at Te-li-ssu, ii. <a href="#Page_38">38</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his positions, ii. <a href="#Page_39">39</a>, <a href="#Page_40">40</a>, <a href="#Page_216">216</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his turning movement, ii. <a href="#Page_230">230</a>–232, <a href="#Page_264">264</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">strength of his army, ii. <a href="#Page_253">253</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">battle of Liao-yang, ii. <a href="#Page_317">317</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">at Mukden, ii. <a href="#Page_323">323</a>,329, <a href="#Page_332">332</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kuropatkin, General, Minister of War, afterwards Commander-in-Chief:</li>
-<li class="idx1">his report on the possibilities of the twentieth century, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_39">39</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his report on the Russian frontiers and their suitability, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_40">40</a>–77;</li>
-<li class="idx1">deductions from the work of the army as a guide to future wars, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_96">96</a>–110;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the work before the War Department, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_111">111</a>–144;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his opinion on the Manchurian and Korean questions, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_145">145</a>–198;</li>
-<li class="idx1">difference of opinion with Admiral Alexeieff, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_167">167</a>–169;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Royal Timber Company, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_172">172</a>–184, ii. <a href="#Page_306">306</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his impressions on visiting Japan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_174">174</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_217">217</a>–223;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his reports on the Manchurian position, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_176">176</a>–179, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_189">189</a>–193;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his responsibility for the rupture with Japan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_177">177</a>–179;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his pyramid of Russian interests, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_186">186</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">resignation on the establishment of the Viceroyalty, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_187">187</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his proposal to give way, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_189">189</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his report on strength of Japanese army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_242">242</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on necessity for Russian railway improvements, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_252">252</a>–254, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_263">263</a>–268;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on mobilization, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_271">271</a>–289;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on reserve of officers, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_293">293</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_294">294</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his recommendations as to officers, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_301">301</a>–305;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on machine-guns and ammunition, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_306">306</a>–309;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his criticisms of staff work, ii. <a href="#Page_2">2</a>, <a href="#Page_3">3</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">of cavalry, ii. <a href="#Page_4">4</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">of attack and the defence, ii. <a href="#Page_5">5</a>, <a href="#Page_6">6</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">of column formation in attack, ii. <a href="#Page_6">6</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on the work of the artillery and sappers, ii. <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on criticism by commanders, ii. <a href="#Page_9">9</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on tactical instruction of our troops, ii. <a href="#Page_10">10</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his supplementary and monthly instructions, ii. <a href="#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>–22;</li>
-<li class="idx1">reasons for the reverses at Plevna, ii. <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his diagram of, and opinion on, the relative positions in Manchuria, ii. <a href="#Page_33">33</a>–44;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on difficulties in organization, ii. <a href="#Page_44">44</a>–60;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on defects in <i>personnel</i>, ii. <a href="#Page_60">60</a>–72;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on the rank and file and Social Revolutionists, ii. <a href="#Page_72">72</a>–81;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on the countermanding of orders, ii. <a href="#Page_81">81</a>–84;</li>
-<li class="idx1">takes the blame for the defeat at Mukden, ii. <a href="#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>, <a href="#Page_335">335</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his farewell address, ii. <a href="#Page_87">87</a>–97;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his suggested improvements in the senior ranks and all arms, ii. <a href="#Page_98">98</a>–176;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his summary of the war, and conclusions, ii. <a href="#Page_177">177</a>–305;</li>
-<li class="idx1">breakdown of the unit organization and distribution, ii. <a href="#Page_314">314</a>–335</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kushk, proposed railway to, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_67">67</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">defeat of Afghans at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_86">86</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Kutnevitch, General, ii. <a href="#Page_297">297</a></li>
-<!-- L section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Lamsdorff, M., Minister for Foreign Affairs,</li>
-<li class="idx2">and the Royal Timber Company, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_173">173</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_174">174</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_306">306</a>, <a href="#Page_311">311</a>, <a href="#Page_312">312</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Launits, General, his gallantry, ii. <a href="#Page_334">334</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Lessar, Acting State Councillor, Russian Minister in China,</li>
-<li class="idx2">council at Port Arthur on the Yalu enterprise, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_180">180</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Levestam, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">withdrawal to Hsi-mu-cheng, ii. <a href="#Page_40">40</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the battle near Mukden, ii. <a href="#Page_283">283</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Liao-tung Peninsula, Japanese land at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_257">257</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Liao-yang:</li>
-<li class="idx1">seizure by rebels, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian concentration at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_242">242</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_258">258</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">battle at, ii. <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a>, <a href="#Page_230">230</a>, <a href="#Page_317">317</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian retirement, ii. <a href="#Page_86">86</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Japanese losses at, ii. <a href="#Page_193">193</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Kuropatkin’s arrival at, ii. <a href="#Page_209">209</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Linievitch, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">capture of Peking, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">in command of the 1st&nbsp;Army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_230">230</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <a href="#Page_324">324</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Commander-in-Chief, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_301">301</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_198">198</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">and Kuropatkin, ii. <a href="#Page_56">56</a>, <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Livonia, Russia’s annexation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Lomakin, General, his disastrous expedition against the Turcomans, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_31">31</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Losses, Russian, in the two main struggles, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_36">36</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">in past wars, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_98">98</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">in the future, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_99">99</a></li>
-<!-- M section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Madridoff, Lieutenant-Colonel, and the timber concession, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_184">184</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_309">309</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Makharoff, Admiral, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_225">225</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_238">238</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Maksheef, Professor, on military expenditure, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_111">111</a>–113</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Malakhoff Hill, capture of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_19">19</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Malingering, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_174">174</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Maloshevitch, N. S., <i>Memoirs of a Sevastopol Man</i>, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_16">16</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Manchuria (see also <a href="#Railways">Railways</a>):</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian movements in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the question of annexation, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_71">71</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_157">157</a>–179;</li>
-<li class="idx1">expansion of Russian garrison, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_122">122</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the rising in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_126">126</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the War Minister’s opinion on, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_145">145</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">investigation of the timber concession, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_180">180</a>–184;</li>
-<li class="idx1">pyramid of Russian interests, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_186">186</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">negotiations, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_187">187</a>–198;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Japanese invade Southern, ii. <a href="#Page_32">32</a>–44;</li>
-<li class="idx1">summary of the war, and conclusions, ii. <a href="#Page_177">177</a>–305</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Martinoff, M. E., <i>Spirit and Temper of the Two Armies</i>, ii. <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_78">78</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Menshikoff, M., Russian writer, ii. <a href="#Page_69">69</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Menshikoff, Prince, Commander-in-Chief, Crimean War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_17">17</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">battle of Inkerman, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">superseded, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_19">19</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Meyendorff, General Baron, Commander of 1st&nbsp;Army Corps, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_302">302</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">retreat of, ii. <a href="#Page_284">284</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Milutin, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">the emancipation of the serfs, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_24">24</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Plevna, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_25">25</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">cession of Kuldja, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_93">93</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the improvement of the army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_113">113</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Mischenko, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">retirement of the local railway guards, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his cavalry successes, ii. <a href="#Page_150">150</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Mobilization, relative speed of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_90">90</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">inconveniences of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_272">272</a>–286</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Moscow, a poor spirit in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_198">198</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_199">199</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Muiloff, Lieutenant-General, ii. <a href="#Page_282">282</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">removal of, ii. <a href="#Page_297">297</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his gallantry, ii. <a href="#Page_334">334</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Mukden:</li>
-<li class="idx1">seized by the rebels, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_154">154</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">recaptured, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">battles round, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Footnote_76"><i>n.</i> 76</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_260">260</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_43">43</a>, <a href="#Page_246">246</a>, <a href="#Page_272">272</a>–305, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>–335;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Japanese losses at, ii. <a href="#Page_193">193</a>, <a href="#Page_194">194</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russia’s unfavourable position at, ii. <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_240">240</a>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li>
-<!-- N section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Nakhimoff, Admiral, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his heroic death, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_21">21</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Namangan, occupation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Narbut, General, member of the military council, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_293">293</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Narva, reasons for Russian defeat at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Nasha Jizu</i>, newspaper, <i>The Viceroy Alexeieff’s Firm Policy</i>, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_109">109</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Navarin</i>, Russian battleship, terrible loss on, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_240">240</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Navy, Russian:</li>
-<li class="idx1">state of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_15">15</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">disadvantages of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_107">107</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">its uselessness at Port Arthur, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_131">131</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Pacific Squadron, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_224">224</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">minor part played by, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_236">236</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">strength of Japanese and, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_237">237</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">battles at Port Arthur and Vladivostok, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_238">238</a>–241</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Newchuang:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian intentions, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_157">157</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">evacuation of, ii. <a href="#Page_43">43</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Nicholas II., Tsar of Russia, on improvements in the army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_120">120</a>–122;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his efforts against war, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_145">145</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_187">187</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">railway transport, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_245">245</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_252">252</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_263">263</a>–268;</li>
-<li class="idx1">mobilization, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_272">272</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">orders concentration, ii. <a href="#Page_212">212</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on Kuropatkin’s retirement at Liao-yang, ii. <a href="#Page_238">238</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his connection with the Royal Timber Company and Bezobrazoff, ii. <a href="#Page_306">306</a>–313</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Nicolaeff, Grand-Duke Michael, operations in Asia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Nicolai-Pavlovitch, the late Emperor, his warning, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_16">16</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Nishtabtski, Treaty of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Nodzu, General, lands on the Liao-tung Peninsula, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_236">236</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his advance, ii. <a href="#Page_222">222</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">summary of the war, ii. <a href="#Page_177">177</a>–305, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>–335</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Nogi, General, lands on the Liao-tung Peninsula, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_236">236</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on the fall of Port Arthur, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_260">260</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">at Mukden, ii. <a href="#Page_84">84</a>, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>, <a href="#Page_281">281</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">summary of the war, ii. <a href="#Page_177">177</a>–305, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>–335</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Norway, her frontiers, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_40">40</a></li>
-<!-- O section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Obrucheff, General, Chief of Headquarter Staff:</li>
-<li class="idx1">cession of Kuldja, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_93">93</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the improvement of the army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_113">113</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Offensive, advantages of strategic, ii. <a href="#Page_169">169</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Officers, Russian:</li>
-<li class="idx1">incapacity of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_101">101</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_1">1</a>–11;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the shortage of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_290">290</a>–295;</li>
-<li class="idx1">General Grippenberg’s resignation, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_299">299</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_57">57</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">quality of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_300">300</a>–303;</li>
-<li class="idx1"><i>The Resurrected Dead</i>, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_305">305</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the susceptibilities of, ii. <a href="#Page_57">57</a>, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">defects in, ii. <a href="#Page_61">61</a>–72, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>–97;</li>
-<li class="idx1">suggested improvements, ii. <a href="#Page_98">98</a>–113;</li>
-<li class="idx1">casualties among, ii. <a href="#Page_157">157</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">line officers have no fair chance, ii. <a href="#Page_158">158</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">promotion in the field, ii. <a href="#Page_159">159</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1"><i>field</i> v. <i>office</i> training, ii. <a href="#Page_160">160</a>, <a href="#Page_161">161</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">suggested changes in rank of, ii. <a href="#Page_164">164</a>–168;</li>
-<li class="idx1">removal of incompetent, ii. <a href="#Page_172">172</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Oku, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">his landing on the Liao-tung Peninsula, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_256">256</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">joins General Nodzu’s army, ii. <a href="#Page_43">43</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">battle of Liao-yang, ii. <a href="#Page_84">84</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">summary of the war, ii. <a href="#Page_177">177</a>–305, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>–335</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Organization, Russian:</li>
-<li class="idx1">defects in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_88">88</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_89">89</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_119">119</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">difficulties in, ii. <a href="#Page_44">44</a>–60;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Kuropatkin’s proposals on, ii. <a href="#Page_161">161</a>–176;</li>
-<li class="idx1">breakdown of, ii. <a href="#Page_314">314</a>–320</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Orenburg-Tashkent Railway, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Footnote_34"><i>n.</i> 34</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Orloff, General, at Liao-yang, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_279">279</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">retreat to Yen-tai, ii. <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Osaka, great exhibition at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_219">219</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Ostolopoff, Colonel, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_302">302</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Osvobojdenie</i>, the Royal Timber Company, ii. <a href="#Page_307">307</a></li>
-<!-- P section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Pacific Ocean, opposition to Russian access to, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_146">146</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_147">147</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Patriotism in Japan and Russia, ii. <a href="#Page_78">78</a>–80, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>–123, <a href="#Page_227">227</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Paul II., Emperor of Russia, and the army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_8">8</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Pavloff, Chamberlain, Russian Minister in Korea, Yalu enterprise, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_175">175</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_180">180</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Pavlovski, M., engineer of Siberian Railway, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_253">253</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Peking, Treaty of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_199">199</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">capture of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Penalties on active service, ii. <a href="#Page_171">171</a>, <a href="#Page_173">173</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Persia:</li>
-<li class="idx1">war with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_33">33</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">frontier and trade with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_59">59</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the cockpit of the Middle East, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_59">59</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Great Britain and Germany in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_60">60</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian aims in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_61">61</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Personnel</i>, defects in, ii. <a href="#Page_60">60</a>–72</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Peter the Great:</li>
-<li class="idx1">war with Sweden, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">war with Turkey, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_6">6</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">founder of the Russian fleet, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_7">7</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his struggles with Charles XII. and Napoleon, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_11">11</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his counsel, i, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_20">20</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his influence, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_41">41</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Petroff, General, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_245">245</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Petrovitch, Paul, Emperor, his reforms, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_38">38</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Plancon, M., diplomat, investigation of the Timber Company, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_180">180</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Plehve, Von, Minister of the Interior, and the Timber Company, ii. <a href="#Page_311">311</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Plevna, battle at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_25">25</a>–30;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the cause of the Russian reverses at, ii. <a href="#Page_13">13</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Poland, Russia’s neighbour, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_3">3</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her struggles with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_7">7</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the problem of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_10">10</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_11">11</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">rebellion, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_23">23</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Poltava, Russian victory at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_11">11</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_41">41</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Port Arthur:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian aims, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_69">69</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">work at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_127">127</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">armament for, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_129">129</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the council on the timber concession, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_180">180</a>–184;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Kuropatkin’s advice as to, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_189">189</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_190">190</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Chino-Japanese War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_202">202</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">naval battles at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_238">238</a>–241;</li>
-<li class="idx1">fall of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_260">260</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">garrison at, ii. <a href="#Page_205">205</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">weakness of, ii. <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_213">213</a>, <a href="#Page_214">214</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">result of fall of, ii. <a href="#Page_299">299</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Pri-Amur district and Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_77">77</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">increase of troops in, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_144">144</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_151">151</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Punishment, corporal, ii. <a href="#Page_173">173</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Putiloff Hill:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Japanese losses at, ii. <a href="#Page_193">193</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">movement of troops from, ii. <a href="#Page_319">319</a></li>
-<!-- R section -->
-<li class="idxs" id="Railways">
-Railways, the Siberian, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_149">149</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">as a factor in the Japanese War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_131">131</a>–134, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_198">198</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the problem of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_242">242</a>–254, ii. <a href="#Page_31">31</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">necessity for guarding, ii. <a href="#Page_37">37</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Razsvet</i>, newspaper, on Kuropatkin’s responsibility, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_177">177</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Razviedchik</i> (<i>The Resurrected Dead</i>), i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_292">292</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Rediger, Lieutenant-General, War Minister, his report, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_139">139</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Rennenkampf, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">capture of Tsitsihar and Kirin, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">in the Tai-tzu&nbsp;Ho Valley, ii. <a href="#Page_244">244</a>, <a href="#Page_254">254</a>, <a href="#Page_273">273</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Liao-yang, ii. <a href="#Page_318">318</a>, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the gallantry of his troops, ii. <a href="#Page_323">323</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Reservists, Russian, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_275">275</a>–286, ii. <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Revenue, Russian, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_142">142</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Revolutionists, Social, ii. <a href="#Page_75">75</a>–80</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Roop, General, criticisms by commanders, ii. <a href="#Page_9">9</a>.</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Roslavleff, M., on Kuropatkin’s responsibility, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_176">176</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_177">177</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the council at Port Arthur, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_184">184</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Roumania:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian frontier, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_44">44</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_56">56</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her aspirations, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_57">57</a>.</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Rozhdestvenski, Admiral, result of his defeat at Tsushima, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_241">241</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_242">242</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Rusin, Captain, Russian naval attaché, his report on the Japanese navy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_206">206</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_207">207</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Ruski Viestnik</i>, article on the fleets in the Far East, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_236">236</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_237">237</a></li>
-<li class="idx0" id="Russia">
-Russia:</li>
-<li class="idx1">extent of, in the eighteenth century, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_2">2</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_3">3</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her neighbours, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_3">3</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her aims, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_4">4</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Great Northern War and its result, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_5">5</a>–7;</li>
-<li class="idx1">extension of, in the nineteenth century, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_8">8</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">reductions in the army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_8">8</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">closer touch with Europe, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_9">9</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">struggles with France, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_10">10</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Polish problem, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_11">11</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">annexation of Finland, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_12">12</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">further wars with Turkey, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_24">24</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">deterioration of the army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_14">14</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her navy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_15">15</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her unpreparedness, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Crimean War commences, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Allies’ disembarkation permitted, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_17">17</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">battle of the Alma, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_17">17</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Inkerman, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">siege of Sevastopol, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_19">19</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">a premature peace, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_20">20</a>–22, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_82">82</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">emancipation of the serfs, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_23">23</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Plevna, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_25">25</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">failure of assaults, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her slow concentration and shortcomings, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_27">27</a>–29;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her ultimate success, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_30">30</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Geok Tepe, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_31">31</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Kushk, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_32">32</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her position, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_33">33</a>–35;</li>
-<li class="idx1">losses in the two centuries, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_36">36</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_37">37</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_98">98</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_99">99</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">peace and war establishments, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_38">38</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her future, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_39">39</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her Swedish frontier, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_40">40</a>–44;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her German frontier and trade, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_44">44</a>–50;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her Austro-Hungarian frontier, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_50">50</a>–55;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Austria’s strategic railways, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_55">55</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her Roumanian frontier, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_56">56</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her Turkish frontier and trade, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_57">57</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her Persian frontier and trade, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_58">58</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_59">59</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her aims in Persia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_61">61</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her frontier with Afghanistan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_62">62</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her policy versus Great Britain, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_63">63</a>–66;</li>
-<li class="idx1">no wish for India, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_67">67</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her Chinese frontier, trade, and policy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_67">67</a>–73;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her position, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_73">73</a>–77;</li>
-<li class="idx1">lessons from Franco-German War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_79">79</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_80">80</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1"><i>National</i> wars, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_80">80</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her isolation in 1878, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_83">83</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her lever against Great Britain, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_84">84</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Afghan Boundary Commission, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_86">86</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">military economy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_187">187</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her disabilities, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_188">188</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_189">189</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">relative speed of mobilization, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_90">90</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the awakening of China, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_91">91</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">cession of Kuldja, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_92">92</a>–94;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her complications, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_95">95</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">deductions from the past, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_96">96</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">strain of armed peace, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_97">97</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">probable losses in the future, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_99">99</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">dangers of alien population, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_102">102</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the chief duty of the twentieth century, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_103">103</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her handicap on the west, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_114">114</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her forward movement in Manchuria, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_105">105</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the disadvantages of a navy, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_107">107</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">military expenditure, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_112">112</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_118">118</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">expansion of forces in the Pri-Amur district, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_121">121</a>–123;</li>
-<li class="idx1">commencement and causes of the war with Japan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_156">156</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_157">157</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">work at Port Arthur, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_130">130</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">railway factor, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_131">131</a>–149;</li>
-<li class="idx1">line of communications 5,400 miles long, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_135">135</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">dual capacity of Finance Minister, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_139">139</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_140">140</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her finance and revenue, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_141">141</a>–144;</li>
-<li class="idx1">War Minister’s opinion on the Manchurian and Korean questions, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_145">145</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">inception of the Siberian Railway, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_149">149</a>–155;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Boxer Rebellion, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_154">154</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her intentions as to Manchuria, and the result, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_157">157</a>–170;</li>
-<li class="idx1">treaty with China, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_158">158</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_160">160</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">influence of M. de Witte, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_171">171</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Royal Timber Company, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_172">172</a>–184, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_306">306</a>–313;</li>
-<li class="idx1">pyramid of her interests, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_185">185</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_186">186</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">establishment of a Viceroyalty in the Far East, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_187">187</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Kuropatkin’s special reports, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_188">188</a>–193;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her bluff, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_194">194</a>–198;</li>
-<li class="idx1">reasons for her reverses in the war with Japan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_229">229</a>–309, ii. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_1">1</a>–97;</li>
-<li class="idx1">suggested improvements in the army, ii, <a href="#Page_98">98</a>–176;</li>
-<li class="idx1">summary of the war, ii. <a href="#Page_177">177</a>–287;</li>
-<li class="idx1">conclusions upon the battle of Mukden, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_288">288</a>–305;</li>
-<li class="idx1">breakdown of the unit organization and distribution, ii. <a href="#Page_314">314</a>–335</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Russki Invalid</i>, article on military expenditure, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_112">112</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on duty and love of country, ii. <a href="#Page_78">78</a>–80</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Russo-Chinese Bank, De Witte’s influence over the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_172">172</a></li>
-<!-- S section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Saghalien, Russian garrison at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_200">200</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">part concession of, to Japan, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_232">232</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-St.&nbsp;George, the Cross of, ii. <a href="#Page_16">16</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-St.&nbsp;Petersburg Convention, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Footnote_21"><i>n.</i> 21</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Sakharoff, General, Chief of the Headquarter Staff, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_115">115</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_207">207</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">War Minister, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_252">252</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the Siberian Railway, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_261">261</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">mobilization, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_272">272</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_273">273</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_276">276</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_277">277</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">unfitness of generals, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_300">300</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his description of the Japanese plans, ii. <a href="#Page_30">30</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">commands the Southern Force, ii. <a href="#Page_209">209</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Samoiloff, Lieutenant-Colonel, military attaché in Japan,</li>
-<li class="idx2">his views on Japanese strength, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_208">208</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Samsonoff, General, and his Siberian Cossacks, ii. <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Sappers. See <a href="#Engineers">Engineers</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Serfs, emancipation of the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_23">23</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_24">24</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Servia, war with Turkey, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_24">24</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Sevastopol, siege of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_19">19</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_83">83</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian loss at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_98">98</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Sha&nbsp;Ho, Russian strength at battle of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_242">242</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_182">182</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Japanese loss at, ii. <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Shipka Pass, defence of the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_30">30</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Shtakelberg, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">on the Yalu, ii. <a href="#Page_38">38</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">concentration at Te-li-ssu, ii. <a href="#Page_218">218</a>, <a href="#Page_219">219</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">battle near the Yen-tai Mines, ii. <a href="#Page_234">234</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">strength of his force, ii. <a href="#Footnote_78"><i>n.</i> 78</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">faulty disposition of his troops, ii. <a href="#Page_246">246</a>, <a href="#Page_247">247</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his attack on Su-ma-pu, ii. <a href="#Page_262">262</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Siberian Railway. See <a href="#Railways">Railways</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Siberian Rifle Regiments, East, expansion and value of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_124">124</a>–126, ii. <a href="#Page_183">183</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Sinope, Russian victory at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_15">15</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_107">107</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Skobeleff, General, at Plevna, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_28">28</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">seizes Geok Tepe, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_31">31</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_148">148</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Solovieff, M., historian, the Crimean War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_21">21</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_22">22</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Sosnovski, Lieutenant-Colonel, and the Chinese, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_92">92</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Spade, revival in the army of the use of the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_142">142</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Stössel, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">defence of Port Arthur, ii. <a href="#Page_213">213</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his alarmist reports, ii. <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Subotin, General, capture of Mukden, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Sungari River, Russian withdrawal to, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_232">232</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Surrender, the question of, ii. <a href="#Page_175">175</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Suvoroff</i>, Russian battleship, gallantry on the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_240">240</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Suvoroff, General, his campaigns, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_8">8</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_10">10</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Sviatosloff, Grand-Duke, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_4">4</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Sweden as Russia’s neighbour, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_3">3</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">war with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_12">12</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_36">36</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her Russian frontier, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_40">40</a>–44</li>
-<!-- T section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Tartars as Russia’s neighbours, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_3">3</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Ta-shih-chiao, battle of, ii. <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Tashkent, Russian occupation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_147">147</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Tchernaya, battle of the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_18">18</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Telegraph and telephones, need for, ii. <a href="#Page_143">143</a>, <a href="#Page_144">144</a>, <a href="#Page_162">162</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Te-li-ssu, Russian disaster at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_257">257</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_258">258</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Territorial system, the, ii. <a href="#Page_126">126</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Tieh-ling, retirement from, ii. <a href="#Page_86">86</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Timber Company, the Royal:</li>
-<li class="idx1">its importance, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_169">169</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Bezobrazoff’s propositions, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_172">172</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">investigation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_173">173</a>–184;</li>
-<li class="idx1">history of, ii. <a href="#Page_306">306</a>–313</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Todleben, General:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Crimean War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_21">21</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">assault on Plevna, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_26">26</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Togo, Admiral:</li>
-<li class="idx1">naval battle at Port Arthur, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_238">238</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_240">240</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Topornin, General, ii. <a href="#Page_276">276</a>, <a href="#Page_292">292</a>, <a href="#Page_297">297</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Trans-Baikal Railway to Vladivostok, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_69">69</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">capacity of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_247">247</a>–256</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Trans-Baikal Cossack, success of, ii. <a href="#Page_153">153</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Triple Alliance, the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_46">46</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_51">51</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_87">87</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_113">113</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Trous de loup</i>, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_215">215</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_216">216</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Trubetski, Prince, President of the Moscow nobility,</li>
-<li class="idx2">correspondence with Kuropatkin, ii. <a href="#Page_198">198</a>–200</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Tserpitski, General, ii. <a href="#Page_279">279</a>, <a href="#Page_280">280</a>, <a href="#Page_290">290</a>, <a href="#Page_296">296</a>, <a href="#Page_297">297</a>, <a href="#Page_330">330</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Tsitsihar, capture of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_155">155</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_322">322</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Tsushima, defeat of Russian fleet at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_238">238</a>–241</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Turkey, and Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_3">3</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">wars with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_6">6</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_81">81</a>–83;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_15">15</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">her peace strength, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_15">15</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Crimean War, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_16">16</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">war with Servia and Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_24">24</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Plevna, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_25">25</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian loss, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_36">36</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">possibility of trouble with Russia, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_58">58</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Turkomans, Russian expedition against the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_30">30</a>–32, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_85">85</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_86">86</a></li>
-<!-- U section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Ujin, Colonel, his pack telephone system, ii. <a href="#Footnote_45"><i>n.</i> 45</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Uniform, value of, ii. <a href="#Page_100">100</a>–103</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Units, proposed details of, ii. <a href="#Page_161">161</a>–163;</li>
-<li class="idx1">breakdown of, ii. <a href="#Page_314">314</a>–335</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Ushakoff</i>, Russian ironclad, total loss of, at Tsushima, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_240">240</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Ussuri districts, Russian annexation of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_200">200</a></li>
-<!-- V section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Vannovski, General, War Minister:</li>
-<li class="idx1">the improvement of the army, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_113">113</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">succeeded by General Kuropatkin, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_115">115</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">on the allotment of funds, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_117">117</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Velichko, Major-General, armament for Port Arthur, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_128">128</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Viceroyalty, establishment of the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_187">187</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Vladivostok:</li>
-<li class="idx1">Trans-Baikal Railway, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_69">69</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">fortification of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_151">151</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_200">200</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Russian fleet at, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_237">237</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">daring sally from, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_239">239</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">garrison at, ii. <a href="#Page_206">206</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Vogak, Major-General, council at Port Arthur, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_180">180</a></li>
-<!-- W section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-War Department (see also <a href="#Army">Army</a>), problems for the Russian, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_1">1</a>–39;</li>
-<li class="idx1">expansion of the army, and growing complications of defence problems, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_78">78</a>–96;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the chief duty of the twentieth century, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_102">102</a>–104;</li>
-<li class="idx1">taken by surprise, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_105">105</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">estimate procedure and inadequacy of funds allotted, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_116">116</a>–122, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_138">138</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_139">139</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">ready by September, 1905, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_134">134</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">lines of communication 5,400 miles long, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_135">135</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">dual capacity of Finance Minister, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_139">139</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">Manchurian and Korean questions, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_145">145</a>–198;</li>
-<li class="idx1">reasons for the Russian reverses, i. <a href="#Page_229">229</a>–309, ii. <a href="#Page_1">1</a>–97;</li>
-<li class="idx1">measures for the improvement of the army, ii. <a href="#Page_98">98</a>–176;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the causes of Russian failure summarized, ii. <a href="#Page_177">177</a>–204</li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Wei-hai-wei, Japanese occupation of, ii. <a href="#Page_30">30</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Witgeft, Admiral, his death while attacking the Japanese fleet, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_238">238</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Witte, Sergius de, Minister of Finance, and Dalny, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_127">127</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_172">172</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his dual capacity, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_139">139</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">his influence, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_171">171</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">and the Russo-Chinese Bank, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_172">172</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">and the evacuation of Manchuria, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_173">173</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">and the Royal Timber Company, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_173">173</a>–184, ii. <a href="#Page_306">306</a>–313</li>
-<!-- Y section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Yakub Beg, death of, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_92">92</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Yalu, battles on the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_125">125</a>, <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_257">257</a>, ii. <a href="#Page_38">38</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the timber concession, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_169">169</a>–184, ii. <a href="#Page_306">306</a>–313;</li>
-<li class="idx1">naval engagement at the mouth of the, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_202">202</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-<i>Yellow Peril</i>, the, a reality, ii. <a href="#Page_200">200</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Yen-tai mines, battle at the, ii. <a href="#Page_234">234</a>–236</li>
-<!-- Z section -->
-<li class="idxs">
-Zarubaeff, General, i. <a href="http://gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_303">303</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">withdraws his troops towards Hai-cheng, ii. <a href="#Page_225">225</a>;</li>
-<li class="idx1">the retreat from Mukden, ii. <a href="#Page_232">232</a>, <a href="#Page_285">285</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>, <a href="#Page_333">333</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Zasulitch, General, his defeat, ii. <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a>, <a href="#Page_225">225</a></li>
-<li class="idx0">
-Zikoff, ii. <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class="endvol">THE END</p>
-
-<p class="center small">BILLING AND SONS, LTD., PRINTERS, GUILDFORD</p>
-
-<hr class="page" />
-
-<div id="adverts">
-
-<p class="noindent skip4"><i>JUST OUT.</i></p>
-
-<p class="advitem">ARTILLERY AND EXPLOSIVES.</p>
-
-<p class="advsub">ESSAYS AND LECTURES WRITTEN AND DELIVERED AT
-VARIOUS TIMES.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">By Sir <span class="smcap">Andrew Noble</span>,
-K.C.B., D.C.L., F.R.S.</p>
-
-<p class="center">
-With Numerous Diagrams and Illustrations. Medium 8vo. 21s. net.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p class="advsmall">“The experience of Sir Andrew Noble covers such a wide field, and
-so many important changes have taken place in connection with rifled
-guns, their ammunition and projectiles, during the long period dealt
-with, that the views of so eminent an expert are of an incalculable
-value. He is therefore to be congratulated on his decision to bring
-into one volume the mass of important information and invaluable
-details respecting the progress in naval and artillery
-science.”—<i>Broad Arrow.</i></p>
-
-
-<p class="advitem">THE FRONTIERSMAN’S POCKET BOOK.</p>
-
-<p class="advsub">Compiled and Edited by <span class="smcap">Roger
-Pocock</span>, on behalf of the Council of<br /> the Legion of
-Frontiersmen.</p>
-
-<p class="center">
-With Illustrations. Leather, 5s. net.
-</p>
-
-<p class="advsmall">“A very handy and well-packed little volume.... It
-brings together a large amount of well-digested practical information
-about camping, means of travel, signals, shooting, first-aid, and, in
-short, everything that a pioneering, handy man ought to know.... May
-be heartily recommended to all classes of scouts and
-frontiersmen.”—<i>Scotsman.</i></p>
-
-<p class="advitem">FORTIFICATION:</p>
-
-<p class="advsub">ITS PAST ACHIEVEMENTS, RECENT DEVELOPMENTS,<br />
-FUTURE PROGRESS.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">By Colonel Sir <span class="smcap">George
-S. Clarke</span>, R.E., K.C.M.G., F.R.S.,</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">Governor of Bombay.</p>
-
-<p class="center">New Edition Enlarged. With numerous Illustrations.<br />
-Medium 8vo. 18s. net.
-</p>
-
-<p class="advsmall">
-“The reflections of this great soldier-statesman will be found as
-fascinating as they are instructive, and that reasonable intelligence
-is the only essential qualification for reading them with profit as
-well as with interest and pleasure.”—<i>Westminster
-Gazette.</i></p>
-
-
-<p class="advitem">THE BATTLE OF WAVRE AND<br />GROUCHY’S RETREAT.</p>
-
-<p class="advsub">A STUDY OF AN OBSCURE PART OF<br /> THE WATERLOO CAMPAIGN.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">By <span class="smcap">W. Hyde Kelly</span>, R.E.</p>
-
-<p>
-With Maps and Plans. Demy 8vo. 8s. net.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p class="advsmall">“ ... brings forward, with a vividness and
-brilliancy which compel attention throughout one of the most obscure
-pages in the story of the famous struggle.”—<i>Birmingham
-Post.</i></p>
-
-
-<p class="advitem">OFFICIAL ACCOUNT OF<br />THE SECOND AFGHAN WAR,<br /> 1878–1880.</p>
-
-<p class="advsub">PRODUCED IN THE INTELLIGENCE BRANCH,<br />ARMY
-HEAD QUARTERS, INDIA</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">Abridged Official Account. With numerous Maps and Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Medium 8vo. 21s. net.
-</p>
-
-<p class="advsmall">“An excellent compendium of the whole war, clearly
-written and amply illustrated by photographs, maps, and
-diagrams.... It is a narrative that will fascinate the many who love
-to read about warlike movements.... It is a story of wise and patient
-preparation, carefully arranged generalship, supreme daring, amazing
-tenacity. Undoubtedly the right thing has been done in giving to the
-world a stirring story, which has remained too long, many will think,
-a secret record.”—<i>Sheffield Independent.</i></p>
-
-
-<p class="advitem">THE GERMAN OFFICIAL ACCOUNT OF<br />
-THE WAR IN SOUTH AFRICA</p>
-
-<p class="advsub">PREPARED IN THE HISTORICAL SECTION OF THE<br />
-GREAT GENERAL STAFF, BERLIN.</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">
-With Maps and Plans. Demy 8vo. 15s. net each.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p class="advhang"><span class="smcap">Part</span> I.—From its Commencement in 1899 to
-the Capture of General Cronje’s Forces at Paardeburg. Translated by
-Colonel <span class="smcap">W. H. H. Waters</span>, R.A.,
-C.V.O. <span class="smcap">Part</span> II.—The Advance to Pretoria,
-the Upper Tugela Campaign, etc., etc. Translated by Colonel <span
-class="smcap">Hubert du Cane</span>, R.A., M.V.O.</p>
-
-<p class="advsmall">“The most valuable work in which, since its close, the war has been
-discussed. It stands alone, because it is the only work in which the
-war has been surveyed by trained and competent students of war, the
-only one of which the judgments are based on a familiarity with the
-modern theory of war. The best book that has yet appeared on the South
-African War.”—<i>Morning Post.</i></p>
-
-<p class="advitem">THE BOOK OF WAR.</p>
-
-<p class="advsub">Translated into English by Captain <span class="smcap">E. F. Calthrop</span>, R.A.</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">Crown 8vo. 2s. 6d. net.
-</p>
-
-<p>This work, the writings of Suntzu and Wutzu, Chinese strategists of
-about the fifth century <span class="smcap">B.C.</span>, is the most
-famous work on the art of war in the Far East. It deals with
-operations of war, statecraft, moral and training of troops,
-stratagem, the use of spies, etc., and for twenty-five centuries it
-has been the bible of the Chinese or Japanese ruler. The book is
-distinguished alike by the poetry and grandeur of its language and the
-modernity of its spirit.</p>
-
-
-<p class="advitem">A WEEK AT WATERLOO IN 1815.</p>
-
-<p class="advsub">LADY DE LANCEY’S NARRATIVE.</p>
-
-<p class="lancey">BEING AN ACCOUNT OF HOW SHE NURSED HER
-HUSBAND,<br /> COLONEL SIR WILLIAM H. D. LANCEY,<br />
-MORTALLY WOUNDED IN THE GREAT BATTLE.</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">With Photogravure Portraits and other Illustrations.</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">
-Square crown 8vo. 6s. net.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p class="advsmall">“Pages of writing of terrible beauty, subtlety, delicacy, and power
-describe her nursing of him and his death. It is not a jagged series
-of poignant notes.... There is no heroine in English history or
-literature more worshipful than Lady de
-Lancey.”—<i>World.</i></p>
-
-
-<p class="advitem">THE STORY OF THE BATTLE OF WATERLOO.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">
-By the Rev. <span class="smcap">G. R. Gleig</span>. With Map and Illustrations.<br />
-</p>
-
-
-<p class="advitem">MOLTKE IN HIS HOME.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">By <span class="smcap">Friedrich August Dressler</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">Authorized Translation by Mrs. <span
-class="smcap">C. E. Barrett-Lennard</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">With an Introduction by
-Lieut.-General <span class="smcap">Lord Methuen</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">
-With Illustrations. Demy 8vo.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p class="advsmall">This does not attempt to give a biography of the
-great Field-Marshal, but contains a series of sketches and incidents
-of his life, and of the characteristics and surroundings of one of the
-greatest soldiers of the nineteenth century.</p>
-
-
-<p class="advitem">THE MILITARY LIFE OF<br />
-H.R.H. THE DUKE OF CAMBRIDGE.</p>
-
-<p class="advsub">WRITTEN UNDER THE AUTHORITY OF THE LATE DUKE<br />
-FROM DOCUMENTS IN HIS OWN POSSESSION.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">By Colonel <span class="smcap">Willoughby Verner</span>,</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">Late Rifle Brigade.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">Assisted by Captain <span class="smcap">Erasmus
-Darwin Parker</span>,</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">Late Manchester Regiment.</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">
-With Portraits. 2 Vols. Medium 8vo. 36s. net.
-</p>
-
-<p class="advsmall">“We congratulate the authors on the manner in
-which they have accomplished their task, and send our hearty good
-wishes after the volumes they have launched.”—<i>Saturday
-Review.</i></p>
-
-
-<p class="advitem">LUMSDEN OF THE GUIDES.</p>
-
-<p class="advsub2">A SKETCH OF THE LIFE OF SIR HARRY LUMSDEN,
- HIS SERVICES IN THE AFGHAN VALLEY, PUNJAB AND FRONTIER
-CAMPAIGNS, AND OF THE RAISING OF THE FAMOUS CORPS
-OF GUIDES.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">By Sir <span class="smcap">P. Lumsden</span> and
-<span class="smcap">G. R. Elsmie</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">
-Portraits, Maps, and Illustrations. Demy 8vo. 7s. 6d. net.<br />
-</p>
-
-
-<p class="advitem">THE AUTOBIOGRAPHY OF
-SIR HARRY SMITH.</p>
-
-<p class="advsub2">INCLUDING HIS SERVICES IN SOUTH AMERICA—IN THE
-PENINSULA AND FRANCE—AT NEW ORLEANS—AT WATERLOO—IN
-NORTH AMERICA AND JAMAICA—IN SOUTH
-AFRICA DURING THE KAFFIR WAR—IN INDIA DURING
-THE SIKH WAR—AND AT THE CAPE, <span class="smcap">ETC.</span></p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">Edited by <span class="smcap">G. C. Moore Smith</span>.<br />
-With some additional Chapters supplied by the
-<span class="smcap">Editor</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">
-With Portraits and Illustrations. Cheap Edition in 1 Vol. 10s. 6d. net.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p class="advitem">THE LIFE OF JOHN COLBORNE,<br />
-FIELD-MARSHAL LORD SEATON.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">By <span class="smcap">G. C. Moore Smith</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">
-With Maps, Portraits, and other Illustrations. Demy 8vo. 16s. net.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p class="advitem">THE LIFE OF JOHN NICHOLSON,<br />
-SOLDIER AND ADMINISTRATOR.</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">By Captain <span class="smcap">Lionel J. Trotter</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">With Portrait and 3 Maps.</p>
-
-<p class="advitem">THE LIFE OF HENRY PELHAM,<br />
-FIFTH DUKE OF NEWCASTLE.</p>
-
-<p class="advsub">SECRETARY OF STATE FOR THE COLONIES, 1852–54<br />
-<span class="smcap">AND</span> 1859–64, AND SECRETARY OF STATE FOR WAR,
-1852–55</p>
-
-<p class="advauthor">By <span class="smcap">John Martineau</span>,</p>
-
-<p class="advvtiny">Author of “The Life of Sir Bartle Frere.”</p>
-
-<p class="advtiny">
-With Portraits. Demy 8vo. 12s. net.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p class="advsmall">“Among the most interesting and absorbing books of
-the moment may safely be named The Life of Henry
-Pelham.”—<i>M.A.P.</i></p>
-
-<p class="advsmall2">“Mr. Martineau’s work is a model of painstaking
-research and lucid expression. He has the true historian’s
-temperament, his perspective and his judgment are
-unimpeachable.”—<i>Western Mail.</i></p>
-
-</div> <!-- End of Adverts -->
-
-<p class="center">LONDON: JOHN MURRAY, ALBEMARLE STREET, W.</p>
-
-<hr class="page" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" >FOOTNOTES</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div id="fn">
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_1" id="Footnote_1"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_1">[1]</a> [To economize
-ammunition at manœuvres, batteries sometimes signal that they are
-firing instead of actually doing so.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_2" id="Footnote_2"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_2">[2]</a> [What in the
-British Army are colloquially known as “Pow-wows.”—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_3" id="Footnote_3"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_3">[3]</a> [1903.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_4" id="Footnote_4"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_4">[4]</a> Independent fire
-is difficult to control, and almost impossible to stop in action.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_5" id="Footnote_5"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_5">[5]</a> [The Cross of
-St.&nbsp;George corresponds to our Victoria Cross, but is more easily
-won.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_6" id="Footnote_6"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_6">[6]</a> [Russian
-regiments in Europe, as a rule, consist of four battalions. East
-Siberian Rifle regiments in the late war had three.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_7" id="Footnote_7"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_7">[7]</a>
-[Liao-yang.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_8" id="Footnote_8"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_8">[8]</a> [The Sha
-Ho.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_9" id="Footnote_9"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_9">[9]</a> [Hsi-ping-kai,
-Kung-chu-ling, and Kuang-cheng-tzu.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_10" id="Footnote_10"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_10">[10]</a> [1903.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_11" id="Footnote_11"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_11">[11]</a> [See <a href="#Page_34">next
-page</a>.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_12" id="Footnote_12"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_12">[12]</a> It was
-followed by the 2nd&nbsp;Infantry Division; 10th and 17th&nbsp;Army Corps; 5th
-Siberian Corps; 1st&nbsp;Army Corps, and 6th&nbsp;Siberian Corps.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_13" id="Footnote_13"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_13">[13]</a> The leading
-units of the 10th&nbsp;Army Corps arrived on June&nbsp;30.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_14" id="Footnote_14"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_14">[14]</a> Sixty miles by
-a road which the rains had made very difficult.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_15" id="Footnote_15"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_15">[15]</a> [A European
-Russian regiment contains four battalions.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_16" id="Footnote_16"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_16">[16]</a> My report of
-June&nbsp;20.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_17" id="Footnote_17"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_17">[17]</a> The officer
-commanding the 2nd&nbsp;Manchurian Army stated that the whole war strength
-of his force (total of rifles, sabres, guns, with twenty-five men to a
-gun, and ten to a machine-gun) constituted, on an average, only half
-the actual numbers.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_18" id="Footnote_18"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_18">[18]</a> This amounted
-in some units to as much as 20 per cent. in men, and 30 per cent. in
-officers.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_19" id="Footnote_19"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_19">[19]</a> [Behind and
-between armies.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_20" id="Footnote_20"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_20">[20]</a> [One man on
-one full day’s work.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_21" id="Footnote_21"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_21">[21]</a> [General
-Kuropatkin’s views on this point appear to have changed, see
-<a href="#Page_270">p. 270</a>.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_22" id="Footnote_22"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_22">[22]</a> [Who had
-succeeded Grippenberg in the command of the 2nd&nbsp;Army.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_23" id="Footnote_23"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_23">[23]</a> Or
-sergeant-majors.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_24" id="Footnote_24"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_24">[24]</a> [On account of
-student disorders that had led to the closing of the
-Universities.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_25" id="Footnote_25"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_25">[25]</a> Medical
-students.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_26" id="Footnote_26"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_26">[26]</a> [General
-Kuropatkin himself.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_27" id="Footnote_27"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_27">[27]</a> Our
-communications were threatened, and the Yen-tai Mines on the flank were
-in the enemy’s hands.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_28" id="Footnote_28"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_28">[28]</a> The retirement
-from Liao-yang was orderly, while that from Mukden more nearly
-approached a rout; but it is not certain that the Russians were really
-beaten at the former place when the decision to retire was made.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span></p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_29" id="Footnote_29"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_29">[29]</a> [<i>Sic.</i>
-This seems almost incredible.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_30" id="Footnote_30"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_30">[30]</a> [The portion
-of this chapter which immediately follows deals in great detail with
-the breakdown of the unit organization. It has been separated from the
-text, and is given in Appendix II.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_31" id="Footnote_31"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_31">[31]</a> When the
-appointments of Inspector-Generals were created, some confusion
-resulted between the powers of these and that of the district
-commanders.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_32" id="Footnote_32"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_32">[32]</a> Two in the two
-brigades, and two on the divisional staff.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_33" id="Footnote_33"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_33">[33]</a> [Service with
-the colours in Russia has been reduced generally from five to three
-years.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_34" id="Footnote_34"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_34">[34]</a> The transport
-was not fully horsed.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_35" id="Footnote_35"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_35">[35]</a> [By this
-expression is meant a land not belonging to Russia.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_36" id="Footnote_36"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_36">[36]</a> [The term used
-by common folk in Russia when addressing men of higher birth.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_37" id="Footnote_37"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_37">[37]</a> Owing to
-famine in the Kholm district in the years just before the war, the
-reservists in it were called up later than those in the neighbouring
-districts, and the majority of them were consequently stationed on the
-line of communications.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_38" id="Footnote_38"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_38">[38]</a> [Summary
-courts-martial under martial law.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_39" id="Footnote_39"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_39">[39]</a> With
-two-wheeled baggage-carts, the number has to be increased by an
-additional fifty-four men.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_40" id="Footnote_40"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_40">[40]</a> Cooks and mess
-caterers, eighteen of each—<i>i.e.</i>, sixteen per company, and two
-with scout sections, one mounted, one dismounted.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_41" id="Footnote_41"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_41">[41]</a> Three per
-company.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_42" id="Footnote_42"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_42">[42]</a> [This is
-taking a regiment at 4,000—<i>i.e.</i>, the men actually in the
-firing-line and not employed specially—for scout sections, etc.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_43" id="Footnote_43"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_43">[43]</a> I several
-times reported to the War Minister that the despatch of drafts to fill
-up wastage in the units already at the front was much more necessary
-than the despatch to us of fresh units.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_44" id="Footnote_44"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_44">[44]</a> [Battle of
-Hei-kou-tai.—Ed.]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_45" id="Footnote_45"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_45">[45]</a> Colonel Ujin’s
-pack-telephone system, which I tried in Manchuria, is a very good
-one.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_46" id="Footnote_46"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_46">[46]</a> [Presumably
-squares on a map.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_47" id="Footnote_47"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_47">[47]</a> Artillery
-regiments to be subordinate in all respects as regards command to the
-divisional commander. The commander of an artillery brigade must
-technically superintend and inspect all batteries with an army
-corps.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_48" id="Footnote_48"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_48">[48]</a> One cavalry
-regiment per division.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_49" id="Footnote_49"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_49">[49]</a> One sapper
-battalion and one company of sappers per division; one mining and two
-telegraph companies as corps troops.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_50" id="Footnote_50"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_50">[50]</a> [<i>Sic.</i>
-This word is rather misleading. Some formation less than a regiment is
-meant.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_51" id="Footnote_51"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_51">[51]</a> </p>
-
-<table class="nobox2" summary="Cossack grades">
- <tbody>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Voiskovoi Starshina</td>
- <td class ="tdl">= Lieutenant-Colonel</td><td>}</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Esaoul</td>
- <td class ="tdl">= Captain</td><td>}</td>
- <td class="tdl">Of</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Sotnik</td>
- <td class="tdl">= Lieutenant</td><td>}</td>
- <td class="tdl">Cossacks.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdl">Khorunji</td>
- <td class ="tdl">= Cornet</td><td>}</td>
- </tr>
- </tbody>
-</table>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_52" id="Footnote_52"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_52">[52]</a> In the wars
-with Turkey and Persia, in the Caucasus and Central Asia.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_53" id="Footnote_53"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_53">[53]</a> [The first
-portion of this chapter, which is a recapitulation of what has already
-been written in Chapters I. to VII., has been omitted from this
-translation. What is now given touches more upon the war itself.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_54" id="Footnote_54"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_54">[54]</a> [About 1–1/3
-miles to the inch.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_55" id="Footnote_55"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_55">[55]</a> [<i>Sic.</i>
-Killed and wounded (see <a
-href="http://www.gutenberg.org/files/58256/58256-h/58256-h.htm#Page_207">p. 207,
-Vol I.</a>).—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_56" id="Footnote_56"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_56">[56]</a> [At the Sha
-Ho.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_57" id="Footnote_57"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_57">[57]</a> [At
-Mukden.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_58" id="Footnote_58"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_58">[58]</a> [Possibly the
-author refers to China, Japan, and India being young in a national
-sense.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_59" id="Footnote_59"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_59">[59]</a> [?
-Telegram.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_60" id="Footnote_60"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_60">[60]</a> [General
-Linievitch.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_61" id="Footnote_61"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_61">[61]</a> [? 1904 and
-1905 also.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_62" id="Footnote_62"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_62">[62]</a> [The name of
-General Kuropatkin’s country estate in the province of Pskoff.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_63" id="Footnote_63"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_63">[63]</a> [This chapter
-is composed of the introduction and conclusion to Volume III. of the
-original, which have been translated, as they add some light on points
-not touched upon in Volume IV.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_64" id="Footnote_64"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_64">[64]</a> Eighteen
-infantry battalions, 25 squadrons, 86 guns total, 19,000 rifles and
-sabres.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_65" id="Footnote_65"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_65">[65]</a> Two of them
-sapper battalions. The third battalions formed in Russia for all the
-East Siberian Rifle Regiments were only then beginning to arrive.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_66" id="Footnote_66"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_66">[66]</a> The Viceroy’s
-letter (No. 2,960) of June&nbsp;6 called attention to the necessity of
-“bearing in mind measures to guard against the event of an advance by
-Kuroki.”</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_67" id="Footnote_67"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_67">[67]</a> 1st and 9th
-East Siberian Rifle Divisions, and 2nd&nbsp;Brigade of the 35th
-Division.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_68" id="Footnote_68"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_68">[68]</a> [There are
-several passes of this name.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_69" id="Footnote_69"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_69">[69]</a> [This action
-is apparently what is elsewhere known as that of Chiao-tou.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_70" id="Footnote_70"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_70">[70]</a> [The reasons
-for this are given in great detail in Volume IV.—<i>i.e.</i>,
-Chapters I. to XII. of this book.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_71" id="Footnote_71"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_71">[71]</a> This regiment
-did splendidly in later fights.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_72" id="Footnote_72"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_72">[72]</a> The 122nd
-Tamboff Regiment was attacked when bivouacking.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_73" id="Footnote_73"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_73">[73]</a> The positions
-held on August&nbsp;31 by the portion of Kuroki’s army that crossed the
-river were only eleven miles from the railway.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_74" id="Footnote_74"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_74">[74]</a> [?
-Houton.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_75" id="Footnote_75"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_75">[75]</a> The corps also
-arrived at the front with a shortage of about 400 men per
-regiment—<i>i.e.</i>, 1,600 per division.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_76" id="Footnote_76"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_76">[76]</a> Less one
-brigade garrisoning Tieh-ling.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_77" id="Footnote_77"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_77">[77]</a> [Presumably
-because it was destined for the 2nd&nbsp;Army.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_78" id="Footnote_78"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_78">[78]</a> Including
-Rennenkampf’s column, Shtakelberg had under him 85 battalions, 43
-<i>sotnias</i>, 174 guns, and 3 sapper battalions.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_79" id="Footnote_79"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_79">[79]</a> A very large
-number of men, particularly of the 1st&nbsp;Corps, left the ranks without
-reason. At Mukden, however, this corps fought with great gallantry and
-steadiness.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_80" id="Footnote_80"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_80">[80]</a> [Grippenberg
-had already been appointed to the command of the 2nd&nbsp;Army.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_81" id="Footnote_81"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_81">[81]</a> From
-Ssu-chia-tun station to Ta-wang-chiang-pu.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_82" id="Footnote_82"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_82">[82]</a> From Fu-shun
-to Ma-chia-tun.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_83" id="Footnote_83"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_83">[83]</a> Of 72
-squadrons and <i>sotnias</i>, 4 mounted scout parties, and 22
-guns.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_84" id="Footnote_84"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_84">[84]</a> Including
-thirty siege-guns.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_85" id="Footnote_85"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_85">[85]</a> Its garrison
-was not more than two battalions.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_86" id="Footnote_86"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_86">[86]</a> Two regiments
-of the four in this division had been sent to reinforce the Composite
-Rifle Corps, and one regiment to reinforce the 1st&nbsp;Siberians.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_87" id="Footnote_87"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_87">[87]</a> General
-Grippenberg could not use the telephone himself, as he was somewhat
-deaf.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_88" id="Footnote_88"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_88">[88]</a> Out of the
-80,000 men of the drafts which had arrived.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_89" id="Footnote_89"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_89">[89]</a> According to
-the programme of the arrival of the troops, I calculated on increasing
-my reserve by three and four Rifle brigades, but they arrived more
-than ten days late.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_90" id="Footnote_90"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_90">[90]</a> For operations
-against Oku.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_91" id="Footnote_91"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_91">[91]</a> [?
-Houton.—<span class="smcap">Ed.]</span></p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_92" id="Footnote_92"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_92">[92]</a> One was
-ordered to support General Launits.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_93" id="Footnote_93"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_93">[93]</a> [The body of
-Vol III. in the original deals in great detail with the battle of
-Mukden, and is omitted in this translation.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_94" id="Footnote_94"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_94">[94]</a> Except from
-February&nbsp;27 to March&nbsp;1.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_95" id="Footnote_95"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_95">[95]</a> 12.20 p.m.,
-February&nbsp;28.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_96" id="Footnote_96"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_96">[96]</a> 3.25 p.m.,
-March&nbsp;2.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_97" id="Footnote_97"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_97">[97]</a> 6.45 a.m.,
-March&nbsp;5.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_98" id="Footnote_98"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_98">[98]</a> [Query
-north-west.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_99" id="Footnote_99"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_99">[99]</a> In addition to
-five and a half battalions of the 41st&nbsp;Division.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_100" id="Footnote_100"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_100">[100]</a> Sixteen
-battalions of the 19th&nbsp;Corps, concentrated at Sha-ling-pu under my
-orders on March&nbsp;2; sixteen battalions of Golembatovski’s; and eight
-battalions of Churin’s division, detained by Kaulbars on the way to
-join the troops operating against Nogi.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_101" id="Footnote_101"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_101">[101]</a>
-Major-General Krauze’s report.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_102" id="Footnote_102"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_102">[102]</a> And fifty
-battalions collected towards Hsin-min-tun were thus left with two
-squadrons of the Niejinsk Dragoons.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_103" id="Footnote_103"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_103">[103]</a> In the
-afternoon of the 11th this division began to move on Tieh-ling; it had
-only suffered small loss during the battle.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_104" id="Footnote_104"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_104">[104]</a> [Only the
-concluding portion of what follows in the original is given here; the
-remainder is an exact repetition of what has been more than once
-recapitulated.—<span class="smcap">Ed.]</span></p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_105" id="Footnote_105"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_105">[105]</a> [This
-extract is, by the kind permission of the editor, reprinted from
-<i>McClure’s Magazine</i>, where it appeared as an editorial note upon
-the article on these memoirs, published in September, 1908.—<span
-class="smcap">Ed.]</span></p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_106" id="Footnote_106"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_106">[106]</a>
-<i>Osvobojdenie</i>, No. 75, Stuttgart, August&nbsp;10, 1905. No question
-has ever been raised, I think, with regard to the authenticity of
-these letters and telegrams; but if there were any doubt of it, such
-doubt would be removed by a comparison of them with General
-Kuropatkin’s memoirs.—G. K.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_107" id="Footnote_107"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_107">[107]</a> Asakawa, who
-seems to have investigated this matter carefully, says that the
-original contract for this concession dated as far back as August&nbsp;26,
-1896, when the Korean King was living in the Russian Legation at Seoul
-as a refugee.—“The Russo-Japanese Conflict,” by K. Asakawa, London,
-1905, p. 289.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_108" id="Footnote_108"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_108">[108]</a> The italics
-are mine.—G. K.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_109" id="Footnote_109"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_109">[109]</a> [Extracted
-from <a href="#CHAPTER_X">Chapter X</a>.—<span class="smcap">Ed.</span>]</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_110" id="Footnote_110"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_110">[110]</a> At the
-junction of roads near Newchuang.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_111" id="Footnote_111"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_111">[111]</a> The 21st and
-23rd&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Regiments.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_112" id="Footnote_112"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_112">[112]</a> Of these a
-brigade of the 6th&nbsp;East Siberian Rifle Division and one regiment of
-the 1st&nbsp;Army Corps were sent by my orders.</p>
-
-<p class="fnote"><a name="Footnote_113" id="Footnote_113"></a><a
-href="#FNanchor_113">[113]</a> The Omsk
-Regiment lost its way, and for a long time could not be found, and the
-Krasnoyarsk and Tsaritsin Regiments were kept with the 2nd&nbsp;Siberian
-Corps.</p>
-
-</div> <!-- End of footnotes -->
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Russian army and the Japanese War,
-Volume II, by Aleksei Nicolaevich Kuropatkin
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK RUSSIAN ARMY AND THE JAPANESE WAR ***
-
-***** This file should be named 60975-h.htm or 60975-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/9/7/60975/
-
-Produced by Brian Coe, David Tipple and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by The Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/battlefields.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/battlefields.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 314f094..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/battlefields.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/battlefields_large.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/battlefields_large.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9b951a8..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/battlefields_large.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7cedf69..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/diagram.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/diagram.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 814f959..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/diagram.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/grippenberg.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/grippenberg.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 66f1d24..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/grippenberg.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/linievitch.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/linievitch.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d1dd814..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/linievitch.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/manchuria.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/manchuria.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 21cd5f5..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/manchuria.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/manchuria_large.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/manchuria_large.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6b593e5..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/manchuria_large.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/nogi.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/nogi.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index cbaed0b..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/nogi.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/oyama.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/oyama.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ef992d1..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/oyama.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/reviewing.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/reviewing.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6cefd18..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/reviewing.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/theatre.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/theatre.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a3ded12..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/theatre.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60975-h/images/theatre_large.jpg b/old/60975-h/images/theatre_large.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2046bbb..0000000
--- a/old/60975-h/images/theatre_large.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ